summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
-rw-r--r--.gitattributes3
-rw-r--r--4540-h.zipbin0 -> 171369 bytes
-rw-r--r--4540-h/4540-h.htm11426
-rw-r--r--4540.txt8897
-rw-r--r--4540.zipbin0 -> 168535 bytes
-rw-r--r--LICENSE.txt11
-rw-r--r--README.md2
-rw-r--r--old/nhstp10.txt8987
-rw-r--r--old/nhstp10.zipbin0 -> 167676 bytes
9 files changed, 29326 insertions, 0 deletions
diff --git a/.gitattributes b/.gitattributes
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6833f05
--- /dev/null
+++ b/.gitattributes
@@ -0,0 +1,3 @@
+* text=auto
+*.txt text
+*.md text
diff --git a/4540-h.zip b/4540-h.zip
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..d3bb6a3
--- /dev/null
+++ b/4540-h.zip
Binary files differ
diff --git a/4540-h/4540-h.htm b/4540-h/4540-h.htm
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..d87eb8b
--- /dev/null
+++ b/4540-h/4540-h.htm
@@ -0,0 +1,11426 @@
+<!DOCTYPE HTML PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD HTML 4.01 Transitional//EN">
+<HTML>
+<HEAD>
+
+<META HTTP-EQUIV="Content-Type" CONTENT="text/html; charset=iso-8859-1">
+
+<TITLE>
+The Project Gutenberg E-text of In His Steps, by Charles M. Sheldon
+</TITLE>
+
+<STYLE TYPE="text/css">
+BODY { color: Black;
+ background: White;
+ margin-right: 10%;
+ margin-left: 10%;
+ font-family: "Times New Roman", serif;
+ text-align: justify }
+
+P {text-indent: 4% }
+
+P.noindent {text-indent: 0% }
+
+P.poem {text-indent: 0%;
+ margin-left: 10%;
+ font-size: small }
+
+P.letter {text-indent: 0%;
+ font-size: small ;
+ margin-left: 10% ;
+ margin-right: 10% }
+
+P.footnote {font-size: small ;
+ text-indent: 0% ;
+ margin-left: 0% ;
+ margin-right: 0% }
+
+P.transnote {font-size: small ;
+ text-indent: 0% ;
+ margin-left: 0% ;
+ margin-right: 0% }
+
+P.intro {font-size: 80% ;
+ text-indent: 0% ;
+ margin-left: 10% ;
+ margin-right: 10% }
+
+P.finis { font-size: larger ;
+ text-align: center ;
+ text-indent: 0% ;
+ margin-left: 0% ;
+ margin-right: 0% }
+
+</STYLE>
+
+</HEAD>
+
+<BODY>
+
+
+<pre>
+
+The Project Gutenberg EBook of In His Steps, by Charles M. Sheldon
+
+This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
+almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
+re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
+with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
+
+
+Title: In His Steps
+
+Author: Charles M. Sheldon
+
+Posting Date: August 11, 2009 [EBook #4540]
+Release Date: October, 2003
+First Posted: February 5, 2002
+
+Language: English
+
+Character set encoding: ISO-8859-1
+
+*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK IN HIS STEPS ***
+
+
+
+
+Produced by Charles Aldarondo. HTML version by Al Haines.
+
+
+
+
+
+</pre>
+
+
+<BR><BR>
+
+<H1 ALIGN="center">
+In His Steps
+</H1>
+
+<BR>
+
+<H3 ALIGN="center">
+by
+</H3>
+
+<H2 ALIGN="center">
+Charles M. Sheldon
+</H2>
+
+<BR><BR><BR>
+
+<A NAME="chap01"></A>
+<H3 ALIGN="center">
+Chapter One
+</H3>
+
+<P CLASS="intro">
+"For hereunto were ye called; because Christ also suffered for you,
+leaving you an example, that ye should follow in his steps."
+</P>
+
+<BR>
+
+<P>
+It was Friday morning and the Rev. Henry Maxwell was trying to
+finish his Sunday morning sermon. He had been interrupted several
+times and was growing nervous as the morning wore away, and the
+sermon grew very slowly toward a satisfactory finish.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Mary," he called to his wife, as he went upstairs after the last
+interruption, "if any one comes after this, I wish you would say I
+am very busy and cannot come down unless it is something very
+important."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Yes, Henry. But I am going over to visit the kindergarten and you
+will have the house all to yourself."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The minister went up into his study and shut the door. In a few
+minutes he heard his wife go out, and then everything was quiet. He
+settled himself at his desk with a sigh of relief and began to
+write. His text was from 1 Peter 2:21: "For hereunto were ye called;
+because Christ also suffered for you, leaving you an example that ye
+should follow his steps."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+He had emphasized in the first part of the sermon the Atonement as a
+personal sacrifice, calling attention to the fact of Jesus'
+suffering in various ways, in His life as well as in His death. He
+had then gone on to emphasize the Atonement from the side of
+example, giving illustrations from the life and teachings of Jesus
+to show how faith in the Christ helped to save men because of the
+pattern or character He displayed for their imitation. He was now on
+the third and last point, the necessity of following Jesus in His
+sacrifice and example.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+He had put down "Three Steps. What are they?" and was about to
+enumerate them in logical order when the bell rang sharply. It was
+one of those clock-work bells, and always went off as a clock might
+go if it tried to strike twelve all at once.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Henry Maxwell sat at his desk and frowned a little. He made no
+movement to answer the bell. Very soon it rang again; then he rose
+and walked over to one of his windows which commanded the view of
+the front door. A man was standing on the steps. He was a young man,
+very shabbily dressed.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Looks like a tramp," said the minister. "I suppose I'll have to go
+down and&mdash;"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+He did not finish his sentence but he went downstairs and opened the
+front door. There was a moment's pause as the two men stood facing
+each other, then the shabby-looking young man said:
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I'm out of a job, sir, and thought maybe you might put me in the
+way of getting something."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I don't know of anything. Jobs are scarce&mdash;" replied the minister,
+beginning to shut the door slowly.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I didn't know but you might perhaps be able to give me a line to
+the city railway or the superintendent of the shops, or something,"
+continued the young man, shifting his faded hat from one hand to the
+other nervously.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"It would be of no use. You will have to excuse me. I am very busy
+this morning. I hope you will find something. Sorry I can't give you
+something to do here. But I keep only a horse and a cow and do the
+work myself."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The Rev. Henry Maxwell closed the door and heard the man walk down
+the steps. As he went up into his study he saw from his hall window
+that the man was going slowly down the street, still holding his hat
+between his hands. There was something in the figure so dejected,
+homeless and forsaken that the minister hesitated a moment as he
+stood looking at it. Then he turned to his desk and with a sigh
+began the writing where he had left off.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+He had no more interruptions, and when his wife came in two hours
+later the sermon was finished, the loose leaves gathered up and
+neatly tied together, and laid on his Bible all ready for the Sunday
+morning service.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"A queer thing happened at the kindergarten this morning, Henry,"
+said his wife while they were eating dinner. "You know I went over
+with Mrs. Brown to visit the school, and just after the games, while
+the children were at the tables, the door opened and a young man
+came in holding a dirty hat in both hands. He sat down near the door
+and never said a word; only looked at the children. He was evidently
+a tramp, and Miss Wren and her assistant Miss Kyle were a little
+frightened at first, but he sat there very quietly and after a few
+minutes he went out."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Perhaps he was tired and wanted to rest somewhere. The same man
+called here, I think. Did you say he looked like a tramp?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Yes, very dusty, shabby and generally tramp-like. Not more than
+thirty or thirty-three years old, I should say."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"The same man," said the Rev. Henry Maxwell thoughtfully.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Did you finish your sermon, Henry?" his wife asked after a pause.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Yes, all done. It has been a very busy week with me. The two
+sermons have cost me a good deal of labor."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"They will be appreciated by a large audience, Sunday, I hope,"
+replied his wife smiling. "What are you going to preach about in the
+morning?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Following Christ. I take up the Atonement under the head of
+sacrifice and example, and then show the steps needed to follow His
+sacrifice and example."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I am sure it is a good sermon. I hope it won't rain Sunday. We have
+had so many stormy Sundays lately."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Yes, the audiences have been quite small for some time. People will
+not come out to church in a storm." The Rev. Henry Maxwell sighed as
+he said it. He was thinking of the careful, laborious effort he had
+made in preparing sermons for large audiences that failed to appear.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+But Sunday morning dawned on the town of Raymond one of the perfect
+days that sometimes come after long periods of wind and mud and
+rain. The air was clear and bracing, the sky was free from all
+threatening signs, and every one in Mr. Maxwell's parish prepared to
+go to church. When the service opened at eleven o'clock the large
+building was filled with an audience of the best-dressed, most
+comfortable looking people of Raymond.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The First Church of Raymond believed in having the best music that
+money could buy, and its quartet choir this morning was a source of
+great pleasure to the congregation. The anthem was inspiring. All
+the music was in keeping with the subject of the sermon. And the
+anthem was an elaborate adaptation to the most modern music of the
+hymn,
+</P>
+
+<P CLASS="poem">
+ "Jesus, I my cross have taken,<BR>
+ All to leave and follow Thee."<BR>
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Just before the sermon, the soprano sang a solo, the well-known
+hymn,
+</P>
+
+<P CLASS="poem">
+ "Where He leads me I will follow,<BR>
+ I'll go with Him, with Him, all the way."<BR>
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Rachel Winslow looked very beautiful that morning as she stood up
+behind the screen of carved oak which was significantly marked with
+the emblems of the cross and the crown. Her voice was even more
+beautiful than her face, and that meant a great deal. There was a
+general rustle of expectation over the audience as she rose. Mr.
+Maxwell settled himself contentedly behind the pulpit. Rachel
+Winslow's singing always helped him. He generally arranged for a
+song before the sermon. It made possible a certain inspiration of
+feeling that made his delivery more impressive.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+People said to themselves they had never heard such singing even in
+the First Church. It is certain that if it had not been a church
+service, her solo would have been vigorously applauded. It even
+seemed to the minister when she sat down that something like an
+attempted clapping of hands or a striking of feet on the floor swept
+through the church. He was startled by it. As he rose, however, and
+laid his sermon on the Bible, he said to himself he had been
+deceived. Of course it could not occur. In a few moments he was
+absorbed in his sermon and everything else was forgotten in the
+pleasure of his delivery.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+No one had ever accused Henry Maxwell of being a dull preacher. On
+the contrary, he had often been charged with being sensational; not
+in what he had said so much as in his way of saying it. But the
+First Church people liked that. It gave their preacher and their
+parish a pleasant distinction that was agreeable.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+It was also true that the pastor of the First Church loved to
+preach. He seldom exchanged. He was eager to be in his own pulpit
+when Sunday came. There was an exhilarating half hour for him as he
+faced a church full of people and know that he had a hearing. He was
+peculiarly sensitive to variations in the attendance. He never
+preached well before a small audience. The weather also affected him
+decidedly. He was at his best before just such an audience as faced
+him now, on just such a morning. He felt a glow of satisfaction as
+he went on. The church was the first in the city. It had the best
+choir. It had a membership composed of the leading people,
+representatives of the wealth, society and intelligence of Raymond.
+He was going abroad on a three months vacation in the summer, and
+the circumstances of his pastorate, his influence and his position
+as pastor of the First Church in the city&mdash;
+</P>
+
+<P>
+It is not certain that the Rev. Henry Maxwell knew just how he could
+carry on that thought in connection with his sermon, but as he drew
+near the end of it he knew that he had at some point in his delivery
+had all those feelings. They had entered into the very substance of
+his thought; it might have been all in a few seconds of time, but he
+had been conscious of defining his position and his emotions as well
+as if he had held a soliloquy, and his delivery partook of the
+thrill of deep personal satisfaction.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The sermon was interesting. It was full of striking sentences. They
+would have commanded attention printed. Spoken with the passion of a
+dramatic utterance that had the good taste never to offend with a
+suspicion of ranting or declamation, they were very effective. If
+the Rev. Henry Maxwell that morning felt satisfied with the
+conditions of his pastorate, the First Church also had a similar
+feeling as it congratulated itself on the presence in the pulpit of
+this scholarly, refined, somewhat striking face and figure,
+preaching with such animation and freedom from all vulgar, noisy or
+disagreeable mannerism.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Suddenly, into the midst of this perfect accord and concord between
+preacher and audience, there came a very remarkable interruption. It
+would be difficult to indicate the extent of the shock which this
+interruption measured. It was so unexpected, so entirely contrary to
+any thought of any person present that it offered no room for
+argument or, for the time being, of resistance.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The sermon had come to a close. Mr. Maxwell had just turned the half
+of the big Bible over upon his manuscript and was about to sit down
+as the quartet prepared to arise to sing the closing selection,
+</P>
+
+<P CLASS="poem">
+ "All for Jesus, all for Jesus,<BR>
+ All my being's ransomed powers..."<BR>
+</P>
+
+<P CLASS="noindent">
+when the entire congregation was startled by the sound of a man's
+voice. It came from the rear of the church, from one of the seats
+under the gallery. The next moment the figure of a man came out of
+the shadow there and walked down the middle aisle.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Before the startled congregation fairly realized what was going on
+the man had reached the open space in front of the pulpit and had
+turned about facing the people.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I've been wondering since I came in here"&mdash;they were the words he
+used under the gallery, and he repeated them&mdash;"if it would be just
+the thing to say a word at the close of the service. I'm not drunk
+and I'm not crazy, and I am perfectly harmless, but if I die, as
+there is every likelihood I shall in a few days, I want the
+satisfaction of thinking that I said my say in a place like this,
+and before this sort of a crowd."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Henry Maxwell had not taken his seat, and he now remained standing,
+leaning on his pulpit, looking down at the stranger. It was the man
+who had come to his house the Friday before, the same dusty, worn,
+shabby-looking young man. He held his faded hat in his two hands. It
+seemed to be a favorite gesture. He had not been shaved and his hair
+was rough and tangled. It is doubtful if any one like this had ever
+confronted the First Church within the sanctuary. It was tolerably
+familiar with this sort of humanity out on the street, around the
+railroad shops, wandering up and down the avenue, but it had never
+dreamed of such an incident as this so near.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+There was nothing offensive in the man's manner or tone. He was not
+excited and he spoke in a low but distinct voice. Mr. Maxwell was
+conscious, even as he stood there smitten into dumb astonishment at
+the event, that somehow the man's action reminded him of a person he
+had once seen walking and talking in his sleep.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+No one in the house made any motion to stop the stranger or in any
+way interrupt him. Perhaps the first shock of his sudden appearance
+deepened into a genuine perplexity concerning what was best to do.
+However that may be, he went on as if he had no thought of
+interruption and no thought of the unusual element which he had
+introduced into the decorum of the First Church service. And all the
+while he was speaking, the minister leaded over the pulpit, his face
+growing more white and sad every moment. But he made no movement to
+stop him, and the people sat smitten into breathless silence. One
+other face, that of Rachel Winslow from the choir, stared white and
+intent down at the shabby figure with the faded hat. Her face was
+striking at any time. Under the pressure of the present unheard-of
+incident it was as personally distinct as if it had been framed in
+fire.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I'm not an ordinary tramp, though I don't know of any teaching of
+Jesus that makes one kind of a tramp less worth saving than another.
+Do you?" He put the question as naturally as if the whole
+congregation had been a small Bible class. He paused just a moment
+and coughed painfully. Then he went on.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I lost my job ten months ago. I am a printer by trade. The new
+linotype machines are beautiful specimens of invention, but I know
+six men who have killed themselves inside of the year just on
+account of those machines. Of course I don't blame the newspapers
+for getting the machines. Meanwhile, what can a man do? I know I
+never learned but the one trade, and that's all I can do. I've
+tramped all over the country trying to find something. There are a
+good many others like me. I'm not complaining, am I? Just stating
+facts. But I was wondering as I sat there under the gallery, if what
+you call following Jesus is the same thing as what He taught. What
+did He mean when He said: 'Follow Me!'? The minister said,"&mdash;here he
+turned about and looked up at the pulpit&mdash;"that it is necessary for
+the disciple of Jesus to follow His steps, and he said the steps are
+'obedience, faith, love and imitation.' But I did not hear him tell
+you just what he meant that to mean, especially the last step. What
+do you Christians mean by following the steps of Jesus?
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I've tramped through this city for three days trying to find a job;
+and in all that time I've not had a word of sympathy or comfort
+except from your minister here, who said he was sorry for me and
+hoped I would find a job somewhere. I suppose it is because you get
+so imposed on by the professional tramp that you have lost your
+interest in any other sort. I'm not blaming anybody, am I? Just
+stating facts. Of course, I understand you can't all go out of your
+way to hunt up jobs for other people like me. I'm not asking you to;
+but what I feel puzzled about is, what is meant by following Jesus.
+What do you mean when you sing 'I'll go with Him, with Him, all the
+way?' Do you mean that you are suffering and denying yourselves and
+trying to save lost, suffering humanity just as I understand Jesus
+did? What do you mean by it? I see the ragged edge of things a good
+deal. I understand there are more than five hundred men in this city
+in my case. Most of them have families. My wife died four months
+ago. I'm glad she is out of trouble. My little girl is staying with
+a printer's family until I find a job. Somehow I get puzzled when I
+see so many Christians living in luxury and singing 'Jesus, I my
+cross have taken, all to leave and follow Thee,' and remember how my
+wife died in a tenement in New York City, gasping for air and asking
+God to take the little girl too. Of course I don't expect you people
+can prevent every one from dying of starvation, lack of proper
+nourishment and tenement air, but what does following Jesus mean? I
+understand that Christian people own a good many of the tenements. A
+member of a church was the owner of the one where my wife died, and
+I have wondered if following Jesus all the way was true in his case.
+I heard some people singing at a church prayer meeting the other
+night,
+</P>
+
+<P CLASS="poem">
+ 'All for Jesus, all for Jesus,<BR>
+ All my being's ransomed powers,<BR>
+ All my thoughts, and all my doings,<BR>
+ All my days, and all my hours.'<BR>
+</P>
+
+<P CLASS="noindent">
+and I kept wondering as I sat on the steps outside just what they
+meant by it. It seems to me there's an awful lot of trouble in the
+world that somehow wouldn't exist if all the people who sing such
+songs went and lived them out. I suppose I don't understand. But
+what would Jesus do? Is that what you mean by following His steps?
+It seems to me sometimes as if the people in the big churches had
+good clothes and nice houses to live in, and money to spend for
+luxuries, and could go away on summer vacations and all that, while
+the people outside the churches, thousands of them, I mean, die in
+tenements, and walk the streets for jobs, and never have a piano or
+a picture in the house, and grow up in misery and drunkenness and
+sin."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The man suddenly gave a queer lurch over in the direction of the
+communion table and laid one grimy hand on it. His hat fell upon the
+carpet at his feet. A stir went through the congregation. Dr. West
+half rose from his pew, but as yet the silence was unbroken by any
+voice or movement worth mentioning in the audience. The man passed
+his other hand across his eyes, and then, without any warning, fell
+heavily forward on his face, full length up the aisle. Henry Maxwell
+spoke:
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"We will consider the service closed."
+</P>
+
+<BR><BR><BR>
+
+<A NAME="chap02"></A>
+<H3 ALIGN="center">
+Chapter Two
+</H3>
+
+<P>
+Henry Maxwell and a group of his church members remained some time
+in the study. The man lay on the couch there and breathed heavily.
+When the question of what to do with him came up, the minister
+insisted on taking the man to his own house; he lived near by and
+had an extra room. Rachel Winslow said:
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Mother has no company at present. I am sure we would be glad to
+give him a place with us."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+She looked strongly agitated. No one noticed it particularly. They
+were all excited over the strange event, the strangest that First
+Church people could remember. But the minister insisted on taking
+charge of the man, and when a carriage came the unconscious but
+living form was carried to his house; and with the entrance of that
+humanity into the minister's spare room a new chapter in Henry
+Maxwell's life began, and yet no one, himself least of all, dreamed
+of the remarkable change it was destined to make in all his after
+definition of the Christian discipleship.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The event created a great sensation in the First Church parish.
+People talked of nothing else for a week. It was the general
+impression that the man had wandered into the church in a condition
+of mental disturbance caused by his troubles, and that all the time
+he was talking he was in a strange delirium of fever and really
+ignorant of his surroundings. That was the most charitable
+construction to put upon his action. It was the general agreement
+also that there was a singular absence of anything bitter or
+complaining in what the man had said. He had, throughout, spoken in
+a mild, apologetic tone, almost as if he were one of the
+congregation seeking for light on a very difficult subject.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The third day after his removal to the minister's house there was a
+marked change in his condition. The doctor spoke of it but offered
+no hope. Saturday morning he still lingered, although he had rapidly
+failed as the week drew near its close. Sunday morning, just before
+the clock struck one, he rallied and asked if his child had come.
+The minister had sent for her at once as soon as he had been able to
+secure her address from some letters found in the man's pocket. He
+had been conscious and able to talk coherently only a few moments
+since his attack.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"The child is coming. She will be here," Mr. Maxwell said as he sat
+there, his face showing marks of the strain of the week's vigil; for
+he had insisted on sitting up nearly every night.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I shall never see her in this world," the man whispered. Then he
+uttered with great difficulty the words, "You have been good to me.
+Somehow I feel as if it was what Jesus would do."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+After a few minutes he turned his head slightly, and before Mr.
+Maxwell could realize the fact, the doctor said quietly, "He is
+gone."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The Sunday morning that dawned on the city of Raymond was exactly
+like the Sunday of a week before. Mr. Maxwell entered his pulpit to
+face one of the largest congregations that had ever crowded the
+First Church. He was haggard and looked as if he had just risen from
+a long illness. His wife was at home with the little girl, who had
+come on the morning train an hour after her father had died. He lay
+in that spare room, his troubles over, and the minister could see
+the face as he opened the Bible and arranged his different notices
+on the side of the desk as he had been in the habit of doing for ten
+years.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The service that morning contained a new element. No one could
+remember when Henry Maxwell had preached in the morning without
+notes. As a matter of fact he had done so occasionally when he first
+entered the ministry, but for a long time he had carefully written
+every word of his morning sermon, and nearly always his evening
+discourses as well. It cannot be said that his sermon this morning
+was striking or impressive. He talked with considerable hesitation.
+It was evident that some great idea struggled in his thought for
+utterance, but it was not expressed in the theme he had chosen for
+his preaching. It was near the close of his sermon that he began to
+gather a certain strength that had been painfully lacking at the
+beginning.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+He closed the Bible and, stepping out at the side of the desk, faced
+his people and began to talk to them about the remarkable scene of
+the week before.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Our brother," somehow the words sounded a little strange coming
+from his lips, "passed away this morning. I have not yet had time to
+learn all his history. He had one sister living in Chicago. I have
+written her and have not yet received an answer. His little girl is
+with us and will remain for the time."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+He paused and looked over the house. He thought he had never seen so
+many earnest faces during his entire pastorate. He was not able yet
+to tell his people his experiences, the crisis through which he was
+even now moving. But something of his feeling passed from him to
+them, and it did not seem to him that he was acting under a careless
+impulse at all to go on and break to them this morning something of
+the message he bore in his heart.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+So he went on: "The appearance and words of this stranger in the
+church last Sunday made a very powerful impression on me. I am not
+able to conceal from you or myself the fact that what he said,
+followed as it has been by his death in my house, has compelled me
+to ask as I never asked before 'What does following Jesus mean?' I
+am not in a position yet to utter any condemnation of this people
+or, to a certain extent, of myself, either in our Christ-like
+relations to this man or the numbers that he represents in the
+world. But all that does not prevent me from feeling that much that
+the man said was so vitally true that we must face it in an attempt
+to answer it or else stand condemned as Christian disciples. A good
+deal that was said here last Sunday was in the nature of a challenge
+to Christianity as it is seen and felt in our churches. I have felt
+this with increasing emphasis every day since.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"And I do not know that any time is more appropriate than the
+present for me to propose a plan, or a purpose, which has been
+forming in my mind as a satisfactory reply to much that was said
+here last Sunday."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Again Henry Maxwell paused and looked into the faces of his people.
+There were some strong, earnest men and women in the First Church.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+He could see Edward Norman, editor of the Raymond DAILY NEWS. He had
+been a member of the First Church for ten years.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+No man was more honored in the community. There was Alexander
+Powers, superintendent of the great railroad shops in Raymond, a
+typical railroad man, one who had been born into the business. There
+sat Donald Marsh, president of Lincoln College, situated in the
+suburbs of Raymond. There was Milton Wright, one of the great
+merchants of Raymond, having in his employ at least one hundred men
+in various shops. There was Dr. West who, although still
+comparatively young, was quoted as authority in special surgical
+cases. There was young Jasper Chase the author, who had written one
+successful book and was said to be at work on a new novel. There was
+Miss Virginia Page the heiress, who through the recent death of her
+father had inherited a million at least, and was gifted with unusual
+attractions of person and intellect. And not least of all, Rachel
+Winslow, from her seat in the choir, glowed with her peculiar beauty
+of light this morning because she was so intensely interested in the
+whole scene.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+There was some reason, perhaps, in view of such material in the
+First Church, for Henry Maxwell's feeling of satisfaction whenever
+he considered his parish as he had the previous Sunday. There was an
+unusually large number of strong, individual characters who claimed
+membership there. But as he noted their faces this morning he was
+simply wondering how many of them would respond to the strange
+proposition he was about to make. He continued slowly, taking time
+to choose his words carefully, and giving the people an impression
+they had never felt before, even when he was at his best with his
+most dramatic delivery.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"What I am going to propose now is something which ought not to
+appear unusual or at all impossible of execution. Yet I am aware
+that it will be so regarded by a large number, perhaps, of the
+members of this church. But in order that we may have a thorough
+understanding of what we are considering, I will put my proposition
+very plainly, perhaps bluntly. I want volunteers from the First
+Church who will pledge themselves, earnestly and honestly for an
+entire year, not to do anything without first asking the question,
+'What would Jesus do?' And after asking that question, each one will
+follow Jesus as exactly as he knows how, no matter what the result
+may be. I will of course include myself in this company of
+volunteers, and shall take for granted that my church here will not
+be surprised at my future conduct, as based upon this standard of
+action, and will not oppose whatever is done if they think Christ
+would do it. Have I made my meaning clear? At the close of the
+service I want all those members who are willing to join such a
+company to remain and we will talk over the details of the plan. Our
+motto will be, 'What would Jesus do?' Our aim will be to act just as
+He would if He was in our places, regardless of immediate results.
+In other words, we propose to follow Jesus' steps as closely and as
+literally as we believe He taught His disciples to do. And those who
+volunteer to do this will pledge themselves for an entire year,
+beginning with today, so to act."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Henry Maxwell paused again and looked out over his people. It is not
+easy to describe the sensation that such a simple proposition
+apparently made. Men glanced at one another in astonishment. It was
+not like Henry Maxwell to define Christian discipleship in this way.
+There was evident confusion of thought over his proposition. It was
+understood well enough, but there was, apparently, a great
+difference of opinion as to the application of Jesus' teaching and
+example.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+He calmly closed the service with a brief prayer. The organist began
+his postlude immediately after the benediction and the people began
+to go out. There was a great deal of conversation. Animated groups
+stood all over the church discussing the minister's proposition. It
+was evidently provoking great discussion. After several minutes he
+asked all who expected to remain to pass into the lecture-room which
+joined the large room on the side. He was himself detained at the
+front of the church talking with several persons there, and when he
+finally turned around, the church was empty. He walked over to the
+lecture-room entrance and went in. He was almost startled to see the
+people who were there. He had not made up his mind about any of his
+members, but he had hardly expected that so many were ready to enter
+into such a literal testing of their Christian discipleship as now
+awaited him. There were perhaps fifty present, among them Rachel
+Winslow and Virginia Page, Mr. Norman, President Marsh, Alexander
+Powers the railroad superintendent, Milton Wright, Dr. West and
+Jasper Chase.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+He closed the door of the lecture-room and went and stood before the
+little group. His face was pale and his lips trembled with genuine
+emotion. It was to him a genuine crisis in his own life and that of
+his parish. No man can tell until he is moved by the Divine Spirit
+what he may do, or how he may change the current of a lifetime of
+fixed habits of thought and speech and action. Henry Maxwell did
+not, as we have said, yet know himself all that he was passing
+through, but he was conscious of a great upheaval in his definition
+of Christian discipleship, and he was moved with a depth of feeling
+he could not measure as he looked into the faces of those men and
+women on this occasion.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+It seemed to him that the most fitting word to be spoken first was
+that of prayer. He asked them all to pray with him. And almost with
+the first syllable he uttered there was a distinct presence of the
+Spirit felt by them all. As the prayer went on, this presence grew
+in power. They all felt it. The room was filled with it as plainly
+as if it had been visible. When the prayer closed there was a
+silence that lasted several moments. All the heads were bowed. Henry
+Maxwell's face was wet with tears. If an audible voice from heaven
+had sanctioned their pledge to follow the Master's steps, not one
+person present could have felt more certain of the divine blessing.
+And so the most serious movement ever started in the First Church of
+Raymond was begun.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"We all understand," said he, speaking very quietly, "what we have
+undertaken to do. We pledge ourselves to do everything in our daily
+lives after asking the question, 'What would Jesus do?' regardless
+of what may be the result to us. Some time I shall be able to tell
+you what a marvelous change has come over my life within a week's
+time. I cannot now. But the experience I have been through since
+last Sunday has left me so dissatisfied with my previous definition
+of Christian discipleship that I have been compelled to take this
+action. I did not dare begin it alone. I know that I am being led by
+the hand of divine love in all this. The same divine impulse must
+have led you also.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Do we understand fully what we have undertaken?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I want to ask a question," said Rachel Winslow. Every one turned
+towards her. Her face glowed with a beauty that no physical
+loveliness could ever create.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I am a little in doubt as to the source of our knowledge concerning
+what Jesus would do. Who is to decide for me just what He would do
+in my case? It is a different age. There are many perplexing
+questions in our civilization that are not mentioned in the
+teachings of Jesus. How am I going to tell what He would do?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"There is no way that I know of," replied the pastor, "except as we
+study Jesus through the medium of the Holy Spirit. You remember what
+Christ said speaking to His disciples about the Holy Spirit:
+'Howbeit when he, the Spirit of truth, is come, he shall guide you
+into all the truth: for he shall not speak from himself; but what
+things soever he shall hear, these shall he speak: and he shall
+declare unto you the things that are to come. He shall glorify me;
+for he shall take of mine, and shall declare it unto you. All things
+whatsoever the Father hath are mine: therefore said I, that he
+taketh of mine, and shall declare it unto you.' There is no other
+test that I know of. We shall all have to decide what Jesus would do
+after going to that source of knowledge."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"What if others say of us, when we do certain things, that Jesus
+would not do so?" asked the superintendent of railroads.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"We cannot prevent that. But we must be absolutely honest with
+ourselves. The standard of Christian action cannot vary in most of
+our acts."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"And yet what one church member thinks Jesus would do, another
+refuses to accept as His probable course of action. What is to
+render our conduct uniformly Christ-like? Will it be possible to
+reach the same conclusions always in all cases?" asked President
+Marsh.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Mr. Maxwell was silent some time. Then he answered, "No; I don't
+know that we can expect that. But when it comes to a genuine,
+honest, enlightened following of Jesus' steps, I cannot believe
+there will be any confusion either in our own minds or in the
+judgment of others. We must be free from fanaticism on one hand and
+too much caution on the other. If Jesus' example is the example for
+the world to follow, it certainly must be feasible to follow it. But
+we need to remember this great fact. After we have asked the Spirit
+to tell us what Jesus would do and have received an answer to it, we
+are to act regardless of the results to ourselves. Is that
+understood?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+All the faces in the room were raised towards the minister in solemn
+assent. There was no misunderstanding that proposition. Henry
+Maxwell's face quivered again as he noted the president of the
+Endeavor Society with several members seated back of the older men
+and women.
+</P>
+
+<BR><BR><BR>
+
+<A NAME="chap03"></A>
+<H3 ALIGN="center">
+Chapter Three
+</H3>
+
+<P CLASS="intro">
+"He that saith he abideth in Him ought himself also to walk even as
+He walked."
+</P>
+
+<BR>
+
+<P>
+EDWARD NORMAN, editor of the Raymond DAILY NEWS, sat in his office
+room Monday morning and faced a new world of action. He had made his
+pledge in good faith to do everything after asking "What would Jesus
+do?" and, as he supposed, with his eyes open to all the possible
+results. But as the regular life of the paper started on another
+week's rush and whirl of activity, he confronted it with a degree of
+hesitation and a feeling nearly akin to fear.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+He had come down to the office very early, and for a few minutes was
+by himself. He sat at his desk in a growing thoughtfulness that
+finally became a desire which he knew was as great as it was
+unusual. He had yet to learn, with all the others in that little
+company pledged to do the Christlike thing, that the Spirit of Life
+was moving in power through his own life as never before. He rose
+and shut his door, and then did what he had not done for years. He
+kneeled down by his desk and prayed for the Divine Presence and
+wisdom to direct him.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+He rose with the day before him, and his promise distinct and clear
+in his mind. "Now for action," he seemed to say. But he would be led
+by events as fast as they came on.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+He opened his door and began the routine of the office work. The
+managing editor had just come in and was at his desk in the
+adjoining room. One of the reporters there was pounding out
+something on a typewriter. Edward Norman began to write an
+editorial. The DAILY NEWS was an evening paper, and Norman usually
+completed his leading editorial before nine o'clock.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+He had been writing for fifteen minutes when the managing editor
+called out: "Here's this press report of yesterday's prize fight at
+the Resort. It will make up three columns and a half. I suppose it
+all goes in?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Norman was one of those newspaper men who keep an eye on every
+detail of the paper. The managing editor always consulted his chief
+in matters of both small and large importance. Sometimes, as in this
+case, it was merely a nominal inquiry.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Yes&mdash;No. Let me see it."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+He took the type-written matter just as it came from the telegraph
+editor and ran over it carefully. Then he laid the sheets down on
+his desk and did some very hard thinking.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"We won't run this today," he said finally.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The managing editor was standing in the doorway between the two
+rooms. He was astounded at his chief's remark, and thought he had
+perhaps misunderstood him.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"What did you say?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Leave it out. We won't use it."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"But&mdash;" The managing editor was simply dumbfounded. He stared at
+Norman as if the man was out of his mind.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I don't think, Clark, that it ought to be printed, and that's the
+end of it," said Norman, looking up from his desk.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Clark seldom had any words with the chief. His word had always been
+law in the office and he had seldom been known to change his mind.
+The circumstances now, however, seemed to be so extraordinary that
+Clark could not help expressing himself.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Do you mean that the paper is to go to press without a word of the
+prize fight in it?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Yes. That's what I mean."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"But it's unheard of. All the other papers will print it. What will
+our subscribers say? Why, it is simply&mdash;" Clark paused, unable to
+find words to say what he thought.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Norman looked at Clark thoughtfully. The managing editor was a
+member of a church of a different denomination from that of
+Norman's. The two men had never talked together on religious matters
+although they had been associated on the paper for several years.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Come in here a minute, Clark, and shut the door," said Norman.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Clark came in and the two men faced each other alone. Norman did not
+speak for a minute. Then he said abruptly: "Clark, if Christ was
+editor of a daily paper, do you honestly think He would print three
+columns and a half of prize fight in it?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"No, I don't suppose He would."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Well, that's my only reason for shutting this account out of the
+NEWS. I have decided not to do a thing in connection with the paper
+for a whole year that I honestly believe Jesus would not do."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Clark could not have looked more amazed if the chief had suddenly
+gone crazy. In fact, he did think something was wrong, though Mr.
+Norman was one of the last men in the world, in his judgment, to
+lose his mind.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"What effect will that have on the paper?" he finally managed to ask
+in a faint voice.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"What do you think?" asked Norman with a keen glance.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I think it will simply ruin the paper," replied Clark promptly. He
+was gathering up his bewildered senses, and began to remonstrate,
+"Why, it isn't feasible to run a paper nowadays on any such basis.
+It's too ideal. The world isn't ready for it. You can't make it pay.
+Just as sure as you live, if you shut out this prize fight report
+you will lose hundreds of subscribers. It doesn't take a prophet to
+see that. The very best people in town are eager to read it. They
+know it has taken place, and when they get the paper this evening
+they will expect half a page at least. Surely, you can't afford to
+disregard the wishes of the public to such an extent. It will be a
+great mistake if you do, in my opinion."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Norman sat silent a minute. Then he spoke gently but firmly.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Clark, what in your honest opinion is the right standard for
+determining conduct? Is the only right standard for every one, the
+probable action of Jesus Christ? Would you say that the highest,
+best law for a man to live by was contained in asking the question,
+What would Jesus do?' And then doing it regardless of results? In
+other words, do you think men everywhere ought to follow Jesus'
+example as closely as they can in their daily lives?" Clark turned
+red, and moved uneasily in his chair before he answered the editor's
+question.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Why&mdash;yes&mdash;I suppose if you put it on the ground of what men ought
+to do there is no other standard of conduct. But the question is,
+What is feasible? Is it possible to make it pay? To succeed in the
+newspaper business we have got to conform to custom and the
+recognized methods of society. We can't do as we would in an ideal
+world."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Do you mean that we can't run the paper strictly on Christian
+principles and make it succeed?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Yes, that's just what I mean. It can't be done. We'll go bankrupt
+in thirty days."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Norman did not reply at once. He was very thoughtful.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"We shall have occasion to talk this over again, Clark. Meanwhile I
+think we ought to understand each other frankly. I have pledged
+myself for a year to do everything connected with the paper after
+answering the question, What would Jesus do?' as honestly as
+possible. I shall continue to do this in the belief that not only
+can we succeed but that we can succeed better than we ever did."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Clark rose. "The report does not go in?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"It does not. There is plenty of good material to take its place,
+and you know what it is."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Clark hesitated. "Are you going to say anything about the absence of
+the report?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"No, let the paper go to press as if there had been no such thing as
+a prize fight yesterday."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Clark walked out of the room to his own desk feeling as if the
+bottom had dropped out of everything. He was astonished, bewildered,
+excited and considerably angered. His great respect for Norman
+checked his rising indignation and disgust, but with it all was a
+feeling of growing wonder at the sudden change of motive which had
+entered the office of the DAILY NEWS and threatened, as he firmly
+believed, to destroy it.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Before noon every reporter, pressman and employee on the DAILY NEWS
+was informed of the remarkable fact that the paper was going to
+press without a word in it about the famous prize fight of Sunday.
+The reporters were simply astonished beyond measure at the
+announcement of the fact. Every one in the stereotyping and
+composing rooms had something to say about the unheard of omission.
+Two or three times during the day when Mr. Norman had occasion to
+visit the composing rooms the men stopped their work or glanced
+around their cases looking at him curiously. He knew that he was
+being observed, but said nothing and did not appear to note it.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+There had been several minor changes in the paper, suggested by the
+editor, but nothing marked. He was waiting and thinking deeply.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+He felt as if he needed time and considerable opportunity for the
+exercise of his best judgment in several matters before he answered
+his ever present question in the right way. It was not because there
+were not a great many things in the life of the paper that were
+contrary to the spirit of Christ that he did not act at once, but
+because he was yet honestly in doubt concerning what action Jesus
+would take.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+When the DAILY NEWS came out that evening it carried to its
+subscribers a distinct sensation.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The presence of the report of the prize fight could not have
+produced anything equal to the effect of its omission. Hundreds of
+men in the hotels and stores down town, as well as regular
+subscribers, eagerly opened the paper and searched it through for
+the account of the great fight; not finding it, they rushed to the
+NEWS stands and bought other papers. Even the newsboys had not a
+understood the fact of omission. One of them was calling out "DAILY
+NEWS! Full 'count great prize fight 't Resort. NEWS, sir?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+A man on the corner of the avenue close by the NEWS office bought
+the paper, looked over its front page hurriedly and then angrily
+called the boy back.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Here, boy! What's the matter with your paper? There's no prize
+fight here! What do you mean by selling old papers?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Old papers nuthin'!" replied the boy indignantly. "Dat's today's
+paper. What's de matter wid you?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"But there is no account of the prize fight here! Look!"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The man handed back the paper and the boy glanced at k hurriedly.
+Then he whistled, while a bewildered look crept over his face.
+Seeing another boy running by with papers he called out "Say, Sam,
+le'me see your pile." A hasty examination revealed the remarkable
+fact that all the copies of the NEWS were silent on the subject of
+the prize fight.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Here, give me another paper!" shouted the customer; "one with the
+prize fight account."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+He received it and walked off, while the two boys remained comparing
+notes and lost in wonder at the result. "Sump'n slipped a cog in the
+Newsy, sure," said the first boy. But he couldn't tell why, and ran
+over to the NEWS office to find out.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+There were several other boys at the delivery room and they were all
+excited and disgusted. The amount of slangy remonstrance hurled at
+the clerk back of the long counter would have driven any one else to
+despair.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+He was used to more or less of it all the time, and consequently
+hardened to it. Mr. Norman was just coming downstairs on his way
+home, and he paused as he went by the door of the delivery room and
+looked in.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"What's the matter here, George?" he asked the clerk as he noted the
+unusual confusion.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"The boys say they can't sell any copies of the NEWS tonight because
+the prize fight isn't in it," replied George, looking curiously at
+the editor as so many of the employees had done during the day. Mr.
+Norman hesitated a moment, then walked into the room and confronted
+the boys.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"How many papers are there here? Boys, count them out, and I'll buy
+them tonight."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+There was a combined stare and a wild counting of papers on the part
+of the boys.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Give them their money, George, and if any of the other boys come in
+with the same complaint buy their unsold copies. Is that fair?" he
+asked the boys who were smitten into unusual silence by the unheard
+of action on the part of the editor.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Fair! Well, I should&mdash;But will you keep this up? Will dis be a
+continual performance for the benefit of de fraternity?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Mr. Norman smiled slightly but he did not think it was necessary to
+answer the question.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+He walked out of the office and went home. On the way he could not
+avoid that constant query, "Would Jesus have done it?" It was not so
+much with reference to this last transaction as to the entire motive
+that had urged him on since he had made the promise.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The newsboys were necessarily sufferers through the action he had
+taken. Why should they lose money by it? They were not to blame. He
+was a rich man and could afford to put a little brightness into
+their lives if he chose to do it. He believed, as he went on his way
+home, that Jesus would have done either what he did or something
+similar in order to be free from any possible feeling of injustice.
+</P>
+
+<BR><BR><BR>
+
+<A NAME="chap04"></A>
+<H3 ALIGN="center">
+Chapter Four
+</H3>
+
+<P>
+DURING the week he was in receipt of numerous letters commenting on
+the absence from the News of the account of the prize fight. Two or
+three of these letters may be of interest.
+</P>
+
+<BR>
+
+<P CLASS="letter">
+Editor of the News:
+</P>
+
+<P CLASS="letter">
+Dear Sir&mdash;I have been thinking for some time of changing my paper. I
+want a journal that is up to the times, progressive and
+enterprising, supplying the public demand at all points. The recent
+freak of your paper in refusing to print the account of the famous
+contest at the Resort has decided me finally to change my paper.
+</P>
+
+<P CLASS="letter">
+Please discontinue it.
+</P>
+
+<P CLASS="letter">
+Very truly yours,&mdash;&mdash;&mdash;-
+</P>
+
+<BR>
+
+<P>
+Here followed the name of a business man who had been a subscriber
+for many years.
+</P>
+
+<BR>
+
+<P CLASS="letter">
+Edward Norman,
+</P>
+
+<P CLASS="letter">
+Editor of the Daily News, Raymond:
+</P>
+
+<P CLASS="letter">
+Dear Ed.&mdash;What is this sensation you have given the people of your
+burg? What new policy have you taken up? Hope you don't intend to
+try the "Reform Business" through the avenue of the press. It's
+dangerous to experiment much along that line. Take my advice and
+stick to the enterprising modern methods you have made so successful
+for the News. The public wants prize fights and such. Give it what
+it wants, and let some one else do the reforming business.
+</P>
+
+<P CLASS="letter">
+Yours,&mdash;&mdash;&mdash;-
+</P>
+
+<BR>
+
+<P>
+Here followed the name of one of Norman's old friends, the editor of
+a daily in an adjoining town.
+</P>
+
+<BR>
+
+<P CLASS="letter">
+My Dear Mr. Norman:
+</P>
+
+<P CLASS="letter">
+I hasten to write you a note of appreciation for the evident
+carrying out of your promise. It is a splendid beginning and no one
+feels the value of it more than I do. I know something of what it
+will cost you, but not all. Your pastor,
+</P>
+
+<P CLASS="letter">
+HENRY MAXWELL.
+</P>
+
+<BR>
+
+<P>
+One other letter which he opened immediately after reading this from
+Maxwell revealed to him something of the loss to his business that
+possibly awaited him.
+</P>
+
+<BR>
+
+<P CLASS="letter">
+Mr. Edward Norman,
+</P>
+
+<P CLASS="letter">
+Editor of the Daily News:
+</P>
+
+<P CLASS="letter">
+Dear Sir&mdash;At the expiration of my advertising limit, you will do me
+the favor not to continue it as you have done heretofore. I enclose
+check for payment in full and shall consider my account with your
+paper closed after date.
+</P>
+
+<P CLASS="letter">
+Very truly yours,&mdash;&mdash;&mdash;-
+</P>
+
+<BR>
+
+<P>
+Here followed the name of one of the largest dealers in tobacco in
+the city. He had been in the habit of inserting a column of
+conspicuous advertising and paying for it a very large price.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Norman laid this letter down thoughtfully, and then after a moment
+he took up a copy of his paper and looked through the advertising
+columns. There was no connection implied in the tobacco merchant's
+letter between the omission of the prize fight and the withdrawal of
+the advertisement, but he could not avoid putting the two together.
+In point of fact, he afterward learned that the tobacco dealer
+withdrew his advertisement because he had heard that the editor of
+the NEWS was about to enter upon some queer reform policy that would
+be certain to reduce its subscription list.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+But the letter directed Norman's attention to the advertising phase
+of his paper. He had not considered this before.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+As he glanced over the columns he could not escape the conviction
+that his Master could not permit some of them in his paper.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+What would He do with that other long advertisement of choice
+liquors and cigars? As a member of a church and a respected citizen,
+he had incurred no special censure because the saloon men advertised
+in his columns. No one thought anything about it. It was all
+legitimate business. Why not? Raymond enjoyed a system of high
+license, and the saloon and the billiard hall and the beer garden
+were a part of the city's Christian civilization. He was simply
+doing what every other business man in Raymond did. And it was one
+of the best paying sources of revenue. What would the paper do if it
+cut these out? Could it live? That was the question. But was that
+the question after all? "What would Jesus do?" That was the question
+he was answering, or trying to answer, this week. Would Jesus
+advertise whiskey and tobacco in his paper?
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Edward Norman asked it honestly, and after a prayer for help and
+wisdom he asked Clark to come into the office.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Clark came in, feeling that the paper was at a crisis, and prepared
+for almost anything after his Monday morning experience. This was
+Thursday.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Clark," said Norman, speaking slowly and carefully, "I have been
+looking at our advertising columns and have decided to dispense with
+some of the matter as soon as the contracts run out. I wish you
+would notify the advertising agent not to solicit or renew the ads
+that I have marked here."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+He handed the paper with the marked places over to Clark, who took
+it and looked over the columns with a very serious air.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"This will mean a great loss to the NEWS. How long do you think you
+can keep this sort of thing up?" Clark was astounded at the editor's
+action and could not understand it.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Clark, do you think if Jesus was the editor and proprietor of a
+daily paper in Raymond He would permit advertisements of whiskey and
+tobacco in it?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Well no&mdash;I&mdash;don't suppose He would. But what has that to do with
+us? We can't do as He would. Newspapers can't be run on any such
+basis."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Why not?" asked Norman quietly.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Why not? Because they will lose more money than they make, that's
+all!" Clark spoke out with an irritation that he really felt. "We
+shall certainly bankrupt the paper with this sort of business
+policy."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Do you think so?" Norman asked the question not as if he expected
+an answer, but simply as if he were talking with himself. After a
+pause he said:
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"You may direct Marks to do as I have said. I believe it is what
+Christ would do, and as I told you, Clark, that is what I have
+promised to try to do for a year, regardless of what the results may
+be to me. I cannot believe that by any kind of reasoning we could
+reach a conclusion justifying our Lord in the advertisement, in this
+age, of whiskey and tobacco in a newspaper. There are some other
+advertisements of a doubtful character I shall study into.
+Meanwhile, I feel a conviction in regard to these that cannot be
+silenced."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Clark went back to his desk feeling as if he had been in the
+presence of a very peculiar person. He could not grasp the meaning
+of it all. He felt enraged and alarmed. He was sure any such policy
+would ruin the paper as soon as it became generally known that the
+editor was trying to do everything by such an absurd moral standard.
+What would become of business if this standard was adopted? It would
+upset every custom and introduce endless confusion. It was simply
+foolishness. It was downright idiocy. So Clark said to himself, and
+when Marks was informed of the action he seconded the managing
+editor with some very forcible ejaculations. What was the matter
+with the chief? Was he insane? Was he going to bankrupt the whole
+business?
+</P>
+
+<P>
+But Edward Norman had not yet faced his most serious problem. When
+he came down to the office Friday morning he was confronted with the
+usual program for the Sunday morning edition. The NEWS was one one
+of the few evening papers in Raymond to issue a Sunday edition, and
+it had always been remarkably successful financially. There was an
+average of one page of literary and religious items to thirty or
+forty pages of sport, theatre, gossip, fashion, society and
+political material. This made a very interesting magazine of all
+sorts of reading matter, and had always been welcomed by all the
+subscribers, church members and all, as a Sunday morning necessity.
+Edward Norman now faced this fact and put to himself the question:
+"What would Jesus do?" If He was editor of a paper, would he
+deliberately plan to put into the homes of all the church people and
+Christians of Raymond such a collection of reading matter on the one
+day in the week which ought to be given up to something better
+holier? He was of course familiar with the regular arguments of the
+Sunday paper, that the public needed something of the sort; and the
+working man especially, who would not go to church any way, ought to
+have something entertaining and instructive on Sunday, his only day
+of rest. But suppose the Sunday morning paper did not pay? Suppose
+there was no money in it? How eager would the editor or publisher be
+then to supply this crying need of the poor workman? Edward Norman
+communed honestly with himself over the subject.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Taking everything into account, would Jesus probably edit a Sunday
+morning paper? No matter whether it paid. That was not the question.
+As a matter of fact, the Sunday NEWS paid so well that it would be a
+direct loss of thousands of dollars to discontinue it. Besides, the
+regular subscribers had paid for a seven-day paper. Had he any right
+now to give them less than they supposed they had paid for?
+</P>
+
+<P>
+He was honestly perplexed by the question. So much was involved in
+the discontinuance of the Sunday edition that for the first time he
+almost decided to refuse to be guided by the standard of Jesus'
+probable action. He was sole proprietor of the paper; it was his to
+shape as he chose. He had no board of directors to consult as to
+policy. But as he sat there surrounded by the usual quantity of
+material for the Sunday edition he reached some definite
+conclusions. And among them was a determination to call in the force
+of the paper and frankly state his motive and purpose. He sent word
+for Clark and the other men it the office, including the few
+reporters who were in the building and the foreman, with what men
+were in the composing room (it was early in the morning and they
+were not all in) to come into the mailing room. This was a large
+room, and the men came in curiously and perched around on the tables
+and counters. It was a very unusual proceeding, but they all agreed
+that the paper was being run on new principles anyhow, and they all
+watched Mr. Norman carefully as he spoke.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I called you in here to let you know my further plans for the NEWS.
+I propose certain changes which I believe are necessary. I
+understand very well that some things I have already done are
+regarded by the men as very strange. I wish to state my motive in
+doing what I have done."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Here he told the men what he had already told Clark, and they stared
+as Clark had done, and looked as painfully conscious.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Now, in acting on this standard of conduct I have reached a
+conclusion which will, no doubt, cause some surprise.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I have decided that the Sunday morning edition of the NEWS shall be
+discontinued after next Sunday's issue. I shall state in that issue
+my reasons for discontinuing. In order to make up to the subscribers
+the amount of reading matter they may suppose themselves entitled
+to, we can issue a double number on Saturday, as is done by many
+evening papers that make no attempt at a Sunday edition. I am
+convinced that from a Christian point of view more harm than good
+has been done by our Sunday morning paper. I do not believe that
+Jesus would be responsible for it if He were in my place today. It
+will occasion some trouble to arrange the details caused by this
+change with the advertisers and subscribers. That is for me to look
+after. The change itself is one that will take place. So far as I
+can see, the loss will fall on myself. Neither the reporters nor the
+pressmen need make any particular changes in their plans."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+He looked around the room and no one spoke. He was struck for the
+first time in his life with the fact that in all the years of his
+newspaper life he had never had the force of the paper together in
+this way. Would Jesus do that? That is, would He probably run a
+newspaper on some loving family plan, where editors, reporters,
+pressmen and all meet to discuss and devise and plan for the making
+of a paper that should have in view&mdash;
+</P>
+
+<P>
+He caught himself drawing almost away from the facts of
+typographical unions and office rules and reporters' enterprise and
+all the cold, businesslike methods that make a great daily
+successful. But still the vague picture that came up in the mailing
+room would not fade away when he had gone into his office and the
+men had gone back to their places with wonder in their looks and
+questions of all sorts on their tongues as they talked over the
+editor's remarkable actions.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Clark came in and had a long, serious talk with his chief. He was
+thoroughly roused, and his protest almost reached the point of
+resigning his place. Norman guarded himself carefully. Every minute
+of the interview was painful to him, but he felt more than ever the
+necessity of doing the Christ-like thing. Clark was a very valuable
+man. It would be difficult to fill his place. But he was not able to
+give any reasons for continuing the Sunday paper that answered the
+question, "What would Jesus do?" by letting Jesus print that
+edition.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"It comes to this, then," said Clark frankly, "you will bankrupt the
+paper in thirty days. We might as well face that future fact."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I don't think we shall. Will you stay by the NEWS until it is
+bankrupt?" asked Norman with a strange smile.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Mr. Norman, I don't understand you. You are not the same man this
+week that I always knew before."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I don't know myself either, Clark. Something remarkable has caught
+me up and borne me on. But I was never more convinced of final
+success and power for the paper. You have not answered my question.
+Will you stay with me?"
+</P>
+
+<BR><BR><BR>
+
+<A NAME="chap05"></A>
+<H3 ALIGN="center">
+Chapter Five
+</H3>
+
+<P>
+SUNDAY morning dawned again on Raymond, and Henry Maxwell's church
+was again crowded. Before the service began Edward Norman attracted
+great attention. He sat quietly in his usual place about three seats
+from the pulpit. The Sunday morning issue of the NEWS containing the
+statement of its discontinuance had been expressed in such
+remarkable language that every reader was struck by it. No such
+series of distinct sensations had ever disturbed the usual business
+custom of Raymond. The events connected with the NEWS were not all.
+People were eagerly talking about strange things done during the
+week by Alexander Powers at the railroad shops, and Milton Wright in
+his stores on the avenue. The service progressed upon a distinct
+wave of excitement in the pews. Henry Maxwell faced it all with a
+calmness which indicated a strength and purpose more than usual. His
+prayers were very helpful. His sermon was not so easy to describe.
+How would a minister be apt to preach to his people if he came
+before them after an entire week of eager asking, "How would Jesus
+preach? What would He probably say?" It is very certain that he did
+not preach as he had done two Sundays before. Tuesday of the past
+week he had stood by the grave of the dead stranger and said the
+words, "Earth to earth, ashes to ashes, dust to dust," and still he
+was moved by the spirit of a deeper impulse than he could measure as
+he thought of his people and yearned for the Christ message when he
+should be in his pulpit again.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Now that Sunday had come and the people were there to hear, what
+would the Master tell them? He agonized over his preparation for
+them, and yet he knew he had not been able to fit his message into
+his ideal of the Christ. Nevertheless no one in the First Church
+could remember ever hearing such a sermon before. There was in it
+rebuke for sin, especially hypocrisy, there was definite rebuke of
+the greed of wealth and the selfishness of fashion, two things that
+First Church never heard rebuked this way before, and there was a
+love of his people that gathered new force as the sermon went on.
+When it was finished there were those who were saying in their
+hearts, "The Spirit moved that sermon." And they were right.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Then Rachel Winslow rose to sing, this time after the sermon, by Mr.
+Maxwell's request. Rachel's singing did not provoke applause this
+time. What deeper feeling carried the people's hearts into a
+reverent silence and tenderness of thought? Rachel was beautiful.
+But her consciousness of her remarkable loveliness had always marred
+her singing with those who had the deepest spiritual feeling. It had
+also marred her rendering of certain kinds of music with herself.
+Today this was all gone. There was no lack of power in her grand
+voice. But there was an actual added element of humility and purity
+which the audience distinctly felt and bowed to.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Before service closed Mr. Maxwell asked those who had remained the
+week before to stay again for a few moments of consultation, and any
+others who were willing to make the pledge taken at that time. When
+he was at liberty he went into the lecture-room. To his astonishment
+it was almost filled. This time a large proportion of young people
+had come, but among them were a few business men and officers of the
+church.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+As before, he, Maxwell, asked them to pray with him. And, as before,
+a distinct answer came from the presence of the divine Spirit. There
+was no doubt in the minds of any present that what they purposed to
+do was so clearly in line with the divine will, that a blessing
+rested upon it in a very special manner.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+They remained some time to ask questions and consult together. There
+was a feeling of fellowship such as they had never known in their
+church membership. Mr. Norman's action was well understood by them
+all, and he answered several questions.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"What will be the probable result of your discontinuance of the
+Sunday paper?" asked Alexander Powers, who sat next to him.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I don't know yet. I presume it will result in the falling off of
+subscriptions and advertisements. I anticipate that."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Do you have any doubts about your action. I mean, do you regret it,
+or fear it is not what Jesus would do?" asked Mr. Maxwell.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Not in the least. But I would like to ask, for my own satisfaction,
+if any of you here think Jesus would issue a Sunday morning paper?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+No one spoke for a minute. Then Jasper Chase said, "We seem to think
+alike on that, but I have been puzzled several times during the week
+to know just what He would do. It is not always an easy question to
+answer."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I find that trouble," said Virginia Page. She sat by Rachel
+Winslow. Every one who knew Virginia Page was wondering how she
+would succeed in keeping her promise. "I think perhaps I find it
+specially difficult to answer that question on account of my money.
+Our Lord never owned any property, and there is nothing in His
+example to guide me in the use of mine. I am studying and praying. I
+think I see clearly a part of what He would do, but not all. What
+would He do with a million dollars? is my question really. I confess
+I am not yet able to answer it to my satisfaction.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I could tell you what you could do with a part of it," said Rachel,
+turning her face toward Virginia. "That does not trouble me,"
+replied Virginia with a slight smile. "What I am trying to discover
+is a principle that will enable me to come to the nearest possible
+to His action as it ought to influence the entire course of my life
+so far as my wealth and its use are concerned."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"That will take time," said the minister slowly. All the rest of the
+room were thinking hard of the same thing. Milton Wright told
+something of his experience. He was gradually working out a plan for
+his business relations with his employees, and it was opening up a
+new world to him and to them. A few of the young men told of special
+attempts to answer the question. There was almost general consent
+over the fact that the application of the Christ spirit and practice
+to the everyday life was the serious thing. It required a knowledge
+of Him and an insight into His motives that most of them did not yet
+possess.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+When they finally adjourned after a silent prayer that marked with
+growing power the Divine Presence, they went away discussing
+earnestly their difficulties and seeking light from one another.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Rachel Winslow and Virginia Page went out together. Edward Norman
+and Milton Wright became so interested in their mutual conference
+that they walked on past Norman's house and came back together.
+Jasper Chase and the president of the Endeavor Society stood talking
+earnestly in one corner of the room. Alexander Powers and Henry
+Maxwell remained, even after the others had gone.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I want you to come down to the shops tomorrow and see my plan and
+talk to the men. Somehow I feel as if you could get nearer to them
+than any one else just now."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I don't know about that, but I will come," replied Mr. Maxwell a
+little sadly. How was he fitted to stand before two or three hundred
+working men and give them a message? Yet in the moment of his
+weakness, as he asked the question, he rebuked himself for it. What
+would Jesus do? That was an end to the discussion.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+He went down the next day and found Mr. Powers in his office. It
+lacked a few minutes of twelve and the superintendent said, "Come
+upstairs, and I'll show you what I've been trying to do."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+They went through the machine shop, climbed a long flight of stairs
+and entered a very large, empty room. It had once been used by the
+company for a store room.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Since making that promise a week ago I have had a good many things
+to think of," said the superintendent, "and among them is this: The
+company gives me the use of this room, and I am going to fit it up
+with tables and a coffee plant in the corner there where those steam
+pipes are. My plan is to provide a good place where the men can come
+up and eat their noon lunch, and give them, two or three times a
+week, the privilege of a fifteen minutes' talk on some subject that
+will be a real help to them in their lives."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Maxwell looked surprised and asked if the men would come for any
+such purpose.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Yes, they'll come. After all, I know the men pretty well. They are
+among the most intelligent working men in the country today. But
+they are, as a whole, entirely removed from church influence. I
+asked, 'What would Jesus do?' and among other things it seemed to me
+He would begin to act in some way to add to the lives of these men
+more physical and spiritual comfort. It is a very little thing, this
+room and what it represents, but I acted on the first impulse, to do
+the first thing that appealed to my good sense, and I want to work
+out this idea. I want you to speak to the men when they come up at
+noon. I have asked them to come up and see the place and I'll tell
+them something about it."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Maxwell was ashamed to say how uneasy he felt at being asked to
+speak a few words to a company of working men. How could he speak
+without notes, or to such a crowd? He was honestly in a condition of
+genuine fright over the prospect. He actually felt afraid of facing
+those men. He shrank from the ordeal of confronting such a crowd, so
+different from the Sunday audiences he was familiar with.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+There were a dozen rude benches and tables in the room, and when the
+noon whistle sounded the men poured upstairs from the machine shops
+below and, seating themselves at the tables, began to cat their
+lunch. There were present about three hundred of them. They had read
+the superintendent's notice which he had posted up in various
+places, and came largely out of curiosity.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+They were favorably impressed. The room was large and airy, free
+from smoke and dust, and well warmed from the steam pipes. At about
+twenty minutes to one Mr. Powers told the men what he had in mind.
+He spoke very simply, like one who understands thoroughly the
+character of his audience, and then introduced the Rev. Henry
+Maxwell of the First Church, his pastor, who had consented to speak
+a few minutes.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Maxwell will never forget the feeling with which for the first time
+he stood before the grimy-faced audience of working men. Like
+hundreds of other ministers, he had never spoken to any gatherings
+except those made up of people of his own class in the sense that
+they were familiar in their dress and education and habits. This was
+a new world to him, and nothing but his new rule of conduct could
+have made possible his message and its effect. He spoke on the
+subject of satisfaction with life; what caused it, what its real
+sources were. He had the great good sense on this his first
+appearance not to recognize the men as a class distinct from
+himself. He did not use the term working man, and did not say a word
+to suggest any difference between their lives and his own.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The men were pleased. A good many of them shook hands with him
+before going down to their work, and the minister telling it all to
+his wife when he reached home, said that never in all his life had
+he known the delight he then felt in having the handshake from a man
+of physical labor. The day marked an important one in his Christian
+experience, more important than he knew. It was the beginning of a
+fellowship between him and the working world. It was the first plank
+laid down to help bridge the chasm between the church and labor in
+Raymond.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Alexander Powers went back to his desk that afternoon much pleased
+with his plan and seeing much help in it for the men. He knew where
+he could get some good tables from an abandoned eating house at one
+of the stations down the road, and he saw how the coffee arrangement
+could be made a very attractive feature. The men had responded even
+better than he anticipated, and the whole thing could not help being
+a great benefit to them.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+He took up the routine of his work with a glow of satisfaction.
+After all, he wanted to do as Jesus would, he said to himself.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+It was nearly four o'clock when he opened one of the company's long
+envelopes which he supposed contained orders for the purchasing of
+stores. He ran over the first page of typewritten matter in his
+usual quick, business-like manner, before he saw that what he was
+reading was not intended for his office but for the superintendent
+of the freight department.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+He turned over a page mechanically, not meaning to read what was not
+addressed to him, but before he knew it, he was in possession of
+evidence which conclusively proved that the company was engaged in a
+systematic violation of the Interstate Commerce Laws of the United
+States. It was as distinct and unequivocal a breaking of law as if a
+private citizen should enter a house and rob the inmates. The
+discrimination shown in rebates was in total contempt of all the
+statutes. Under the laws of the state it was also a distinct
+violation of certain provisions recently passed by the legislature
+to prevent railroad trusts. There was no question that he had in his
+hands evidence sufficient to convict the company of willful,
+intelligent violation of the law of the commission and the law of
+the state also.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+He dropped the papers on his desk as if they were poison, and
+instantly the question flashed across his mind, "What would Jesus
+do?" He tried to shut the question out. He tried to reason with
+himself by saying it was none of his business. He had known in a
+more or less definite way, as did nearly all the officers of the
+company, that this had been going on right along on nearly all the
+roads. He was not in a position, owing to his place in the shops, to
+prove anything direct, and he had regarded it as a matter which did
+not concern him at all. The papers now before him revealed the
+entire affair. They had through some carelessness been addressed to
+him. What business of his was it? If he saw a man entering his
+neighbor's house to steal, would it not be his duty to inform the
+officers of the law? Was a railroad company such a different thing?
+Was it under a different rule of conduct, so that it could rob the
+public and defy law and be undisturbed because it was such a great
+organization? What would Jesus do? Then there was his family. Of
+course, if he took any steps to inform the commission it would mean
+the loss of his position. His wife and daughter had always enjoyed
+luxury and a good place in society. If he came out against this
+lawlessness as a witness it would drag him into courts, his motives
+would be misunderstood, and the whole thing would end in his
+disgrace and the loss of his position. Surely it was none of his
+business. He could easily get the papers back to the freight
+department and no one be the wiser. Let the iniquity go on. Let the
+law be defied. What was it to him? He would work out his plans for
+bettering the condition just before him. What more could a man do in
+this railroad business when there was so much going on anyway that
+made it impossible to live by the Christian standard? But what would
+Jesus do if He knew the facts? That was the question that confronted
+Alexander Powers as the day wore into evening.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The lights in the office had been turned on. The whirr of the great
+engine and the clash of the planers in the big shop continued until
+six o'clock. Then the whistle blew, the engine slowed up, the men
+dropped their tools and ran for the block house.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Powers heard the familiar click, click, of the clocks as the men
+filed past the window of the block house just outside. He said to
+his clerks, "I'm not going just yet. I have something extra
+tonight." He waited until he heard the last man deposit his block.
+The men behind the block case went out. The engineer and his
+assistants had work for half an hour but they went out by another
+door.
+</P>
+
+<BR><BR><BR>
+
+<A NAME="chap06"></A>
+<H3 ALIGN="center">
+Chapter Six
+</H3>
+
+<P CLASS="intro">
+"If any man cometh unto me and hateth not his own father and mother
+and wife and children and brethren and sisters, yea, and his own
+life also, he cannot be my disciple."
+</P>
+
+<P CLASS="intro">
+"And whosoever forsaketh not all that he hath, he cannot be my
+disciple."
+</P>
+
+<BR>
+
+<P>
+WHEN Rachel Winslow and Virginia Page separated after the meeting at
+the First Church on Sunday they agreed to continue their
+conversation the next day. Virginia asked Rachel to come and lunch
+with her at noon, and Rachel accordingly rang the bell at the Page
+mansion about half-past eleven. Virginia herself met her and the two
+were soon talking earnestly.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"The fact is," Rachel was saying, after they had been talking a few
+moments, "I cannot reconcile it with my judgment of what Christ
+would do. I cannot tell another person what to do, but I feel that I
+ought not to accept this offer."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"What will you do then?" asked Virginia with great interest.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I don't know yet, but I have decided to refuse this offer."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Rachel picked up a letter that had been lying in her lap and ran
+over its contents again. It was a letter from the manager of a comic
+opera offering her a place with a large traveling company of the
+season. The salary was a very large figure, and the prospect held
+out by the manager was flattering. He had heard Rachel sing that
+Sunday morning when the stranger had interrupted the service. He had
+been much impressed. There was money in that voice and it ought to
+be used in comic opera, so said the letter, and the manager wanted a
+reply as soon as possible.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"There's no great virtue in saying 'No' to this offer when I have
+the other one," Rachel went on thoughtfully. "That's harder to
+decide. But I've about made up my mind. To tell the truth,
+Virginia, I'm completely convinced in the first case that Jesus
+would never use any talent like a good voice just to make money. But
+now, take this concert offer. Here is a reputable company, to travel
+with an impersonator and a violinist and a male quartet, all people
+of good reputation. I'm asked to go as one of the company and sing
+leading soprano. The salary&mdash;I mentioned it, didn't I?&mdash;is
+guaranteed to be $200 a month for the season. But I don't feel
+satisfied that Jesus would go. What do you think?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"You mustn't ask me to decide for you," replied Virginia with a sad
+smile. "I believe Mr. Maxwell was right when he said we must each
+one of us decide according to the judgment we feel for ourselves to
+be Christ-like. I am having a harder time than you are, dear, to
+decide what He would do."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Are you?" Rachel asked. She rose and walked over to the window and
+looked out. Virginia came and stood by her. The street was crowded
+with life and the two young women looked at it silently for a
+moment. Suddenly Virginia broke out as Rachel had never heard her
+before:
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Rachel, what does all this contrast in conditions mean to you as
+you ask this question of what Jesus would do? It maddens me to think
+that the society in which I have been brought up, the same to which
+we are both said to belong, is satisfied year after year to go on
+dressing and eating and having a good time, giving and receiving
+entertainments, spending its money on houses and luxuries and,
+occasionally, to ease its conscience, donating, without any personal
+sacrifice, a little money to charity. I have been educated, as you
+have, in one of the most expensive schools in America; launched into
+society as an heiress; supposed to be in a very enviable position.
+I'm perfectly well; I can travel or stay at home. I can do as I
+please. I can gratify almost any want or desire; and yet when I
+honestly try to imagine Jesus living the life I have lived and am
+expected to live, and doing for the rest of my life what thousands
+of other rich people do, I am under condemnation for being one of
+the most wicked, selfish, useless creatures in all the world. I have
+not looked out of this window for weeks without a feeling of horror
+toward myself as I see the humanity that passes by this house."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Virginia turned away and walked up and down the room. Rachel watched
+her and could not repress the rising tide of her own growing
+definition of discipleship. Of what Christian use was her own talent
+of song? Was the best she could do to sell her talent for so much a
+month, go on a concert company's tour, dress beautifully, enjoy the
+excitement of public applause and gain a reputation as a great
+singer? Was that what Jesus would do?
+</P>
+
+<P>
+She was not morbid. She was in sound health, was conscious of her
+great powers as a singer, and knew that if she went out into public
+life she could make a great deal of money and become well known. It
+is doubtful if she overestimated her ability to accomplish all she
+thought herself capable of. And Virginia&mdash;what she had just said
+smote Rachel with great force because of the similar position in
+which the two friends found themselves.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Lunch was announced and they went out and were joined by Virginia's
+grandmother, Madam Page, a handsome, stately woman of sixty-five,
+and Virginia's brother Rollin, a young man who spent most of his
+time at one of the clubs and had no ambition for anything but a
+growing admiration for Rachel Winslow, and whenever she dined or
+lunched at the Page's, if he knew of it he always planned to be at
+home.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+These three made up the Page family. Virginia's father had been a
+banker and grain speculator. Her mother had died ten years before,
+her father within the past year. The grandmother, a Southern woman
+in birth and training, had all the traditions and feelings that
+accompany the possession of wealth and social standing that have
+never been disturbed. She was a shrewd, careful business woman of
+more than average ability. The family property and wealth were
+invested, in large measure, under her personal care. Virginia's
+portion was, without any restriction, her own. She had been trained
+by her father to understand the ways of the business world, and even
+the grandmother had been compelled to acknowledge the girl's
+capacity for taking care of her own money.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Perhaps two persons could not be found anywhere less capable of
+understanding a girl like Virginia than Madam Page and Rollin.
+Rachel, who had known the family since she was a girl playmate of
+Virginia's, could not help thinking of what confronted Virginia in
+her own home when she once decided on the course which she honestly
+believed Jesus would take. Today at lunch, as she recalled
+Virginia's outbreak in the front room, she tried to picture the
+scene that would at some time occur between Madam Page and her
+granddaughter.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I understand that you are going on the stage, Miss Winslow. We
+shall all be delighted, I'm sure," said Rollin during the
+conversation, which had not been very animated.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Rachel colored and felt annoyed. "Who told you?" she asked, while
+Virginia, who had been very silent and reserved, suddenly roused
+herself and appeared ready to join in the talk.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Oh! we hear a thing or two on the street. Besides, every one saw
+Crandall the manager at church two weeks ago. He doesn't go to
+church to hear the preaching. In fact, I know other people who don't
+either, not when there's something better to hear."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Rachel did not color this time, but she answered quietly, "You're
+mistaken. I'm not going on the stage."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"It's a great pity. You'd make a hit. Everybody is talking about
+your singing."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+This time Rachel flushed with genuine anger. Before she could say
+anything, Virginia broke in: "Whom do you mean by 'everybody?'"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Whom? I mean all the people who hear Miss Winslow on Sundays. What
+other time do they hear her? It's a great pity, I say, that the
+general public outside of Raymond cannot hear her voice."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Let us talk about something else," said Rachel a little sharply.
+Madam Page glanced at her and spoke with a gentle courtesy.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"My dear, Rollin never could pay an indirect compliment. He is like
+his father in that. But we are all curious to know something of your
+plans. We claim the right from old acquaintance, you know; and
+Virginia has already told us of your concert company offer."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I supposed of course that was public property," said Virginia,
+smiling across the table. "I was in the NEWS office day before
+yesterday."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Yes, yes," replied Rachel hastily. "I understand that, Madam Page.
+Well, Virginia and I have been talking about it. I have decided not
+to accept, and that is as far as I have gone at present."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Rachel was conscious of the fact that the conversation had, up to
+this point, been narrowing her hesitation concerning the concert
+company's offer down to a decision that would absolutely satisfy her
+own judgment of Jesus' probable action. It had been the last thing
+in the world, however, that she had desired, to have her decision
+made in any way so public as this. Somehow what Rollin Page had said
+and his manner in saying it had hastened her decision in the matter.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Would you mind telling us, Rachel, your reasons for refusing the
+offer? It looks like a great opportunity for a young girl like you.
+Don't you think the general public ought to hear you? I feel like
+Rollin about that. A voice like yours belongs to a larger audience
+than Raymond and the First Church."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Rachel Winslow was naturally a girl of great reserve. She shrank
+from making her plans or her thoughts public. But with all her
+repression there was possible in her an occasional sudden breaking
+out that was simply an impulsive, thoroughly frank, truthful
+expression of her most inner personal feeling. She spoke now in
+reply to Madam Page in one of those rare moments of unreserve that
+added to the attractiveness of her whole character.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I have no other reason than a conviction that Jesus Christ would do
+the same thing," she said, looking into Madam Page's eyes with a
+clear, earnest gaze.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Madam Page turned red and Rollin stared. Before her grandmother
+could say anything, Virginia spoke. Her rising color showed how she
+was stirred. Virginia's pale, clear complexion was that of health,
+but it was generally in marked contrast with Rachel's tropical type
+of beauty.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Grandmother, you know we promised to make that the standard of our
+conduct for a year. Mr. Maxwell's proposition was plain to all who
+heard it. We have not been able to arrive at our decisions very
+rapidly. The difficulty in knowing what Jesus would do has perplexed
+Rachel and me a good deal."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Madam Page looked sharply at Virginia before she said anything.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Of course I understand Mr. Maxwell's statement. It is perfectly
+impracticable to put it into practice. I felt confident at the time
+that those who promised would find it out after a trial and abandon
+it as visionary and absurd. I have nothing to say about Miss
+Winslow's affairs, but," she paused and continued with a sharpness
+that was new to Rachel, "I hope you have no foolish notions in this
+matter, Virginia."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I have a great many notions," replied Virginia quietly. "Whether
+they are foolish or not depends upon my right understanding of what
+He would do. As soon as I find out I shall do it."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Excuse me, ladies," said Rollin, rising from the table. "The
+conversation is getting beyond my depth. I shall retire to the
+library for a cigar."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+He went out of the dining-room and there was silence for a moment.
+Madam Page waited until the servant had brought in something and
+then asked her to go out. She was angry and her anger was
+formidable, although checked in some measure by the presence of
+Rachel.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I am older by several years than you, young ladies," she said, and
+her traditional type of bearing seemed to Rachel to rise up like a
+great frozen wall between her and every conception of Jesus as a
+sacrifice. "What you have promised, in a spirit of false emotion I
+presume, is impossible of performance."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Do you mean, grandmother, that we cannot possibly act as our Lord
+would? or do you mean that, if we try to, we shall offend the
+customs and prejudices of society?" asked Virginia.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"It is not required! It is not necessary! Besides how can you act
+with any&mdash;" Madam Page paused, broke off her sentence, and then
+turned to Rachel. "What will your mother say to your decision? My
+dear, is it not foolish? What do you expect to do with your voice
+anyway?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I don't know what mother will say yet," Rachel answered, with a
+great shrinking from trying to give her mother's probable answer. If
+there was a woman in all Raymond with great ambitions for her
+daughter's success as a singer, Mrs. Winslow was that woman.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Oh! you will see it in a different light after wiser thought of it.
+My dear," continued Madam Page rising from the table, "you will live
+to regret it if you do not accept the concert company's offer or
+something like it."
+</P>
+
+<BR><BR><BR>
+
+<A NAME="chap07"></A>
+<H3 ALIGN="center">
+Chapter Seven
+</H3>
+
+<P>
+RACHEL was glad to escape and be by herself. A plan was slowly
+forming in her mind, and she wanted to be alone and think it out
+carefully. But before she had walked two blocks she was annoyed to
+find Rollin Page walking beside her.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Sorry to disturb your thoughts, Miss Winslow, but I happened to be
+going your way and had an idea you might not object. In fact, I've
+been walking here for a whole block and you haven't objected."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I did not see you," said Rachel briefly.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I wouldn't mind that if you only thought of me once in a while,"
+said Rollin suddenly. He took one last nervous puff on his cigar,
+tossed it into the street and walked along with a pale look on his
+face.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Rachel was surprised, but not startled. She had known Rollin as a
+boy, and there had been a time when they had used each other's first
+name familiarly. Lately, however, something in Rachel's manner had
+put an end to that. She was used to his direct attempts at
+compliments and was sometimes amused by them. Today she honestly
+wished him anywhere else.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Do you ever think of me, Miss Winslow?" asked Rollin after a pause.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Oh, yes, quite often!" said Rachel with a smile.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Are you thinking of me now?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Yes. That is&mdash;yes&mdash;I am."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"What?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Do you want me to be absolutely truthful?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Of course."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Then I was thinking that I wished you were not here." Rollin bit
+his lip and looked gloomy.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Now look here, Rachel&mdash;oh, I know that's forbidden, but I've got to
+speak some time!&mdash;you know how I feel. What makes you treat me so?
+You used to like me a little, you know."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Did I? Of course we used to get on very well as boy and girl. But
+we are older now."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Rachel still spoke in the light, easy way she had used since her
+first annoyance at seeing him. She was still somewhat preoccupied
+with her plan which had been disturbed by Rollin's sudden
+appearance.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+They walked along in silence a little way. The avenue was full of
+people. Among the persons passing was Jasper Chase. He saw Rachel
+and Rollin and bowed as they went by. Rollin was watching Rachel
+closely.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I wish I was Jasper Chase. Maybe I would stand some chance then,"
+he said moodily.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Rachel colored in spite of herself. She did not say anything and
+quickened her pace a little. Rollin seemed determined to say
+something, and Rachel seemed helpless to prevent him. After all, she
+thought, he might as well know the truth one time as another.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"You know well enough, Rachel, how I feel toward you. Isn't there
+any hope? I could make you happy. I've loved you a good many
+years&mdash;"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Why, how old do you think I am?" broke in Rachel with a nervous
+laugh. She was shaken out of her usual poise of manner.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"You know what I mean," went on Rollin doggedly. "And you have no
+right to laugh at me just because I want you to marry me."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I'm not! But it is useless for you to speak, Rollin," said Rachel
+after a little hesitation, and then using his name in such a frank,
+simple way that he could attach no meaning to it beyond the
+familiarity of the old family acquaintance. "It is impossible." She
+was still a little agitated by the fact of receiving a proposal of
+marriage on the avenue. But the noise on the street and sidewalk
+made the conversation as private as if they were in the house.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Would that is&mdash;do you think&mdash;if you gave me time I would."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"No!" said Rachel. She spoke firmly; perhaps, she thought afterward,
+although she did not mean to, she spoke harshly.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+They walked on for some time without a word. They were nearing
+Rachel's home and she was anxious to end the scene.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+As they turned off the avenue into one of the quieter streets Rollin
+spoke suddenly and with more manliness than he had yet shown. There
+was a distinct note of dignity in his voice that was new to Rachel.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Miss Winslow, I ask you to be my wife. Is there any hope for me
+that you will ever consent?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"None in the least." Rachel spoke decidedly.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Will you tell me why?" He asked the question as if he had a right
+to a truthful answer.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Because I do not feel toward you as a woman ought to feel toward
+the man she marries."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"In other words, you do not love me?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I do not and I cannot."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Why?" That was another question, and Rachel was a little surprised
+that he should ask it.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Because&mdash;" she hesitated for fear she might say too much in an
+attempt to speak the exact truth.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Tell me just why. You can't hurt me more than you have already."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Well, I do not and I cannot love you because you have no purpose in
+life. What do you ever do to make the world better? You spend your
+time in club life, in amusements, in travel, in luxury. What is
+there in such a life to attract a woman?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Not much, I guess," said Rollin with a bitter laugh. "Still, I
+don't know that I'm any worse than the rest of the men around me.
+I'm not so bad as some. I'm glad to know your reasons."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+He suddenly stopped, took off his hat, bowed gravely and turned
+back. Rachel went on home and hurried into her room, disturbed in
+many ways by the event which had so unexpectedly thrust itself into
+her experience.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+When she had time to think it all over she found herself condemned
+by the very judgment she had passed on Rollin Page. What purpose had
+she in life? She had been abroad and studied music with one of the
+famous teachers of Europe. She had come home to Raymond and had been
+singing in the First Church choir now for a year. She was well paid.
+Up to that Sunday two weeks ago she had been quite satisfied with
+herself and with her position. She had shared her mother's ambition,
+and anticipated growing triumphs in the musical world. What possible
+career was before her except the regular career of every singer?
+</P>
+
+<P>
+She asked the question again and, in the light of her recent reply
+to Rollin, asked again, if she had any very great purpose in life
+herself. What would Jesus do? There was a fortune in her voice. She
+knew it, not necessarily as a matter of personal pride or
+professional egotism, but simply as a fact. And she was obliged to
+acknowledge that until two weeks ago she had purposed to use her
+voice to make money and win admiration and applause. Was that a much
+higher purpose, after all, than Rollin Page lived for?
+</P>
+
+<P>
+She sat in her room a long time and finally went downstairs,
+resolved to have a frank talk with her mother about the concert
+company's offer and the new plan which was gradually shaping in her
+mind. She had already had one talk with her mother and knew that she
+expected Rachel to accept the offer and enter on a successful career
+as a public singer.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Mother," Rachel said, coming at once to the point, much as she
+dreaded the interview, "I have decided not to go out with the
+company. I have a good reason for it."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Mrs. Winslow was a large, handsome woman, fond of much company,
+ambitious for distinction in society and devoted, according to her
+definitions of success, to the success of her children. Her youngest
+boy, Louis, two years younger than Rachel, was ready to graduate
+from a military academy in the summer. Meanwhile she and Rachel were
+at home together. Rachel's father, like Virginia's, had died while
+the family was abroad. Like Virginia she found herself, under her
+present rule of conduct, in complete antagonism with her own
+immediate home circle. Mrs. Winslow waited for Rachel to go on.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"You know the promise I made two weeks ago, mother?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Mr. Maxwell's promise?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"No, mine. You know what it was, do you not, mother?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I suppose I do. Of course all the church members mean to imitate
+Christ and follow Him, as far as is consistent with our present day
+surroundings. But what has that to do with your decision in the
+concert company matter?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"It has everything to do with it. After asking, 'What would Jesus
+do?' and going to the source of authority for wisdom, I have been
+obliged to say that I do not believe He would, in my case, make that
+use of my voice."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Why? Is there anything wrong about such a career?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"No, I don't know that I can say there is."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Do you presume to sit in judgment on other people who go out to
+sing in this way? Do you presume to say they are doing what Christ
+would not do?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Mother, I wish you to understand me. I judge no one else; I condemn
+no other professional singer. I simply decide my own course. As I
+look at it, I have a conviction that Jesus would do something else."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"What else?" Mrs. Winslow had not yet lost her temper. She did not
+understand the situation nor Rachel in the midst of it, but she was
+anxious that her daughter's course should be as distinguished as her
+natural gifts promised. And she felt confident that when the present
+unusual religious excitement in the First Church had passed away
+Rachel would go on with her public life according to the wishes of
+the family. She was totally unprepared for Rachel's next remark.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"What? Something that will serve mankind where it most needs the
+service of song. Mother, I have made up my mind to use my voice in
+some way so as to satisfy my own soul that I am doing something
+better than pleasing fashionable audiences, or making money, or even
+gratifying my own love of singing. I am going to do something that
+will satisfy me when I ask: 'What would Jesus do?' I am not
+satisfied, and cannot be, when I think of myself as singing myself
+into the career of a concert company performer."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Rachel spoke with a vigor and earnestness that surprised her mother.
+But Mrs. Winslow was angry now; and she never tried to conceal her
+feelings.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"It is simply absurd! Rachel, you are a fanatic! What can you do?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"The world has been served by men and women who have given it other
+things that were gifts. Why should I, because I am blessed with a
+natural gift, at once proceed to put a market price on it and make
+all the money I can out of it? You know, mother, that you have
+taught me to think of a musical career always in the light of
+financial and social success. I have been unable, since I made my
+promise two weeks ago, to imagine Jesus joining a concert company to
+do what I should do and live the life I should have to live if I
+joined it."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Mrs. Winslow rose and then sat down again. With a great effort she
+composed herself.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"What do you intend to do then? You have not answered my question."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I shall continue to sing for the time being in the church. I am
+pledged to sing there through the spring. During the week I am going
+to sing at the White Cross meetings, down in the Rectangle."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"What! Rachel Winslow! Do you know what you are saying? Do you know
+what sort of people those are down there?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Rachel almost quailed before her mother. For a moment she shrank
+back and was silent. Then she spoke firmly: "I know very well. That
+is the reason I am going. Mr. and Mrs. Gray have been working there
+several weeks. I learned only this morning that they want singers
+from the churches to help them in their meetings. They use a tent.
+It is in a part of the city where Christian work is most needed. I
+shall offer them my help. Mother!" Rachel cried out with the first
+passionate utterance she had yet used, "I want to do something that
+will cost me something in the way of sacrifice. I know you will not
+understand me. But I am hungry to suffer for something. What have we
+done all our lives for the suffering, sinning side of Raymond? How
+much have we denied ourselves or given of our personal ease and
+pleasure to bless the place in which we live or imitate the life of
+the Savior of the world? Are we always to go on doing as society
+selfishly dictates, moving on its little narrow round of pleasures
+and entertainments, and never knowing the pain of things that cost?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Are you preaching at me?" asked Mrs. Winslow slowly. Rachel rose,
+and understood her mother's words.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"No. I am preaching at myself," she replied gently. She paused a
+moment as if she thought her mother would say something more, and
+then went out of the room. When she reached her own room she felt
+that so far as her own mother was concerned she could expect no
+sympathy, nor even a fair understanding from her.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+She kneeled. It is safe to say that within the two weeks since Henry
+Maxwell's church had faced that shabby figure with the faded hat
+more members of his parish had been driven to their knees in prayer
+than during all the previous term of his pastorate.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+She rose, and her face was wet with tears. She sat thoughtfully a
+little while and then wrote a note to Virginia Page. She sent it to
+her by a messenger and then went downstairs and told her mother that
+she and Virginia were going down to the Rectangle that evening to
+see Mr. and Mrs. Gray, the evangelists.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Virginia's uncle, Dr. West, will go with us, if she goes. I have
+asked her to call him up by telephone and go with us. The Doctor is
+a friend of the Grays, and attended some of their meetings last
+winter."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Mrs. Winslow did not say anything. Her manner showed her complete
+disapproval of Rachel's course, and Rachel felt her unspoken
+bitterness.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+About seven o'clock the Doctor and Virginia appeared, and together
+the three started for the scene of the White Cross meetings.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The Rectangle was the most notorious district in Raymond. It was on
+the territory close by the railroad shops and the packing houses.
+The great slum and tenement district of Raymond congested its worst
+and most wretched elements about the Rectangle. This was a barren
+field used in the summer by circus companies and wandering showmen.
+It was shut in by rows of saloons, gambling hells and cheap, dirty
+boarding and lodging houses.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The First Church of Raymond had never touched the Rectangle problem.
+It was too dirty, too coarse, too sinful, too awful for close
+contact. Let us be honest. There had been an attempt to cleanse this
+sore spot by sending down an occasional committee of singers or
+Sunday-school teachers or gospel visitors from various churches. But
+the First Church of Raymond, as an institution, had never really
+done anything to make the Rectangle any less a stronghold of the
+devil as the years went by.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Into this heart of the coarse part of the sin of Raymond the
+traveling evangelist and his brave little wife had pitched a
+good-sized tent and begun meetings. It was the spring of the year
+and the evenings were beginning to be pleasant. The evangelists had
+asked for the help of Christian people, and had received more than
+the usual amount of encouragement. But they felt a great need of
+more and better music. During the meetings on the Sunday just gone
+the assistant at the organ had been taken ill. The volunteers from
+the city were few and the voices were of ordinary quality.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"There will be a small meeting tonight, John," said his wife, as
+they entered the tent a little after seven o'clock and began to
+arrange the chairs and light up.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Yes, I fear so." Mr. Gray was a small, energetic man, with a
+pleasant voice and the courage of a high-born fighter. He had
+already made friends in the neighborhood and one of his converts, a
+heavy-faced man who had just come in, began to help in the arranging
+of seats.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+It was after eight o'clock when Alexander Powers opened the door of
+his office and started for home. He was going to take a car at the
+corner of the Rectangle. But he was roused by a voice coming from
+the tent.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+It was the voice of Rachel Winslow. It struck through his
+consciousness of struggle over his own question that had sent him
+into the Divine Presence for an answer. He had not yet reached a
+conclusion. He was tortured with uncertainty. His whole previous
+course of action as a railroad man was the poorest possible
+preparation for anything sacrificial. And he could not yet say what
+he would do in the matter.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Hark! What was she singing? How did Rachel Winslow happen to be down
+here? Several windows near by went up. Some men quarreling near a
+saloon stopped and listened. Other figures were walking rapidly in
+the direction of the Rectangle and the tent. Surely Rachel Winslow
+had never sung like that in the First Church. It was a marvelous
+voice. What was it she was singing? Again Alexander Powers,
+Superintendent of the machine shops, paused and listened,
+</P>
+
+<P CLASS="poem">
+ "Where He leads me I will follow,<BR>
+ Where He leads me I will follow,<BR>
+ Where He leads me I will follow,<BR>
+ I'll go with Him, with Him.<BR>
+ All the way!"<BR>
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The brutal, coarse, impure life of the Rectangle stirred itself into
+new life as the song, as pure as the surroundings were vile, floated
+out and into saloon and den and foul lodging. Some one stumbled
+hastily by Alexander Powers and said in answer to a question: "De
+tent's beginning to run over tonight. That's what the talent calls
+music, eh?"
+</P>
+
+<BR><BR><BR>
+
+<A NAME="chap08"></A>
+<H3 ALIGN="center">
+Chapter Eight
+</H3>
+
+<P CLASS="intro">
+"If any man would come after me, let him deny himself and take up
+his cross daily and follow me."
+</P>
+
+<BR>
+
+<P>
+HENRY MAXWELL paced his study back and forth. It was Wednesday and
+he had started to think out the subject of his evening service which
+fell upon that night. Out of one of his study windows he could see
+the tall chimney of the railroad shops. The top of the evangelist's
+tent just showed over the buildings around the Rectangle. He looked
+out of his window every time he turned in his walk. After a while he
+sat down at his desk and drew a large piece of paper toward him.
+After thinking several moments he wrote in large letters the
+following:
+</P>
+
+<P>
+A NUMBER OF THINGS THAT JESUS WOULD PROBABLY DO IN THIS PARISH
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Live in a simple, plain manner, without needless luxury on the one
+hand or undue asceticism on the other. Preach fearlessly to the
+hypocrites in the church, no matter what their social importance or
+wealth. Show in some practical form His sympathy and love for the
+common people as well as for the well-to-do, educated, refined
+people who make up the majority of the parish. Identify Himself with
+the great causes of humanity in some personal way that would call
+for self-denial and suffering. Preach against the saloon in Raymond.
+Become known as a friend and companion of the sinful people in the
+Rectangle. Give up the summer trip to Europe this year. (I have been
+abroad twice and cannot claim any special need of rest. I am well,
+and could forego this pleasure, using the money for some one who
+needs a vacation more than I do. There are probably plenty of such
+people in the city.)
+</P>
+
+<P>
+He was conscious, with a humility that was once a stranger to him,
+that his outline of Jesus' probable action was painfully lacking in
+depth and power, but he was seeking carefully for concrete shapes
+into which he might cast his thought of Jesus' conduct. Nearly every
+point he had put down, meant, for him, a complete overturning of the
+custom and habit of years in the ministry. In spite of that, he
+still searched deeper for sources of the Christ-like spirit. He did
+not attempt to write any more, but sat at his desk absorbed in his
+effort to catch more and more the spirit of Jesus in his own life.
+He had forgotten the particular subject for his prayer meeting with
+which he had begun his morning study.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+He was so absorbed over his thought that he did not hear the bell
+ring; he was roused by the servant who announced a caller. He had
+sent up his name, Mr. Gray.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Maxwell stepped to the head of the stairs and asked Gray to come up.
+So Gray came up and stated the reason for his call.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I want your help, Mr. Maxwell. Of course you have heard what a
+wonderful meeting we had Monday night and last night. Miss Winslow
+has done more with her voice than I could do, and the tent won't
+hold the people."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I've heard of that. It is the first time the people there have
+heard her. It is no wonder they are attracted."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"It has been a wonderful revelation to us, and a most encouraging
+event in our work. But I came to ask if you could not come down
+tonight and preach. I am suffering from a severe cold. I do not dare
+trust my voice again. I know it is asking a good deal from such a
+busy man. But, if you can't come, say so frankly, and I'll try
+somewhere else."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I'm sorry, but it's my regular prayer meeting night," began Henry
+Maxwell. Then he flushed and added, "I shall be able to arrange it
+in some way so as to come down. You can count on me."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Gray thanked him earnestly and rose to go.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Won't you stay a minute, Gray, and let us have a prayer together?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Yes," said Gray simply.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+So the two men kneeled together in the study. Henry Maxwell prayed
+like a child. Gray was touched to tears as he knelt there. There was
+something almost pitiful in the way this man who had lived his
+ministerial life in such a narrow limit of exercise now begged for
+wisdom and strength to speak a message to the people in the
+Rectangle.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Gray rose and held out his hand. "God bless you, Mr. Maxwell. I'm
+sure the Spirit will give you power tonight."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Henry Maxwell made no answer. He did not even trust himself to say
+that he hoped so. But he thought of his promise and it brought him a
+certain peace that was refreshing to his heart and mind alike.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+So that is how it came about that when the First Church audience
+came into the lecture room that evening it met with another
+surprise. There was an unusually large number present. The prayer
+meetings ever since that remarkable Sunday morning had been attended
+as never before in the history of the First Church. Mr. Maxwell came
+at once to the point.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I feel that I am called to go down to the Rectangle tonight, and I
+will leave it with you to say whether you will go on with this
+meeting here. I think perhaps the best plan would be for a few
+volunteers to go down to the Rectangle with me prepared to help in
+the after-meeting, if necessary, and the rest to remain here and
+pray that the Spirit power may go with us."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+So half a dozen of the men went with the pastor, and the rest of the
+audience stayed in the lecture room. Maxwell could not escape the
+thought as he left the room that probably in his entire church
+membership there might not be found a score of disciples who were
+capable of doing work that would successfully lead needy, sinful men
+into the knowledge of Christ. The thought did not linger in his mind
+to vex him as he went his way, but it was simply a part of his whole
+new conception of the meaning of Christian discipleship.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+When he and his little company of volunteers reached the Rectangle,
+the tent was already crowded. They had difficulty in getting to the
+platform. Rachel was there with Virginia and Jasper Chase who had
+come instead of the Doctor tonight.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+When the meeting began with a song in which Rachel sang the solo and
+the people were asked to join in the chorus, not a foot of standing
+room was left in the tent. The night was mild and the sides of the
+tent were up and a great border of faces stretched around, looking
+in and forming part of the audience. After the singing, and a prayer
+by one of the city pastors who was present, Gray stated the reason
+for his inability to speak, and in his simple manner turned the
+service over to "Brother Maxwell of the First Church."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Who's de bloke?" asked a hoarse voice near the outside of the tent.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"De Fust Church parson. We've got de whole high-tone swell outfit
+tonight."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Did you say Fust Church? I know him. My landlord's got a front pew
+up there," said another voice, and there was a laugh, for the
+speaker was a saloon keeper.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Trow out de life line 'cross de dark wave!" began a drunken man
+near by, singing in such an unconscious imitation of a local
+traveling singer's nasal tone that roars of laughter and jeers of
+approval rose around him. The people in the tent turned in the
+direction of the disturbance. There were shouts of "Put him out!"
+"Give the Fust Church a chance!" "Song! Song! Give us another song!"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Henry Maxwell stood up, and a great wave of actual terror went over
+him. This was not like preaching to the well-dressed, respectable,
+good-mannered people up on the boulevard. He began to speak, but the
+confusion increased. Gray went down into the crowd, but did not seem
+able to quiet it. Maxwell raised his arm and his voice. The crowd in
+the tent began to pay some attention, but the noise on the outside
+increased. In a few minutes the audience was beyond his control. He
+turned to Rachel with a sad smile.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Sing something, Miss Winslow. They will listen to you," he said,
+and then sat down and covered his face with his hands.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+It was Rachel's opportunity, and she was fully equal to it. Virginia
+was at the organ and Rachel asked her to play a few notes of the
+hymn.
+</P>
+
+<P CLASS="poem">
+ "Savior, I follow on,<BR>
+ Guided by Thee,<BR>
+ Seeing not yet the hand<BR>
+ That leadeth me.<BR>
+ Hushed be my heart and still<BR>
+ Fear I no farther ill,<BR>
+ Only to meet Thy will,<BR>
+ My will shall be."<BR>
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Rachel had not sung the first line before the people in the tent
+were all turned toward her, hushed and reverent. Before she had
+finished the verse the Rectangle was subdued and tamed. It lay like
+some wild beast at her feet, and she sang it into harmlessness. Ah!
+What were the flippant, perfumed, critical audiences in concert
+halls compared with this dirty, drunken, impure, besotted mass of
+humanity that trembled and wept and grew strangely, sadly thoughtful
+under the touch of this divine ministry of this beautiful young
+woman! Mr. Maxwell, as he raised his head and saw the transformed
+mob, had a glimpse of something that Jesus would probably do with a
+voice like Rachel Winslow's. Jasper Chase sat with his eyes on the
+singer, and his greatest longing as an ambitious author was
+swallowed up in his thought of what Rachel Winslow's love might
+sometimes mean to him. And over in the shadow outside stood the last
+person any one might have expected to see at a gospel tent
+service&mdash;Rollin Page, who, jostled on every side by rough men and
+women who stared at the swell in fine clothes, seemed careless of
+his surroundings and at the same time evidently swayed by the power
+that Rachel possessed. He had just come over from the club. Neither
+Rachel nor Virginia saw him that night.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The song was over. Maxwell rose again. This time he felt calmer.
+What would Jesus do? He spoke as he thought once he never could
+speak. Who were these people? They were immortal souls. What was
+Christianity? A calling of sinners, not the righteous, to
+repentance. How would Jesus speak? What would He say? He could not
+tell all that His message would include, but he felt sure of a part
+of it. And in that certainty he spoke on. Never before had he felt
+"compassion for the multitude." What had the multitude been to him
+during his ten years in the First Church but a vague, dangerous,
+dirty, troublesome factor in society, outside of the church and of
+his reach, an element that caused him occasionally an unpleasant
+twinge of conscience, a factor in Raymond that was talked about at
+associations as the "masses," in papers written by the brethren in
+attempts to show why the "masses" were not being reached. But
+tonight as he faced the masses he asked himself whether, after all,
+this was not just about such a multitude as Jesus faced oftenest,
+and he felt the genuine emotion of love for a crowd which is one of
+the best indications a preacher ever has that he is living close to
+the heart of the world's eternal Life. It is easy to love an
+individual sinner, especially if he is personally picturesque or
+interesting. To love a multitude of sinners is distinctively a
+Christ-like quality.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+When the meeting closed, there was no special interest shown. No one
+stayed to the after-meeting. The people rapidly melted away from the
+tent, and the saloons, which had been experiencing a dull season
+while the meetings progressed, again drove a thriving trade. The
+Rectangle, as if to make up for lost time, started in with vigor on
+its usual night debauch. Maxwell and his little party, including
+Virginia, Rachel and Jasper Chase, walked down past the row of
+saloons and dens until they reached the corner where the cars
+passed.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"This is a terrible spot," said the minister as he stood waiting for
+their car. "I never realized that Raymond had such a festering sore.
+It does not seem possible that this is a city full of Christian
+disciples."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Do you think any one can ever remove this great curse of drink?"
+asked Jasper Chase.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I have thought lately as never before of what Christian people
+might do to remove the curse of the saloon. Why don't we all act
+together against it? Why don't the Christian pastors and the church
+members of Raymond move as one man against the traffic? What would
+Jesus do? Would He keep silent? Would He vote to license these
+causes of crime and death?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+He was talking to himself more than to the others. He remembered
+that he had always voted for license, and so had nearly all his
+church members. What would Jesus do? Could he answer that question?
+Would the Master preach and act against the saloon if He lived
+today? How would He preach and act? Suppose it was not popular to
+preach against license? Suppose the Christian people thought it was
+all that could be done to license the evil and so get revenue from
+the necessary sin? Or suppose the church members themselves owned
+the property where the saloons stood&mdash;what then? He knew that those
+were the facts in Raymond. What would Jesus do?
+</P>
+
+<P>
+He went up into his study the next morning with that question only
+partly answered. He thought of it all day. He was still thinking of
+it and reaching certain real conclusions when the EVENING NEWS came.
+His wife brought it up and sat down a few minutes while he read to
+her.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The EVENING NEWS was at present the most sensational paper in
+Raymond. That is to say, it was being edited in such a remarkable
+fashion that its subscribers had never been so excited over a
+newspaper before. First they had noticed the absence of the prize
+fight, and gradually it began to dawn upon them that the NEWS no
+longer printed accounts of crime with detailed descriptions, or
+scandals in private life. Then they noticed that the advertisements
+of liquor and tobacco were dropped, together with certain others of
+a questionable character. The discontinuance of the Sunday paper
+caused the greatest comment of all, and now the character of the
+editorials was creating the greatest excitement. A quotation from
+the Monday paper of this week will show what Edward Norman was doing
+to keep his promise. The editorial was headed:
+</P>
+
+<P>
+THE MORAL SIDE OF POLITICAL QUESTIONS
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The editor of the News has always advocated the principles of the
+great political party at present in power, and has heretofore
+discussed all political questions from the standpoint of expediency,
+or of belief in the party as opposed to other political
+organizations. Hereafter, to be perfectly honest with all our
+readers, the editor will present and discuss all political questions
+from the standpoint of right and wrong. In other words, the first
+question asked in this office about any political question will not
+be, "Is it in the interests of our party?" or, "Is it according to
+the principles laid down by our party in its platform?" but the
+question first asked will be, "Is this measure in accordance with
+the spirit and teachings of Jesus as the author of the greatest
+standard of life known to men?" That is, to be perfectly plain, the
+moral side of every political question will be considered its most
+important side, and the ground will be distinctly taken that nations
+as well as individuals are under the same law to do all things to
+the glory of God as the first rule of action.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The same principle will be observed in this office toward candidates
+for places of responsibility and trust in the republic. Regardless
+of party politics the editor of the News will do all in his power to
+bring the best men into power, and will not knowingly help to
+support for office any candidate who is unworthy, no matter how much
+he may be endorsed by the party. The first question asked about the
+man and about the measures will be, "Is he the right man for the
+place?" "Is he a good man with ability?" "Is the measure right?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+There had been more of this, but we have quoted enough to show the
+character of the editorial. Hundreds of men in Raymond had read it
+and rubbed their eyes in amazement. A good many of them had promptly
+written to the NEWS, telling the editor to stop their paper. The
+paper still came out, however, and was eagerly read all over the
+city. At the end of a week Edward Norman knew very well that he was
+fast losing a large number of subscribers. He faced the conditions
+calmly, although Clark, the managing editor, grimly anticipated
+ultimate bankruptcy, especially since Monday's editorial.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Tonight, as Maxwell read to his wife, he could see in almost every
+column evidences of Norman's conscientious obedience to his promise.
+There was an absence of slangy, sensational scare heads. The reading
+matter under the head lines was in perfect keeping with them. He
+noticed in two columns that the reporters' name appeared signed at
+the bottom. And there was a distinct advance in the dignity and
+style of their contributions.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"So Norman is beginning to get his reporters to sign their work. He
+has talked with me about that. It is a good thing. It fixes
+responsibility for items where it belongs and raises the standard of
+work done. A good thing all around for the public and the writers."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Maxwell suddenly paused. His wife looked up from some work she was
+doing. He was reading something with the utmost interest. "Listen to
+this, Mary," he said, after a moment while his lip trembled:
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"This morning Alexander Powers, Superintendent of the L. and T. R. R.
+shops in this city, handed in his resignation to the road, and gave
+as his reason the fact that certain proofs had fallen into his hands
+of the violation of the Interstate Commerce Law, and also of the
+state law which has recently been framed to prevent and punish
+railroad pooling for the benefit of certain favored shippers. Mr.
+Powers states in his resignation that he can no longer consistently
+withhold the information he possesses against the road. He will be a
+witness against it. He has placed his evidence against the company
+in the hands of the Commission and it is now for them to take action
+upon it.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The News wishes to express itself on this action of Mr. Powers. In
+the first place he has nothing to gain by it. He has lost a very
+valuable place voluntarily, when by keeping silent he might have
+retained it. In the second place, we believe his action ought to
+receive the approval of all thoughtful, honest citizens who believe
+in seeing law obeyed and lawbreakers brought to justice. In a case
+like this, where evidence against a railroad company is generally
+understood to be almost impossible to obtain, it is the general
+belief that the officers of the road are often in possession of
+criminating facts but do not consider it to be any of their business
+to inform the authorities that the law is being defied. The entire
+result of this evasion of responsibility on the part of those who
+are responsible is demoralizing to every young man connected with
+the road. The editor of the News recalls the statement made by a
+prominent railroad official in this city a little while ago, that
+nearly every clerk in a certain department of the road understood
+that large sums of money were made by shrewd violations of the
+Interstate Commerce Law, was ready to admire the shrewdness with
+which it was done, and declared that they would all do the same
+thing if they were high enough in railroad circles to attempt it."
+</P>
+
+<BR><BR><BR>
+
+<A NAME="chap09"></A>
+<H3 ALIGN="center">
+Chapter Nine
+</H3>
+
+<P>
+HENRY MAXWELL finished reading and dropped the paper.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I must go and see Powers. This is the result of his promise."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+He rose, and as he was going out, his wife said: "Do you think,
+Henry, that Jesus would have done that?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Maxwell paused a moment. Then he answered slowly, "Yes, I think He
+would. At any rate, Powers has decided so and each one of us who
+made the promise understands that he is not deciding Jesus' conduct
+for any one else, only for himself."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"How about his family? How will Mrs. Powers and Celia be likely to
+take it?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Very hard, I've no doubt. That will be Powers' cross in this
+matter. They will not understand his motive."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Maxwell went out and walked over to the next block where
+Superintendent Powers lived. To his relief, Powers himself came to
+the door.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The two men shook hands silently. They instantly understood each
+other without words. There had never before been such a bond of
+union between the minister and his parishioner.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"What are you going to do?" Henry Maxwell asked after they had
+talked over the facts in the case.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"You mean another position? I have no plans yet. I can go back to my
+old work as a telegraph operator. My family will not suffer, except
+in a social way."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Powers spoke calmly and sadly. Henry Maxwell did not need to ask him
+how the wife and daughter felt. He knew well enough that the
+superintendent had suffered deepest at that point.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"There is one matter I wish you would see to," said Powers after
+awhile, "and that is, the work begun at the shops. So far as I know,
+the company will not object to that going on. It is one of the
+contradictions of the railroad world that Y. M. C. A.'s and other
+Christian influences are encouraged by the roads, while all the time
+the most un-Christian and lawless acts may be committed in the
+official management of the roads themselves. Of course it is well
+understood that it pays a railroad to have in its employ men who are
+temperate, honest and Christian. So I have no doubt the master
+mechanic will have the same courtesy shown him in the use of the
+room. But what I want you to do, Mr. Maxwell, is to see that my plan
+is carried out. Will you? You understand what it was in general. You
+made a very favorable impression on the men. Go down there as often
+as you can. Get Milton Wright interested to provide something for
+the furnishing and expense of the coffee plant and reading tables.
+Will you do it?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Yes," replied Henry Maxwell. He stayed a little longer. Before he
+went away, he and the superintendent had a prayer together, and they
+parted with that silent hand grasp that seemed to them like a new
+token of their Christian discipleship and fellowship.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The pastor of the First Church went home stirred deeply by the
+events of the week. Gradually the truth was growing upon him that
+the pledge to do as Jesus would was working out a revolution in his
+parish and throughout the city. Every day added to the serious
+results of obedience to that pledge. Maxwell did not pretend to see
+the end. He was, in fact, only now at the very beginning of events
+that were destined to change the history of hundreds of families not
+only in Raymond but throughout the entire country. As he thought of
+Edward Norman and Rachel and Mr. Powers, and of the results that had
+already come from their actions, he could not help a feeling of
+intense interest in the probable effect if all the persons in the
+First Church who had made the pledge, faithfully kept it. Would they
+all keep it, or would some of them turn back when the cross became
+too heavy?
+</P>
+
+<P>
+He was asking this question the next morning as he sat in his study
+when the President of the Endeavor Society of his church called to
+see him.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I suppose I ought not to trouble you with my case," said young
+Morris coming at once to his errand, "but I thought, Mr. Maxwell,
+that you might advise me a little."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I'm glad you came. Go on, Fred." He had known the young man ever
+since his first year in the pastorate, and loved and honored him for
+his consistent, faithful service in the church.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Well, the fact is, I am out of a job. You know I've been doing
+reporter work on the morning SENTINEL since I graduated last year.
+Well, last Saturday Mr. Burr asked me to go down the road Sunday
+morning and get the details of that train robbery at the Junction,
+and write the thing up for the extra edition that came out Monday
+morning, just to get the start of the NEWS. I refused to go, and
+Burr gave me my dismissal. He was in a bad temper, or I think
+perhaps he would not have done it. He has always treated me well
+before. Now, do you think Jesus would have done as I did? I ask
+because the other fellows say I was a fool not to do the work. I
+want to feel that a Christian acts from motives that may seem
+strange to others sometimes, but not foolish. What do you think?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I think you kept your promise, Fred. I cannot believe Jesus would
+do newspaper reporting on Sunday as you were asked to do it."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Thank you, Mr. Maxwell. I felt a little troubled over it, but the
+longer I think it over the better I feel."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Morris rose to go, and his pastor rose and laid a loving hand on the
+young man's shoulder. "What are you going to do, Fred?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I don't know yet. I have thought some of going to Chicago or some
+large city ."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Why don't you try the NEWS?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"They are all supplied. I have not thought of applying there."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Maxwell thought a moment. "Come down to the NEWS office with me, and
+let us see Norman about it."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+So a few minutes later Edward Norman received into his room the
+minister and young Morris, and Maxwell briefly told the cause of the
+errand.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I can give you a place on the NEWS," said Norman with his keen look
+softened by a smile that made it winsome. "I want reporters who
+won't work Sundays. And what is more, I am making plans for a
+special kind of reporting which I believe you can develop because
+you are in sympathy with what Jesus would do."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+He assigned Morris a definite task, and Maxwell started back to his
+study, feeling that kind of satisfaction (and it is a very deep
+kind) which a man feels when he has been even partly instrumental in
+finding an unemployed person a remunerative position.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+He had intended to go right to his study, but on his way home he
+passed by one of Milton Wright's stores. He thought he would simply
+step in and shake hands with his parishioner and bid him God-speed
+in what he had heard he was doing to put Christ into his business.
+But when he went into the office, Wright insisted on detaining him
+to talk over some of his new plans. Maxwell asked himself if this
+was the Milton Wright he used to know, eminently practical,
+business-like, according to the regular code of the business world,
+and viewing every thing first and foremost from the standpoint of,
+"Will it pay?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"There is no use to disguise the fact, Mr. Maxwell, that I have been
+compelled to revolutionize the entire method of my business since I
+made that promise. I have been doing a great many things during the
+last twenty years in this store that I know Jesus would not do. But
+that is a small item compared with the number of things I begin to
+believe Jesus would do. My sins of commission have not been as many
+as those of omission in business relations."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"What was the first change you made?" He felt as if his sermon could
+wait for him in his study. As the interview with Milton Wright
+continued, he was not so sure but that he had found material for a
+sermon without going back to his study.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I think the first change I had to make was in my thought of my
+employees. I came down here Monday morning after that Sunday and
+asked myself, 'What would Jesus do in His relation to these clerks,
+bookkeepers, office-boys, draymen, salesmen? Would He try to
+establish some sort of personal relation to them different from that
+which I have sustained all these years?' I soon answered this by
+saying, 'Yes.' Then came the question of what that relation would be
+and what it would lead me to do. I did not see how I could answer it
+to my satisfaction without getting all my employees together and
+having a talk with them. So I sent invitations to all of them, and
+we had a meeting out there in the warehouse Tuesday night. A good
+many things came out of that meeting. I can't tell you all. I tried
+to talk with the men as I imagined Jesus might. It was hard work,
+for I have not been in the habit of it, and must have made some
+mistakes. But I can hardly make you believe, Mr. Maxwell, the effect
+of that meeting on some of the men. Before it closed I saw more than
+a dozen of them with tears on their faces. I kept asking, 'What
+would Jesus do?' and the more I asked it the farther along it pushed
+me into the most intimate and loving relations with the men who have
+worked for me all these years. Every day something new is coming up
+and I am right now in the midst of a reconstruction of the entire
+business so far as its motive for being conducted is concerned. I am
+so practically ignorant of all plans for co-operation and its
+application to business that I am trying to get information from
+every possible source. I have lately made a special study of the
+life of Titus Salt, the great mill-owner of Bradford, England, who
+afterward built that model town on the banks of the Aire. There is a
+good deal in his plans that will help me. But I have not yet reached
+definite conclusions in regard to all the details. I am not enough
+used to Jesus' methods. But see here."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Wright eagerly reached up into one of the pigeon holes of his desk
+and took out a paper.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I have sketched out what seems to me like a program such as Jesus
+might go by in a business like mine. I want you to tell me what you
+think of it:
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"WHAT JESUS WOULD PROBABLY DO IN MILTON WRIGHT'S PLACE AS A BUSINESS
+MAN"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+He would engage in the business first of all for the purpose of
+glorifying God, and not for the primary purpose of making money. All
+money that might be made he would never regard as his own, but as
+trust funds to be used for the good of humanity. His relations with
+all the persons in his employ would be the most loving and helpful.
+He could not help thinking of all of them in the light of souls to
+be saved. This thought would always be greater than his thought of
+making money in the business. He would never do a single dishonest
+or questionable thing or try in any remotest way to get the
+advantage of any one else in the same business. The principle of
+unselfishness and helpfulness in the business would direct all its
+details. Upon this principle he would shape the entire plan of his
+relations to his employees, to the people who were his customers and
+to the general business world with which he was connected.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Henry Maxwell read this over slowly. It reminded him of his own
+attempts the day before to put into a concrete form his thought of
+Jesus' probable action. He was very thoughtful as he looked up and
+met Wright's eager gaze.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Do you believe you can continue to make your business pay on these
+lines?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I do. Intelligent unselfishness ought to be wiser than intelligent
+selfishness, don't you think? If the men who work as employees begin
+to feel a personal share in the profits of the business and, more
+than that, a personal love for themselves on the part of the firm,
+won't the result be more care, less waste, more diligence, more
+faithfulness?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Yes, I think so. A good many other business men don't, do they? I
+mean as a general thing. How about your relations to the selfish
+world that is not trying to make money on Christian principles?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"That complicates my action, of course."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Does your plan contemplate what is coming to be known as
+co-operation?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Yes, as far as I have gone, it does. As I told you, I am studying
+out my details carefully. I am absolutely convinced that Jesus in my
+place would be absolutely unselfish. He would love all these men in
+His employ. He would consider the main purpose of all the business
+to be a mutual helpfulness, and would conduct it all so that God's
+kingdom would be evidently the first object sought. On those general
+principles, as I say, I am working. I must have time to complete the
+details."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+When Maxwell finally left he was profoundly impressed with the
+revolution that was being wrought already in the business. As he
+passed out of the store he caught something of the new spirit of the
+place. There was no mistaking the fact that Milton Wright's new
+relations to his employees were beginning even so soon, after less
+than two weeks, to transform the entire business. This was apparent
+in the conduct and faces of the clerks.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"If he keeps on he will be one of the most influential preachers in
+Raymond," said Maxwell to himself when he reached his study. The
+question rose as to his continuance in this course when he began to
+lose money by it, as was possible. He prayed that the Holy Spirit,
+who had shown Himself with growing power in the company of First
+Church disciples, might abide long with them all. And with that
+prayer on his lips and in his heart he began the preparation of a
+sermon in which he was going to present to his people on Sunday the
+subject of the saloon in Raymond, as he now believed Jesus would do.
+He had never preached against the saloon in this way before. He knew
+that the things he should say would lead to serious results.
+Nevertheless, he went on with his work, and every sentence he wrote
+or shaped was preceded with the question, "Would Jesus say that?"
+Once in the course of his study, he went down on his knees. No one
+except himself could know what that meant to him. When had he done
+that in his preparation of sermons, before the change that had come
+into his thought of discipleship? As he viewed his ministry now, he
+did not dare preach without praying long for wisdom. He no longer
+thought of his dramatic delivery and its effect on his audience. The
+great question with him now was, "What would Jesus do?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Saturday night at the Rectangle witnessed some of the most
+remarkable scenes that Mr. Gray and his wife had ever known. The
+meetings had intensified with each night of Rachel's singing. A
+stranger passing through the Rectangle in the day-time might have
+heard a good deal about the meetings in one way and another. It
+cannot be said that up to that Saturday night there was any
+appreciable lack of oaths and impurity and heavy drinking. The
+Rectangle would not have acknowledged that it was growing any better
+or that even the singing had softened its outward manner. It had too
+much local pride in being "tough." But in spite of itself there was
+a yielding to a power it had never measured and did not know we
+enough to resist beforehand.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Gray had recovered his voice so that by Saturday he was able to
+speak. The fact that he was obliged to use his voice carefully made
+it necessary for the people to be very quiet if they wanted to hear.
+Gradually they had come to understand that this man was talking
+these many weeks and giving his time and strength to give them a
+knowledge of a Savior, all out of a perfectly unselfish love for
+them. Tonight the great crowd was as quiet as Henry Maxwell's
+decorous audience ever was. The fringe around the tent was deeper
+and the saloons were practically empty. The Holy Spirit had come at
+last, and Gray knew that one of the great prayers of his life was
+going to be answered.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+And Rachel her singing was the best, most wonderful, that Virginia
+or Jasper Chase had ever known. They came together again tonight,
+this time with Dr. West, who had spent all his spare time that week
+in the Rectangle with some charity cases. Virginia was at the organ,
+Jasper sat on a front seat looking up at Rachel, and the Rectangle
+swayed as one man towards the platform as she sang:
+</P>
+
+<P CLASS="poem">
+ "Just as I am, without one plea,<BR>
+ But that Thy blood was shed for me,<BR>
+ And that Thou bidst me come to Thee,<BR>
+ O Lamb of God, I come, I come."<BR>
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Gray hardly said a word. He stretched out his hand with a gesture of
+invitation. And down the two aisles of the tent, broken, sinful
+creatures, men and women, stumbled towards the platform. One woman
+out of the street was near the organ. Virginia caught the look of
+her face, and for the first time in the life of the rich girl the
+thought of what Jesus was to the sinful woman came with a suddenness
+and power that was like nothing but a new birth. Virginia left the
+organ, went to her, looked into her face and caught her hands in her
+own. The other girl trembled, then fell on her knees sobbing, with
+her head down upon the back of the rude bench in front of her, still
+clinging to Virginia. And Virginia, after a moment's hesitation,
+kneeled down by her and the two heads were bowed close together.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+But when the people had crowded in a double row all about the
+platform, most of them kneeling and crying, a man in evening dress,
+different from the others, pushed through the seats and came and
+kneeled down by the side of the drunken man who had disturbed the
+meeting when Maxwell spoke. He kneeled within a few feet of Rachel
+Winslow, who was still singing softly. And as she turned for a
+moment and looked in his direction, she was amazed to see the face
+of Rollin Page! For a moment her voice faltered. Then she went on:
+</P>
+
+<P CLASS="poem">
+ "Just as I am, thou wilt receive,<BR>
+ Wilt welcome, pardon, cleanse, relieve,<BR>
+ Because Thy promise I believe,<BR>
+ O Lamb of God, I come, I come."<BR>
+</P>
+
+<BR><BR><BR>
+
+<A NAME="chap10"></A>
+<H3 ALIGN="center">
+Chapter Ten
+</H3>
+
+<P CLASS="intro">
+"If any man serve me, let him follow me."
+</P>
+
+<BR>
+
+<P>
+IT was nearly midnight before the services at the Rectangle closed.
+Gray stayed up long into Sunday morning, praying and talking with a
+little group of converts who in the great experiences of their new
+life, clung to the evangelist with a personal helplessness that made
+it as impossible for him to leave them as if they had been depending
+upon him to save them from physical death. Among these converts was
+Rollin Page.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Virginia and her uncle had gone home about eleven o'clock, and
+Rachel and Jasper Chase had gone with them as far as the avenue
+where Virginia lived. Dr. West had walked on a little way with them
+to his own home, and Rachel and Jasper had then gone on together to
+her mother's.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+That was a little after eleven. It was now striking midnight, and
+Jasper Chase sat in his room staring at the papers on his desk and
+going over the last half hour with painful persistence.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+He had told Rachel Winslow of his love for her, and she had not
+given him her love in return. It would be difficult to know what was
+most powerful in the impulse that had moved him to speak to her
+tonight. He had yielded to his feelings without any special thought
+of results to himself, because he had felt so certain that Rachel
+would respond to his love. He tried to recall the impression she
+made on him when he first spoke to her.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Never had her beauty and her strength influenced him as tonight.
+While she was singing he saw and heard no one else. The tent swarmed
+with a confused crowd of faces and he knew he was sitting there
+hemmed in by a mob of people, but they had no meaning to him. He
+felt powerless to avoid speaking to her. He knew he should speak
+when they were alone.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Now that he had spoken, he felt that he had misjudged either Rachel
+or the opportunity. He knew, or thought he knew, that she had begun
+to care something for him. It was no secret between them that the
+heroine of Jasper's first novel had been his own ideal of Rachel,
+and the hero in the story was himself and they had loved each other
+in the book, and Rachel had not objected. No one else knew. The
+names and characters had been drawn with a subtle skill that
+revealed to Rachel, when she received a copy of the book from
+Jasper, the fact of his love for her, and she had not been offended.
+That was nearly a year ago.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Tonight he recalled the scene between them with every inflection and
+movement unerased from his memory. He even recalled the fact that he
+began to speak just at that point on the avenue where, a few days
+before, he had met Rachel walking with Rollin Page. He had wondered
+at the time what Rollin was saying.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Rachel," Jasper had said, and it was the first time he had ever
+spoken her first name, "I never knew till tonight how much I loved
+you. Why should I try to conceal any longer what you have seen me
+look? You know I love you as my life. I can no longer hide it from
+you if I would."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The first intimation he had of a repulse was the trembling of
+Rachel's arm in his. She had allowed him to speak and had neither
+turned her face toward him nor away from him. She had looked
+straight on and her voice was sad but firm and quiet when she spoke.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Why do you speak to me now? I cannot bear it&mdash;after what we have
+seen tonight."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Why&mdash;what&mdash;" he had stammered and then was silent.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Rachel withdrew her arm from his but still walked near him. Then he
+had cried out with the anguish of one who begins to see a great loss
+facing him where he expected a great joy.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Rachel! Do you not love me? Is not my love for you as sacred as
+anything in all of life itself?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+She had walked silent for a few steps after that. They passed a
+street lamp. Her face was pale and beautiful. He had made a movement
+to clutch her arm and she had moved a little farther from him.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"No," she had replied. "There was a time I&mdash;cannot answer for that
+you&mdash;should not have spoken to me&mdash;now."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+He had seen in these words his answer. He was extremely sensitive.
+Nothing short of a joyous response to his own love would ever have
+satisfied him. He could not think of pleading with her.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Some time&mdash;when I am more worthy?" he had asked in a low voice, but
+she did not seem to hear, and they had parted at her home, and he
+recalled vividly the fact that no good-night had been said.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Now as he went over the brief but significant scene he lashed
+himself for his foolish precipitancy. He had not reckoned on
+Rachel's tense, passionate absorption of all her feeling in the
+scenes at the tent which were so new in her mind. But he did not
+know her well enough even yet to understand the meaning of her
+refusal. When the clock in the First Church struck one he was still
+sitting at his desk staring at the last page of manuscript of his
+unfinished novel.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Rachel went up to her room and faced her evening's experience with
+conflicting emotions. Had she ever loved Jasper Chase? Yes. No. One
+moment she felt that her life's happiness was at stake over the
+result of her action. Another, she had a strange feeling of relief
+that she had spoken as she had. There was one great, overmastering
+feeling in her. The response of the wretched creatures in the tent
+to her singing, the swift, powerful, awesome presence of the Holy
+Spirit had affected her as never in all her life before. The moment
+Jasper had spoken her name and she realized that he was telling her
+of his love she had felt a sudden revulsion for him, as if he should
+have respected the supernatural events they had just witnessed. She
+felt as if it was not the time to be absorbed in anything less than
+the divine glory of those conversions. The thought that all the time
+she was singing, with the one passion of her soul to touch the
+conscience of that tent full of sin, Jasper Chase had been unmoved
+by it except to love her for herself, gave her a shock as of
+irreverence on her part as well as on his. She could not tell why
+she felt as she did, only she knew that if he had not told her
+tonight she would still have felt the same toward him as she always
+had. What was that feeling? What had he been to her? Had she made a
+mistake? She went to her book case and took out the novel which
+Jasper had given her. Her face deepened in color as she turned to
+certain passages which she had read often and which she knew Jasper
+had written for her. She read them again. Somehow they failed to
+touch her strongly. She closed the book and let it lie on the table.
+She gradually felt that her thought was busy with the sights she had
+witnessed in the tent. Those faces, men and women, touched for the
+first time with the Spirit's glory&mdash;what a wonderful thing life was
+after all! The complete regeneration revealed in the sight of
+drunken, vile, debauched humanity kneeling down to give itself to a
+life of purity and Christlikeness&mdash;oh, it was surely a witness to
+the superhuman in the world! And the face of Rollin Page by the side
+of that miserable wreck out of the gutter! She could recall as if
+she now saw it, Virginia crying with her arms about her brother just
+before she left the tent, and Mr. Gray kneeling close by, and the
+girl Virginia had taken into her heart while she whispered something
+to her before she went out. All these pictures drawn by the Holy
+Spirit in the human tragedies brought to a climax there in the most
+abandoned spot in all Raymond, stood out in Rachel's memory now, a
+memory so recent that her room seemed for the time being to contain
+all the actors and their movements.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"No! No!" she said aloud. "He had no right to speak after all that!
+He should have respected the place where our thoughts should have
+been. I am sure I do not love him&mdash;not enough to give him my life!"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+And after she had thus spoken, the evening's experience at the tent
+came crowding in again, thrusting out all other things. It is
+perhaps the most striking evidence of the tremendous spiritual
+factor which had now entered the Rectangle that Rachel felt, even
+when the great love of a strong man had come very near to her, that
+the spiritual manifestation moved her with an agitation far greater
+than anything Jasper had felt for her personally or she for him.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The people of Raymond awoke Sunday morning to a growing knowledge of
+events which were beginning to revolutionize many of the regular,
+customary habits of the town. Alexander Powers' action in the matter
+of the railroad frauds had created a sensation not only in Raymond
+but throughout the country. Edward Norman's daily changes of policy
+in the conduct of his paper had startled the community and caused
+more comment than any recent political event. Rachel Winslow's
+singing at the Rectangle meetings had made a stir in society and
+excited the wonder of all her friends.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Virginia's conduct, her presence every night with Rachel, her
+absence from the usual circle of her wealthy, fashionable
+acquaintances, had furnished a great deal of material for gossip and
+question. In addition to these events which centered about these
+persons who were so well known, there had been all through the city
+in very many homes and in business and social circles strange
+happenings. Nearly one hundred persons in Henry Maxwell's church had
+made the pledge to do everything after asking: "What would Jesus
+do?" and the result had been, in many cases, unheard-of actions. The
+city was stirred as it had never been before. As a climax to the
+week's events had come the spiritual manifestation at the Rectangle,
+and the announcement which came to most people before church time of
+the actual conversion at the tent of nearly fifty of the worst
+characters in that neighborhood, together with the con version of
+Rollin Page, the well-known society and club man.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+It is no wonder that under the pressure of all this the First Church
+of Raymond came to the morning service in a condition that made it
+quickly sensitive to any large truth. Perhaps nothing had astonished
+the people more than the great change that had come over the
+minister, since he had proposed to them the imitation of Jesus in
+conduct. The dramatic delivery of his sermons no longer impressed
+them. The self-satisfied, contented, easy attitude of the fine
+figure and refined face in the pulpit had been displaced by a manner
+that could not be compared with the old style of his delivery. The
+sermon had become a message. It was no longer delivered. It was
+brought to them with a love, an earnestness, a passion, a desire, a
+humility that poured its enthusiasm about the truth and made the
+speaker no more prominent than he had to be as the living voice of
+God. His prayers were unlike any the people had heard before. They
+were often broken, even once or twice they had been actually
+ungrammatical in a phrase or two. When had Henry Maxwell so far
+forgotten himself in a prayer as to make a mistake of that sort? He
+knew that he had often taken as much pride in the diction and
+delivery of his prayers as of his sermons. Was it possible he now so
+abhorred the elegant refinement of a formal public petition that he
+purposely chose to rebuke himself for his previous precise manner of
+prayer? It is more likely that he had no thought of all that. His
+great longing to voice the needs and wants of his people made him
+unmindful of an occasional mistake. It is certain that he had never
+prayed so effectively as he did now.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+There are times when a sermon has a value and power due to
+conditions in the audience rather than to anything new or startling
+or eloquent in the words said or arguments presented. Such
+conditions faced Henry Maxwell this morning as he preached against
+the saloon, according to his purpose determined on the week before.
+He had no new statements to make about the evil influence of the
+saloon in Raymond. What new facts were there? He had no startling
+illustrations of the power of the saloon in business or politics.
+What could he say that had not been said by temperance orators a
+great many times? The effect of his message this morning owed its
+power to the unusual fact of his preaching about the saloon at all,
+together with the events that had stirred the people. He had never
+in the course of his ten years' pastorate mentioned the saloon as
+something to be regarded in the light of an enemy, not only to the
+poor and tempted, but to the business life of the place and the
+church itself. He spoke now with a freedom that seemed to measure
+his complete sense of conviction that Jesus would speak so. At the
+close he pleaded with the people to remember the new life that had
+begun at the Rectangle. The regular election of city officers was
+near at hand. The question of license would be an issue in the
+election. What of the poor creatures surrounded by the hell of drink
+while just beginning to feel the joy of deliverance from sin? Who
+could tell what depended on their environment? Was there one word to
+be said by the Christian disciple, business man, citizen, in favor
+of continuing the license to crime and shame-producing institutions?
+Was not the most Christian thing they could do to act as citizens in
+the matter, fight the saloon at the polls, elect good men to the
+city offices, and clean the municipality? How much had prayers
+helped to make Raymond better while votes and actions had really
+been on the side of the enemies of Jesus? Would not Jesus do this?
+What disciple could imagine Him refusing to suffer or to take up His
+cross in this matter? How much had the members of the First Church
+ever suffered in an attempt to imitate Jesus? Was Christian
+discipleship a thing of conscience simply, of custom, of tradition?
+Where did the suffering come in? Was it necessary in order to follow
+Jesus' steps to go up Calvary as well as the Mount of
+Transfiguration?
+</P>
+
+<P>
+His appeal was stronger at this point than he knew. It is not too
+much to say that the spiritual tension of the people reached its
+highest point right there. The imitation of Jesus which had begun
+with the volunteers in the church was working like leaven in the
+organization, and Henry Maxwell would even thus early in his life
+have been amazed if he could have measured the extent of desire on
+the part of his people to take up the cross. While he was speaking
+this morning, before he closed with a loving appeal to the
+discipleship of two thousand years' knowledge of the Master, many a
+man and woman in the church was saying as Rachel had said so
+passionately to her mother: "I want to do something that will cost
+me something in the way of sacrifice." "I am hungry to suffer
+something." Truly, Mazzini was right when he said that no appeal is
+quite so powerful in the end as the call: "Come and suffer."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The service was over, the great audience had gone, and Maxwell again
+faced the company gathered in the lecture room as on the two
+previous Sundays. He had asked all to remain who had made the pledge
+of discipleship, and any others who wished to be included. The after
+service seemed now to be a necessity. As he went in and faced the
+people there his heart trembled. There were at least one hundred
+present. The Holy Spirit was never before so manifest. He missed
+Jasper Chase. But all the others were present. He asked Milton
+Wright to pray. The very air was charged with divine possibilities.
+What could resist such a baptism of power? How had they lived all
+these years without it?
+</P>
+
+<BR><BR><BR>
+
+<A NAME="chap11"></A>
+<H3 ALIGN="center">
+Chapter Eleven
+</H3>
+
+<P>
+DONALD MARSH, President of Lincoln College, walked home with Mr.
+Maxwell.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I have reached one conclusion, Maxwell," said Marsh, speaking
+slowly. "I have found my cross and it is a heavy one, but I shall
+never be satisfied until I take it up and carry it." Maxwell was
+silent and the President went on.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Your sermon today made clear to me what I have long been feeling I
+ought to do. 'What would Jesus do in my place?' I have asked the
+question repeatedly since I made my promise. I have tried to satisfy
+myself that He would simply go on as I have done, attending to the
+duties of my college work, teaching the classes in Ethics and
+Philosophy. But I have not been able to avoid the feeling that He
+would do something more. That something is what I do not want to do.
+It will cause me genuine suffering to do it. I dread it with all my
+soul. You may be able to guess what it is."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Yes, I think I know. It is my cross too. I would almost rather do
+any thing else."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Donald Marsh looked surprised, then relieved. Then he spoke sadly
+but with great conviction: "Maxwell, you and I belong to a class of
+professional men who have always avoided the duties of citizenship.
+We have lived in a little world of literature and scholarly
+seclusion, doing work we have enjoyed and shrinking from the
+disagreeable duties that belong to the life of the citizen. I
+confess with shame that I have purposely avoided the responsibility
+that I owe to this city personally. I understand that our city
+officials are a corrupt, unprincipled set of men, controlled in
+large part by the whiskey element and thoroughly selfish so far as
+the affairs of city government are concerned. Yet all these years I,
+with nearly every teacher in the college, have been satisfied to let
+other men run the municipality and have lived in a little world of
+my own, out of touch and sympathy with the real world of the people.
+'What would Jesus do?' I have even tried to avoid an honest answer.
+I can no longer do so. My plain duty is to take a personal part in
+this coming election, go to the primaries, throw the weight of my
+influence, whatever it is, toward the nomination and election of
+good men, and plunge into the very depths of the entire horrible
+whirlpool of deceit, bribery, political trickery and saloonism as it
+exists in Raymond today. I would sooner walk up to the mouth of a
+cannon any time than do this. I dread it because I hate the touch of
+the whole matter. I would give almost any thing to be able to say,
+'I do not believe Jesus would do anything of the sort.' But I am
+more and more persuaded that He would. This is where the suffering
+comes for me. It would not hurt me half so much to lose my position
+or my home. I loathe the contact with this municipal problem. I
+would so much prefer to remain quietly in my scholastic life with my
+classes in Ethics and Philosophy. But the call has come to me so
+plainly that I cannot escape. 'Donald Marsh, follow me. Do your duty
+as a citizen of Raymond at the point where your citizenship will
+cost you something. Help to cleanse this municipal stable, even if
+you do have to soil your aristocratic feelings a little.' Maxwell,
+this is my cross, I must take it up or deny my Lord."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"You have spoken for me also," replied Maxwell with a sad smile.
+"Why should I, simply because I am a minister, shelter myself behind
+my refined, sensitive feelings, and like a coward refuse to touch,
+except in a sermon possibly, the duty of citizenship? I am unused to
+the ways of the political life of the city. I have never taken an
+active part in any nomination of good men. There are hundreds of
+ministers like me. As a class we do not practice in the municipal
+life the duties and privileges we preach from the pulpit. 'What
+would Jesus do?' I am now at a point where, like you, I am driven to
+answer the question one way. My duty is plain. I must suffer. All my
+parish work, all my little trials or self-sacrifices are as nothing
+to me compared with the breaking into my scholarly, intellectual,
+self-contained habits, of this open, coarse, public fight for a
+clean city life. I could go and live at the Rectangle the rest of my
+life and work in the slums for a bare living, and I could enjoy it
+more than the thought of plunging into a fight for the reform of
+this whiskey-ridden city. It would cost me less. But, like you, I
+have been unable to shake off my responsibility. The answer to the
+question 'What would Jesus do?' in this case leaves me no peace
+except when I say, Jesus would have me act the part of a Christian
+citizen. Marsh, as you say, we professional men, ministers,
+professors, artists, literary men, scholars, have almost invariably
+been political cowards. We have avoided the sacred duties of
+citizenship either ignorantly or selfishly. Certainly Jesus in our
+age would not do that. We can do no less than take up this cross,
+and follow Him."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The two men walked on in silence for a while. Finally President
+Marsh said: "We do not need to act alone in this matter. With all
+the men who have made the promise we certainly can have
+companionship, and strength even, of numbers. Let us organize the
+Christian forces of Raymond for the battle against rum and
+corruption. We certainly ought to enter the primaries with a force
+that will be able to do more than enter a protest. It is a fact that
+the saloon element is cowardly and easily frightened in spite of its
+lawlessness and corruption. Let us plan a campaign that will mean
+something because it is organized righteousness. Jesus would use
+great wisdom in this matter. He would employ means. He would make
+large plans. Let us do so. If we bear this cross let us do it
+bravely, like men."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+They talked over the matter a long time and met again the next day
+in Maxwell's study to develop plans. The city primaries were called
+for Friday. Rumors of strange and unknown events to the average
+citizen were current that week in political circles throughout
+Raymond. The Crawford system of balloting for nominations was not in
+use in the state, and the primary was called for a public meeting at
+the court house.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The citizens of Raymond will never forget that meeting. It was so
+unlike any political meeting ever held in Raymond before, that there
+was no attempt at comparison. The special officers to be nominated
+were mayor, city council, chief of police, city clerk and city
+treasurer.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The evening NEWS in its Saturday edition gave a full account of the
+primaries, and in the editorial columns Edward Norman spoke with a
+directness and conviction that the Christian people of Raymond were
+learning to respect deeply, because it was so evidently sincere and
+unselfish. A part of that editorial is also a part of this history.
+We quote the following:
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"It is safe to say that never before in the history of Raymond was
+there a primary like the one in the court house last night. It was,
+first of all, a complete surprise to the city politicians who have
+been in the habit of carrying on the affairs of the city as if they
+owned them, and every one else was simply a tool or a cipher. The
+overwhelming surprise of the wire pullers last night consisted in
+the fact that a large number of the citizens of Raymond who have
+heretofore taken no part in the city's affairs, entered the primary
+and controlled it, nominating some of the best men for all the
+offices to be filled at the coming election.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"It was a tremendous lesson in good citizenship. President Marsh of
+Lincoln College, who never before entered a city primary, and whose
+face was not even known to the ward politicians, made one of the
+best speeches ever made in Raymond. It was almost ludicrous to see
+the faces of the men who for years have done as they pleased, when
+President Marsh rose to speak. Many of them asked, 'Who is he?' The
+consternation deepened as the primary proceeded and it became
+evident that the oldtime ring of city rulers was outnumbered. Rev.
+Henry Maxwell of the First Church, Milton Wright, Alexander Powers,
+Professors Brown, Willard and Park of Lincoln College, Dr. West,
+Rev. George Main of the Pilgrim Church, Dean Ward of the Holy
+Trinity, and scores of well-known business men and professional men,
+most of them church members, were present, and it did not take long
+to see that they had all come with the one direct and definite
+purpose of nominating the best men possible. Most of those men had
+never before been seen in a primary. They were complete strangers to
+the politicians. But they had evidently profited by the politician's
+methods and were able by organized and united effort to nominate the
+entire ticket.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"As soon as it became plain that the primary was out of their
+control the regular ring withdrew in disgust and nominated another
+ticket. The NEWS simply calls the attention of all decent citizens
+to the fact that this last ticket contains the names of whiskey men,
+and the line is sharply and distinctly drawn between the saloon and
+corrupt management such as we have known for years, and a clean,
+honest, capable, business-like city administration, such as every
+good citizen ought to want. It is not necessary to remind the people
+of Raymond that the question of local option comes up at the
+election. That will be the most important question on the ticket.
+The crisis of our city affairs has been reached. The issue is
+squarely before us. Shall we continue the rule of rum and boodle and
+shameless incompetency, or shall we, as President Marsh said in his
+noble speech, rise as good citizens and begin a new order of things,
+cleansing our city of the worst enemy known to municipal honesty,
+and doing what lies in our power to do with the ballot to purify our
+civic life?
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"The NEWS is positively and without reservation on the side of the
+new movement. We shall henceforth do all in our power to drive out
+the saloon and destroy its political strength. We shall advocate the
+election of the men nominated by the majority of citizens met in the
+first primary and we call upon all Christians, church members,
+lovers of right, purity, temperance, and the home, to stand by
+President Marsh and the rest of the citizens who have thus begun a
+long-needed reform in our city."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+President Marsh read this editorial and thanked God for Edward
+Norman. At the same time he understood well enough that every other
+paper in Raymond was on the other side. He did not underestimate the
+importance and seriousness of the fight which was only just begun.
+It was no secret that the NEWS had lost enormously since it had been
+governed by the standard of "What would Jesus do?" And the question
+was, Would the Christian people of Raymond stand by it? Would they
+make it possible for Norman to conduct a daily Christian paper? Or
+would the desire for what is called news in the way of crime,
+scandal, political partisanship of the regular sort, and a dislike
+to champion so remarkable a reform in journalism, influence them to
+drop the paper and refuse to give it their financial support? That
+was, in fact, the question Edward Norman was asking even while he
+wrote that Saturday editorial. He knew well enough that his actions
+expressed in that editorial would cost him very heavily from the
+hands of many business men in Raymond. And still, as he drove his
+pen over the paper, he asked another question, "What would Jesus
+do?" That question had become a part of this whole life now. It was
+greater than any other.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+But for the first time in its history Raymond had seen the
+professional men, the teachers, the college professors, the doctors,
+the ministers, take political action and put themselves definitely
+and sharply in public antagonism to the evil forces that had so long
+controlled the machine of municipal government. The fact itself was
+astounding. President Marsh acknowledged to himself with a feeling
+of humiliation, that never before had he known what civic
+righteousness could accomplish. From that Friday night's work he
+dated for himself and his college a new definition of the worn
+phrase "the scholar in politics." Education for him and those who
+were under his influence ever after meant some element of suffering.
+Sacrifice must now enter into the factor of development.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+At the Rectangle that week the tide of spiritual life rose high, and
+as yet showed no signs of flowing back. Rachel and Virginia went
+every night. Virginia was rapidly reaching a conclusion with respect
+to a large part of her money. She had talked it over with Rachel and
+they had been able to agree that if Jesus had a vast amount of money
+at His disposal He might do with some of it as Virginia planned. At
+any rate they felt that whatever He might do in such case would have
+as large an element of variety in it as the differences in persons
+and circumstances. There could be no one fixed Christian way of
+using money. The rule that regulated its use was unselfish utility.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+But meanwhile the glory of the Spirit's power possessed all their
+best thought. Night after night that week witnessed miracles as
+great as walking on the sea or feeding the multitude with a few
+loaves and fishes. For what greater miracle is there than a
+regenerate humanity? The transformation of these coarse, brutal,
+sottish lives into praying, rapturous lovers of Christ, struck
+Rachel and Virginia every time with the feeling that people may have
+had when they saw Lazarus walk out of the tomb. It was an experience
+full of profound excitement for them.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Rollin Page came to all the meetings. There was no doubt of the
+change that had come over him. Rachel had not yet spoken much with
+him. He was wonderfully quiet. It seemed as if he was thinking all
+the time. Certainly he was not the same person. He talked more with
+Gray than with any one else. He did not avoid Rachel, but he seemed
+to shrink from any appearance of seeming to renew the acquaintance
+with her. Rachel found it even difficult to express to him her
+pleasure at the new life he had begun to know. He seemed to be
+waiting to adjust himself to his previous relations before this new
+life began. He had not forgotten those relations. But he was not yet
+able to fit his consciousness into new ones.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The end of the week found the Rectangle struggling hard between two
+mighty opposing forces. The Holy Spirit was battling with all His
+supernatural strength against the saloon devil which had so long
+held a jealous grasp on its slaves. If the Christian people of
+Raymond once could realize what the contest meant to the souls newly
+awakened to a purer life it did not seem possible that the election
+could result in the old system of license. But that remained yet to
+be seen. The horror of the daily surroundings of many of the
+converts was slowly burning its way into the knowledge of Virginia
+and Rachel, and every night as they went uptown to their luxurious
+homes they carried heavy hearts.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"A good many of these poor creatures will go back again," Gray would
+say with sadness too deep for tears. "The environment does have a
+good deal to do with the character. It does not stand to reason that
+these people can always resist the sight and smell of the devilish
+drink about them. O Lord, how long shall Christian people continue
+to support by their silence and their ballots the greatest form of
+slavery known in America?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+He asked the question, and did not have much hope of an immediate
+answer. There was a ray of hope in the action of Friday night's
+primary, but what the result would be he did not dare to anticipate.
+The whiskey forces were organized, alert, aggressive, roused into
+unusual hatred by the events of the last week at the tent and in the
+city. Would the Christian forces act as a unit against the saloon?
+Or would they be divided on account of their business interests or
+because they were not in the habit of acting all together as the
+whiskey power always did? That remained to be seen. Meanwhile the
+saloon reared itself about the Rectangle like some deadly viper
+hissing and coiling, ready to strike its poison into any unguarded
+part.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Saturday afternoon as Virginia was just stepping out of her house to
+go and see Rachel to talk over her new plans, a carriage drove up
+containing three of her fashionable friends. Virginia went out to
+the drive-way and stood there talking with them. They had not come
+to make a formal call but wanted Virginia to go driving with them up
+on the boulevard. There was a band concert in the park. The day was
+too pleasant to be spent indoors.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Where have you been all this time, Virginia?" asked one of the
+girls, tapping her playfully on the shoulder with a red silk
+parasol. "We hear that you have gone into the show business. Tell us
+about it."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Virginia colored, but after a moment's hesitation she frankly told
+something of her experience at the Rectangle. The girls in the
+carriage began to be really interested.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I tell you, girls, let's go 'slumming' with Virginia this afternoon
+instead of going to the band concert. I've never been down to the
+Rectangle. I've heard it's an awful wicked place and lots to see.
+Virginia will act as guide, and it would be"&mdash;"real fun" she was
+going to say, but Virginia's look made her substitute the word
+"interesting."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Virginia was angry. At first thought she said to herself she would
+never go under such circumstances. The other girls seemed to be of
+the same mind with the speaker. They chimed in with earnestness and
+asked Virginia to take them down there.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Suddenly she saw in the idle curiosity of the girls an opportunity.
+They had never seen the sin and misery of Raymond. Why should they
+not see it, even if their motive in going down there was simply to
+pass away an afternoon.
+</P>
+
+<BR><BR><BR>
+
+<A NAME="chap12"></A>
+<H3 ALIGN="center">
+Chapter Twelve
+</H3>
+
+<P CLASS="intro">
+"For I come to set a man at variance against his father, and the
+daughter against her mother, and the daughter-in-law against her
+mother-in-law; and a man's foes shall be they of his own household."
+</P>
+
+<P CLASS="intro">
+"Be ye therefore imitators of God, as beloved children; and walk in
+love, even as Christ also loved you."
+</P>
+
+<BR>
+
+<P>
+"HADN'T we better take a policeman along?" said one of the girls
+with a nervous laugh. "It really isn't safe down there, you know."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"There's no danger," said Virginia briefly.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Is it true that your brother Rollin has been converted?" asked the
+first speaker, looking at Virginia curiously. It impressed her
+during the drive to the Rectangle that all three of her friends were
+regarding her with close attention as if she were peculiar.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Yes, he certainly is."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I understand he is going around to the clubs talking with his old
+friends there, trying to preach to them. Doesn't that seem funny?"
+said the girl with the red silk parasol.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Virginia did not answer, and the other girls were beginning to feel
+sober as the carriage turned into a street leading to the Rectangle.
+As they neared the district they grew more and more nervous. The
+sights and smells and sounds which had become familiar to Virginia
+struck the senses of these refined, delicate society girls as
+something horrible. As they entered farther into the district, the
+Rectangle seemed to stare as with one great, bleary, beer-soaked
+countenance at this fine carriage with its load of fashionably
+dressed young women. "Slumming" had never been a fad with Raymond
+society, and this was perhaps the first time that the two had come
+together in this way. The girls felt that instead of seeing the
+Rectangle they were being made the objects of curiosity. They were
+frightened and disgusted.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Let's go back. I've seen enough," said the girl who was sitting
+with Virginia.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+They were at that moment just opposite a notorious saloon and
+gambling house. The street was narrow and the sidewalk crowded.
+Suddenly, out of the door of this saloon a young woman reeled. She
+was singing in a broken, drunken sob that seemed to indicate that
+she partly realized her awful condition, "Just as I am, without one
+plea"&mdash;and as the carriage rolled past she leered at it, raising her
+face so that Virginia saw it very close to her own. It was the face
+of the girl who had kneeled sobbing, that night with Virginia
+kneeling beside her and praying for her.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Stop!" cried Virginia, motioning to the driver who was looking
+around. The carriage stopped, and in a moment she was out and had
+gone up to the girl and taken her by the arm. "Loreen!" she said,
+and that was all. The girl looked into her face, and her own changed
+into a look of utter horror. The girls in the carriage were smitten
+into helpless astonishment. The saloon-keeper had come to the door
+of the saloon and was standing there looking on with his hands on
+his hips. And the Rectangle from its windows, its saloon steps, its
+filthy sidewalk, gutter and roadway, paused, and with undisguised
+wonder stared at the two girls. Over the scene the warm sun of
+spring poured its mellow light. A faint breath of music from the
+band-stand in the park floated into the Rectangle. The concert had
+begun, and the fashion and wealth of Raymond were displaying
+themselves up town on the boulevard.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+When Virginia left the carriage and went up to Loreen she had no
+definite idea as to what she would do or what the result of her
+action would be. She simply saw a soul that had tasted of the joy of
+a better life slipping back again into its old hell of shame and
+death. And before she had touched the drunken girl's arm she had
+asked only one question, "What would Jesus do?" That question was
+becoming with her, as with many others, a habit of life.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+She looked around now as she stood close by Loreen, and the whole
+scene was cruelly vivid to her. She thought first of the girls in
+the carriage.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Drive on; don't wait for me. I am going to see my friend home," she
+said calmly enough.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The girl with the red parasol seemed to gasp at the word "friend,"
+when Virginia spoke it. She did not say anything.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The other girls seemed speechless.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Go on. I cannot go back with you," said Virginia. The driver
+started the horses slowly. One of the girls leaned a little out of
+the carriage.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Can't we&mdash;that is&mdash;do you want our help? Couldn't you&mdash;"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"No, no!" exclaimed Virginia. "You cannot be of any help to me."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The carriage moved on and Virginia was alone with her charge. She
+looked up and around. Many faces in the crowd were sympathetic. They
+were not all cruel or brutal. The Holy Spirit had softened a good
+deal of the Rectangle.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Where does she live?" asked Virginia.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+No one answered. It occurred to Virginia afterward when she had time
+to think it over, that the Rectangle showed a delicacy in its sad
+silence that would have done credit to the boulevard. For the first
+time it flashed across her that the immortal being who was flung
+like wreckage upon the shore of this early hell called the saloon,
+had no place that could be called home. The girl suddenly wrenched
+her arm from Virginia's grasp. In doing so she nearly threw Virginia
+down.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"You shall not touch me! Leave me! Let me go to hell! That's where I
+belong! The devil is waiting for me. See him!" she exclaimed
+hoarsely. She turned and pointed with a shaking finger at the
+saloon-keeper. The crowd laughed. Virginia stepped up to her and put
+her arm about her.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Loreen," she said firmly, "come with me. You do not belong to hell.
+You belong to Jesus and He will save you. Come."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The girl suddenly burst into tears. She was only partly sobered by
+the shock of meeting Virginia.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Virginia looked around again. "Where does Mr. Gray live?" she asked.
+She knew that the evangelist boarded somewhere near the tent. A
+number of voices gave the direction.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Come, Loreen, I want you to go with me to Mr. Gray's," she said,
+still keeping her hold of the swaying, trembling creature who moaned
+and sobbed and now clung to her as firmly as before she had repulsed
+her.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+So the two moved on through the Rectangle toward the evangelist's
+lodging place. The sight seemed to impress the Rectangle seriously.
+It never took itself seriously when it was drunk, but this was
+different. The fact that one of the richest, most
+beautifully-dressed girls in all Raymond was taking care of one of
+the Rectangle's most noted characters, who reeled along under the
+influence of liquor, was a fact astounding enough to throw more or
+less dignity and importance about Loreen herself. The event of
+Loreen's stumbling through the gutter dead-drunk always made the
+Rectangle laugh and jest. But Loreen staggering along with a young
+lady from the society circles uptown supporting her, was another
+thing. The Rectangle viewed it with soberness and more or less
+wondering admiration.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+When they finally reached Mr. Gray's lodging place the woman who
+answered Virginia's knock said that both Mr. and Mrs. Gray were out
+somewhere and would not be back until six o'clock.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Virginia had not planned anything farther than a possible appeal to
+the Grays, either to take charge of Loreen for a while or find some
+safe place for her until she was sober. She stood now at the door
+after the woman had spoken, and she was really at a loss to know
+what to do. Loreen sank down stupidly on the steps and buried her
+face in her arms. Virginia eyed the miserable figure of the girl
+with a feeling that she was afraid would grow into disgust.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Finally a thought possessed her that she could not escape. What was
+to hinder her from taking Loreen home with her? Why should not this
+homeless, wretched creature, reeking with the fumes of liquor, be
+cared for in Virginia's own home instead of being consigned to
+strangers in some hospital or house of charity? Virginia really knew
+very little about any such places of refuge. As a matter of fact,
+there were two or three such institutions in Raymond, but it is
+doubtful if any of them would have taken a person like Loreen in her
+present condition. But that was not the question with Virginia just
+now. "What would Jesus do with Loreen?" That was what Virginia
+faced, and she finally answered it by touching the girl again.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Loreen, come. You are going home with me. We will take the car here
+at the corner."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Loreen staggered to her feet and, to Virginia's surprise, made no
+trouble. She had expected resistance or a stubborn refusal to move.
+When they reached the corner and took the car it was nearly full of
+people going uptown. Virginia was painfully conscious of the stare
+that greeted her and her companion as they entered. But her thought
+was directed more and more to the approaching scene with her
+grandmother. What would Madam Page say?
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Loreen was nearly sober now. But she was lapsing into a state of
+stupor. Virginia was obliged to hold fast to her arm. Several times
+the girl lurched heavily against her, and as the two went up the
+avenue a curious crowd of so-called civilized people turned and
+gazed at them. When she mounted the steps of her handsome house
+Virginia breathed a sigh of relief, even in the face of the
+interview with the grandmother, and when the door shut and she was
+in the wide hall with her homeless outcast, she felt equal to
+anything that might now come.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Madam Page was in the library. Hearing Virginia come in, she came
+into the hall. Virginia stood there supporting Loreen, who stared
+stupidly at the rich magnificence of the furnishings around her.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Grandmother," Virginia spoke without hesitation and very clearly,
+"I have brought one of my friends from the Rectangle. She is in
+trouble and has no home. I am going to care for her here a little
+while."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Madam Page glanced from her granddaughter to Loreen in astonishment.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Did you say she is one of your friends?" she asked in a cold,
+sneering voice that hurt Virginia more than anything she had yet
+felt.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Yes, I said so." Virginia's face flushed, but she seemed to recall
+a verse that Mr. Gray had used for one of his recent sermons, "A
+friend of publicans and sinners." Surely, Jesus would do this that
+she was doing.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Do you know what this girl is?" asked Madam Page, in an angry
+whisper, stepping near Virginia.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I know very well. She is an outcast. You need not tell me,
+grandmother. I know it even better than you do. She is drunk at this
+minute. But she is also a child of God. I have seen her on her
+knees, repentant. And I have seen hell reach out its horrible
+fingers after her again. And by the grace of Christ I feel that the
+least that I can do is to rescue her from such peril. Grandmother,
+we call ourselves Christians. Here is a poor, lost human creature
+without a home, slipping back into a life of misery and possibly
+eternal loss, and we have more than enough. I have brought her here,
+and I shall keep her."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Madam Page glared at Virginia and clenched her hands. All this was
+contrary to her social code of conduct. How could society excuse
+familiarity with the scum of the streets? What would Virginia's
+action cost the family in the way of criticism and loss of standing,
+and all that long list of necessary relations which people of wealth
+and position must sustain to the leaders of society? To Madam Page
+society represented more than the church or any other institution.
+It was a power to be feared and obeyed. The loss of its good-will
+was a loss more to be dreaded than anything except the loss of
+wealth itself.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+She stood erect and stern and confronted Virginia, fully roused and
+determined. Virginia placed her arm about Loreen and calmly looked
+her grandmother in the face.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"You shall not do this, Virginia! You can send her to the asylum for
+helpless women. We can pay all the expenses. We cannot afford for
+the sake of our reputations to shelter such a person."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Grandmother, I do not wish to do anything that is displeasing to
+you, but I must keep Loreen here tonight, and longer if it seems
+best."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Then you can answer for the consequences! I do not stay in the same
+house with a miserable&mdash;" Madam Page lost her self-control. Virginia
+stopped her before she could speak the next word.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Grandmother, this house is mine. It is your home with me as long as
+you choose to remain. But in this matter I must act as I fully
+believe Jesus would in my place. I am willing to bear all that
+society may say or do. Society is not my God. By the side of this
+poor soul I do not count the verdict of society as of any value."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I shall not stay here, then!" said Madam Page. She turned suddenly
+and walked to the end of the hall. She then came back, and going up
+to Virginia said, with an emphasis that revealed her intensive
+excitement of passion: "You can always remember that you have driven
+your grandmother out of your house in favor of a drunken woman;"
+then, without waiting for Virginia to reply, she turned again and
+went upstairs. Virginia called a servant and soon had Loreen cared
+for. She was fast lapsing into a wretched condition. During the
+brief scene in the hall she had clung to Virginia so hard that her
+arm was sore from the clutch of the girl's fingers.
+</P>
+
+<BR><BR><BR>
+
+<A NAME="chap13"></A>
+<H3 ALIGN="center">
+Chapter Thirteen
+</H3>
+
+<P>
+WHEN the bell rang for tea she went down and her grandmother did not
+appear. She sent a servant to her room who brought back word that
+Madam Page was not there. A few minutes later Rollin came in. He
+brought word that his grandmother had taken the evening train for
+the South. He had been at the station to see some friends off, and
+had by chance met his grandmother as he was coming out. She had told
+him her reason for going.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Virginia and Rollin comforted each other at the tea table, looking
+at each other with earnest, sad faces.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Rollin," said Virginia, and for the first time, almost, since his
+conversion she realized what a wonderful thing her brother's changed
+life meant to her, "do you blame me? Am I wrong?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"No, dear, I cannot believe you are. This is very painful for us.
+But if you think this poor creature owes her safety and salvation to
+your personal care, it was the only thing for you to do. O Virginia,
+to think that we have all these years enjoyed our beautiful home and
+all these luxuries selfishly, forgetful of the multitudes like this
+woman! Surely Jesus in our places would do what you have done."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+And so Rollin comforted Virginia and counseled with her that
+evening. And of all the wonderful changes that she henceforth was to
+know on account of her great pledge, nothing affected her so
+powerfully as the thought of Rollin's change of life. Truly, this
+man in Christ was a new creature. Old things were passed away.
+Behold, all things in him had become new.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Dr. West came that evening at Virginia's summons and did everything
+necessary for the outcast. She had drunk herself almost into
+delirium. The best that could be done for her now was quiet nursing
+and careful watching and personal love. So, in a beautiful room,
+with a picture of Christ walking by the sea hanging on the wall,
+where her bewildered eyes caught daily something more of its hidden
+meaning, Loreen lay, tossed she hardly knew how into this haven, and
+Virginia crept nearer the Master than she had ever been, as her
+heart went out towards this wreck which had thus been flung torn and
+beaten at her feet.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Meanwhile the Rectangle awaited the issue of the election with more
+than usual interest; and Mr. Gray and his wife wept over the poor,
+pitiful creatures who, after a struggle with surroundings that daily
+tempted them, too often wearied of the struggle and, like Loreen,
+threw up their arms and went whirling over the cataract into the
+boiling abyss of their previous condition.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The after-meeting at the First Church was now eagerly established.
+Henry Maxwell went into the lecture-room on the Sunday succeeding
+the week of the primary, and was greeted with an enthusiasm that
+made him tremble at first for its reality. He noted again the
+absence of Jasper Chase, but all the others were present, and they
+seemed drawn very close together by a bond of common fellowship that
+demanded and enjoyed mutual confidences. It was the general feeling
+that the spirit of Jesus was the spirit of very open, frank
+confession of experience. It seemed the most natural thing in the
+world, therefore, for Edward Norman to be telling all the rest of
+the company about the details of his newspaper.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"The fact is, I have lost a great deal of money during the last
+three weeks. I cannot tell just how much. I am losing a great many
+subscribers every day."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"What do the subscribers give as their reason for dropping the
+paper?" asked Mr. Maxwell. All the rest were listening eagerly.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"There are a good many different reasons. Some say they want a paper
+that prints all the news; meaning, by that, the crime details,
+sensations like prize fights, scandals and horrors of various kinds.
+Others object to the discontinuance of the Sunday edition. I have
+lost hundreds of subscribers by that action, although I have made
+satisfactory arrangements with many of the old subscribers by giving
+them even more in the extra Saturday edition than they formerly had
+in the Sunday issue. My greatest loss has come from a falling off in
+advertisements, and from the attitude I have felt obliged to take on
+political questions. The last action has really cost me more than
+any other. The bulk of my subscribers are intensely partisan. I may
+as well tell you all frankly that if I continue to pursue the plan
+which I honestly believe Jesus would pursue in the matter of
+political issues and their treatment from a non-partisan and moral
+standpoint, the NEWS will not be able to pay its operating expenses
+unless one factor in Raymond can be depended on."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+He paused a moment and the room was very quiet. Virginia seemed
+specially interested. Her face glowed with interest. It was like the
+interest of a person who had been thinking hard of the same thing
+which Norman went on to mention.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"That one factor is the Christian element in Raymond. Say the NEWS
+has lost heavily from the dropping off of people who do not care for
+a Christian daily, and from others who simply look upon a newspaper
+as a purveyor of all sorts of material to amuse or interest them,
+are there enough genuine Christian people in Raymond who will rally
+to the support of a paper such as Jesus would probably edit? or are
+the habits of the church people so firmly established in their
+demand for the regular type of journalism that they will not take a
+paper unless it is stripped largely of the Christian and moral
+purpose? I may say in this fellowship gathering that owing to recent
+complications in my business affairs outside of my paper I have been
+obliged to lose a large part of my fortune. I had to apply the same
+rule of Jesus' probable conduct to certain transactions with other
+men who did not apply it to their conduct, and the result has been
+the loss of a great deal of money. As I understand the promise we
+made, we were not to ask any question about 'Will it pay?' but all
+our action was to be based on the one question, 'What would Jesus
+do?' Acting on that rule of conduct, I have been obliged to lose
+nearly all the money I have accumulated in my paper. It is not
+necessary for me to go into details. There is no question with me
+now, after the three weeks' experience I have had, that a great many
+men would lose vast sums of money under the present system of
+business if this rule of Jesus was honestly applied. I mention my
+loss here because I have the fullest faith in the final success of a
+daily paper conducted on the lines I have recently laid down, and I
+had planned to put into it my entire fortune in order to win final
+success. As it is now, unless, as I said, the Christian people of
+Raymond, the church members and professing disciples, will support
+the paper with subscriptions and advertisements, I cannot continue
+its publication on the present basis."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Virginia asked a question. She had followed Mr. Norman's confession
+with the most intense eagerness.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Do you mean that a Christian daily ought to be endowed with a large
+sum like a Christian college in order to make it pay?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"That is exactly what I mean. I had laid out plans for putting into
+the NEWS such a variety of material in such a strong and truly
+interesting way that it would more than make up for whatever was
+absent from its columns in the way of un-Christian matter. But my
+plans called for a very large output of money. I am very confident
+that a Christian daily such as Jesus would approve, containing only
+what He would print, can be made to succeed financially if it is
+planned on the right lines. But it will take a large sum of money to
+work out the plans."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"How much, do you think?" asked Virginia quietly.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Edward Norman looked at her keenly, and his face flushed a moment as
+an idea of her purpose crossed his mind. He had known her when she
+was a little girl in the Sunday-school, and he had been on intimate
+business relations with her father.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I should say half a million dollars in a town like Raymond could be
+well spent in the establishment of a paper such as we have in mind,"
+he answered. His voice trembled a little. The keen look on his
+grizzled face flashed out with a stern but thoroughly Christian
+anticipation of great achievements in the world of newspaper life,
+as it had opened up to him within the last few seconds.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Then," said Virginia, speaking as if the thought was fully
+considered, "I am ready to put that amount of money into the paper
+on the one condition, of course, that it be carried on as it has
+been begun."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Thank God!" exclaimed Mr. Maxwell softly. Norman was pale. The rest
+were looking at Virginia. She had more to say.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Dear friends," she went on, and there was a sadness in her voice
+that made an impression on the rest that deepened when they thought
+it over afterwards, "I do not want any of you to credit me with an
+act of great generosity. I have come to know lately that the money
+which I have called my own is not mine, but God's. If I, as steward
+of His, see some wise way to invest His money, it is not an occasion
+for vainglory or thanks from any one simply because I have proved in
+my administration of the funds He has asked me to use for His glory.
+I have been thinking of this very plan for some time. The fact is,
+dear friends, that in our coming fight with the whiskey power in
+Raymond&mdash;and it has only just begun&mdash;we shall need the NEWS to
+champion the Christian side. You all know that all the other papers
+are for the saloon. As long as the saloon exists, the work of
+rescuing dying souls at the Rectangle is carried on at a terrible
+disadvantage. What can Mr. Gray do with his gospel meetings when
+half his converts are drinking people, daily tempted and enticed by
+the saloon on every corner? It would be giving up to the enemy to
+allow the NEWS to fail. I have great confidence in Mr. Norman's
+ability. I have not seen his plans, but I have the same confidence
+that he has in making the paper succeed if it is carried forward on
+a large enough scale. I cannot believe that Christian intelligence
+in journalism will be inferior to un-Christian intelligence, even
+when it comes to making the paper pay financially. So that is my
+reason for putting this money&mdash;God's, not mine&mdash;into this powerful
+agent for doing as Jesus would do. If we can keep such a paper going
+for one year, I shall be willing to see that amount of money used in
+that experiment. Do not thank me. Do not consider my doing it a
+wonderful thing. What have I done with God's money all these years
+but gratify my own selfish personal desires? What can I do with the
+rest of it but try to make some reparation for what I have stolen
+from God? That is the way I look at it now. I believe it is what
+Jesus would do."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Over the lecture-room swept that unseen yet distinctly felt wave of
+Divine Presence. No one spoke for a while. Mr. Maxwell standing
+there, where the faces lifted their intense gaze into his, felt what
+he had already felt&mdash;a strange setting back out of the nineteenth
+century into the first, when the disciples had all things in common,
+and a spirit of fellowship must have flowed freely between them such
+as the First Church of Raymond had never before known. How much had
+his church membership known of this fellowship in daily interests
+before this little company had begun to do as they believed Jesus
+would do? It was with difficulty that he thought of his present age
+and surroundings. The same thought was present with all the rest,
+also. There was an unspoken comradeship such as they had never
+known. It was present with them while Virginia was speaking, and
+during the silence that followed. If it had been defined by any of
+them it would perhaps have taken some such shape as this: "If I
+shall, in the course of my obedience to my promise, meet with loss
+or trouble in the world, I can depend upon the genuine, practical
+sympathy and fellowship of any other Christian in this room who has,
+with me, made the pledge to do all things by the rule, 'What would
+Jesus do?'"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+All this, the distinct wave of spiritual power emphasized. It had
+the effect that a physical miracle may have had on the early
+disciples in giving them a feeling of confidence in the Lord that
+helped them to face loss and martyrdom with courage and even joy.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Before they went away this time there were several confidences like
+those of Edward Norman's. Some of the young men told of loss of
+places owing to their honest obedience to their promise. Alexander
+Powers spoke briefly of the fact that the Commission had promised to
+take action on his evidence at the earliest date possible.
+</P>
+
+<BR><BR><BR>
+
+<A NAME="chap14"></A>
+<H3 ALIGN="center">
+Chapter Fourteen
+</H3>
+
+<P>
+BUT more than any other feeling at this meeting rose the tide of
+fellowship for one another. Maxwell watched it, trembling for its
+climax which he knew was not yet reached. When it was, where would
+it lead them? He did not know, but he was not unduly alarmed about
+it. Only he watched with growing wonder the results of that simple
+promise as it was being obeyed in these various lives. Those results
+were already being felt all over the city. Who could measure their
+influence at the end of a year?
+</P>
+
+<P>
+One practical form of this fellowship showed itself in the
+assurances which Edward Norman received of support for his paper.
+There was a general flocking toward him when the meeting closed, and
+the response to his appeal for help from the Christian disciples in
+Raymond was fully understood by this little company. The value of
+such a paper in the homes and in behalf of good citizenship,
+especially at the present crisis in the city, could not be measured.
+It remained to be seen what could be done now that the paper was
+endowed so liberally. But it still was true, as Norman insisted,
+that money alone could not make the paper a power. It must receive
+the support and sympathy of the Christians in Raymond before it
+could be counted as one of the great forces of the city.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The week that followed this Sunday meeting was one of great
+excitement in Raymond. It was the week of the election. President
+Marsh, true to his promise, took up his cross and bore it manfully,
+but with shuddering, with groans and even tears, for his deepest
+conviction was touched, and he tore himself out of the scholarly
+seclusion of years with a pain and anguish that cost him more than
+anything he had ever done as a follower of Christ. With him were a
+few of the college professors who had made the pledge in the First
+Church. Their experience and suffering were the same as his; for
+their isolation from all the duties of citizenship had been the
+same. The same was also true of Henry Maxwell, who plunged into the
+horror of this fight against whiskey and its allies with a sickening
+dread of each day's new encounter with it. For never before had he
+borne such a cross. He staggered under it, and in the brief
+intervals when he came in from the work and sought the quiet of his
+study for rest, the sweat broke out on his forehead, and he felt the
+actual terror of one who marches into unseen, unknown horrors.
+Looking back on it afterwards he was amazed at his experience. He
+was not a coward, but he felt the dread that any man of his habits
+feels when confronted suddenly with a duty which carries with it the
+doing of certain things so unfamiliar that the actual details
+connected with it betray his ignorance and fill him with the shame
+of humiliation.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+When Saturday, the election day, came, the excitement rose to its
+height. An attempt was made to close all the saloons. It was only
+partly successful. There was a great deal of drinking going on all
+day. The Rectangle boiled and heaved and cursed and turned its worst
+side out to the gaze of the city. Gray had continued his meetings
+during the week, and the results had been even greater than he had
+dared to hope. When Saturday came, it seemed to him that the crisis
+in his work had been reached. The Holy Spirit and the Satan of rum
+seemed to rouse up to a desperate conflict. The more interest in the
+meetings, the more ferocity and vileness outside. The saloon men no
+longer concealed their feelings. Open threats of violence were made.
+Once during the week Gray and his little company of helpers were
+assailed with missiles of various kinds as they left the tent late
+at night. The police sent down a special force, and Virginia and
+Rachel were always under the protection of either Rollin or Dr.
+West. Rachel's power in song had not diminished. Rather, with each
+night, it seemed to add to the intensity and reality of the Spirit's
+presence.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Gray had at first hesitated about having a meeting that night. But
+he had a simple rule of action, and was always guided by it. The
+Spirit seemed to lead him to continue the meeting, and so Saturday
+night he went on as usual.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The excitement all over the city had reached its climax when the
+polls closed at six o'clock. Never before had there been such a
+contest in Raymond. The issue of license or no-license had never
+been an issue under such circumstances. Never before had such
+elements in the city been arrayed against each other. It was an
+unheard-of thing that the President of Lincoln College, the pastor
+of the First Church, the Dean of the Cathedral, the professional men
+living in fine houses on the boulevard, should come personally into
+the wards, and by their presence and their example represent the
+Christian conscience of the place. The ward politicians were
+astonished at the sight. However, their astonishment did not prevent
+their activity. The fight grew hotter every hour, and when six
+o'clock came neither side could have guessed at the result with any
+certainty. Every one agreed that never before had there been such an
+election in Raymond, and both sides awaited the announcement of the
+result with the greatest interest.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+It was after ten o'clock when the meeting at the tent was closed. It
+had been a strange and, in some respects, a remarkable meeting.
+Maxwell had come down again at Gray's request. He was completely
+worn out by the day's work, but the appeal from Gray came to him in
+such a form that he did not feel able to resist it. President Marsh
+was also present. He had never been to the Rectangle, and his
+curiosity was aroused from what he had noticed of the influence of
+the evangelist in the worst part of the city. Dr. West and Rollin
+had come with Rachel and Virginia; and Loreen, who still stayed with
+Virginia, was present near the organ, in her right mind, sober, with
+a humility and dread of herself that kept her as close to Virginia
+as a faithful dog. All through the service she sat with bowed head,
+weeping a part of the time, sobbing when Rachel sang the song, "I
+was a wandering sheep," clinging with almost visible, tangible
+yearning to the one hope she had found, listening to prayer and
+appeal and confession all about her like one who was a part of a new
+creation, yet fearful of her right to share in it fully.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The tent had been crowded. As on some other occasions, there was
+more or less disturbance on the outside. This had increased as the
+night advanced, and Gray thought it wise not to prolong the service.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Once in a while a shout as from a large crowd swept into the tent.
+The returns from the election were beginning to come in, and the
+Rectangle had emptied every lodging house, den and hovel into the
+streets.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+In spite of these distractions Rachel's singing kept the crowd in
+the tent from dissolving. There were a dozen or more conversions.
+Finally the people became restless and Gray closed the service,
+remaining a little while with the converts.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Rachel, Virginia, Loreen, Rollin and the Doctor, President Marsh,
+Mr. Maxwell and Dr. West went out together, intending to go down to
+the usual waiting place for their car. As they came out of the tent
+they were at once aware that the Rectangle was trembling on the
+verge of a drunken riot, and as they pushed through the gathering
+mobs in the narrow streets they began to realize that they
+themselves were objects of great attention.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"There he is&mdash;the bloke in the tall hat! He's the leader! shouted a
+rough voice. President Marsh, with his erect, commanding figure, was
+conspicuous in the little company.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"How has the election gone? It is too early to know the result yet,
+isn't it?" He asked the question aloud, and a man answered:
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"They say second and third wards have gone almost solid for
+no-license. If that is so, the whiskey men have been beaten."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Thank God! I hope it is true!" exclaimed Maxwell. "Marsh, we are in
+danger here. Do you realize our situation? We ought to get the
+ladies to a place of safety."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"That is true," said Marsh gravely. At that moment a shower of
+stones and other missiles fell over them. The narrow street and
+sidewalk in front of them was completely choked with the worst
+elements of the Rectangle.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"This looks serious," said Maxwell. With Marsh and Rollin and Dr.
+West he started to go forward through a small opening, Virginia,
+Rachel, and Loreen following close and sheltered by the men, who now
+realized something of their danger. The Rectangle was drunk and
+enraged. It saw in Marsh and Maxwell two of the leaders in the
+election contest which had perhaps robbed them of their beloved
+saloon.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Down with the aristocrats!" shouted a shrill voice, more like a
+woman's than a man's. A shower of mud and stones followed. Rachel
+remembered afterwards that Rollin jumped directly in front of her
+and received on his head and chest a number of blows that would
+probably have struck her if he had not shielded her from them.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+And just then, before the police reached them, Loreen darted forward
+in front of Virginia and pushed her aside, looking up and screaming.
+It was so sudden that no one had time to catch the face of the one
+who did it. But out of the upper window of a room, over the very
+saloon where Loreen had come out a week before, someone had thrown a
+heavy bottle. It struck Loreen on the head and she fell to the
+ground. Virginia turned and instantly kneeled down by her. The
+police officers by that time had reached the little company.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+President Marsh raised his arm and shouted over the howl that was
+beginning to rise from the wild beast in the mob.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Stop! You've killed a woman!" The announcement partly sobered the
+crowd.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Is it true?" Maxwell asked it, as Dr. West kneeled on the other
+side of Loreen, supporting her.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"She's dying!" said Dr. West briefly.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Loreen opened her eyes and smiled at Virginia, who wiped the blood
+from her face and then bent over and kissed her. Loreen smiled
+again, and the next minute her soul was in Paradise.
+</P>
+
+<BR><BR><BR>
+
+<A NAME="chap15"></A>
+<H3 ALIGN="center">
+Chapter Fifteen
+</H3>
+
+<P CLASS="intro">
+"He that followeth me shall not walk in darkness."
+</P>
+
+<BR>
+
+<P>
+THE body of Loreen lay in state at the Page mansion on the avenue.
+It was Sunday morning and the clear sweet spring air, just beginning
+to breathe over the city the perfume of early blossoms in the woods
+and fields, swept over the casket from one of the open windows at
+the end of the grand hall. The church bells were ringing and people
+on the avenue going by to service turned curious, inquiring looks up
+at the great house and then went on, talking of the recent events
+which had so strangely entered into and made history in the city.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+At the First Church, Mr. Maxwell, bearing on his face marks of the
+scene he had been through, confronted an immense congregation, and
+spoke to it with a passion and a power that came so naturally out of
+the profound experiences of the day before that his people felt for
+him something of the old feeling of pride they once had in his
+dramatic delivery. Only this was with a different attitude. And all
+through his impassioned appeal this morning, there was a note of
+sadness and rebuke and stern condemnation that made many of the
+members pale with self-accusation or with inward anger.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+For Raymond had awakened that morning to the fact that the city had
+gone for license after all. The rumor at the Rectangle that the
+second and third wards had gone no-license proved to be false. It
+was true that the victory was won by a very meager majority. But the
+result was the same as if it had been overwhelming. Raymond had
+voted to continue for another year the saloon. The Christians of
+Raymond stood condemned by the result. More than a hundred
+professing Christian disciples had failed to go to the polls, and
+many more than that number had voted with the whiskey men. If all
+the church members of Raymond had voted against the saloon, it would
+today be outlawed instead of crowned king of the municipality. For
+that had been the fact in Raymond for years. The saloon ruled. No
+one denied that. What would Jesus do? And this woman who had been
+brutally struck down by the very hand that had assisted so eagerly
+to work her earthly ruin what of her? Was it anything more than the
+logical sequence of the whole horrible system of license, that for
+another year the very saloon that received her so often and
+compassed her degradation, from whose very spot the weapon had been
+hurled that struck her dead, would, by the law which the Christian
+people of Raymond voted to support, perhaps open its doors tomorrow
+and damn a hundred Loreens before the year had drawn to its bloody
+close?
+</P>
+
+<P>
+All this, with a voice that rang and trembled and broke in sobs of
+anguish for the result, did Henry Maxwell pour out upon his people
+that Sunday morning. And men and women wept as he spoke. President
+Marsh sat there, his usual erect, handsome, firm, bright
+self-confident bearing all gone; his head bowed upon his breast, the
+great tears rolling down his cheeks, unmindful of the fact that
+never before had he shown outward emotion in a public service.
+Edward Norman near by sat with his clear-cut, keen face erect, but
+his lip trembled and he clutched the end of the pew with a feeling
+of emotion that struck deep into his knowledge of the truth as
+Maxwell spoke it. No man had given or suffered more to influence
+public opinion that week than Norman. The thought that the Christian
+conscience had been aroused too late or too feebly, lay with a
+weight of accusation upon the heart of the editor. What if he had
+begun to do as Jesus would have done, long ago? Who could tell what
+might have been accomplished by this time! And up in the choir,
+Rachel Winslow, with her face bowed on the railing of the oak
+screen, gave way to a feeling which she had not allowed yet to
+master her, but it so unfitted her for her part that when Mr.
+Maxwell finished and she tried to sing the closing solo after the
+prayer, her voice broke, and for the first time in her life she was
+obliged to sit down, sobbing, and unable to go on.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Over the church, in the silence that followed this strange scene,
+sobs and the noise of weeping arose. When had the First Church
+yielded to such a baptism of tears? What had become of its regular,
+precise, conventional order of service, undisturbed by any vulgar
+emotion and unmoved by any foolish excitement? But the people had
+lately had their deepest convictions touched. They had been living
+so long on their surface feelings that they had almost forgotten the
+deeper wells of life. Now that they had broken the surface, the
+people were convicted of the meaning of their discipleship.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Mr. Maxwell did not ask, this morning, for volunteers to join those
+who had already pledged to do as Jesus would. But when the
+congregation had finally gone, and he had entered the lecture-room,
+it needed but a glance to show him that the original company of
+followers had been largely increased. The meeting was tender; it
+glowed with the Spirit's presence; it was alive with strong and
+lasting resolve to begin a war on the whiskey power in Raymond that
+would break its reign forever. Since the first Sunday when the first
+company of volunteers had pledged themselves to do as Jesus would
+do, the different meetings had been characterized by distinct
+impulses or impressions. Today, the entire force of the gathering
+seemed to be directed to this one large purpose. It was a meeting
+full of broken prayers of contrition, of confession, of strong
+yearning for a new and better city life. And all through it ran one
+general cry for deliverance from the saloon and its awful curse.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+But if the First Church was deeply stirred by the events of the last
+week, the Rectangle also felt moved strangely in its own way. The
+death of Loreen was not in itself so remarkable a fact. It was her
+recent acquaintance with the people from the city that lifted her
+into special prominence and surrounded her death with more than
+ordinary importance. Every one in the Rectangle knew that Loreen was
+at this moment lying in the Page mansion up on the avenue.
+Exaggerated reports of the magnificence of the casket had already
+furnished material for eager gossip. The Rectangle was excited to
+know the details of the funeral. Would it be public? What did Miss
+Page intend to do? The Rectangle had never before mingled even in
+this distant personal manner with the aristocracy on the boulevard.
+The opportunities for doing so were not frequent. Gray and his wife
+were besieged by inquirers who wanted to know what Loreen's friends
+and acquaintances were expected to do in paying their last respects
+to her. For her acquaintance was large and many of the recent
+converts were among her friends.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+So that is how it happened that Monday afternoon, at the tent, the
+funeral service of Loreen was held before an immense audience that
+choked the tent and overflowed beyond all previous bounds. Gray had
+gone up to Virginia's and, after talking it over with her and
+Maxwell, the arrangement had been made.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I am and always have been opposed to large public funerals," said
+Gray, whose complete wholesome simplicity of character was one of
+its great sources of strength; "but the cry of the poor creatures
+who knew Loreen is so earnest that I do not know how to refuse this
+desire to see her and pay her poor body some last little honor. What
+do you think, Mr. Maxwell? I will be guided by your judgment in the
+matter. I am sure that whatever you and Miss Page think best, will
+be right."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I feel as you do," replied Mr. Maxwell. "Under the circumstances I
+have a great distaste for what seems like display at such times. But
+this seems different. The people at the Rectangle will not come here
+to service. I think the most Christian thing will be to let them
+have the service at the tent. Do you think so, Miss Virginia?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Yes," said Virginia. "Poor soul! I do not know but that some time I
+shall know she gave her life for mine. We certainly cannot and will
+not use the occasion for vulgar display. Let her friends be allowed
+the gratification of their wishes. I see no harm in it."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+So the arrangements were made, with some difficulty, for the service
+at the tent; and Virginia with her uncle and Rollin, accompanied by
+Maxwell, Rachel and President Marsh, and the quartet from the First
+Church, went down and witnessed one of the strange things of their
+lives.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+It happened that that afternoon a somewhat noted newspaper
+correspondent was passing through Raymond on his way to an editorial
+convention in a neighboring city. He heard of the contemplated
+service at the tent and went down. His description of it was written
+in a graphic style that caught the attention of very many readers
+the next day. A fragment of his account belongs to this part of the
+history of Raymond:
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"There was a very unique and unusual funeral service held here this
+afternoon at the tent of an evangelist, Rev. John Gray, down in the
+slum district known as the Rectangle. The occasion was caused by the
+killing of a woman during an election riot last Saturday night. It
+seems she had been recently converted during the evangelist's
+meetings, and was killed while returning from one of the meetings in
+company with other converts and some of her friends. She was a
+common street drunkard, and yet the services at the tent were as
+impressive as any I ever witnessed in a metropolitan church over the
+most distinguished citizen.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"In the first place, a most exquisite anthem was sung by a trained
+choir. It struck me, of course&mdash;being a stranger in the place&mdash;with
+considerable astonishment to hear voices like those one naturally
+expects to hear only in great churches or concerts, at such a
+meeting as this. But the most remarkable part of the music was a
+solo sung by a strikingly beautiful young woman, a Miss Winslow who,
+if I remember right, is the young singer who was sought for by
+Crandall the manager of National Opera, and who for some reason
+refused to accept his offer to go on the stage. She had a most
+wonderful manner in singing, and everybody was weeping before she
+had sung a dozen words. That, of course, is not so strange an effect
+to be produced at a funeral service, but the voice itself was one of
+thousands. I understand Miss Winslow sings in the First Church of
+Raymond and could probably command almost any salary as a public
+singer. She will probably be heard from soon. Such a voice could win
+its way anywhere.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"The service aside from the singing was peculiar. The evangelist, a
+man of apparently very simple, unassuming style, spoke a few words,
+and he was followed by a fine-looking man, the Rev. Henry Maxwell,
+pastor of the First Church of Raymond. Mr. Maxwell spoke of the fact
+that the dead woman had been fully prepared to go, but he spoke in a
+peculiarly sensitive manner of the effect of the liquor business on
+the lives of men and women like this one. Raymond, of course, being
+a railroad town and the centre of the great packing interests for
+this region, is full of saloons. I caught from the minister's
+remarks that he had only recently changed his views in regard to
+license. He certainly made a very striking address, and yet it was
+in no sense inappropriate for a funeral.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Then followed what was perhaps the queer part of this strange
+service. The women in the tent, at least a large part of them up
+near the coffin, began to sing in a soft, tearful way, 'I was a
+wandering sheep.' Then while the singing was going on, one row of
+women stood up and walked slowly past the casket, and as they went
+by, each one placed a flower of some kind upon it. Then they sat
+down and another row filed past, leaving their flowers. All the time
+the singing continued softly like rain on a tent cover when the wind
+is gentle. It was one of the simplest and at the same time one of
+the most impressive sights I ever witnessed. The sides of the tent
+were up, and hundreds of people who could not get in, stood outside,
+all as still as death itself, with wonderful sadness and solemnity
+for such rough looking people. There must have been a hundred of
+these women, and I was told many of them had been converted at the
+meetings just recently. I cannot describe the effect of that
+singing. Not a man sang a note. All women's voices, and so soft, and
+yet so distinct, that the effect was startling.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"The service closed with another solo by Miss Winslow, who sang,
+'There were ninety and nine.' And then the evangelist asked them all
+to bow their heads while he prayed. I was obliged in order to catch
+my train to leave during the prayer, and the last view I caught of
+the service as the train went by the shops was a sight of the great
+crowd pouring out of the tent and forming in open ranks while the
+coffin was borne out by six of the women. It is a long time since I
+have seen such a picture in this unpoetic Republic."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+If Loreen's funeral impressed a passing stranger like this, it is
+not difficult to imagine the profound feelings of those who had been
+so intimately connected with her life and death. Nothing had ever
+entered the Rectangle that had moved it so deeply as Loreen's body
+in that coffin. And the Holy Spirit seemed to bless with special
+power the use of this senseless clay. For that night He swept more
+than a score of lost souls, mostly women, into the fold of the Good
+Shepherd.
+</P>
+
+<BR><BR><BR>
+
+<A NAME="chap16"></A>
+<H3 ALIGN="center">
+Chapter Sixteen
+</H3>
+
+<P>
+No one in all Raymond, including the Rectangle, felt Loreen's death
+more keenly than Virginia. It came like a distinct personal loss to
+her. That short week while the girl had been in her home had opened
+Virginia's heart to a new life. She was talking it over with Rachel
+the day after the funeral. Thee were sitting in the hall of the Page
+mansion.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I am going to do something with my money to help those women to a
+better life." Virginia looked over to the end of the hall where, the
+day before, Loreen's body had lain. "I have decided on a good plan,
+as it seems to me. I have talked it over with Rollin. He will devote
+a large part of his money also to the same plan."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"How much money have you, Virginia, to give in this way?" asked
+Rachel. Once, she would never have asked such a personal question.
+Now, it seemed as natural to talk frankly about money as about
+anything else that belonged to God.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I have available for use at least four hundred and fifty-thousand
+dollars. Rollin has as much more. It is one of his bitter regrets
+now that his extravagant habits of life before his conversion
+practically threw away half that father left him. We are both eager
+to make all the reparation in our power. 'What would Jesus do with
+this money?' We want to answer that question honestly and wisely.
+The money I shall put into the NEWS is, I am confident, in a line
+with His probable action. It is as necessary that we have a
+Christian daily paper in Raymond, especially now that we have the
+saloon influence to meet, as it is to have a church or a college. So
+I am satisfied that the five hundred thousand dollars that Mr.
+Norman will know how to use so well will be a powerful factor in
+Raymond to do as Jesus would.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"About my other plan, Rachel, I want you to work with me. Rollin and
+I are going to buy up a large part of the property in the Rectangle.
+The field where the tent now is, has been in litigation for years.
+We mean to secure the entire tract as soon as the courts have
+settled the title. For some time I have been making a special study
+of the various forms of college settlements and residence methods of
+Christian work and Institutional church work in the heart of great
+city slums. I do not know that I have yet been able to tell just
+what is the wisest and most effective kind of work that can be done
+in Raymond. But I do know this much. My money&mdash;I mean God's, which
+he wants me to use&mdash;can build wholesome lodging-houses, refuges for
+poor women, asylums for shop girls, safety for many and many a lost
+girl like Loreen. And I do not want to be simply a dispenser of this
+money. God help me! I do want to put myself into the problem. But
+you know, Rachel, I have a feeling all the time that all that
+limitless money and limitless personal sacrifice can possibly do,
+will not really lessen very much the awful condition at the
+Rectangle as long as the saloon is legally established there. I
+think that is true of any Christian work now being carried on in any
+great city. The saloon furnishes material to be saved faster than
+the settlement or residence or rescue mission work can save it."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Virginia suddenly rose and paced the hall. Rachel answered sadly,
+and yet with a note of hope in her voice:
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"It is true. But, Virginia, what a wonderful amount of good can be
+done with this money! And the saloon cannot always remain here. The
+time must come when the Christian forces in the city will triumph."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Virginia paused near Rachel, and her pale, earnest face lighted up.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I believe that too. The number of those who have promised to do as
+Jesus would is increasing. If we once have, say, five hundred such
+disciples in Raymond, the saloon is doomed. But now, dear, I want
+you to look at your part in this plan for capturing and saving the
+Rectangle. Your voice is a power. I have had many ideas lately. Here
+is one of them. You could organize among the girls a Musical
+Institute; give them the benefit of your training. There are some
+splendid voices in the rough there. Did any one ever hear such
+singing as that yesterday by those women? Rachel, what a beautiful
+opportunity! You shall have the best of material in the way of
+organs and orchestras that money can provide, and what cannot be
+done with music to win souls there into higher and purer and better
+living?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Before Virginia had ceased speaking Rachel's face was perfectly
+transformed with the thought of her life work. It flowed into her
+heart and mind like a flood, and the torrent of her feeling
+overflowed in tears that could not be restrained. It was what she
+had dreamed of doing herself. It represented to her something that
+she felt was in keeping with a right use of her talent.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Yes," she said, as she rose and put her arm about Virginia, while
+both girls in the excitement of their enthusiasm paced the hall.
+"Yes, I will gladly put my life into that kind of service. I do
+believe that Jesus would have me use my life in this way. Virginia,
+what miracles can we not accomplish in humanity if we have such a
+lever as consecrated money to move things with!"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Add to it consecrated personal enthusiasm like yours, and it
+certainly can accomplish great things," said Virginia smiling. And
+before Rachel could reply, Rollin came in.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+He hesitated a moment, and then was passing out of the hall into the
+library when Virginia called him back and asked some questions about
+his work.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Rollin came back and sat down, and together the three discussed
+their future plans. Rollin was apparently entirely free from
+embarrassment in Rachel's presence while Virginia was with them,
+only his manner with her was almost precise, if not cold. The past
+seemed to have been entirely absorbed in his wonderful conversion.
+He had not forgotten it, but he seemed to be completely caught up
+for this present time in the purpose of his new life. After a while
+Rollin was called out, and Rachel and Virginia began to talk of
+other things.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"By the way, what has become of Jasper Chase?" Virginia asked the
+question innocently, but Rachel flushed and Virginia added with a
+smile, "I suppose he is writing another book. Is he going to put you
+into this one, Rachel? You know I always suspected Jasper Chase of
+doing that very thing in his first story."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Virginia," Rachel spoke with the frankness that had always existed
+between the two friends, "Jasper Chase told me the other night that
+he&mdash;in fact&mdash;he proposed to me&mdash;or he would, if&mdash;"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Rachel stopped and sat with her hands clasped on her lap, and there
+were tears in her eyes.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Virginia, I thought a little while ago I loved him, as he said he
+loved me. But when he spoke, my heart felt repelled, and I said what
+I ought to say. I told him no. I have not seen him since. That was
+the night of the first conversions at the Rectangle."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I am glad for you," said Virginia quietly.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Why?" asked Rachel a little startled.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Because, I have never really liked Jasper Chase. He is too cold
+and&mdash;I do not like to judge him, but I have always distrusted his
+sincerity in taking the pledge at the church with the rest."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Rachel looked at Virginia thoughtfully.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I have never given my heart to him I am sure. He touched my
+emotions, and I admired his skill as a writer. I have thought at
+times that I cared a good deal for him. I think perhaps if he had
+spoken to me at any other time than the one he chose, I could easily
+have persuaded myself that I loved him. But not now."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Again Rachel paused suddenly, and when she looked up at Virginia
+again there were tears on her face. Virginia came to her and put her
+arm about her tenderly.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+When Rachel had left the house, Virginia sat in the hall thinking
+over the confidence her friend had just shown her. There was
+something still to be told, Virginia felt sure from Rachel's manner,
+but she did not feel hurt that Rachel had kept back something. She
+was simply conscious of more on Rachel's mind than she had revealed.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Very soon Rollin came back, and he and Virginia, arm in arm as they
+had lately been in the habit of doing, walked up and down the long
+hall. It was easy for their talk to settle finally upon Rachel
+because of the place she was to occupy in the plans which were being
+made for the purchase of property at the Rectangle.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Did you ever know of a girl of such really gifted powers in vocal
+music who was willing to give her life to the people as Rachel is
+going to do? She is going to give music lessons in the city, have
+private pupils to make her living, and then give the people in the
+Rectangle the benefit of her culture and her voice."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"It is certainly a very good example of self-sacrifice," replied
+Rollin a little stiffly.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Virginia looked at him a little sharply. "But don't you think it is
+a very unusual example? Can you imagine&mdash;" here Virginia named half
+a dozen famous opera singers&mdash;"doing anything of this sort?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"No, I cannot," Rollin answered briefly. "Neither can I imagine
+Miss&mdash;" he spoke the name of the girl with the red parasol who had
+begged Virginia to take the girls to the Rectangle&mdash;"doing what you
+are doing, Virginia."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Any more than I can imagine Mr.&mdash;" Virginia spoke the name of a
+young society leader "going about to the clubs doing your work,
+Rollin." The two walked on in silence for the length of the hall.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Coming back to Rachel," began Virginia, "Rollin, why do you treat
+her with such a distinct, precise manner? I think, Rollin&mdash;pardon me
+if I hurt you&mdash;that she is annoyed by it. You need to be on easy
+terms. I don't think Rachel likes this change."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Rollin suddenly stopped. He seemed deeply agitated. He took his arm
+from Virginia's and walked alone to the end of the hall. Then he
+returned, with his hands behind him, and stopped near his sister and
+said, "Virginia, have you not learned my secret?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Virginia looked bewildered, then over her face the unusual color
+crept, showing that she understood.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I have never loved any one but Rachel Winslow." Rollin spoke calmly
+enough now. "That day she was here when you talked about her refusal
+to join the concert company, I asked her to be my wife; out there on
+the avenue. She refused me, as I knew she would. And she gave as her
+reason the fact that I had no purpose in life, which was true
+enough. Now that I have a purpose, now that I am a new man, don't
+you see, Virginia, how impossible it is for me to say anything? I
+owe my very conversion to Rachel's singing. And yet that night while
+she sang I can honestly say that, for the time being, I never
+thought of her voice except as God's message. I believe that all my
+personal love for her was for the time merged into a personal love
+to my God and my Saviour." Rollin was silent, then he went on with
+more emotion. "I still love her, Virginia. But I do not think she
+ever could love me." He stopped and looked his sister in the face
+with a sad smile.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I don't know about that," said Virginia to herself. She was noting
+Rollin's handsome face, his marks of dissipation nearly all gone
+now, the firm lips showing manhood and courage, the clear eyes
+looking into hers frankly, the form strong and graceful. Rollin was
+a man now. Why should not Rachel come to love him in time? Surely
+the two were well fitted for each other, especially now that their
+purpose in life was moved by the same Christian force.
+</P>
+
+<BR><BR><BR>
+
+<A NAME="chap17"></A>
+<H3 ALIGN="center">
+Chapter Seventeen
+</H3>
+
+<P>
+THE next day she went down to the NEWS office to see Edward Norman
+and arrange the details of her part in the establishment of the
+paper on its new foundation. Mr. Maxwell was present at this
+conference, and the three agreed that whatever Jesus would do in
+detail as editor of a daily paper, He would be guided by the same
+general principles that directed His conduct as the Saviour of the
+world.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I have tried to put down here in concrete form some of the things
+that it has seemed to me Jesus would do," said Edward Norman. He
+read from a paper lying on his desk, and Maxwell was reminded again
+of his own effort to put into written form his own conception of
+Jesus' probable action, and also of Milton Wright's same attempt in
+his business.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I have headed this, 'What would Jesus do as Edward Norman, editor
+of a daily newspaper in Raymond?'
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"1. He would never allow a sentence or a picture in his paper that
+could be called bad or coarse or impure in any way.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"2. He would probably conduct the political part of the paper from
+the standpoint of non-partisan patriotism, always looking upon all
+political questions in the light of their relation to the Kingdom of
+God, and advocating measures from the standpoint of their relation
+to the welfare of the people, always on the basis of 'What is
+right?' never on the basis of 'What is for the best interests of
+this or that party?' In other words, He would treat all political
+questions as he would treat every other subject, from the standpoint
+of the advancement of the Kingdom of God on earth."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Edward Norman looked up from the reading a moment. "You understand
+that is my opinion of Jesus' probable action on political matters in
+a daily paper. I am not passing judgment on other newspaper men who
+may have a different conception of Jesus' probable action from mine.
+I am simply trying to answer honestly, 'What would Jesus do as
+Edward Norman?' And the answer I find is what I have put down.'
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"3. The end and aim of a daily paper conducted by Jesus would be to
+do the will of God. That is, His main purpose in carrying on a
+newspaper would not be to make money, or gain political influence;
+but His first and ruling purpose would be to so conduct his paper
+that it would be evident to all his subscribers that He was trying
+to seek first the Kingdom of God by means of His paper. This purpose
+would be as distinct and unquestioned as the purpose of a minister
+or a missionary or any unselfish martyr in Christian work anywhere.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"4. All questionable advertisements would be impossible.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"5. The relations of Jesus to the employees on the paper would be of
+the most loving character."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"So far as I have gone," said Norman again looking up, "I am of
+opinion that Jesus would employ practically some form of
+co-operation that would represent the idea of a mutual interest in a
+business where all were to move together for the same great end. I
+am working out such a plan, and I am confident it will be
+successful. At any rate, once introduce the element of personal love
+into a business like this, take out the selfish principle of doing
+it for personal profits to a man or company, and I do not see any
+way except the most loving personal interest between editors,
+reporters, pressmen, and all who contribute anything to the life of
+the paper. And that interest would be expressed not only in the
+personal love and sympathy but in a sharing with the profits of the
+business."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"6. As editor of a daily paper today, Jesus would give large space
+to the work of the Christian world. He would devote a page possibly
+to the facts of Reform, of sociological problems, of institutional
+church work and similar movements.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"7. He would do all in His power in His paper to fight the saloon as
+an enemy of the human race and an unnecessary part of our
+civilization. He would do this regardless of public sentiment in the
+matter and, of course, always regardless of its effect upon His
+subscription list."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Again Edward Norman looked up. "I state my honest conviction on this
+point. Of course, I do not pass judgment on the Christian men who
+are editing other kinds of papers today. But as I interpret Jesus, I
+believe He would use the influence of His paper to remove the saloon
+entirely from the political and social life of the nation."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"8. Jesus would not issue a Sunday edition.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"9. He would print the news of the world that people ought to know.
+Among the things they do not need to know, and which would not be
+published, would be accounts of brutal prize-fights, long accounts
+of crimes, scandals in private families, or any other human events
+which in any way would conflict with the first point mentioned in
+this outline.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"10. If Jesus had the amount of money to use on a paper which we
+have, He would probably secure the best and strongest Christian men
+and women to co-operate with him in the matter of contributions.
+That will be my purpose, as I shall be able to show you in a few
+days.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"11. Whatever the details of the paper might demand as the paper
+developed along its definite plan, the main principle that guided it
+would always be the establishment of the Kingdom of God in the
+world. This large general principle would necessarily shape all the
+detail."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Edward Norman finished reading the plan. He was very thoughtful.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I have merely sketched a faint outline. I have a hundred ideas for
+making the paper powerful that I have not thought out fully as yet.
+This is simply suggestive. I have talked it over with other
+newspaper men. Some of them say I will have a weak, namby-pamby
+Sunday-school sheet. If I get out something as good as a
+Sunday-school it will be pretty good. Why do men, when they want to
+characterize something as particularly feeble, always use a
+Sunday-school as a comparison, when they ought to know that the
+Sunday-school is one of the strongest, most powerful influences in
+our civilization in this country today? But the paper will not
+necessarily be weak because it is good. Good things are more
+powerful than bad. The question with me is largely one of support
+from the Christian people of Raymond. There are over twenty thousand
+church members here in this city. If half of them will stand by the
+NEWS its life is assured. What do you think, Maxwell, of the
+probability of such support?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I don't know enough about it to give an intelligent answer. I
+believe in the paper with all my heart. If it lives a year, as Miss
+Virginia said, there is no telling what it can do. The great thing
+will be to issue such a paper, as near as we can judge, as Jesus
+probably would, and put into it all the elements of Christian
+brains, strength, intelligence and sense; and command respect for
+freedom from bigotry, fanaticism, narrowness and anything else that
+is contrary to the spirit of Jesus. Such a paper will call for the
+best that human thought and action is capable of giving. The
+greatest minds in the world would have their powers taxed to the
+utmost to issue a Christian daily."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Yes," Edward Norman spoke humbly. "I shall make a great many
+mistakes, no doubt. I need a great deal of wisdom. But I want to do
+as Jesus would. 'What would He do?' I have asked it, and shall
+continue to do so, and abide by the results."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I think we are beginning to understand," said Virginia, "the
+meaning of that command, 'Grow in the grace and knowledge of our
+Lord and Saviour Jesus Christ.' I am sure I do not know all that He
+would do in detail until I know Him better."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"That is very true," said Henry Maxwell. "I am beginning to
+understand that I cannot interpret the probable action of Jesus
+until I know better what His spirit is. The greatest question in all
+of human life is summed up when we ask, 'What would Jesus do?' if,
+as we ask it, we also try to answer it from a growth in knowledge of
+Jesus himself. We must know Jesus before we can imitate Him."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+When the arrangement had been made between Virginia an Edward
+Norman, he found himself in possession of the sum of five hundred
+thousand dollars to use for the establishment of a Christian daily
+paper. When Virginia and Maxwell had gone, Norman closed his door
+and, alone with the Divine Presence, asked like a child for help
+from his all-powerful Father. All through his prayer as he kneeled
+before his desk ran the promise, "If any man lack wisdom, let him
+ask of God who giveth to all men liberally and upbraideth not, and
+it shall be given him." Surely his prayer would be answered, and the
+kingdom advanced through this instrument of God's power, this mighty
+press, which had become so largely degraded to the base uses of
+man's avarice and ambition.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Two months went by. They were full of action and of results in the
+city of Raymond and especially in the First Church. In spite of the
+approaching heat of the summer season, the after-meeting of the
+disciples who had made the pledge to do as Jesus would do, continued
+with enthusiasm and power. Gray had finished his work at the
+Rectangle, and an outward observer going through the place could not
+have seen any difference in the old conditions, although there was
+an actual change in hundreds of lives. But the saloons, dens,
+hovels, gambling houses, still ran, overflowing their vileness into
+the lives of fresh victims to take the place of those rescued by the
+evangelist. And the devil recruited his ranks very fast.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Henry Maxwell did not go abroad. Instead of that, he took the money
+he had been saving for the trip and quietly arranged for a summer
+vacation for a whole family living down in the Rectangle, who had
+never gone outside of the foul district of the tenements. The pastor
+of the First Church will never forget the week he spent with this
+family making the arrangements. He went down into the Rectangle one
+hot day when something of the terrible heat in the horrible
+tenements was beginning to be felt, and helped the family to the
+station, and then went with them to a beautiful spot on the coast
+where, in the home of a Christian woman, the bewildered city tenants
+breathed for the first time in years the cool salt air, and felt
+blow about them the pine-scented fragrance of a new lease of life.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+There was a sickly babe with the mother, and three other children,
+one a cripple. The father, who had been out of work until he had
+been, as he afterwards confessed to Maxwell, several times on the
+edge of suicide, sat with the baby in his arms during the journey,
+and when Maxwell started back to Raymond, after seeing the family
+settled, the man held his hand at parting, and choked with his
+utterance, and finally broke down, to Maxwell's great confusion. The
+mother, a wearied, worn-out woman who had lost three children the
+year before from a fever scourge in the Rectangle, sat by the car
+window all the way and drank in the delights of sea and sky and
+field. It all seemed a miracle to her. And Maxwell, coming back into
+Raymond at the end of that week, feeling the scorching, sickening
+heat all the more because of his little taste of the ocean breezes,
+thanked God for the joy he had witnessed, and entered upon his
+discipleship with a humble heart, knowing for almost the first time
+in his life this special kind of sacrifice. For never before had he
+denied himself his regular summer trip away from the heat of
+Raymond, whether he felt in any great need of rest or not.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"It is a fact," he said in reply to several inquiries on the part of
+his church, "I do not feel in need of a vacation this year. I am
+very well and prefer to stay here." It was with a feeling of relief
+that he succeeded in concealing from every one but his wife what he
+had done with this other family. He felt the need of doing anything
+of that sort without display or approval from others.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+So the summer came on, and Maxwell grew into a large knowledge of
+his Lord. The First Church was still swayed by the power of the
+Spirit. Maxwell marveled at the continuance of His stay. He knew
+very well that from the beginning nothing but the Spirit's presence
+had kept the church from being torn asunder by the remarkable
+testing it had received of its discipleship. Even now there were
+many of the members among those who had not taken the pledge, who
+regarded the whole movement as Mrs. Winslow did, in the nature of a
+fanatical interpretation of Christian duty, and looked for the
+return of the old normal condition. Meanwhile the whole body of
+disciples was under the influence of the Spirit, and the pastor went
+his way that summer, doing his parish work in great joy, keeping up
+his meetings with the railroad men as he had promised Alexander
+Powers, and daily growing into a better knowledge of the Master.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Early one afternoon in August, after a day of refreshing coolness
+following a long period of heat, Jasper Chase walked to his window
+in the apartment house on the avenue and looked out.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+On his desk lay a pile of manuscript. Since that evening when he had
+spoken to Rachel Winslow he had not met her. His singularly
+sensitive nature&mdash;sensitive to the point of extreme irritability
+when he was thwarted&mdash;served to thrust him into an isolation that
+was intensified by his habits as an author.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+All through the heat of summer he had been writing. His book was
+nearly done now. He had thrown himself into its construction with a
+feverish strength that threatened at any moment to desert him and
+leave him helpless. He had not forgotten his pledge made with the
+other church members at the First Church. It had forced itself upon
+his notice all through his writing, and ever since Rachel had said
+no to him, he had asked a thousand times, "Would Jesus do this?
+Would He write this story?" It was a social novel, written in a
+style that had proved popular. It had no purpose except to amuse.
+Its moral teaching was not bad, but neither was it Christian in any
+positive way. Jasper Chase knew that such a story would probably
+sell. He was conscious of powers in this way that the social world
+petted and admired. "What would Jesus do?" He felt that Jesus would
+never write such a book. The question obtruded on him at the most
+inopportune times. He became irascible over it. The standard of
+Jesus for an author was too ideal. Of course, Jesus would use His
+powers to produce something useful or helpful, or with a purpose.
+What was he, Jasper Chase, writing this novel for? Why, what nearly
+every writer wrote for&mdash;money, money, and fame as a writer. There
+was no secret with him that he was writing this new story with that
+object. He was not poor, and so had no great temptation to write for
+money. But he was urged on by his desire for fame as much as
+anything. He must write this kind of matter. But what would Jesus
+do? The question plagued him even more than Rachel's refusal. Was he
+going to break his promise? "Did the promise mean much after all?"
+he asked.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+As he stood at the window, Rollin Page came out of the club house
+just opposite. Jasper noted his handsome face and noble figure as he
+started down the street. He went back to his desk and turned over
+some papers there. Then he came back to the window. Rollin was
+walking down past the block and Rachel Winslow was walking beside
+him. Rollin must have overtaken her as she was coming from
+Virginia's that afternoon.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Jasper watched the two figures until they disappeared in the crowd
+on the walk. Then he turned to his desk and began to write. When he
+had finished the last page of the last chapter of his book it was
+nearly dark. "What would Jesus do?" He had finally answered the
+question by denying his Lord. It grew darker in his room. He had
+deliberately chosen his course, urged on by his disappointment and
+loss.
+</P>
+
+<BR><BR><BR>
+
+<A NAME="chap18"></A>
+<H3 ALIGN="center">
+Chapter Eighteen
+</H3>
+
+<P CLASS="intro">
+"What is that to thee? Follow thou me."
+</P>
+
+<BR>
+
+<P>
+WHEN Rollin started down the street the afternoon that Jasper stood
+looking out of his window he was not thinking of Rachel Winslow and
+did not expect to see her anywhere. He had come suddenly upon her as
+he turned into the avenue and his heart had leaped up at the sight
+of her. He walked along by her now, rejoicing after all in a little
+moment of this earthly love he could not drive out of his life.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I have just been over to see Virginia," said Rachel. "She tells me
+the arrangements are nearly completed for the transfer of the
+Rectangle property."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Yes. It has been a tedious case in the courts. Did Virginia show
+you all the plans and specifications for building?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"We looked over a good many. It is astonishing to me where Virginia
+has managed to get all her ideas about this work."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Virginia knows more now about Arnold Toynbee and East End London
+and Institutional Church work in America than a good many
+professional slum workers. She has been spending nearly all summer
+in getting information." Rollin was beginning to feel more at ease
+as they talked over this coming work of humanity. It was safe,
+common ground.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"What have you been doing all summer? I have not seen much of you,"
+Rachel suddenly asked, and then her face warmed with its quick flush
+of tropical color as if she might have implied too much interest in
+Rollin or too much regret at not seeing him oftener.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I have been busy," replied Rollin briefly.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Tell me something about it," persisted Rachel. "You say so little.
+Have I a right to ask?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+She put the question very frankly, turning toward Rollin in real
+earnest.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Yes, certainly," he replied, with a graceful smile. "I am not so
+certain that I can tell you much. I have been trying to find some
+way to reach the men I once knew and win them into more useful
+lives."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+He stopped suddenly as if he were almost afraid to go on. Rachel did
+not venture to suggest anything.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I have been a member of the same company to which you and Virginia
+belong," continued Rollin, beginning again. "I have made the pledge
+to do as I believe Jesus would do, and it is in trying to answer
+this question that I have been doing my work."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"That is what I do not understand. Virginia told me about the other.
+It seems wonderful to think that you are trying to keep that pledge
+with us. But what can you do with the club men?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"You have asked me a direct question and I shall have to answer it
+now," replied Rollin, smiling again. "You see, I asked myself after
+that night at the tent, you remember" (he spoke hurriedly and his
+voice trembled a little), "what purpose I could now have in my life
+to redeem it, to satisfy my thought of Christian discipleship? And
+the more I thought of it, the more I was driven to a place where I
+knew I must take up the cross. Did you ever think that of all the
+neglected beings in our social system none are quite so completely
+left alone as the fast young men who fill the clubs and waste their
+time and money as I used to? The churches look after the poor,
+miserable creatures like those in the Rectangle; they make some
+effort to reach the working man, they have a large constituency
+among the average salary-earning people, they send money and
+missionaries to the foreign heathen, but the fashionable, dissipated
+young men around town, the club men, are left out of all plans for
+reaching and Christianizing. And yet no class of people need it
+more. I said to myself: 'I know these men, their good and their bad
+qualities. I have been one of them. I am not fitted to reach the
+Rectangle people. I do not know how. But I think I could possibly
+reach some of the young men and boys who have money and time to
+spend.' So that is what I have been trying to do. When I asked as
+you did, What would Jesus do?' that was my answer. It has been also
+my cross."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Rollin's voice was so low on this last sentence that Rachel had
+difficulty in hearing him above the noise around them, But she knew
+what he had said. She wanted to ask what his methods were. But she
+did not know how to ask him. Her interest in his plan was larger
+than mere curiosity. Rollin Page was so different now from the
+fashionable young man who had asked her to be his wife that she
+could not help thinking of him and talking with him as if he were an
+entirely new acquaintance.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+They had turned off the avenue and were going up the street to
+Rachel's home. It was the same street where Rollin had asked Rachel
+why she could not love him. They were both stricken with a sudden
+shyness as they went on. Rachel had not forgotten that day and
+Rollin could not. She finally broke a long silence by asking what
+she had not found words for before.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"In your work with the club men, with your old acquaintances, what
+sort of reception do they give you? How do you approach them? What
+do they say?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Rollin was relieved when Rachel spoke. He answered quickly: "Oh, it
+depends on the man. A good many of them think I am a crank. I have
+kept my membership up and am in good standing in that way. I try to
+be wise and not provoke any unnecessary criticism. But you would be
+surprised to know how many of the men have responded to my appeal. I
+could hardly make you believe that only a few nights ago a dozen men
+became honestly and earnestly engaged in a conversation over
+religious matters. I have had the great joy of seeing some of the
+men give up bad habits and begin a new life. 'What would Jesus do?'
+I keep asking it. The answer comes slowly, for I am feeling my way
+slowly. One thing I have found out. The men are not fighting shy of
+me. I think that is a good sign. Another thing: I have actually
+interested some of them in the Rectangle work, and when it is
+started up they will give something to help make it more powerful.
+And in addition to all the rest, I have found a way to save several
+of the young fellows from going to the bad in gambling."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Rollin spoke with enthusiasm. His face was transformed by his
+interest in the subject which had now become a part of his real
+life. Rachel again noted the strong, manly tone of his speech. With
+it all she knew there was a deep, underlying seriousness which felt
+the burden of the cross even while carrying it with joy. The next
+time she spoke it was with a swift feeling of justice due to Rollin
+and his new life.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Do you remember I reproached you once for not having any purpose
+worth living for?" she asked, while her beautiful face seemed to
+Rollin more beautiful than ever when he had won sufficient
+self-control to look up. "I want to say, I feel the need of saying,
+in justice to you now, that I honor you for your courage and your
+obedience to the promise you have made as you interpret the promise.
+The life you are living is a noble one."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Rollin trembled. His agitation was greater than he could control.
+Rachel could not help seeing it. They walked along in silence. At
+last Rollin said: "I thank you. It has been worth more to me than I
+can tell you to hear you say that." He looked into her face for one
+moment. She read his love for her in that look, but he did not
+speak.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+When they separated Rachel went into the house and, sitting down in
+her room, she put her face in her hands and said to herself: "I am
+beginning to know what it means to be loved by a noble man. I shall
+love Rollin Page after all. What am I saying! Rachel Winslow, have
+you forgotten&mdash;"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+She rose and walked back and forth. She was deeply moved.
+Nevertheless, it was evident to herself that her emotion was not
+that of regret or sorrow. Somehow a glad new joy had come to her.
+She had entered another circle of experience, and later in the day
+she rejoiced with a very strong and sincere gladness that her
+Christian discipleship found room in this crisis for her feeling. It
+was indeed a part of it, for if she was beginning to love Rollin
+Page it was the Christian man she had begun to love; the other never
+would have moved her to this great change.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+And Rollin, as he went back, treasured a hope that had been a
+stranger to him since Rachel had said no that day. In that hope he
+went on with his work as the days sped on, and at no time was he
+more successful in reaching and saving his old acquaintances than in
+the time that followed that chance meeting with Rachel Winslow.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The summer had gone and Raymond was once more facing the rigor of
+her winter season. Virginia had been able to accomplish a part of
+her plan for "capturing the Rectangle," as she called it. But the
+building of houses in the field, the transforming of its bleak, bare
+aspect into an attractive park, all of which was included in her
+plan, was a work too large to be completed that fall after she had
+secured the property. But a million dollars in the hands of a person
+who truly wants to do with it as Jesus would, ought to accomplish
+wonders for humanity in a short time, and Henry Maxwell, going over
+to the scene of the new work one day after a noon hour with the shop
+men, was amazed to see how much had been done outwardly.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Yet he walked home thoughtfully, and on his way he could not avoid
+the question of the continual problem thrust upon his notice by the
+saloon. How much had been done for the Rectangle after all? Even
+counting Virginia's and Rachel's work and Mr. Gray's, where had it
+actually counted in any visible quantity? Of course, he said to
+himself, the redemptive work begun and carried on by the Holy Spirit
+in His wonderful displays of power in the First Church and in the
+tent meetings had had its effect upon the life of Raymond. But as he
+walked past saloon after saloon and noted the crowds going in and
+coming out of them, as he saw the wretched dens, as many as ever
+apparently, as he caught the brutality and squalor and open misery
+and degradation on countless faces of men and women and children, he
+sickened at the sight. He found himself asking how much cleansing
+could a million dollars poured into this cesspool accomplish? Was
+not the living source of nearly all the human misery they sought to
+relieve untouched as long as the saloons did their deadly but
+legitimate work? What could even such unselfish Christian
+discipleship as Virginia's and Rachel's do to lessen the stream of
+vice and crime so long as the great spring of vice and crime flowed
+as deep and strong as ever? Was it not a practical waste of
+beautiful lives for these young women to throw themselves into this
+earthly hell, when for every soul rescued by their sacrifice the
+saloon made two more that needed rescue?
+</P>
+
+<P>
+He could not escape the question. It was the same that Virginia had
+put to Rachel in her statement that, in her opinion, nothing really
+permanent would ever be done until the saloon was taken out of the
+Rectangle. Henry Maxwell went back to his parish work that afternoon
+with added convictions on the license business.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+But if the saloon was a factor in the problem of the life of
+Raymond, no less was the First Church and its little company of
+disciples who had pledged to do as Jesus would do. Henry Maxwell,
+standing at the very centre of the movement, was not in a position
+to judge of its power as some one from the outside might have done.
+But Raymond itself felt the touch in very many ways, not knowing all
+the reasons for the change.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The winter was gone and the year was ended, the year which Henry
+Maxwell had fixed as the time during which the pledge should be kept
+to do as Jesus would do. Sunday, the anniversary of that one a year
+ago, was in many ways the most remarkable day that the First Church
+ever knew. It was more important than the disciples in the First
+Church realized. The year had made history so fast and so serious
+that the people were not yet able to grasp its significance. And the
+day itself which marked the completion of a whole year of such
+discipleship was characterized by such revelations and confessions
+that the immediate actors in the events themselves could not
+understand the value of what had been done, or the relation of their
+trial to the rest of the churches and cities of the country.
+</P>
+
+<BR><BR><BR>
+
+<A NAME="chap19"></A>
+<H3 ALIGN="center">
+Chapter Nineteen
+</H3>
+
+<P>
+[Letter from Rev. Calvin Bruce, D.D., of the Nazareth Avenue Church,
+Chicago, to Rev. Philip A. Caxton, D.D., New York City.]
+</P>
+
+<BR>
+
+<P CLASS="letter">
+"My Dear Caxton:
+</P>
+
+<P CLASS="letter">
+"It is late Sunday night, but I am so intensely awake and so
+overflowing with what I have seen and heard that I feel driven to
+write you now some account of the situation in Raymond as I have
+been studying it, and as it has apparently come to a climax today.
+So this is my only excuse for writing so extended a letter at this
+time.
+</P>
+
+<P CLASS="letter">
+"You remember Henry Maxwell in the Seminary. I think you said the
+last time I visited you in New York that you had not seen him since
+we graduated. He was a refined, scholarly fellow, you remember, and
+when he was called to the First Church of Raymond within a year
+after leaving the Seminary, I said to my wife, 'Raymond has made a
+good choice. Maxwell will satisfy them as a sermonizer.' He has been
+here eleven years, and I understand that up to a year ago he had
+gone on in the regular course of the ministry, giving good
+satisfaction and drawing good congregations. His church was counted
+the largest and wealthiest church in Raymond. All the best people
+attended it, and most of them belonged. The quartet choir was famous
+for its music, especially for its soprano, Miss Winslow, of whom I
+shall have more to say; and, on the whole, as I understand the
+facts, Maxwell was in a comfortable berth, with a very good salary,
+pleasant surroundings, a not very exacting parish of refined, rich,
+respectable people&mdash;such a church and parish as nearly all the young
+men of the seminary in our time looked forward to as very desirable.
+</P>
+
+<P CLASS="letter">
+"But a year ago today Maxwell came into his church on Sunday
+morning, and at the close of the service made the astounding
+proposition that the members of his church volunteer for a year not
+to do anything without first asking the question, 'What would Jesus
+do?' and, after answering it, to do what in their honest judgment He
+would do, regardless of what the result might be to them.
+</P>
+
+<P CLASS="letter">
+"The effect of this proposition, as it has been met and obeyed by a
+number of members of the church, has been so remarkable that, as you
+know, the attention of the whole country has been directed to the
+movement. I call it a 'movement' because from the action taken
+today, it seems probable that what has been tried here will reach
+out into the other churches and cause a revolution in methods, but
+more especially in a new definition of Christian discipleship.
+</P>
+
+<P CLASS="letter">
+"In the first place, Maxwell tells me he was astonished at the
+response to his proposition. Some of the most prominent members in
+the church made the promise to do as Jesus would. Among them were
+Edward Norman, editor of the DAILY NEWS, which has made such a
+sensation in the newspaper world; Milton Wright, one of the leading
+merchants in Raymond; Alexander Powers, whose action in the matter
+of the railroads against the interstate commerce laws made such a
+stir about a year ago; Miss Page, one of Raymond's leading society
+heiresses, who has lately dedicated her entire fortune, as I
+understand, to the Christian daily paper and the work of reform in
+the slum district known as the Rectangle; and Miss Winslow, whose
+reputation as a singer is now national, but who in obedience to what
+she has decided to be Jesus' probable action, has devoted her talent
+to volunteer work among the girls and women who make up a large part
+of the city's worst and most abandoned population.
+</P>
+
+<P CLASS="letter">
+"In addition to these well-known people has been a gradually
+increasing number of Christians from the First Church and lately
+from other churches of Raymond. A large proportion of these
+volunteers who pledged themselves to do as Jesus would do comes from
+the Endeavor societies. The young people say that they have already
+embodied in their society pledge the same principle in the words, 'I
+promise Him that I will strive to do whatever He would have me do.'
+This is not exactly what is included in Maxwell's proposition, which
+is that the disciple shall try to do what Jesus would probably do in
+the disciple's place. But the result of an honest obedience to
+either pledge, he claims, will be practically the same, and he is
+not surprised that the largest numbers have joined the new
+discipleship from the Endeavor Society.
+</P>
+
+<P CLASS="letter">
+"I am sure the first question you will ask is, 'What has been the
+result of this attempt? What has it accomplished or how has it
+changed in any way the regular life of the church or the community?'
+</P>
+
+<P CLASS="letter">
+"You already know something, from reports of Raymond that have gone
+over the country, what the events have been. But one needs to come
+here and learn something of the changes in individual lives, and
+especially the change in the church life, to realize all that is
+meant by this following of Jesus' steps so literally. To tell all
+that would be to write a long story or series of stories. I am not
+in a position to do that, but I can give you some idea perhaps of
+what has been done as told me by friends here and by Maxwell
+himself.
+</P>
+
+<P CLASS="letter">
+"The result of the pledge upon the First Church has been two-fold.
+It has brought upon a spirit of Christian fellowship which Maxwell
+tells me never before existed, and which now impresses him as being
+very nearly what the Christian fellowship of the apostolic churches
+must have been; and it has divided the church into two distinct
+groups of members. Those who have not taken the pledge regard the
+others as foolishly literal in their attempt to imitate the example
+of Jesus. Some of them have drawn out of the church and no longer
+attend, or they have removed their membership entirely to other
+churches. Some are an element of internal strife, and I heard rumors
+of an attempt on their part to force Maxwell's resignation. I do not
+know that this element is very strong in the church. It has been
+held in check by a wonderful continuance of spiritual power, which
+dates from the first Sunday the pledge was taken a year ago, and
+also by the fact that so many of the most prominent members have
+been identified with the movement.
+</P>
+
+<P CLASS="letter">
+"The effect on Maxwell is very marked. I heard him preach in our
+State Association four years ago. He impressed me at the time as
+having considerable power in dramatic delivery, of which he himself
+was somewhat conscious. His sermon was well written and abounded in
+what the Seminary students used to call 'fine passages.' The effect
+of it was what an average congregation would call 'pleasing.' This
+morning I heard Maxwell preach again, for the first time since then.
+I shall speak of that farther on. He is not the same man. He gives
+me the impression of one who has passed through a crisis of
+revolution. He tells me this revolution is simply a new definition
+of Christian discipleship. He certainly has changed many of his old
+habits and many of his old views. His attitude on the saloon
+question is radically opposite to the one he entertained a year ago.
+And in his entire thought of the ministry, his pulpit and parish
+work, I find he has made a complete change. So far as I can
+understand, the idea that is moving him on now is the idea that the
+Christianity of our times must represent a more literal imitation of
+Jesus, and especially in the element of suffering. He quoted to me
+in the course of our conversation several times the verses in Peter:
+'For even hereunto were ye called, because Christ also suffered for
+you, leaving you an example, that ye would follow His steps'; and he
+seems filled with the conviction that what our churches need today
+more than anything else is this factor of joyful suffering for Jesus
+in some form. I do not know as I agree with him, altogether; but, my
+dear Caxton, it is certainly astonishing to note the results of this
+idea as they have impressed themselves upon this city and this
+church.
+</P>
+
+<P CLASS="letter">
+"You ask how about the results on the individuals who have made this
+pledge and honestly tried to be true to it. Those results are, as I
+have said, a part of individual history and cannot be told in
+detail. Some of them I can give you so that you may see that this
+form of discipleship is not merely sentiment or fine posing for
+effect.
+</P>
+
+<P CLASS="letter">
+"For instance, take the case of Mr. Powers, who was superintendent
+of the machine shops of the L. and T. R. R. here. When he acted upon
+the evidence which incriminated the road he lost his position, and
+more than that, I learn from my friends here, his family and social
+relations have become so changed that he and his family no longer
+appear in public. They have dropped out of the social circle where
+once they were so prominent. By the way, Caxton, I understand in
+this connection that the Commission, for one reason or another,
+postponed action on this case, and it is now rumored that the L. and
+T. R. R. will pass into a receiver's hands very soon. The president
+of the road who, according to the evidence submitted by Powers, was
+the principal offender, has resigned, and complications which have
+risen since point to the receivership. Meanwhile, the superintendent
+has gone back to his old work as a telegraph operator. I met him at
+the church yesterday. He impressed me as a man who had, like
+Maxwell, gone through a crisis in character. I could not help
+thinking of him as being good material for the church of the first
+century when the disciples had all things in common.
+</P>
+
+<P CLASS="letter">
+"Or take the case of Mr. Norman, editor of the DAILY NEWS. He risked
+his entire fortune in obedience to what he believed was Jesus'
+action, and revolutionized his entire conduct of the paper at the
+risk of a failure. I send you a copy of yesterday's paper. I want
+you to read it carefully. To my mind it is one of the most
+interesting and remarkable papers ever printed in the United States.
+It is open to criticism, but what could any mere man attempt in this
+line that would be free from criticism. Take it all in all, it is so
+far above the ordinary conception of a daily paper that I am amazed
+at the result. He tells me that the paper is beginning to be read
+more and more by the Christian people of the city. He was very
+confident of its final success. Read his editorial on the money
+questions, also the one on the coming election in Raymond when the
+question of license will again be an issue. Both articles are of the
+best from his point of view. He says he never begins an editorial
+or, in fact, any part of his newspaper work, without first asking,
+'What would Jesus do?' The result is certainly apparent.
+</P>
+
+<P CLASS="letter">
+"Then there is Milton Wright, the merchant. He has, I am told, so
+revolutionized his business that no man is more beloved today in
+Raymond. His own clerks and employees have an affection for him that
+is very touching. During the winter, while he was lying dangerously
+ill at his home, scores of clerks volunteered to watch and help in
+any way possible, and his return to his store was greeted with
+marked demonstrations. All this has been brought about by the
+element of personal love introduced into the business. This love is
+not mere words, but the business itself is carried on under a system
+of co-operation that is not a patronizing recognition of inferiors,
+but a real sharing in the whole business. Other men on the street
+look upon Milton Wright as odd. It is a fact, however, that while he
+has lost heavily in some directions, he has increased his business,
+and is today respected and honored as one of the best and most
+successful merchants in Raymond.
+</P>
+
+<P CLASS="letter">
+"And there is Miss Winslow. She has chosen to give her great talent
+to the poor of the city. Her plans include a Musical Institute where
+choruses and classes in vocal music shall be a feature. She is
+enthusiastic over her life work. In connection with her friend Miss
+Page she has planned a course in music which, if carried out, will
+certainly do much to lift up the lives of the people down there. I
+am not too old, dear Caxton, to be interested in the romantic side
+of much that has also been tragic here in Raymond, and I must tell
+you that it is well understood here that Miss Winslow expects to be
+married this spring to a brother of Miss Page who was once a society
+leader and club man, and who was converted in a tent where his
+wife-that-is-to-be took an active part in the service. I don't know
+all the details of this little romance, but I imagine there is a
+story wrapped up in it, and it would make interesting reading if we
+only knew it all.
+</P>
+
+<P CLASS="letter">
+"These are only a few illustrations of results in individual lives
+owing to obedience to the pledge. I meant to have spoken of
+President Marsh of Lincoln College. He is a graduate of my alma
+mater and I knew him slightly when I was in the senior year. He has
+taken an active part in the recent municipal campaign, and his
+influence in the city is regarded as a very large factor in the
+coming election. He impressed me, as did all the other disciples in
+this movement, as having fought out some hard questions, and as
+having taken up some real burdens that have caused and still do
+cause that suffering of which Henry Maxwell speaks, a suffering that
+does not eliminate, but does appear to intensify, a positive and
+practical joy."
+</P>
+
+<BR><BR><BR>
+
+<A NAME="chap20"></A>
+<H3 ALIGN="center">
+Chapter Twenty
+</H3>
+
+<P CLASS="letter">
+"BUT I am prolonging this letter, possibly to your weariness. I am
+unable to avoid the feeling of fascination which my entire stay here
+has increased. I want to tell you something of the meeting in the
+First Church today.
+</P>
+
+<P CLASS="letter">
+"As I said, I heard Maxwell preach. At his earnest request I had
+preached for him the Sunday before, and this was the first time I
+had heard him since the Association meeting four years ago. His
+sermon this morning was as different from his sermon then as if it
+had been thought out and preached by some one living on another
+planet. I was profoundly touched. I believe I actually shed tears
+once. Others in the congregation were moved like myself. His text
+was: 'What is that to thee? Follow thou Me.' It was a most unusually
+impressive appeal to the Christians of Raymond to obey Jesus'
+teachings and follow in His steps regardless of what others might
+do. I cannot give you even the plan of the sermon. It would take too
+long. At the close of the service there was the usual after meeting
+that has become a regular feature of the First Church. Into this
+meeting have come all those who made the pledge to do as Jesus would
+do, and the time is spent in mutual fellowship, confession, question
+as to what Jesus would do in special cases, and prayer that the one
+great guide of every disciple's conduct may be the Holy Spirit.
+</P>
+
+<P CLASS="letter">
+"Maxwell asked me to come into this meeting. Nothing in all my
+ministerial life, Caxton, has so moved me as that meeting. I never
+felt the Spirit's presence so powerfully. It was a meeting of
+reminiscences and of the most loving fellowship. I was irresistibly
+driven in thought back to the first years of Christianity. There was
+something about all this that was apostolic in its simplicity and
+Christ imitation.
+</P>
+
+<P CLASS="letter">
+"I asked questions. One that seemed to arouse more interest than any
+other was in regard to the extent of the Christian disciple's
+sacrifice of personal property. Maxwell tells me that so far no one
+has interpreted the spirit of Jesus in such a way as to abandon his
+earthly possessions, give away of his wealth, or in any literal way
+imitate the Christians of the order, for example, of St. Francis of
+Assisi. It was the unanimous consent, however, that if any disciple
+should feel that Jesus in his own particular case would do that,
+there could be only one answer to the question. Maxwell admitted
+that he was still to a certain degree uncertain as to Jesus'
+probable action when it came to the details of household living, the
+possession of wealth, the holding of certain luxuries. It is,
+however, very evident that many of these disciples have repeatedly
+carried their obedience to Jesus to the extreme limit, regardless of
+financial loss. There is no lack of courage or consistency at this
+point.
+</P>
+
+<P CLASS="letter">
+"It is also true that some of the business men who took the pledge
+have lost great sums of money in this imitation of Jesus, and many
+have, like Alexander Powers, lost valuable positions owing to the
+impossibility of doing what they had been accustomed to do and at
+the same time what they felt Jesus would do in the same place. In
+connection with these cases it is pleasant to record the fact that
+many who have suffered in this way have been at once helped
+financially by those who still have means. In this respect I think
+it is true that these disciples have all things in common. Certainly
+such scenes as I witnessed at the First Church at that after service
+this morning I never saw in my church or in any other. I never
+dreamed that such Christian fellowship could exist in this age of
+the world. I was almost incredulous as to the witness of my own
+senses. I still seem to be asking myself if this is the close of the
+nineteenth century in America.
+</P>
+
+<P CLASS="letter">
+"But now, dear friend, I come to the real cause of this letter, the
+real heart of the whole question as the First Church of Raymond has
+forced it upon me. Before the meeting closed today steps were taken
+to secure the co-operation of all other Christian disciples in this
+country. I think Maxwell took this step after long deliberation. He
+said as much to me one day when we were discussing the effect of
+this movement upon the church in general.
+</P>
+
+<P CLASS="letter">
+"'Why,' he said, 'suppose that the church membership generally in
+this country made this pledge and lived up to it! What a revolution
+it would cause in Christendom! But why not? Is it any more than the
+disciple ought to do? Has he followed Jesus, unless he is willing to
+do this? Is the test of discipleship any less today than it was in
+Jesus' time?'
+</P>
+
+<P CLASS="letter">
+"I do not know all that preceded or followed his thought of what
+ought to be done outside of Raymond, but the idea crystallized today
+in a plan to secure the fellowship of all the Christians in America.
+The churches, through their pastors, will be asked to form disciple
+gatherings like the one in the First Church. Volunteers will be
+called for in the great body of church members in the United States,
+who will promise to do as Jesus would do. Maxwell spoke particularly
+of the result of such general action on the saloon question. He is
+terribly in earnest over this. He told me that there was no question
+in his mind that the saloon would be beaten in Raymond at the
+election now near at hand. If so, they could go on with some courage
+to do the redemptive work begun by the evangelist and now taken up
+by the disciples in his own church. If the saloon triumphs again
+there will be a terrible and, as he thinks, unnecessary waste of
+Christian sacrifice. But, however we differ on that point, he
+convinced his church that the time had come for a fellowship with
+other Christians. Surely, if the First Church could work such
+changes in society and its surroundings, the church in general if
+combining such a fellowship, not of creed but of conduct, ought to
+stir the entire nation to a higher life and a new conception of
+Christian following.
+</P>
+
+<P CLASS="letter">
+"This is a grand idea, Caxton, but right here is where I find my
+self hesitating. I do not deny that the Christian disciple ought to
+follow Christ's steps as closely as these here in Raymond have tried
+to do. But I cannot avoid asking what the result would be if I ask
+my church in Chicago to do it. I am writing this after feeling the
+solemn, profound touch of the Spirit's presence, and I confess to
+you, old friend, that I cannot call up in my church a dozen
+prominent business or professional men who would make this trial at
+the risk of all they hold dear. Can you do any better in your
+church? What are we to say? That the churches would not respond to
+the call: 'Come and suffer?' Is our standard of Christian
+discipleship a wrong one? Or are we possibly deceiving ourselves,
+and would we be agreeably disappointed if we once asked our people
+to take such a pledge faithfully? The actual results of the pledge
+as obeyed here in Raymond are enough to make any pastor tremble, and
+at the same time long with yearning that they might occur in his own
+parish. Certainly never have I seen a church so signally blessed by
+the Spirit as this one. But&mdash;am I myself ready to take this pledge?
+I ask the question honestly, and I dread to face an honest answer. I
+know well enough that I should have to change very much in my life
+if I undertook to follow His steps so closely. I have called myself
+a Christian for many years. For the past ten years I have enjoyed a
+life that has had comparatively little suffering in it. I am,
+honestly I say it, living at a long distance from municipal problems
+and the life of the poor, the degraded and the abandoned. What would
+the obedience to this pledge demand of me? I hesitate to answer. My
+church is wealthy, full of well-to-do, satisfied people. The
+standard of their discipleship is, I am aware, not of a nature to
+respond to the call of suffering or personal loss. I say: 'I am
+aware.' I may be mistaken. I may have erred in not stirring their
+deeper life. Caxton, my friend, I have spoken my inmost thought to
+you. Shall I go back to my people next Sunday and stand up before
+them in my large city church and say: 'Let us follow Jesus closer;
+let us walk in His steps where it will cost us something more than
+it is costing us now; let us pledge not to do anything without first
+asking: 'What would Jesus do?' If I should go before them with that
+message, it would be a strange and startling one to them. But why?
+Are we not ready to follow Him all the way? What is it to be a
+follower of Jesus? What does it mean to imitate Him? What does it
+mean to walk in His steps?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The Rev. Calvin Bruce, D. D., of the Nazareth Avenue Church,
+Chicago, let his pen fall on the table. He had come to the parting
+of the ways, and his question, he felt sure, was the question of
+many and many a man in the ministry and in the church. He went to
+his window and opened it. He was oppressed with the weight of his
+convictions and he felt almost suffocated with the air in the room.
+He wanted to see the stars and feel the breath of the world.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The night was very still. The clock in the First Church was just
+striking midnight. As it finished a clear, strong voice down in the
+direction of the Rectangle came floating up to him as if borne on
+radiant pinions.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+It was a voice of one of Gray's old converts, a night watchman at
+the packing houses, who sometimes solaced his lonesome hours by a
+verse or two of some familiar hymn:
+</P>
+
+<P CLASS="poem">
+ "Must Jesus bear the cross alone<BR>
+ And all the world go free?<BR>
+ No, there's a cross for every one,<BR>
+ And there's a cross for me."<BR>
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The Rev. Calvin Bruce turned away from the window and, after a
+little hesitation, he kneeled. "What would Jesus do?" That was the
+burden of his prayer. Never had he yielded himself so completely to
+the Spirit's searching revealing of Jesus. He was on his knees a
+long time. He retired and slept fitfully with many awakenings. He
+rose before it was clear dawn, and threw open his window again. As
+the light in the east grew stronger he repeated to himself: "What
+would Jesus do? Shall I follow His steps?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The sun rose and flooded the city with its power. When shall the
+dawn of a new discipleship usher in the conquering triumph of a
+closer walk with Jesus? When shall Christendom tread more closely
+the path he made?
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"It is the way the Master trod; Shall not the servant tread it
+still?"
+</P>
+
+<BR><BR><BR>
+
+<A NAME="chap21"></A>
+<H3 ALIGN="center">
+Chapter Twenty-one
+</H3>
+
+<P CLASS="intro">
+"Master, I will follow Thee whithersoever Thou goest."
+</P>
+
+<BR>
+
+<P>
+THE Saturday afternoon matinee at the Auditorium in Chicago was just
+over and the usual crowd was struggling to get to its carriage
+before any one else. The Auditorium attendant was shouting out the
+numbers of different carriages and the carriage doors were slamming
+as the horses were driven rapidly up to the curb, held there
+impatiently by the drivers who had shivered long in the raw east
+wind, and then let go to plunge for a few minutes into the river of
+vehicles that tossed under the elevated railway and finally went
+whirling off up the avenue.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Now then, 624," shouted the Auditorium attendant; "624!" he
+repeated, and there dashed up to the curb a splendid span of black
+horses attached to a carriage having the monogram, "C. R. S." in
+gilt letters on the panel of the door.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Two girls stepped out of the crowd towards the carriage. The older
+one had entered and taken her seat and the attendant was still
+holding the door open for the younger, who stood hesitating on the
+curb.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Come, Felicia! What are you waiting for! I shall freeze to death!"
+called the voice from the carriage.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The girl outside of the carriage hastily unpinned a bunch of English
+violets from her dress and handed them to a small boy who was
+standing shivering on the edge of the sidewalk almost under the
+horses' feet. He took them, with a look of astonishment and a "Thank
+ye, lady!" and instantly buried a very grimy face in the bunch of
+perfume. The girl stepped into the carriage, the door shut with the
+incisive bang peculiar to well-made carriages of this sort, and in a
+few moments the coachman was speeding the horses rapidly up one of
+the boulevards.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"You are always doing some queer thing or other, Felicia," said the
+older girl as the carriage whirled on past the great residences
+already brilliantly lighted.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Am I? What have I done that is queer now, Rose?" asked the other,
+looking up suddenly and turning her head towards her sister.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Oh, giving those violets to that boy! He looked as if he needed a
+good hot supper more than a bunch of violets. It's a wonder you
+didn't invite him home with us. I shouldn't have been surprised if
+you had. You are always doing such queer things."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Would it be queer to invite a boy like that to come to the house
+and get a hot supper?" Felicia asked the question softly and almost
+as if she were alone.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"'Queer' isn't just the word, of course," replied Rose
+indifferently. "It would be what Madam Blanc calls 'outre.'
+Decidedly. Therefore you will please not invite him or others like
+him to hot suppers because I suggested it. Oh, dear! I'm awfully
+tired."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+She yawned, and Felicia silently looked out of the window in the
+door.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"The concert was stupid and the violinist was simply a bore. I don't
+see how you could sit so still through it all," Rose exclaimed a
+little impatiently.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I liked the music," answered Felicia quietly.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"You like anything. I never saw a girl with so little critical
+taste."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Felicia colored slightly, but would not answer. Rose yawned again,
+and then hummed a fragment of a popular song. Then she exclaimed
+abruptly: "I'm sick of 'most everything. I hope the 'Shadows of
+London' will be exciting tonight."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"The 'Shadows of Chicago,'" murmured Felicia. "The 'Shadows of
+Chicago!' The 'Shadows of London,' the play, the great drama with
+its wonderful scenery, the sensation of New York for two months. You
+know we have a box with the Delanos tonight."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Felicia turned her face towards her sister. Her great brown eyes
+were very expressive and not altogether free from a sparkle of
+luminous heat.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"And yet we never weep over the real thing on the actual stage of
+life. What are the 'Shadows of London' on the stage to the shadows
+of London or Chicago as they really exist? Why don't we get excited
+over the facts as they are?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Because the actual people are dirty and disagreeable and it's too
+much bother, I suppose," replied Rose carelessly. "Felicia, you can
+never reform the world. What's the use? We're not to blame for the
+poverty and misery. There have always been rich and poor; and there
+always will be. We ought to be thankful we're rich."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Suppose Christ had gone on that principle," replied Felicia, with
+unusual persistence. "Do you remember Dr. Bruce's sermon on that
+verse a few Sundays ago: 'For ye know the grace of our Lord Jesus
+Christ, that though he was rich yet for our sakes he became poor,
+that ye through his poverty might become rich'?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I remember it well enough," said Rose with some petulance, "and
+didn't Dr. Bruce go on to say that there is no blame attached to
+people who have wealth if they are kind and give to the needs of the
+poor? And I am sure that he himself is pretty comfortably settled.
+He never gives up his luxuries just because some people go hungry.
+What good would it do if he did? I tell you, Felicia, there will
+always be poor and rich in spite of all we can do. Ever since Rachel
+Winslow has written about those queer doings in Raymond you have
+upset the whole family. People can't live at that concert pitch all
+the time. You see if Rachel doesn't give it up soon. It's a great
+pity she doesn't come to Chicago and sing in the Auditorium
+concerts. She has received an offer. I'm going to write and urge her
+to come. I'm just dying to hear her sing."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Felicia looked out of the window and was silent. The carriage rolled
+on past two blocks of magnificent private residences and turned into
+a wide driveway under a covered passage, and the sisters hurried
+into the house. It was an elegant mansion of gray stone furnished
+like a palace, every corner of it warm with the luxury of paintings,
+sculpture, art and modern refinement.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The owner of it all, Mr. Charles R. Sterling, stood before an open
+grate fire smoking a cigar. He had made his money in grain
+speculation and railroad ventures, and was reputed to be worth
+something over two millions. His wife was a sister of Mrs. Winslow
+of Raymond. She had been an invalid for several years. The two
+girls, Rose and Felicia, were the only children. Rose was twenty-one
+years old, fair, vivacious, educated in a fashionable college, just
+entering society and already somewhat cynical and indifferent. A
+very hard young lady to please, her father said, sometimes
+playfully, sometimes sternly. Felicia was nineteen, with a tropical
+beauty somewhat like her cousin, Rachel Winslow, with warm, generous
+impulses just waking into Christian feeling, capable of all sorts of
+expression, a puzzle to her father, a source of irritation to her
+mother and with a great unsurveyed territory of thought and action
+in herself, of which she was more than dimly conscious. There was
+that in Felicia that would easily endure any condition in life if
+only the liberty to act fully on her conscientious convictions were
+granted her.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Here's a letter for you, Felicia," said Mr. Sterling, handing it to
+her.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Felicia sat down and instantly opened the letter, saying as she did
+so: "It's from Rachel."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Well, what's the latest news from Raymond?" asked Mr. Sterling,
+taking his cigar out of his mouth and looking at Felicia with
+half-shut eyes, as if he were studying her.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Rachel says Dr. Bruce has been staying in Raymond for two Sundays
+and has seemed very much interested in Mr. Maxwell's pledge in the
+First Church."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"What does Rachel say about herself?" asked Rose, who was lying on a
+couch almost buried under elegant cushions.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"She is still singing at the Rectangle. Since the tent meetings
+closed she sings in an old hall until the new buildings which her
+friend, Virginia Page, is putting up are completed.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I must write Rachel to come to Chicago and visit us. She ought not
+to throw away her voice in that railroad town upon all those people
+who don't appreciate her."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Mr. Sterling lighted a new cigar and Rose exclaimed: "Rachel is so
+queer. She might set Chicago wild with her voice if she sang in the
+Auditorium. And there she goes on throwing it away on people who
+don't know what they are hearing."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Rachel won't come here unless she can do it and keep her pledge at
+the same time," said Felicia, after a pause.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"What pledge?" Mr. Sterling asked the question and then added
+hastily: "Oh, I know, yes! A very peculiar thing that. Alexander
+Powers used to be a friend of mine. We learned telegraphy in the
+same office. Made a great sensation when he resigned and handed over
+that evidence to the Interstate Commerce Commission. And he's back
+at his telegraph again. There have been queer doings in Raymond
+during the past year. I wonder what Dr. Bruce thinks of it on the
+whole. I must have a talk with him about it."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"He is at home and will preach tomorrow," said Felicia. "Perhaps he
+will tell us something about it."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+There was silence for a minute. Then Felicia said abruptly, as if
+she had gone on with a spoken thought to some invisible hearer: "And
+what if he should propose the same pledge to the Nazareth Avenue
+Church?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Who? What are you talking about?" asked her father a little
+sharply.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"About Dr. Bruce. I say, what if he should propose to our church
+what Mr. Maxwell proposed to his, and ask for volunteers who would
+pledge themselves to do everything after asking the question, 'What
+would Jesus do?'"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"There's no danger of it," said Rose, rising suddenly from the couch
+as the tea-bell rang.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"It's a very impracticable movement, to my mind," said Mr. Sterling
+shortly.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I understand from Rachel's letter that the Raymond church is going
+to make an attempt to extend the idea of the pledge to other
+churches. If it succeeds it will certainly make great changes in the
+churches and in people's lives," said Felicia.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Oh, well, let's have some tea first!" said Rose, walking into the
+dining-room. Her father and Felicia followed, and the meal proceeded
+in silence. Mrs. Sterling had her meals served in her room. Mr.
+Sterling was preoccupied. He ate very little and excused himself
+early, and although it was Saturday night, he remarked as he went
+out that he should be down town on some special business.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Don't you think father looks very much disturbed lately?" asked
+Felicia a little while after he had gone out.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Oh, I don't know! I hadn't noticed anything unusual," replied Rose.
+After a silence she said: "Are you going to the play tonight,
+Felicia? Mrs. Delano will be here at half past seven. I think you
+ought to go. She will feel hurt if you refuse."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I'll go. I don't care about it. I can see shadows enough without
+going to the play."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"That's a doleful remark for a girl nineteen years old to make,"
+replied Rose. "But then you're queer in your ideas anyhow, Felicia.
+If you are going up to see mother, tell her I'll run in after the
+play if she is still awake."
+</P>
+
+<BR><BR><BR>
+
+<A NAME="chap22"></A>
+<H3 ALIGN="center">
+Chapter Twenty-two
+</H3>
+
+<P>
+FELICIA started off to the play not very happy, but she was familiar
+with that feeling, only sometimes she was more unhappy than at
+others. Her feeling expressed itself tonight by a withdrawal into
+herself. When the company was seated in the box and the curtain had
+gone up Felicia was back of the others and remained for the evening
+by herself. Mrs. Delano, as chaperon for half a dozen young ladies,
+understood Felicia well enough to know that she was "queer," as Rose
+so often said, and she made no attempt to draw her out of her
+corner. And so the girl really experienced that night by herself one
+of the feelings that added to the momentum that was increasing the
+coming on of her great crisis.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The play was an English melodrama, full of startling situations,
+realistic scenery and unexpected climaxes. There was one scene in
+the third act that impressed even Rose Sterling.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+It was midnight on Blackfriars Bridge. The Thames flowed dark and
+forbidden below. St. Paul's rose through the dim light imposing, its
+dome seeming to float above the buildings surrounding it. The figure
+of a child came upon the bridge and stood there for a moment peering
+about as if looking for some one. Several persons were crossing the
+bridge, but in one of the recesses about midway of the river a woman
+stood, leaning out over the parapet, with a strained agony of face
+and figure that told plainly of her intention. Just as she was
+stealthily mounting the parapet to throw herself into the river, the
+child caught sight of her, ran forward with a shrill cry more animal
+than human, and seizing the woman's dress dragged back upon it with
+all her little strength. Then there came suddenly upon the scene two
+other characters who had already figured in the play, a tall,
+handsome, athletic gentleman dressed in the fashion, attended by a
+slim-figured lad who was as refined in dress and appearance as the
+little girl clinging to her mother, who was mournfully hideous in
+her rags and repulsive poverty. These two, the gentleman and the
+lad, prevented the attempted suicide, and after a tableau on the
+bridge where the audience learned that the man and woman were
+brother and sister, the scene was transferred to the interior of one
+of the slum tenements in the East Side of London. Here the scene
+painter and carpenter had done their utmost to produce an exact copy
+of a famous court and alley well known to the poor creatures who
+make up a part of the outcast London humanity. The rags, the
+crowding, the vileness, the broken furniture, the horrible animal
+existence forced upon creatures made in God's image were so
+skilfully shown in this scene that more than one elegant woman in
+the theatre, seated like Rose Sterling in a sumptuous box surrounded
+with silk hangings and velvet covered railing, caught herself
+shrinking back a little as if contamination were possible from the
+nearness of this piece of scenery. It was almost too realistic, and
+yet it had a horrible fascination for Felicia as she sat there
+alone, buried back in a cushioned seat and absorbed in thoughts that
+went far beyond the dialogue on the stage.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+From the tenement scene the play shifted to the interior of a
+nobleman's palace, and almost a sigh of relief went up all over the
+house at the sight of the accustomed luxury of the upper classes.
+The contrast was startling. It was brought about by a clever piece
+of staging that allowed only a few moments to elapse between the
+slum and the palace scene. The dialogue went on, the actors came and
+went in their various roles, but upon Felicia the play made but one
+distinct impression. In realty the scenes on the bridge and in the
+slums were only incidents in the story of the play, but Felicia
+found herself living those scenes over and over. She had never
+philosophized about the causes of human misery, she was not old
+enough she had not the temperament that philosophizes. But she felt
+intensely, and this was not the first time she had felt the contrast
+thrust into her feeling between the upper and the lower conditions
+of human life. It had been growing upon her until it had made her
+what Rose called "queer," and other people in her circle of wealthy
+acquaintances called very unusual. It was simply the human problem
+in its extreme of riches and poverty, its refinement and its
+vileness, that was, in spite of her unconscious attempts to struggle
+against the facts, burning into her life the impression that would
+in the end either transform her into a woman of rare love and
+self-sacrifice for the world, or a miserable enigma to herself and
+all who knew her.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Come, Felicia, aren't you going home?" said Rose. The play was
+over, the curtain down, and people were going noisily out, laughing
+and gossiping as if "The Shadows of London" were simply good
+diversion, as they were, put on the stage so effectively.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Felicia rose and went out with the rest quietly, and with the
+absorbed feeling that had actually left her in her seat oblivious of
+the play's ending. She was never absent-minded, but often thought
+herself into a condition that left her alone in the midst of a
+crowd.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Well, what did you think of it?" asked Rose when the sisters had
+reached home and were in the drawing-room. Rose really had
+considerable respect for Felicia's judgment of a play.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I thought it was a pretty fair picture of real life."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I mean the acting," said Rose, annoyed.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"The bridge scene was well acted, especially the woman's part. I
+thought the man overdid the sentiment a little."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Did you? I enjoyed that. And wasn't the scene between the two
+cousins funny when they first learned they were related? But the
+slum scene was horrible. I think they ought not to show such things
+in a play. They are too painful."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"They must be painful in real life, too," replied Felicia.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Yes, but we don't have to look at the real thing. It's bad enough
+at the theatre where we pay for it."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Rose went into the dining-room and began to eat from a plate of
+fruit and cakes on the sideboard.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Are you going up to see mother?" asked Felicia after a while. She
+had remained in front of the drawing-room fireplace.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"No," replied Rose from the other room. "I won't trouble her
+tonight. If you go in tell her I am too tired to be agreeable."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+So Felicia turned into her mother's room, as she went up the great
+staircase and down the upper hall. The light was burning there, and
+the servant who always waited on Mrs. Sterling was beckoning Felicia
+to come in.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Tell Clara to go out," exclaimed Mrs. Sterling as Felicia came up
+to the bed.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Felicia was surprised, but she did as her mother bade her, and then
+inquired how she was feeling.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Felicia," said her mother, "can you pray?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The question was so unlike any her mother had ever asked before that
+she was startled. But she answered: "Why, yes, mother. Why do you
+ask such a question?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Felicia, I am frightened. Your father&mdash;I have had such strange
+fears about him all day. Something is wrong with him. I want you to
+pray&mdash;."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Now, here, mother?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Yes. Pray, Felicia."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Felicia reached out her hand and took her mother's. It was
+trembling. Mrs. Sterling had never shown such tenderness for her
+younger daughter, and her strange demand now was the first real sign
+of any confidence in Felicia's character.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The girl kneeled, still holding her mother's trembling hand, and
+prayed. It is doubtful if she had ever prayed aloud before. She must
+have said in her prayer the words that her mother needed, for when
+it was silent in the room the invalid was weeping softly and her
+nervous tension was over.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Felicia stayed some time. When she was assured that her mother would
+not need her any longer she rose to go.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Good night, mother. You must let Clara call me if you feel badly in
+the night."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I feel better now." Then as Felicia was moving away, Mrs. Sterling
+said: "Won't you kiss me, Felicia?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Felicia went back and bent over her mother. The kiss was almost as
+strange to her as the prayer had been. When Felicia went out of the
+room her cheeks were wet with tears. She had not often cried since
+she was a little child.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Sunday morning at the Sterling mansion was generally very quiet. The
+girls usually went to church at eleven o'clock service. Mr. Sterling
+was not a member but a heavy contributor, and he generally went to
+church in the morning. This time he did not come down to breakfast,
+and finally sent word by a servant that he did not feel well enough
+to go out. So Rose and Felicia drove up to the door of the Nazareth
+Avenue Church and entered the family pew alone.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+When Dr. Bruce walked out of the room at the rear of the platform
+and went up to the pulpit to open the Bible as his custom was, those
+who knew him best did not detect anything unusual in his manner or
+his expression. He proceeded with the service as usual. He was calm
+and his voice was steady and firm. His prayer was the first
+intimation the people had of anything new or strange in the service.
+It is safe to say that the Nazareth Avenue Church had not heard Dr.
+Bruce offer such a prayer before during the twelve years he had been
+pastor there. How would a minister be likely to pray who had come
+out of a revolution in Christian feeling that had completely changed
+his definition of what was meant by following Jesus? No one in
+Nazareth Avenue Church had any idea that the Rev. Calvin Bruce, D.
+D., the dignified, cultured, refined Doctor of Divinity, had within
+a few days been crying like a little child on his knees, asking for
+strength and courage and Christlikeness to speak his Sunday message;
+and yet the prayer was an unconscious involuntary disclosure of his
+soul's experience such as the Nazareth Avenue people had seldom
+heard, and never before from that pulpit.
+</P>
+
+<BR><BR><BR>
+
+<A NAME="chap23"></A>
+<H3 ALIGN="center">
+Chapter Twenty-three
+</H3>
+
+<P>
+"I AM just back from a visit to Raymond," Dr. Bruce began, "and I
+want to tell you something of my impressions of the movement there."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+He paused and his look went out over his people with yearning for
+them and at the same time with a great uncertainty at his heart. How
+many of his rich, fashionable, refined, luxury-loving members would
+understand the nature of the appeal he was soon to make to them? He
+was altogether in the dark as to that. Nevertheless he had been
+through his desert, and had come out of it ready to suffer. He went
+on now after that brief pause and told them the story of his stay in
+Raymond. The people already knew something of that experiment in the
+First Church. The whole country had watched the progress of the
+pledge as it had become history in so many lives. Mr. Maxwell had at
+last decided that the time had come to seek the fellowship of other
+churches throughout the country. The new discipleship in Raymond had
+proved to be so valuable in its results that he wished the churches
+in general to share with the disciples in Raymond. Already there had
+begun a volunteer movement in many churches throughout the country,
+acting on their own desire to walk closer in the steps of Jesus. The
+Christian Endeavor Society had, with enthusiasm, in many churches
+taken the pledge to do as Jesus would do, and the result was already
+marked in a deeper spiritual life and a power in church influence
+that was like a new birth for the members.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+All this Dr. Bruce told his people simply and with a personal
+interest that evidently led the way to the announcement which now
+followed. Felicia had listened to every word with strained
+attention. She sat there by the side of Rose, in contrast like fire
+beside snow, although even Rose was alert and as excited as she
+could be.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Dear friends," he said, and for the first time since his prayer the
+emotion of the occasion was revealed in his voice and gesture, "I am
+going to ask that Nazareth Avenue Church take the same pledge that
+Raymond Church has taken. I know what this will mean to you and me.
+It will mean the complete change of very many habits. It will mean,
+possibly, social loss. It will mean very probably, in many cases,
+loss of money. It will mean suffering. It will mean what following
+Jesus meant in the first century, and then it meant suffering, loss,
+hardship, separation from everything un-Christian. But what does
+following Jesus mean? The test of discipleship is the same now as
+then. Those of us who volunteer in this church to do as Jesus would
+do, simply promise to walk in His steps as He gave us commandment."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Again he paused, and now the result of his announcement was plainly
+visible in the stir that went up over the congregation. He added in
+a quiet voice that all who volunteered to make the pledge to do as
+Jesus would do, were asked to remain after the morning service.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Instantly he proceeded with his sermon. His text was, "Master, I
+will follow Thee whithersoever Thou goest." It was a sermon that
+touched the deep springs of conduct; it was a revelation to the
+people of the definition their pastor had been learning; it took
+them back to the first century of Christianity; above all, it
+stirred them below the conventional thought of years as to the
+meaning and purpose of church membership. It was such a sermon as a
+man can preach once in a lifetime, and with enough in it for people
+to live on all through the rest of their lifetime.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The service closed in a hush that was slowly broken. People rose
+here and there, a few at a time. There was a reluctance in the
+movements of some that was very striking. Rose, however, walked
+straight out of the pew, and as she reached the aisle she turned her
+head and beckoned to Felicia. By that time the congregation was
+rising all over the church. "I am going to stay," she said, and Rose
+had heard her speak in the same manner on other occasions, and knew
+that her resolve could not be changed. Nevertheless she went back
+into the pew two or three steps and faced her.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Felicia," she whispered, and there was a flush of anger on her
+cheeks, "this is folly. What can you do? You will bring some
+disgrace on the family. What will father say? Come!"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Felicia looked at her but did not answer at once. Her lips were
+moving with a petition that came from the depth of feeling that
+measured a new life for her. She shocked her head.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"No, I am going to stay. I shall take the pledge. I am ready to obey
+it. You do not know why I am doing this."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Rose gave her one look and then turned and went out of the pew, and
+down the aisle. She did not even stop to talk with her
+acquaintances. Mrs. Delano was going out of the church just as Rose
+stepped into the vestibule.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"So you are not going to join Dr. Bruce's volunteer company?" Mrs.
+Delano asked, in a queer tone that made Rose redden.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"No, are you? It is simply absurd. I have always regarded that
+Raymond movement as fanatical. You know cousin Rachel keeps us
+posted about it."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Yes, I understand it is resulting in a great deal of hardship in
+many cases. For my part, I believe Dr. Bruce has simply provoked
+disturbance here. It will result in splitting our church. You see if
+it isn't so. There are scores of people in the church who are so
+situated that they can't take such a pledge and keep it. I am one of
+them," added Mrs. Delano as she went out with Rose.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+When Rose reached home, her father was standing in his usual
+attitude before the open fireplace, smoking a cigar.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Where is Felicia?" he asked as Rose came in.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"She stayed to an after-meeting," replied Rose shortly. She threw
+off her wraps and was going upstairs when Mr. Sterling called after
+her.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"An after-meeting? What do you mean?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Dr. Bruce asked the church to take the Raymond pledge."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Mr. Sterling took his cigar out of his mouth and twirled it
+nervously between his fingers.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I didn't expect that of Dr. Bruce. Did many of the members stay?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I don't know. I didn't," replied Rose, and she went upstairs
+leaving her father standing in the drawing-room.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+After a few moments he went to the window and stood there looking
+out at the people driving on the boulevard. His cigar had gone out,
+but he still fingered it nervously. Then he turned from the window
+and walked up and down the room. A servant stepped across the hall
+and announced dinner and he told her to wait for Felicia. Rose came
+downstairs and went into the library. And still Mr. Sterling paced
+the drawing-room restlessly.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+He had finally wearied of the walking apparently, and throwing
+himself into a chair was brooding over something deeply when Felicia
+came in.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+He rose and faced her. Felicia was evidently very much moved by the
+meeting from which she had just come. At the same time she did not
+wish to talk too much about it. Just as she entered the
+drawing-room, Rose came in from the library.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"How many stayed?" she asked. Rose was curious. At the same time she
+was skeptical of the whole movement in Raymond.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"About a hundred," replied Felicia gravely. Mr. Sterling looked
+surprised. Felicia was going out of the room, but he called to her:
+"Do you really mean to keep the pledge?" he asked.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Felicia colored. Over her face and neck the warm blood flowed and
+she answered, "You would not ask such a question, father, if you had
+been at the meeting." She lingered a moment in the room, then asked
+to be excused from dinner for a while and went up to see her mother.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+No one but they two ever knew what that interview between Felicia
+and her mother was. It is certain that she must have told her mother
+something of the spiritual power that had awed every person present
+in the company of disciples who faced Dr. Bruce in that meeting
+after the morning service. It is also certain that Felicia had never
+before known such an experience, and would never have thought of
+sharing it with her mother if it had not been for the prayer the
+evening before. Another fact is also known of Felicia's experience
+at this time. When she finally joined her father and Rose at the
+table she seemed unable to tell them much about the meeting. There
+was a reluctance to speak of it as one might hesitate to attempt a
+description of a wonderful sunset to a person who never talked about
+anything but the weather.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+When that Sunday in the Sterling mansion was drawing to a close and
+the soft, warm lights throughout the dwelling were glowing through
+the great windows, in a corner of her room, where the light was
+obscure, Felicia kneeled, and when she raised her face and turned it
+towards the light, it was the face of a woman who had already
+defined for herself the greatest issues of earthly life.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+That same evening, after the Sunday evening service, Dr. Bruce was
+talking over the events of the day with his wife. They were of one
+heart and mind in the matter, and faced their new future with all
+the faith and courage of new disciples. Neither was deceived as to
+the probable results of the pledge to themselves or to the church.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+They had been talking but a little while when the bell rang and Dr.
+Bruce going to the door exclaimed, as he opened it: "It is you,
+Edward! Come in."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+There came into the hall a commanding figure. The Bishop was of
+extraordinary height and breadth of shoulder, but of such good
+proportions that there was no thought of ungainly or even of unusual
+size. The impression the Bishop made on strangers was, first, that
+of great health, and then of great affection.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+He came into the parlor and greeted Mrs. Bruce, who after a few
+moments was called out of the room, leaving the two men together.
+The Bishop sat in a deep, easy chair before the open fire. There was
+just enough dampness in the early spring of the year to make an open
+fire pleasant.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Calvin, you have taken a very serious step today," he finally said,
+lifting his large dark eyes to his old college classmate's face. "I
+heard of it this afternoon. I could not resist the desire to see you
+about it tonight."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I'm glad you came." Dr. Bruce laid a hand on the Bishop's shoulder.
+"You understand what this means, Edward?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I think I do. Yes, I am sure." The Bishop spoke very slowly and
+thoughtfully. He sat with his hands clasped together. Over his face,
+marked with lines of consecration and service and the love of men, a
+shadow crept, a shadow not caused by the firelight. Once more he
+lifted his eyes toward his old friend.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Calvin, we have always understood each other. Ever since our paths
+led us in different ways in church life we have walked together in
+Christian fellowship&mdash;."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"It is true," replied Dr. Bruce with an emotion he made no attempt
+to conceal or subdue. "Thank God for it. I prize your fellowship
+more than any other man's. I have always known what it meant, though
+it has always been more than I deserve."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The Bishop looked affectionately at his friend. But the shadow still
+rested on his face. After a pause he spoke again: "The new
+discipleship means a crisis for you in your work. If you keep this
+pledge to do all things as Jesus would do&mdash;as I know you will&mdash;it
+requires no prophet to predict some remarkable changes in your
+parish." The Bishop looked wistfully at his friend and then
+continued: "In fact, I do not see how a perfect upheaval of
+Christianity, as we now know it, can be prevented if the ministers
+and churches generally take the Raymond pledge and live it out." He
+paused as if he were waiting for his friend to say something, to ask
+some question. But Bruce did not know of the fire that was burning
+in the Bishop's heart over the very question that Maxwell and
+himself had fought out.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Now, in my church, for instance," continued the Bishop, "it would
+be rather a difficult matter, I fear, to find very many people who
+would take a pledge like that and live up to it. Martyrdom is a lost
+art with us. Our Christianity loves its ease and comfort too well to
+take up anything so rough and heavy as a cross. And yet what does
+following Jesus mean? What is it to walk in His steps?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The Bishop was soliloquizing now and it is doubtful if he thought,
+for the moment, of his friend's presence. For the first time there
+flashed into Dr. Bruce's mind a suspicion of the truth. What if the
+Bishop would throw the weight of his great influence on the side of
+the Raymond movement? He had the following of the most aristocratic,
+wealthy, fashionable people, not only in Chicago, but in several
+large cities. What if the Bishop should join this new discipleship!
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The thought was about to be followed by the word. Dr. Bruce had
+reached out his hand and with the familiarity of lifelong friendship
+had placed it on the Bishop's shoulder and was about to ask a very
+important question, when they were both startled by the violent
+ringing of the bell. Mrs. Bruce had gone to the door and was talking
+with some one in the hall. There was a loud exclamation and then, as
+the Bishop rose and Bruce was stepping toward the curtain that hung
+before the entrance to the parlor, Mrs. Bruce pushed it aside. Her
+face was white and she was trembling.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"O Calvin! Such terrible news! Mr. Sterling&mdash;oh, I cannot tell it!
+What a blow to those girls!" "What is it?" Mr. Bruce advanced with
+the Bishop into the hall and confronted the messenger, a servant
+from the Sterlings. The man was without his hat and had evidently
+run over with the news, as Dr. Bruce lived nearest of any intimate
+friends of the family.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Mr. Sterling shot himself, sir, a few minutes ago. He killed
+himself in his bed-room. Mrs. Sterling&mdash;"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I will go right over, Edward. Will you go with me? The Sterlings
+are old friends of yours."'
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The Bishop was very pale, but calm as always. He looked his friend
+in the face and answered: "Aye, Calvin, I will go with you not only
+to this house of death, but also the whole way of human sin and
+sorrow, please God."
+</P>
+
+<BR><BR><BR>
+
+<A NAME="chap24"></A>
+<H3 ALIGN="center">
+Chapter Twenty-four
+</H3>
+
+<P CLASS="intro">
+These are they which follow the Lamb whithersoever He goeth.
+</P>
+
+<BR>
+
+<P>
+WHEN Dr. Bruce and the Bishop entered the Sterling mansion
+everything in the usually well appointed household was in the
+greatest confusion and terror. The great rooms downstairs were
+empty, but overhead were hurried footsteps and confused noises. One
+of the servants ran down the grand staircase with a look of horror
+on her face just as the Bishop and Dr. Bruce were starting to go up.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Miss Felicia is with Mrs. Sterling," the servant stammered in
+answer to a question, and then burst into a hysterical cry and ran
+through the drawing-room and out of doors.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+At the top of the staircase the two men were met by Felicia. She
+walked up to Dr. Bruce at once and put both hands in his. The Bishop
+then laid his hand on her head and the three stood there a moment in
+perfect silence. The Bishop had known Felicia since she was a little
+child. He was the first to break the silence.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"The God of all mercy be with you, Felicia, in this dark hour. Your
+mother&mdash;"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The Bishop hesitated. Out of the buried past he had, during his
+hurried passage from his friend's to this house of death,
+irresistibly drawn the one tender romance of his young manhood. Not
+even Bruce knew that. But there had been a time when the Bishop had
+offered the incense of a singularly undivided affection upon the
+altar of his youth to the beautiful Camilla Rolfe, and she had
+chosen between him and the millionaire. The Bishop carried no
+bitterness with his memory; but it was still a memory.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+For answer to the Bishop's unfinished query, Felicia turned and went
+back into her mother's room. She had not said a word yet, but both
+men were struck with her wonderful calm. She returned to the hall
+door and beckoned to them, and the two ministers, with a feeling
+that they were about to behold something very unusual, entered.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Rose lay with her arms outstretched upon the bed. Clara, the nurse,
+sat with her head covered, sobbing in spasms of terror. And Mrs.
+Sterling with "the light that never was on sea or land" luminous on
+her face, lay there so still that even the Bishop was deceived at
+first. Then, as the great truth broke upon him and Dr. Bruce, he
+staggered, and the sharp agony of the old wound shot through him. It
+passed, and left him standing there in that chamber of death with
+the eternal calmness and strength that the children of God have a
+right to possess. And right well he used that calmness and strength
+in the days that followed.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The next moment the house below was in a tumult. Almost at the same
+time the doctor who had been sent for at once, but lived some
+distance away, came in, together with police officers, who had been
+summoned by frightened servants. With them were four or five
+newspaper correspondents and several neighbors. Dr. Bruce and the
+Bishop met this miscellaneous crowd at the head of the stairs and
+succeeded in excluding all except those whose presence was
+necessary. With these the two friends learned all the facts ever
+known about the "Sterling tragedy," as the papers in their
+sensational accounts next day called it.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Mr. Sterling had gone into his room that evening about nine o'clock
+and that was the last seen of him until, in half an hour, a shot was
+heard in the room, and a servant who was in the hall ran into the
+room and found him dead on the floor, killed by his own hand.
+Felicia at the time was sitting by her mother. Rose was reading in
+the library. She ran upstairs, saw her father as he was being lifted
+upon the couch by the servants, and then ran screaming into her
+mother's room, where she flung herself down at the foot of the bed
+in a swoon. Mrs. Sterling had at first fainted at the shock, then
+rallied with a wonderful swiftness and sent for Dr. Bruce. She had
+then insisted on seeing her husband. In spite of Felicia's efforts,
+she had compelled Clara to support her while she crossed the hall
+and entered the room where her husband lay. She had looked upon him
+with a tearless face, had gone back to her own room, was laid on her
+bed, and as Dr. Bruce and the Bishop entered the house she, with a
+prayer of forgiveness for herself and for her husband on her
+quivering lips, had died, with Felicia bending over her and Rose
+still lying senseless at her feet.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+So great and swift had been the entrance of grim Death into that
+palace of luxury that Sunday night! But the full cause of his coming
+was not learned until the facts in regard to Mr. Sterling's business
+affairs were finally disclosed.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Then it was learned that for some time he had been facing financial
+ruin owing to certain speculations that had in a month's time swept
+his supposed wealth into complete destruction. With the cunning and
+desperation of a man who battles for his very life when he saw his
+money, which was all the life he ever valued, slipping from him, he
+had put off the evil day to the last moment. Sunday afternoon,
+however, he had received news that proved to him beyond a doubt the
+fact of his utter ruin. The very house that he called his, the
+chairs in which he sat, his carriage, the dishes from which he ate,
+had all been bought with money for which he himself had never really
+done an honest stroke of pure labor.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+It had all rested on a tissue of deceit and speculation that had no
+foundation in real values. He knew that fact better than any one
+else, but he had hoped, with the hope such men always have, that the
+same methods that brought him the money would also prevent the loss.
+He had been deceived in this as many others have been. As soon as
+the truth that he was practically a beggar had dawned upon him, he
+saw no escape from suicide. It was the irresistible result of such a
+life as he had lived. He had made money his god. As soon as that god
+was gone out of his little world there was nothing more to worship;
+and when a man's object of worship is gone he has no more to live
+for. Thus died the great millionaire, Charles R. Sterling. And,
+verily, he died as the fool dieth, for what is the gain or the loss
+of money compared with the unsearchable riches of eternal life which
+are beyond the reach of speculation, loss or change?
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Mrs. Sterling's death was the result of the shock. She had not been
+taken into her husband's confidence for years, but she knew that the
+source of his wealth was precarious. Her life for several years had
+been a death in life. The Rolfes always gave an impression that they
+could endure more disaster unmoved than any one else. Mrs. Sterling
+illustrated the old family tradition when she was carried into the
+room where her husband lay. But the feeble tenement could not hold
+the spirit and it gave up the ghost, torn and weakened by long years
+of suffering and disappointment.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The effect of this triple blow, the death of father and mother, and
+the loss of property, was instantly apparent in the sisters. The
+horror of events stupefied Rose for weeks. She lay unmoved by
+sympathy or any effort to rally. She did not seem yet to realize
+that the money which had been so large a part of her very existence
+was gone. Even when she was told that she and Felicia must leave the
+house and be dependent on relatives and friends, she did not seem to
+understand what it meant.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Felicia, however, was fully conscious of the facts. She knew just
+what had happened and why. She was talking over her future plans
+with her cousin Rachel a few days after the funerals. Mrs. Winslow
+and Rachel had left Raymond and come to Chicago at once as soon as
+the terrible news had reached them, and with other friends of the
+family were planning for the future of Rose and Felicia.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Felicia, you and Rose must come to Raymond with us. That is
+settled. Mother will not hear to any other plan at present," Rachel
+had said, while her beautiful face glowed with love for her cousin,
+a love that had deepened day by day, and was intensified by the
+knowledge that they both belonged to the new discipleship.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Unless I can find something to do here," answered Felicia. She
+looked wistfully at Rachel, and Rachel said gently:
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"What could you do, dear?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Nothing. I was never taught to do anything except a little music,
+and I do not know enough about it to teach it or earn my living at
+it. I have learned to cook a little," Felicia added with a slight
+smile.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Then you can cook for us. Mother is always having trouble with her
+kitchen," said Rachel, understanding well enough she was now
+dependent for her very food and shelter upon the kindness of family
+friends. It is true the girls received a little something out of the
+wreck of their father's fortune, but with a speculator's mad folly
+he had managed to involve both his wife's and his children's portion
+in the common ruin.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Can I? Can I?" Felicia responded to Rachel's proposition as if it
+were to be considered seriously. "I am ready to do anything
+honorable to make my living and that of Rose. Poor Rose! She will
+never be able to get over the shock of our trouble."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"We will arrange the details when we get to Raymond," Rachel said,
+smiling through her tears at Felicia's eager willingness to care for
+herself.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+So in a few weeks Rose and Felicia found themselves a part of the
+Winslow family in Raymond. It was a bitter experience for Rose, but
+there was nothing else for her to do and she accepted the
+inevitable, brooding over the great change in her life and in many
+ways adding to the burden of Felicia and her cousin Rachel.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Felicia at once found herself in an atmosphere of discipleship that
+was like heaven to her in its revelation of companionship. It is
+true that Mrs. Winslow was not in sympathy with the course that
+Rachel was taking, but the remarkable events in Raymond since the
+pledge was taken were too powerful in their results not to impress
+even such a woman as Mrs. Winslow. With Rachel, Felicia found a
+perfect fellowship. She at once found a part to take in the new work
+at the Rectangle. In the spirit of her new life she insisted upon
+helping in the housework at her aunt's, and in a short time
+demonstrated her ability as a cook so clearly that Virginia
+suggested that she take charge of the cooking at the Rectangle.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Felicia entered upon this work with the keenest pleasure. For the
+first time in her life she had the delight of doing something of
+value for the happiness of others. Her resolve to do everything
+after asking, "What would Jesus do?" touched her deepest nature. She
+began to develop and strengthen wonderfully. Even Mrs. Winslow was
+obliged to acknowledge the great usefulness and beauty of Felicia's
+character. The aunt looked with astonishment upon her niece, this
+city-bred girl, reared in the greatest luxury, the daughter of a
+millionaire, now walking around in her kitchen, her arms covered
+with flour and occasionally a streak of it on her nose, for Felicia
+at first had a habit of rubbing her nose forgetfully when she was
+trying to remember some recipe, mixing various dishes with the
+greatest interest in their results, washing up pans and kettles and
+doing the ordinary work of a servant in the Winslow kitchen and at
+the rooms at the Rectangle Settlement. At first Mrs. Winslow
+remonstrated.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Felicia, it is not your place to be out here doing this common
+work. I cannot allow it."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Why, Aunt? Don't you like the muffins I made this morning?" Felicia
+would ask meekly, but with a hidden smile, knowing her aunt's
+weakness for that kind of muffin.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"They were beautiful, Felicia. But it does not seem right for you to
+be doing such work for us."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Why not? What else can I do?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Her aunt looked at her thoughtfully, noting her remarkable beauty of
+face and expression.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"You do not always intend to do this kind of work, Felicia?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Maybe I shall. I have had a dream of opening an ideal cook shop in
+Chicago or some large city and going around to the poor families in
+some slum district like the Rectangle, teaching the mothers how to
+prepare food properly. I remember hearing Dr. Bruce say once that he
+believed one of the great miseries of comparative poverty consisted
+in poor food. He even went so far as to say that he thought some
+kinds of crime could be traced to soggy biscuit and tough beefsteak.
+I'm sure I would be able to make a living for Rose and myself and at
+the same time help others."
+</P>
+
+<BR><BR><BR>
+
+<A NAME="chap25"></A>
+<H3 ALIGN="center">
+Chapter Twenty-five
+</H3>
+
+<P>
+THREE months had gone by since the Sunday morning when Dr. Bruce
+came into his pulpit with the message of the new discipleship. They
+were three months of great excitement in Nazareth Avenue Church.
+Never before had Rev. Calvin Bruce realized how deep the feeling of
+his members flowed. He humbly confessed that the appeal he had made
+met with an unexpected response from men and women who, like
+Felicia, were hungry for something in their lives that the
+conventional type of church membership and fellowship had failed to
+give them.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+But Dr. Bruce was not yet satisfied for himself. He cannot tell what
+his feeling was or what led to the movement he finally made, to the
+great astonishment of all who knew him, better than by relating a
+conversation between him and the Bishop at this time in the history
+of the pledge in Nazareth Avenue Church. The two friends were as
+before in Dr. Bruce's house, seated in his study.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"You know what I have come in this evening for?" the Bishop was
+saying after the friends had been talking some time about the
+results of the pledge with the Nazareth Avenue people.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Dr. Bruce looked over at the Bishop and shook his head.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I have come to confess that I have not yet kept my promise to walk
+in His steps in the way that I believe I shall be obliged to if I
+satisfy my thought of what it means to walk in His steps."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Dr. Bruce had risen and was pacing his study. The Bishop remained in
+the deep easy chair with his hands clasped, but his eye burned with
+the blow that belonged to him before he made some great resolve.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Edward," Dr. Bruce spoke abruptly, "I have not yet been able to
+satisfy myself, either, in obeying my promise. But I have at last
+decided on my course. In order to follow it I shall be obliged to
+resign from Nazareth Avenue Church."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I knew you would," replied the Bishop quietly. "And I came in this
+evening to say that I shall be obliged to do the same thing with my
+charge."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Dr. Bruce turned and walked up to his friend. They were both
+laboring under a repressed excitement.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Is it necessary in your case?" asked Bruce.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Yes. Let me state my reasons. Probably they are the same as yours.
+In fact, I am sure they are." The Bishop paused a moment, then went
+on with increasing feeling:
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Calvin, you know how many years I have been doing the work of my
+position, and you know something of the responsibility and care of
+it. I do not mean to say that my life has been free from
+burden-bearing or sorrow. But I have certainly led what the poor and
+desperate of this sinful city would call a very comfortable, yes, a
+very luxurious life. I have had a beautiful house to live in, the
+most expensive food, clothing and physical pleasures. I have been
+able to go abroad at least a dozen times, and have enjoyed for years
+the beautiful companionship of art and letters and music and all the
+rest, of the very best. I have never known what it meant to be
+without money or its equivalent. And I have been unable to silence
+the question of late: 'What have I suffered for the sake of Christ?'
+Paul was told what great things he must suffer for the sake of his
+Lord. Maxwell's position at Raymond is well taken when he insists
+that to walk in the steps of Christ means to suffer. Where has my
+suffering come in? The petty trials and annoyances of my clerical
+life are not worth mentioning as sorrows or sufferings. Compared
+with Paul or any of the Christian martyrs or early disciples I have
+lived a luxurious, sinful life, full of ease and pleasure. I cannot
+endure this any longer. I have that within me which of late rises in
+overwhelming condemnation of such a following of Jesus. I have not
+been walking in His steps. Under the present system of church and
+social life I see no escape from this condemnation except to give
+the most of my life personally to the actual physical and soul needs
+of the wretched people in the worst part of this city."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The Bishop had risen now and walked over to the window. The street
+in front of the house was as light as day, and he looked out at the
+crowds passing, then turned and with a passionate utterance that
+showed how deep the volcanic fire in him burned, he exclaimed:
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Calvin, this is a terrible city in which we live! Its misery, its
+sin, its selfishness, appall my heart. And I have struggled for
+years with the sickening dread of the time when I should be forced
+to leave the pleasant luxury of my official position to put my life
+into contact with the modern paganism of this century. The awful
+condition of the girls in some great business places, the brutal
+selfishness of the insolent society fashion and wealth that ignores
+all the sorrow of the city, the fearful curse of the drink and
+gambling hell, the wail of the unemployed, the hatred of the church
+by countless men who see in it only great piles of costly stone and
+upholstered furniture and the minister as a luxurious idler, all the
+vast tumult of this vast torrent of humanity with its false and its
+true ideas, its exaggeration of evils in the church and its
+bitterness and shame that are the result of many complex causes, all
+this as a total fact in its contrast with the easy, comfortable life
+I have lived, fills me more and more with a sense of mingled terror
+and self accusation. I have heard the words of Jesus many times
+lately: 'Inasmuch as ye did it not unto one of these least My
+brethren, ye did it not unto Me.' And when have I personally visited
+the prisoner or the desperate or the sinful in any way that has
+actually caused me suffering? Rather, I have followed the
+conventional soft habits of my position and have lived in the
+society of the rich, refined, aristocratic members of my
+congregations. Where has the suffering come in? What have I suffered
+for Jesus' sake? Do you know, Calvin," he turned abruptly toward his
+friend, "I have been tempted of late to lash myself with a scourge.
+If I had lived in Martin Luther's time I should have bared my back
+to a self-inflicted torture."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Dr. Bruce was very pale. Never had he seen the Bishop or heard him
+when under the influence of such a passion. There was a sudden
+silence in the room. The Bishop sat down again and bowed his head.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Dr. Bruce spoke at last: "Edward, I do not need to say that you have
+expressed my feelings also. I have been in a similar position for
+years. My life has been one of comparative luxury. I do not, of
+course, mean to say that I have not had trials and discouragements
+and burdens in my church ministry. But I cannot say that I have
+suffered any for Jesus. That verse in Peter constantly haunts me:
+'Christ also suffered for you, leaving you an example that ye should
+follow His steps.' I have lived in luxury. I do not know what it
+means to want. I also have had my leisure for travel and beautiful
+companionship. I have been surrounded by the soft, easy comforts of
+civilization. The sin and misery of this great city have beaten like
+waves against the stone walls of my church and of this house in
+which I live, and I have hardly heeded them, the walls have been so
+thick. I have reached a point where I cannot endure this any longer.
+I am not condemning the Church. I love her. I am not forsaking the
+Church. I believe in her mission and have no desire to destroy.
+Least of all, in the step I am about to take do I desire to be
+charged with abandoning the Christian fellowship. But I feel that I
+must resign my place as pastor of Nazareth Church in order to
+satisfy myself that I am walking as I ought to walk in His steps. In
+this action I judge no other minister and pass no criticism on
+others' discipleship. But I feel as you do. Into a close contact
+with the sin and shame and degradation of this great city I must
+come personally. And I know that to do that I must sever my
+immediate connection with Nazareth Avenue Church. I do not see any
+other way for myself to suffer for His sake as I feel that I ought
+to suffer."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Again that sudden silence fell over those two men. It was no
+ordinary action they were deciding. They had both reached the same
+conclusion by the same reasoning, and they were too thoughtful, too
+well accustomed to the measuring of conduct, to underestimate the
+seriousness of their position.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"What is your plan?" The Bishop at last spoke gently, looking with
+the smile that always beautified his face. The Bishop's face grew in
+glory now every day.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"My plan," replied Dr. Bruce slowly, "is, in brief, the putting of
+myself into the centre of the greatest human need I can find in this
+city and living there. My wife is fully in accord with me. We have
+already decided to find a residence in that part of the city where
+we can make our personal lives count for the most."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Let me suggest a place." The Bishop was on fire now. His fine face
+actually glowed with the enthusiasm of the movement in which he and
+his friend were inevitably embarked. He went on and unfolded a plan
+of such far-reaching power and possibility that Dr. Bruce, capable
+and experienced as he was, felt amazed at the vision of a greater
+soul than his own.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+They sat up late, and were as eager and even glad as if they were
+planning for a trip together to some rare land of unexplored travel.
+Indeed, the Bishop said many times afterward that the moment his
+decision was reached to live the life of personal sacrifice he had
+chosen he suddenly felt an uplifting as if a great burden were taken
+from him. He was exultant. So was Dr. Bruce from the same cause.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Their plan as it finally grew into a workable fact was in reality
+nothing more than the renting of a large building formerly used as a
+warehouse for a brewery, reconstructing it and living in it
+themselves in the very heart of a territory where the saloon ruled
+with power, where the tenement was its filthiest, where vice and
+ignorance and shame and poverty were congested into hideous forms.
+It was not a new idea. It was an idea started by Jesus Christ when
+He left His Father's House and forsook the riches that were His in
+order to get nearer humanity and, by becoming a part of its sin,
+helping to draw humanity apart from its sin. The University
+Settlement idea is not modern. It is as old as Bethlehem and
+Nazareth. And in this particular case it was the nearest approach to
+anything that would satisfy the hunger of these two men to suffer
+for Christ.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+There had sprung up in them at the same time a longing that amounted
+to a passion, to get nearer the great physical poverty and spiritual
+destitution of the mighty city that throbbed around them. How could
+they do this except as they became a part of it as nearly as one man
+can become a part of another's misery? Where was the suffering to
+come in unless there was an actual self-denial of some sort? And
+what was to make that self-denial apparent to themselves or any one
+else, unless it took this concrete, actual, personal form of trying
+to share the deepest suffering and sin of the city?
+</P>
+
+<P>
+So they reasoned for themselves, not judging others. They were
+simply keeping their own pledge to do as Jesus would do, as they
+honestly judged He would do. That was what they had promised. How
+could they quarrel with the result if they were irresistibly
+compelled to do what they were planning to do?
+</P>
+
+<BR><BR><BR>
+
+<A NAME="chap26"></A>
+<H3 ALIGN="center">
+Chapter Twenty-six
+</H3>
+
+<P>
+MEANWHILE, Nazareth Avenue Church was experiencing something never
+known before in all its history. The simple appeal on the part of
+its pastor to his members to do as Jesus would do had created a
+sensation that still continued. The result of that appeal was very
+much the same as in Henry Maxwell's church in Raymond, only this
+church was far more aristocratic, wealthy and conventional.
+Nevertheless when, one Sunday morning in early summer, Dr. Bruce
+came into his pulpit and announced his resignation, the sensation
+deepened all over the city, although he had advised with his board
+of trustees, and the movement he intended was not a matter of
+surprise to them. But when it become publicly known that the Bishop
+had also announced his resignation and retirement from the position
+he had held so long, in order to go and live himself in the centre
+of the worst part of Chicago, the public astonishment reached its
+height.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"But why?" the Bishop replied to one valued friend who had almost
+with tears tried to dissuade him from his purpose. "Why should what
+Dr. Bruce and I propose to do seem so remarkable a thing, as if it
+were unheard of that a Doctor of Divinity and a Bishop should want
+to save lost souls in this particular manner? If we were to resign
+our charge for the purpose of going to Bombay or Hong Kong or any
+place in Africa, the churches and the people would exclaim at the
+heroism of missions. Why should it seem so great a thing if we have
+been led to give our lives to help rescue the heathen and the lost
+of our own city in the way we are going to try it? Is it then such a
+tremendous event that two Christian ministers should be not only
+willing but eager to live close to the misery of the world in order
+to know it and realize it? Is it such a rare thing that love of
+humanity should find this particular form of expression in the
+rescue of souls?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+And however the Bishop may have satisfied himself that there ought
+to be nothing so remarkable about it at all, the public continued to
+talk and the churches to record their astonishment that two such
+men, so prominent in the ministry, should leave their comfortable
+homes, voluntarily resign their pleasant social positions and enter
+upon a life of hardship, of self-denial and actual suffering.
+Christian America! Is it a reproach on the form of our discipleship
+that the exhibition of actual suffering for Jesus on the part of
+those who walk in His steps always provokes astonishment as at the
+sight of something very unusual?
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Nazareth Avenue Church parted from its pastor with regret for the
+most part, although the regret was modified with a feeling of relief
+on the part of those who had refused to take the pledge. Dr. Bruce
+carried with him the respect of men who, entangled in business in
+such a way that obedience to the pledge would have ruined them,
+still held in their deeper, better natures a genuine admiration for
+courage and consistency. They had known Dr. Bruce many years as a
+kindly, conservative, safe man, but the thought of him in the light
+of sacrifice of this sort was not familiar to them. As fast as they
+understood it, they gave their pastor the credit of being absolutely
+true to his recent convictions as to what following Jesus meant.
+Nazareth Avenue Church never lost the impulse of that movement
+started by Dr. Bruce. Those who went with him in making the promise
+breathed into the church the very breath of divine life, and are
+continuing that life-giving work at this present time.
+</P>
+
+<HR ALIGN="center" WIDTH="60%">
+
+<P>
+It was fall again, and the city faced another hard winter. The
+Bishop one afternoon came out of the Settlement and walked around
+the block, intending to go on a visit to one of his new friends in
+the district. He had walked about four blocks when he was attracted
+by a shop that looked different from the others. The neighborhood
+was still quite new to him, and every day he discovered some strange
+spot or stumbled upon some unexpected humanity.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The place that attracted his notice was a small house close by a
+Chinese laundry. There were two windows in the front, very clean,
+and that was remarkable to begin with. Then, inside the window, was
+a tempting display of cookery, with prices attached to the various
+articles that made him wonder somewhat, for he was familiar by this
+time with many facts in the life of the people once unknown to him.
+As he stood looking at the windows, the door between them opened and
+Felicia Sterling came out.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Felicia!" exclaimed the Bishop. "When did you move into my parish
+without my knowledge?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"How did you find me so soon?" inquired Felicia.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Why, don't you know? These are the only clean windows in the
+block."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I believe they are," replied Felicia with a laugh that did the
+Bishop good to hear.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"But why have you dared to come to Chicago without telling me, and
+how have you entered my diocese without my knowledge?" asked the
+Bishop. And Felicia looked so like that beautiful, clean, educated,
+refined world he once knew, that he might be pardoned for seeing in
+her something of the old Paradise. Although, to speak truth for him,
+he had no desire to go back to it.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Well, dear Bishop," said Felicia, who had always called him so, "I
+knew how overwhelmed you were with your work. I did not want to
+burden you with my plans. And besides, I am going to offer you my
+services. Indeed, I was just on my way to see you and ask your
+advice. I am settled here for the present with Mrs. Bascom, a
+saleswoman who rents our three rooms, and with one of Rachel's music
+pupils who is being helped to a course in violin by Virginia Page.
+She is from the people," continued Felicia, using the words "from
+the people" so gravely and unconsciously that her hearer smiled,
+"and I am keeping house for her and at the same time beginning an
+experiment in pure food for the masses. I am an expert and I have a
+plan I want you to admire and develop. Will you, dear Bishop?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Indeed I will," he replied. The sight of Felicia and her remarkable
+vitality, enthusiasm and evident purpose almost bewildered him.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Martha can help at the Settlement with her violin and I will help
+with my messes. You see, I thought I would get settled first and
+work out something, and then come with some real thing to offer. I'm
+able to earn my own living now."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"You are?" the Bishop said a little incredulously. "How? Making
+those things?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Those things!" said Felicia with a show of indignation. "I would
+have you know, sir, that 'those things' are the best-cooked, purest
+food products in this whole city."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I don't doubt it," he replied hastily, while his eyes twinkled,
+"Still, 'the proof of the pudding'&mdash;you know the rest."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Come in and try some!" she exclaimed. "You poor Bishop! You look as
+if you hadn't had a good meal for a month."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+She insisted on his entering the little front room where Martha, a
+wide-awake girl with short, curly hair, and an unmistakable air of
+music about her, was busy with practice.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Go right on, Martha. This is the Bishop. You have heard me speak of
+him so often. Sit down there and let me give you a taste of the
+fleshpots of Egypt, for I believe you have been actually fasting."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+So they had an improvised lunch, and the Bishop who, to tell the
+truth, had not taken time for weeks to enjoy his meals, feasted on
+the delight of his unexpected discovery and was able to express his
+astonishment and gratification at the quality of the cookery.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I thought you would at least say it is as good as the meals you
+used to get at the Auditorium at the big banquets," said Felicia
+slyly.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"As good as! The Auditorium banquets were simply husks compared with
+this one, Felicia. But you must come to the Settlement. I want you
+to see what we are doing. And I am simply astonished to find you
+here earning your living this way. I begin to see what your plan is.
+You can be of infinite help to us. You don't really mean that you
+will live here and help these people to know the value of good
+food?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Indeed I do," she answered gravely. "That is my gospel. Shall I not
+follow it?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Aye, Aye! You're right. Bless God for sense like yours! When I left
+the world," the Bishop smiled at the phrase, "they were talking a
+good deal about the 'new woman.' If you are one of them, I am a
+convert right now and here."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Flattery! Still is there no escape from it, even in the slums of
+Chicago?" Felicia laughed again. And the man's heart, heavy though
+it had grown during several months of vast sin-bearing, rejoiced to
+hear it! It sounded good. It was good. It belonged to God.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Felicia wanted to visit the Settlement, and went back with him. She
+was amazed at the results of what considerable money an a good deal
+of consecrated brains had done. As they walked through the building
+they talked incessantly. She was the incarnation of vital
+enthusiasm, and he wondered at the exhibition of it as it bubbled up
+and sparkled over.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+They went down into the basement and the Bishop pushed open a door
+from behind which came the sound of a carpenter's plane. It was a
+small but well equipped carpenter's shop. A young man with a paper
+cap on his head and clad in blouse and overalls was whistling and
+driving the plane as he whistled. He looked up as the two entered,
+and took off his cap. As he did so, his little finger carried a
+small curling shaving up to his hair and it caught there.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Miss Sterling, Mr. Stephen Clyde," said the Bishop. "Clyde is one
+of our helpers here two afternoons in the week."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Just then the bishop was called upstairs and he excused himself a
+moment, leaving Felicia and the young carpenter together.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"We have met before," said Felicia looking at Clyde frankly.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Yes, 'back in the world,' as the Bishop says," replied the young
+man, and his fingers trembled a little as they lay on the board he
+had been planing.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Yes." Felicia hesitated. "I am very glad to see you."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Are you?" The flush of pleasure mounted to the young carpenter's
+forehead. "You have had a great deal of trouble since&mdash;since&mdash;then,"
+he said, and then he was afraid he had wounded her, or called up
+painful memories. But she had lived over all that.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Yes, and you also. How is it that you're working here?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"It is a long story, Miss Sterling. My father lost his money and I
+was obliged to go to work. A very good thing for me. The Bishop says
+I ought to be very grateful. I am. I am very happy now. I learned
+the trade, hoping some time to be of use, I am night clerk at one of
+the hotels. That Sunday morning when you took the pledge at Nazareth
+Avenue Church, I took it with the others."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Did you?" said Felicia slowly. "I am glad."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Just then the Bishop came back, and very soon he and Felicia went
+away leaving the young carpenter at his work. Some one noticed that
+he whistled louder than ever as he planed.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Felicia," said the Bishop, "did you know Stephen Clyde before?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Yes, 'back in the world,' dear Bishop. He was one of my
+acquaintances in Nazareth Avenue Church."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Ah!" said the Bishop.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"We were very good friends," added Felicia.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"But nothing more?" the Bishop ventured to ask.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Felicia's face glowed for an instant. Then she looked her companion
+in the eyes frankly and answered: "Truly and truly, nothing more."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"It would be just the way of the world for these two people to come
+to like each other, though," thought the man to himself, and somehow
+the thought made him grave. It was almost like the old pang over
+Camilla. But it passed, leaving him afterwards, when Felicia had
+gone back, with tears in his eyes and a feeling that was almost hope
+that Felicia and Stephen would like each other. "After all," he
+said, like the sensible, good man that he was, "is not romance a
+part of humanity? Love is older than I am, and wiser."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The week following, the Bishop had an experience that belongs to
+this part of the Settlement history. He was coming back to the
+Settlement very late from some gathering of the striking tailors,
+and was walking along with his hands behind him, when two men jumped
+out from behind an old fence that shut off an abandoned factory from
+the street, and faced him. One of the men thrust a pistol in his
+face, and the other threatened him with a ragged stake that had
+evidently been torn from the fence.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Hold up your hands, and be quick about it!" said the man with the
+pistol.
+</P>
+
+<BR><BR><BR>
+
+<A NAME="chap27"></A>
+<H3 ALIGN="center">
+Chapter Twenty-seven
+</H3>
+
+<P CLASS="intro">
+"Righteousness shall go before him and shall set us in the way of
+his steps."
+</P>
+
+<BR>
+
+<P>
+THE Bishop was not in the habit of carrying much money with him, and
+the man with the stake who was searching him uttered an oath at the
+small amount of change he found. As he uttered it, the man with the
+pistol savagely said, "Jerk out his watch! We might as well get all
+we can out of the job!"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The man with the stake was on the point of laying hold of the chain
+where there was a sound of footsteps coming towards him.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Get behind the fence! We haven't half searched him yet! Mind you
+keep shut now, if you don't want&mdash;"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The man with the pistol made a significant gesture with it and, with
+his companion, pulled and pushed the Bishop down the alley and
+through a ragged, broken opening in the fence. The three stood still
+there in the shadow until the footsteps passed.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Now, then, have you got the watch?" asked the man with the pistol.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"No, the chain is caught somewhere!" and the other man swore again.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Break it then!"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"No, don't break it," the Bishop said, and it was the first time he
+had spoken. "The chain is the gift of a very dear friend. I should
+be sorry to have it broken."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+At the sound of the Bishop's voice the man with the pistol started
+as if he had been suddenly shot by his own weapon. With a quick
+movement of his other hand he turned the Bishop's head toward's what
+little light was shining from the alleyway, at the same time taking
+a step nearer. Then, to the amazement of his companion, he said
+roughly: "Leave the watch alone! We've got the money. That's
+enough!"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Enough! Fifty cents! You don't reckon&mdash;"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Before the man with the stake could say another word he was
+confronted with the muzzle of the pistol turned from the Bishop's
+head towards his own.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Leave that watch be! And put back the money too. This is the Bishop
+we've held up&mdash;the Bishop&mdash;do you hear?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"And what of it! The President of the United States wouldn't be too
+good to hold up, if&mdash;"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I say, you put the money back, or in five seconds I'll blow a hole
+through your head that'll let in more sense than you have to spare
+now!" said the other.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+For a second the man with the stake seemed to hesitate at this
+strange turn in events, as if measuring his companion's intention.
+Then he hastily dropped the money back into the rifled pocket.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"You can take your hands down, sir." The man lowered his weapon
+slowly, still keeping an eye on the other man, and speaking with
+rough respect. The Bishop slowly brought his arms to his side, and
+looked earnestly at the two men. In the dim light it was difficult
+to distinguish features. He was evidently free to go his way now,
+but he stood there making no movement.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"You can go on. You needn't stay any longer on our account." The man
+who had acted as spokesman turned and sat down on a stone. The other
+man stood viciously digging his stake into the ground.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"That's just what I am staying for," replied the Bishop. He sat down
+on a board that projected from the broken fence.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"You must like our company. It is hard sometimes for people to tear
+themselves away from us," and the man standing up laughed coarsely.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Shut up!" exclaimed the other. "We're on the road to hell, though,
+that's sure enough. We need better company than ourselves and the
+devil."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"If you would only allow me to be of any help," the Bishop spoke
+gently, even lovingly. The man on the stone stared at the Bishop
+through the darkness. After a moment of silence he spoke slowly like
+one who had finally decided upon a course he had at first rejected.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Do you remember ever seeing me before?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"No," said the Bishop. "The light is not very good and I have really
+not had a good look at you."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Do you know me now?" The man suddenly took off his hat and getting
+up from the stone walked over to the Bishop until they were near
+enough to touch each other.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The man's hair was coal black except one spot on the top of his head
+about as large as the palm of the hand, which was white.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The minute the Bishop saw that, he started. The memory of fifteen
+years ago began to stir in him. The man helped him.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Don't you remember one day back in '81 or '82 a man came to your
+house and told a story about his wife and child having been burned
+to death in a tenement fire in New York?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Yes, I begin to remember now." The other man seemed to be
+interested. He ceased digging his stake in the ground and stood
+still listening.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Do you remember how you took me into your own house that night and
+spent all next day trying to find me a job? And how when you
+succeeded in getting me a place in a warehouse as foreman, I
+promised to quit drinking because you asked me to?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I remember it now. I hope you have kept your promise."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The man laughed savagely. Then he struck his hand against the fence
+with such sudden passion that he drew blood.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Kept it! I was drunk inside of a week! I've been drinking ever
+since. But I've never forgotten you nor your prayer. Do you remember
+the morning after I came to your house, after breakfast you had
+prayers and asked me to come in and sit with the rest? That got me!
+But my mother used to pray! I can see her now kneeling down by my
+bed when I was a lad. Father came in one night and kicked her while
+she was kneeling there by me. But I never forgot that prayer of
+yours that morning. You prayed for me just as mother used to, and
+you didn't seem to take 'count of the fact that I was ragged and
+tough-looking and more than half drunk when I rang your door bell.
+Oh, what a life I've lived! The saloon has housed me and homed me
+and made hell on earth for me. But that prayer stuck to me all the
+time. My promise not to drink was broken into a thousand pieces
+inside of two Sundays, and I lost the job you found for me and
+landed in a police station two days later, but I never forgot you
+nor your prayer. I don't know what good it has done me, but I never
+forgot it. And I won't do any harm to you nor let any one else. So
+you're free to go. That's why."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The Bishop did not stir. Somewhere a church clock struck one. The
+man had put on his hat and gone back to his seat on the stone. The
+Bishop was thinking hard.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"How long is it since you had work?" he asked, and the man standing
+up answered for the other.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"More'n six months since either of us did anything to tell of;
+unless you count 'holding up' work. I call it pretty wearing kind of
+a job myself, especially when we put in a night like this and don't
+make nothin'."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Suppose I found good jobs for both of you? Would you quit this and
+begin all over?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"What's the use?" the man on the stone spoke sullenly. "I've
+reformed a hundred times. Every time I go down deeper. The devil's
+begun to foreclose on me already. It's too late."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"No!" said the Bishop. And never before the most entranced audience
+had he felt the desire for souls burn up in him so strongly. All the
+time he sat there during the remarkable scene he prayed, "O Lord
+Jesus, give me the souls of these two for Thee! I am hungry for
+them. Give them to me!"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"No!" the Bishop repeated. "What does God want of you two men? It
+doesn't so much matter what I want. But He wants just what I do in
+this case. You two men are of infinite value to Him." And then his
+wonderful memory came to his aid in an appeal such as no one on
+earth among men could make under such circumstances. He had
+remembered the man's name in spite of the wonderfully busy years
+that lay between his coming to the house and the present moment.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Burns," he said, and he yearned over the men with an unspeakable
+longing for them both, "if you and your friend here will go home
+with me tonight I will find you both places of honorable employment.
+I will believe in you and trust you. You are both comparatively
+young men. Why should God lose you? It is a great thing to win the
+love of the Great Father. It is a small thing that I should love
+you. But if you need to feel again that there is love in the world,
+you will believe me when I say, my brothers, that I love you, and in
+the name of Him who was crucified for our sins I cannot bear to see
+you miss the glory of the human life. Come, be men! Make another try
+for it, God helping you. No one but God and you and myself need ever
+know anything of this tonight. He has forgiven it the minute you ask
+Him to. You will find that true. Come! We'll fight it out together,
+you two and I. It's worth fighting for, everlasting life is. It was
+the sinner that Christ came to help. I'll do what I can for you. O
+God, give me the souls of these two men!" and he broke into a prayer
+to God that was a continuation of his appeal to the men. His pent-up
+feeling had no other outlet. Before he had prayed many moments Burns
+was sitting with his face buried in his hands, sobbing. Where were
+his mother's prayers now? They were adding to the power of the
+Bishop's. And the other man, harder, less moved, without a previous
+knowledge of the Bishop, leaned back against the fence, stolid at
+first. But as the prayer went on, he was moved by it. What force of
+the Holy Spirit swept over his dulled, brutal, coarsened life,
+nothing but the eternal records of the recording angel can ever
+disclose. But the same supernatural Presence that smote Paul on the
+road to Damascus, and poured through Henry Maxwell's church the
+morning he asked disciples to follow in Jesus' steps, and had again
+broken irresistibly over the Nazareth Avenue congregation, now
+manifested Himself in this foul corner of the mighty city and over
+the natures of these two sinful sunken men, apparently lost to all
+the pleadings of conscience and memory and God. The prayer seemed to
+red open the crust that for years had surrounded them and shut them
+off from divine communication. And they themselves were thoroughly
+startled by it.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The Bishop ceased, and at first he himself did not realize what had
+happened. Neither did they. Burns still sat with his head bowed
+between his knees. The man leaning against the fence looked at the
+Bishop with a face in which new emotions of awe, repentance,
+astonishment and a broken gleam of joy struggled for expression. The
+Bishop rose.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Come, my brothers. God is good. You shall stay at the Settlement
+tonight, and I will make good my promise as to the work."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The two men followed him in silence. When they reached the
+Settlement it was after two o'clock. He let them in and led them to
+a room. At the door he paused a moment. His tall, commanding figure
+stood in the doorway and his pale face was illuminated with the
+divine glory.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"God bless you, my brothers!" he said, and leaving them his
+benediction he went away.
+</P>
+
+<BR><BR><BR>
+
+<A NAME="chap28"></A>
+<H3 ALIGN="center">
+Chapter Twenty-eight
+</H3>
+
+<P>
+IT WAS the afternoon of that morning when Burns was installed in his
+new position as assistant janitor that he was cleaning off the front
+steps of the Settlement, when he paused a moment and stood up to
+look about him. The first thing he noticed was a beer sign just
+across the alley. He could almost touch it with his broom from where
+he stood. Over the street immediately opposite were two large
+saloons, and a little farther down were three more.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Suddenly the door of the nearest saloon opened and a man came out.
+At the same time two more went in. A strong odor of beer floated up
+to Burns as he stood on the steps. He clutched his broom handle
+tightly and began to sweep again. He had one foot on the porch and
+another on the steps just below. He took another step down, still
+sweeping. The sweat stood on his forehead although the day was
+frosty and the air chill. The saloon door opened again and three or
+four men came out. A child went in with a pail, and came out a
+moment later with a quart of beer. The child went by on the sidewalk
+just below him, and the odor of the beer came up to him. He took
+another step down, still sweeping desperately. His fingers were
+purple as he clutched the handle of the broom.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Then suddenly he pulled himself up one step and swept over the spot
+he had just cleaned. He then dragged himself by a tremendous effort
+back to the floor of the porch and went over into the corner of it
+farthest from the saloon and began to sweep there. "O God!" he
+cried, "if the Bishop would only come back!" The Bishop had gone out
+with Dr. Bruce somewhere, and there was no one about that he knew.
+He swept in the corner for two or three minutes. His face was drawn
+with the agony of his conflict. Gradually he edged out again towards
+the steps and began to go down them. He looked towards the sidewalk
+and saw that he had left one step unswept. The sight seemed to give
+him a reasonable excuse for going down there to finish his sweeping.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+He was on the sidewalk now, sweeping the last step, with his face
+towards the Settlement and his back turned partly on the saloon
+across the alley. He swept the step a dozen times. The sweat rolled
+over his face and dropped down at his feet. By degrees he felt that
+he was drawn over towards that end of the step nearest the saloon.
+He could smell the beer and rum now as the fumes rose around him. It
+was like the infernal sulphur of the lowest hell, and yet it dragged
+him as by a giant's hand nearer its source.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+He was down in the middle of the sidewalk now, still sweeping. He
+cleared the space in front of the Settlement and even went out into
+the gutter and swept that. He took off his hat and rubbed his sleeve
+over his face. His lips were pallid and his teeth chattered. He
+trembled all over like a palsied man and staggered back and forth as
+if he was already drunk. His soul shook within him.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+He had crossed over the little piece of stone flagging that measured
+the width of the alley, and now he stood in front of the saloon,
+looking at the sign, and staring into the window at the pile of
+whiskey and beer bottles arranged in a great pyramid inside. He
+moistened his lips with his tongue and took a step forward, looking
+around him stealthily. The door suddenly opened again and someone
+came out. Again the hot, penetrating smell of liquor swept out into
+the cold air, and he took another step towards the saloon door which
+had shut behind the customer. As he laid his fingers on the door
+handle, a tall figure came around the corner. It was the Bishop.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+He seized Burns by the arm and dragged him back upon the sidewalk.
+The frenzied man, now mad for a drink, shrieked out a curse and
+struck at his friend savagely. It is doubtful if he really knew at
+first who was snatching him away from his ruin. The blow fell upon
+the Bishop's face and cut a gash in his cheek. He never uttered a
+word. But over his face a look of majestic sorrow swept. He picked
+Burns up as if he had been a child and actually carried him up the
+steps and into the house. He put him down in the hall and then shut
+the door and put his back against it.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Burns fell on his knees sobbing and praying. The Bishop stood there
+panting with his exertion, although Burns was a slightly-built man
+and had not been a great weight for a man of his strength to carry.
+He was moved with unspeakable pity.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Pray, Burns&mdash;pray as you never prayed before! Nothing else will
+save you!"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"O God! Pray with me. Save me! Oh, save me from my hell!" cried
+Burns. And, the Bishop knelt by him in the hall and prayed as only
+he could pray.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+After that they rose and Burns went to his room. He came out of it
+that evening like a humble child. And the Bishop went his way older
+from that experience, bearing on his body the marks of the Lord
+Jesus. Truly he was learning something of what it means to walk in
+His steps.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+But the saloon! It stood there, and all the others lined the street
+like so many traps set for Burns. How long would the man be able to
+resist the smell of the damnable stuff? The Bishop went out on the
+porch. The air of the whole city seemed to be impregnated with the
+odor of beer. "How long, O Lord, how long?" he prayed. Dr. Bruce
+came out, and the two friends talked about Burns and his temptation.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Did you ever make any inquiries about the ownership of this
+property adjoining us?" the Bishop asked.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"No, I haven't taken time for it. I will now if you think it would
+be worth while. But what can we do, Edward, against the saloon in
+this great city? It is as firmly established as the churches or
+politics. What power can ever remove it?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"God will do it in time, as He has removed slavery," was the grave
+reply. "Meanwhile I think we have a right to know who controls this
+saloon so near the Settlement."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I'll find out," said Dr. Bruce.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Two days later he walked into the business office of one of the
+members of Nazareth Avenue Church and asked to see him a few
+moments. He was cordially received by his old parishioner, who
+welcomed him into his room and urged him to take all the time he
+wanted.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I called to see you about that property next the Settlement where
+the Bishop and myself now are, you know. I am going to speak
+plainly, because life is too short and too serious for us both to
+have any foolish hesitation about this matter. Clayton, do you think
+it is right to rent that property for a saloon?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Dr. Bruce's question was as direct and uncompromising as he had
+meant it to be. The effect of it on his old parishioner was
+instantaneous.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The hot blood mounted to the face of the man who sat there beneath a
+picture of business activity in a great city. Then he grew pale,
+dropped his head on his hands, and when he raised it again Dr. Bruce
+was amazed to see a tear roll over his face.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Doctor, did you know that I took the pledge that morning with the
+others?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Yes, I remember."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"But you never knew how I have been tormented over my failure to
+keep it in this instance. That saloon property has been the
+temptation of the devil to me. It is the best paying investment at
+present that I have. And yet it was only a minute before you came in
+here that I was in an agony of remorse to think how I was letting a
+little earthly gain tempt me into a denial of the very Christ I had
+promised to follow. I knew well enough that He would never rent
+property for such a purpose. There is no need, Dr. Bruce, for you to
+say a word more."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Clayton held out his hand and Dr. Bruce grasped it and shook it
+hard. After a little he went away. But it was a long time afterwards
+that he learned all the truth about the struggle that Clayton had
+known. It was only a part of the history that belonged to Nazareth
+Avenue Church since that memorable morning when the Holy Spirit
+sanctioned the Christ-like pledge. Not even the Bishop and Dr.
+Bruce, moving as they now did in the very presence itself of divine
+impulses, knew yet that over the whole sinful city the Spirit was
+brooding with mighty eagerness, waiting for the disciples to arise
+to the call of sacrifice and suffering, touching hearts long dull
+and cold, making business men and money-makers uneasy in their
+absorption by the one great struggle for more wealth, and stirring
+through the church as never in all the city's history the church had
+been moved. The Bishop and Dr. Bruce had already seen some wonderful
+things in their brief life at the Settlement. They were to see far
+greater soon, more astonishing revelations of the divine power than
+they had supposed possible in this age of the world.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Within a month the saloon next the Settlement was closed. The
+saloon-keeper's lease had expired, and Clayton not only closed the
+property to the whiskey men, but offered the building to the Bishop
+and Dr. Bruce to use for the Settlement work, which had now grown so
+large that the building they had first rented was not sufficient for
+the different industries that were planned.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+One of the most important of these was the pure-food department
+suggested by Felicia. It was not a month after Clayton turned the
+saloon property over to the Settlement that Felicia found herself
+installed in the very room where souls had been lost, as head of the
+department not only of cooking but of a course of housekeeping for
+girls who wished to go out to service. She was now a resident of the
+Settlement, and found a home with Mrs. Bruce and the other young
+women from the city who were residents. Martha, the violinist,
+remained at the place where the Bishop had first discovered the two
+girls, and came over to the Settlement certain evenings to give
+lessons in music.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Felicia, tell us your plan in full now," said the Bishop one
+evening when, in a rare interval of rest from the great pressure of
+work, he was with Dr. Bruce, and Felicia had come in from the other
+building.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Well, I have long thought of the hired girl problem," said Felicia
+with an air of wisdom that made Mrs. Bruce smile as she looked at
+the enthusiastic, vital beauty of this young girl, transformed into
+a new creature by the promise she had made to live the Christ-like
+life. "And I have reached certain conclusions in regard to it that
+you men are not yet able to fathom, but Mrs. Bruce will understand
+me."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"We acknowledge our infancy, Felicia. Go on," said the Bishop
+humbly.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Then this is what I propose to do. The old saloon building is large
+enough to arrange into a suite of rooms that will represent an
+ordinary house. My plan is to have it so arranged, and then teach
+housekeeping and cooking to girls who will afterwards go out to
+service. The course will be six months' long; in that time I will
+teach plain cooking, neatness, quickness, and a love of good work."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Hold on, Felicia!" the Bishop interrupted, "this is not an age of
+miracles!"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Then we will make it one," replied Felicia. "I know this seems like
+an impossibility, but I want to try it. I know a score of girls
+already who will take the course, and if we can once establish
+something like an esprit de corps among the girls themselves, I am
+sure it will be of great value to them. I know already that the pure
+food is working a revolution in many families."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Felicia, if you can accomplish half what you propose it will bless
+this community," said Mrs. Bruce. "I don't see how you can do it,
+but I say, God bless you, as you try."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"So say we all!" cried Dr. Bruce and the Bishop, and Felicia plunged
+into the working out of her plan with the enthusiasm of her
+discipleship which every day grew more and more practical and
+serviceable.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+It must be said here that Felicia's plan succeeded beyond all
+expectations. She developed wonderful powers of persuasion, and
+taught her girls with astonishing rapidity to do all sorts of
+housework. In time, the graduates of Felicia's cooking school came
+to be prized by housekeepers all over the city. But that is
+anticipating our story. The history of the Settlement has never yet
+been written. When it is Felicia's part will be found of very great
+importance.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The depth of winter found Chicago presenting, as every great city of
+the world presents to the eyes of Christendom the marked contrast
+between riches and poverty, between culture, refinement, luxury,
+ease, and ignorance, depravity, destitution and the bitter struggle
+for bread. It was a hard winter but a gay winter. Never had there
+been such a succession of parties, receptions, balls, dinners,
+banquets, fetes, gayeties. Never had the opera and the theatre been
+so crowded with fashionable audiences. Never had there been such a
+lavish display of jewels and fine dresses and equipages. And on the
+other hand, never had the deep want and suffering been so cruel, so
+sharp, so murderous. Never had the winds blown so chilling over the
+lake and through the thin shells of tenements in the neighborhood of
+the Settlement. Never had the pressure for food and fuel and clothes
+been so urgently thrust up against the people of the city in their
+most importunate and ghastly form. Night after night the Bishop and
+Dr. Bruce with their helpers went out and helped save men and women
+and children from the torture of physical privation. Vast quantities
+of food and clothing and large sums of money were donated by the
+churches, the charitable societies, the civic authorities and the
+benevolent associations. But the personal touch of the Christian
+disciple was very hard to secure for personal work. Where was the
+discipleship that was obeying the Master's command to go itself to
+the suffering and give itself with its gift in order to make the
+gift of value in time to come? The Bishop found his heart sing
+within him as he faced this fact more than any other. Men would give
+money who would not think of giving themselves. And the money they
+gave did not represent any real sacrifice because they did not miss
+it. They gave what was the easiest to give, what hurt them the
+least. Where did the sacrifice come in? Was this following Jesus?
+Was this going with Him all the way? He had been to members of his
+own aristocratic, splendidly wealthy congregations, and was appalled
+to find how few men and women of that luxurious class in the
+churches would really suffer any genuine inconvenience for the sake
+of suffering humanity. Is charity the giving of worn-out garments?
+Is it a ten-dollar bill given to a paid visitor or secretary of some
+benevolent organization in the church? Shall the man never go and
+give his gift himself? Shall the woman never deny herself her
+reception or her party or her musicale, and go and actually touch,
+herself, the foul, sinful sore of diseased humanity as it festers in
+the great metropolis? Shall charity be conveniently and easily done
+through some organization? Is it possible to organize the affections
+so that love shall work disagreeable things by proxy?
+</P>
+
+<P>
+All this the Bishop asked as he plunged deeper into the sin and
+sorrow of that bitter winter. He was bearing his cross with joy. But
+he burned and fought within over the shifting of personal love by
+the many upon the hearts of the few. And still, silently,
+powerfully, resistlessly, the Holy Spirit was moving through the
+churches, even the aristocratic, wealthy, ease-loving members who
+shunned the terrors of the social problem as they would shun a
+contagious disease.
+</P>
+
+<BR><BR><BR>
+
+<A NAME="chap29"></A>
+<H3 ALIGN="center">
+Chapter Twenty-nine
+</H3>
+
+<P>
+THE breakfast hour at the settlement was the one hour in the day
+when the whole family found a little breathing space to fellowship
+together. It was an hour of relaxation. There was a great deal of
+good-natured repartee and much real wit and enjoyable fun at this
+hour. The Bishop told his best stories. Dr. Bruce was at his best in
+anecdote. This company of disciples was healthily humorous in spite
+of the atmosphere of sorrow that constantly surrounded them. In
+fact, the Bishop often said the faculty of humor was as God-given as
+any other and in his own case it was the only safety valve he had
+for the tremendous pressure put upon him.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+This particular morning he was reading extracts from a morning paper
+for the benefit of the others. Suddenly he paused and his face
+instantly grew stern and sad. The rest looked up and a hush fell
+over the table.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Shot and killed while taking a lump of coal from a car! His family
+was freezing and he had had no work for six months. Six children and
+a wife all packed into a cabin with three rooms, on the West Side.
+One child wrapped in rags in a closet!"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+These were headlines that he read slowly. He then went on and read
+the detailed account of the shooting and the visit of the reporter
+to the tenement where the family lived. He finished, and there was
+silence around the table. The humor of the hour was swept out of
+existence by this bit of human tragedy. The great city roared about
+the Settlement. The awful current of human life was flowing in a
+great stream past the Settlement House, and those who had work were
+hurrying to it in a vast throng. But thousands were going down in
+the midst of that current, clutching at last hopes, dying literally
+in a land of plenty because the boon of physical toil was denied
+them.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+There were various comments on the part of the residents. One of the
+new-comers, a young man preparing for the ministry, said: "Why don't
+the man apply to one of the charity organizations for help? Or to
+the city? It certainly is not true that even at its worst this city
+full of Christian people would knowingly allow any one to go without
+food or fuel."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"No, I don't believe it would," replied Dr. Bruce. "But we don't
+know the history of this man's case. He may have asked for help so
+often before that, finally, in a moment of desperation he determined
+to help himself. I have known such cases this winter."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"That is not the terrible fact in this case," said the Bishop. "The
+awful thing about it is the fact that the man had not had any work
+for six months."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Why don't such people go out into the country?" asked the divinity
+student.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Some one at the table who had made a special study of the
+opportunities for work in the country answered the question.
+According to the investigator the places that were possible for work
+in the country were exceedingly few for steady employment, and in
+almost every case they were offered only to men without families.
+Suppose a man's wife or children were ill. How would he move or get
+into the country? How could he pay even the meager sum necessary to
+move his few goods? There were a thousand reasons probably why this
+particular man did not go elsewhere.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Meanwhile there are the wife and children," said Mrs. Bruce. "How
+awful! Where is the place, did you say?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Why, it is only three blocks from here. This is the 'Penrose
+district.' I believe Penrose himself owns half of the houses in that
+block. They are among the worst houses in this part of the city. And
+Penrose is a church member."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Yes, he belongs to the Nazareth Avenue Church," replied Dr. Bruce
+in a low voice.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The Bishop rose from the table the very figure of divine wrath. He
+had opened his lips to say what seldom came from him in the way of
+denunciation, when the bell rang and one of the residents went to
+the door.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Tell Dr. Bruce and the Bishop I want to see them. Penrose is the
+name&mdash;Clarence Penrose. Dr. Bruce knows me."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The family at the breakfast table heard every word. The Bishop
+exchanged a significant look with Dr. Bruce and the two men
+instantly left the table and went out into the hall.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Come in here, Penrose," said Dr. Bruce, and they ushered the
+visitor into the reception room, closed the door and were alone.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Clarence Penrose was one of the most elegant looking men in Chicago.
+He came from an aristocratic family of great wealth and social
+distinction. He was exceedingly wealthy and had large property
+holdings in different parts of the city. He had been a member of Dr.
+Bruce's church many years. He faced the two ministers with a look of
+agitation on his face that showed plainly the mark of some unusual
+experience. He was very pale and his lips trembled as he spoke. When
+had Clarence Penrose ever before yielded to such a strange emotion?
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"This affair of the shooting! You understand? You have read it? The
+family lived in one of my houses. It is a terrible event. But that
+is not the primary cause of my visit." He stammered and looked
+anxiously into the faces of the two men. The Bishop still looked
+stern. He could not help feeling that this elegant man of leisure
+could have done a great deal to alleviate the horrors in his
+tenements, possibly have prevented this tragedy if he had sacrificed
+some of his personal ease and luxury to better the conditions of the
+people in his district.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Penrose turned toward Dr. Bruce. "Doctor!" he exclaimed, and there
+was almost a child's terror in his voice. "I came to say that I have
+had an experience so unusual that nothing but the supernatural can
+explain it. You remember I was one of those who took the pledge to
+do as Jesus would do. I thought at the time, poor fool that I was,
+that I had all along been doing the Christian thing. I gave
+liberally out of my abundance to the church and charity. I never
+gave myself to cost me any suffering. I have been living in a
+perfect hell of contradictions ever since I took that pledge. My
+little girl, Diana you remember, also took the pledge with me. She
+has been asking me a great many questions lately about the poor
+people and where they live. I was obliged to answer her. One of her
+questions last night touched my sore! 'Do you own any houses where
+these poor people live? Are they nice and warm like ours?' You know
+how a child will ask questions like these. I went to bed tormented
+with what I now know to be the divine arrows of conscience. I could
+not sleep. I seemed to see the judgment day. I was placed before the
+Judge. I was asked to give an account of my deeds done in the body.
+'How many sinful souls had I visited in prison? What had I done with
+my stewardship? How about those tenements where people froze in
+winter and stifled in summer? Did I give any thought to them except
+to receive the rentals from them? Where did my suffering come in?
+Would Jesus have done as I had done and was doing? Had I broken my
+pledge? How had I used the money and the culture and the social
+influence I possessed? Had I used it to bless humanity, to relieve
+the suffering, to bring joy to the distressed and hope to the
+desponding? I had received much. How much had I given?'
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"All this came to me in a waking vision as distinctly as I see you
+two men and myself now. I was unable to see the end of the vision. I
+had a confused picture in my mind of the suffering Christ pointing a
+condemning finger at me, and the rest was shut out by mist and
+darkness. I have not slept for twenty-four hours. The first thing I
+saw this morning was the account of the shooting at the coal yards.
+I read the account with a feeling of horror I have not been able to
+shake off. I am a guilty creature before God."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Penrose paused suddenly. The two men looked at him solemnly. What
+power of the Holy Spirit moved the soul of this hitherto
+self-satisfied, elegant, cultured man who belonged to the social
+life that was accustomed to go its way placidly, unmindful of the
+great sorrows of a great city and practically ignorant of what it
+means to suffer for Jesus' sake? Into that room came a breath such
+as before swept over Henry Maxwell's church and through Nazareth
+avenue. The Bishop laid his hand on the shoulder of Penrose and
+said: "My brother, God has been very near to you. Let us thank Him."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Yes! yes!" sobbed Penrose. He sat down on a chair and covered his
+face. The Bishop prayed. Then Penrose quietly said: "Will you go
+with me to that house?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+For answer the two men put on their overcoats and went with him to
+the home of the dead man's family.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+That was the beginning of a new and strange life for Clarence
+Penrose. From the moment he stepped into that wretched hovel of a
+home and faced for the first time in his life a despair and
+suffering such as he had read of but did not know by personal
+contact, he dated a new life. It would be another long story to tell
+how, in obedience to his pledge he began to do with his tenement
+property as he knew Jesus would do. What would Jesus do with
+tenement property if He owned it in Chicago or any other great city
+of the world? Any man who can imagine any true answers to this
+question can easily tell what Clarence Penrose began to do.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Now before that winter reached its bitter climax many things
+occurred in the city which concerned the lives of all the characters
+in this history of the disciples who promised to walk in His steps.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+It chanced by one of those coincidences that seem to occur
+preternaturally that one afternoon just as Felicia came out of the
+Settlement with a basket of food which she was going to leave as a
+sample with a baker in the Penrose district, Stephen Clyde opened
+the door of the carpenter shop in the basement and came out in time
+to meet her as she reached the sidewalk.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Let me carry your basket, please," he said.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Why do you say 'please'?" asked Felicia, handing over the basket
+while they walked along.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I would like to say something else," replied Stephen, glancing at
+her shyly and yet with a boldness that frightened him, for he had
+been loving Felicia more every day since he first saw her and
+especially since she stepped into the shop that day with the Bishop,
+and for weeks now they had been thrown in each other's company.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"What else?" asked Felicia, innocently falling into the trap.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Why&mdash;" said Stephen, turning his fair, noble face full toward her
+and eyeing her with the look of one who would have the best of all
+things in the universe, "I would like to say: 'Let me carry your
+basket, dear Felicia'."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Felicia never looked so beautiful in her life. She walked on a
+little way without even turning her face toward him. It was no
+secret with her own heart that she had given it to Stephen some time
+ago. Finally she turned and said shyly, while her face grew rosy and
+her eyes tender: "Why don't you say it, then?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"May I?" cried Stephen, and he was so careless for a minute of the
+way he held the basket, that Felicia exclaimed:
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Yes! But oh, don't drop my goodies!"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Why, I wouldn't drop anything so precious for all the world, dear
+Felicia," said Stephen, who now walked on air for several blocks,
+and what was said during that walk is private correspondence that we
+have no right to read. Only it is a matter of history that day that
+the basket never reached its destination, and that over in the other
+direction, late in the afternoon, the Bishop, walking along quietly
+from the Penrose district, in rather a secluded spot near the
+outlying part of the Settlement district, heard a familiar voice
+say:
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"But tell me, Felicia, when did you begin to love me?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I fell in love with a little pine shaving just above your ear that
+day when I saw you in the shop!" said the other voice with a laugh
+so clear, so pure, so sweet that it did one good to hear it.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Where are you going with that basket?" he tried to say sternly.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"We are taking it to&mdash;where are we taking it, Felicia?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Dear Bishop, we are taking it home to begin&mdash;"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"To begin housekeeping with," finished Stephen, coming to the
+rescue.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Are you?" said the Bishop. "I hope you will invite me to share. I
+know what Felicia's cooking is."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Bishop, dear Bishop!" said Felicia, and she did not pretend to hide
+her happiness; "indeed, you shall be the most honored guest. Are you
+glad?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Yes, I am," he replied, interpreting Felicia's words as she wished.
+Then he paused a moment and said gently: "God bless you both!" and
+went his way with a tear in his eye and a prayer in his heart, and
+left them to their joy.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Yes. Shall not the same divine power of love that belongs to earth
+be lived and sung by the disciples of the Man of Sorrows and the
+Burden-bearer of sins? Yea, verily! And this man and woman shall
+walk hand in hand through this great desert of human woe in this
+city, strengthening each other, growing more loving with the
+experience of the world's sorrows, walking in His steps even closer
+yet because of their love for each other, bringing added blessing to
+thousands of wretched creatures because they are to have a home of
+their own to share with the homeless. "For this cause," said our
+Lord Jesus Christ, "shall a man leave his father and mother and
+cleave unto his wife." And Felicia and Stephen, following the
+Master, love him with a deeper, truer service and devotion because
+of the earthly affection which Heaven itself sanctions with its
+solemn blessing.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+But it was a little after the love story of the Settlement became a
+part of its glory that Henry Maxwell of Raymond came to Chicago with
+Rachel Winslow and Virginia Page and Rollin and Alexander Powers and
+President Marsh, and the occasion was a remarkable gathering at the
+hall of the Settlement arranged by the Bishop and Dr. Bruce, who had
+finally persuaded Mr. Maxwell and his fellow disciples in Raymond to
+come on to be present at this meeting.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+There were invited into the Settlement Hall, meeting for that night
+men out of work, wretched creatures who had lost faith in God and
+man, anarchists and infidels, free-thinkers and no-thinkers. The
+representation of all the city's worst, most hopeless, most
+dangerous, depraved elements faced Henry Maxwell and the other
+disciples when the meeting began. And still the Holy Spirit moved
+over the great, selfish, pleasure-loving, sin-stained city, and it
+lay in God's hand, not knowing all that awaited it. Every man and
+woman at the meeting that night had seen the Settlement motto over
+the door blazing through the transparency set up by the divinity
+student: "What would Jesus do?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+And Henry Maxwell, as for the first time he stepped under the
+doorway, was touched with a deeper emotion than he had felt in a
+long time as he thought of the first time that question had come to
+him in the piteous appeal of the shabby young man who had appeared
+in the First Church of Raymond at the morning service.
+</P>
+
+<BR><BR><BR>
+
+<A NAME="chap30"></A>
+<H3 ALIGN="center">
+Chapter Thirty
+</H3>
+
+<P CLASS="intro">
+"Now, when Jesus heard these things, He said unto him, Yet lackest
+thou one thing: sell all that thou hast, and distribute unto the
+poor, and thou shalt have treasure in heaven: and come, follow Me."
+</P>
+
+<BR>
+
+<P>
+WHEN Henry Maxwell began to speak to the souls crowded into the
+Settlement Hall that night it is doubtful if he ever faced such an
+audience in his life. It is quite certain that the city of Raymond
+did not contain such a variety of humanity. Not even the Rectangle
+at its worst could furnish so many men and women who had fallen
+entirely out of the reach of the church and of all religious and
+even Christian influences.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+What did he talk about? He had already decided that point. He told
+in the simplest language he could command some of the results of
+obedience to the pledge as it had been taken in Raymond. Every man
+and woman in that audience knew something about Jesus Christ. They
+all had some idea of His character, and however much they had grown
+bitter toward the forms of Christian ecclesiasticism or the social
+system, they preserved some standard of right and truth, and what
+little some of them still retained was taken from the person of the
+Peasant of Galilee.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+So they were interested in what Maxwell said. "What would Jesus do?"
+He began to apply the question to the social problem in general,
+after finishing the story of Raymond. The audience was respectfully
+attentive. It was more than that. It was genuinely interested. As
+Mr. Maxwell went on, faces all over the hall leaned forward in a way
+seldom seen in church audiences or anywhere except among workingmen
+or the people of the street when once they are thoroughly aroused.
+"What would Jesus do?" Suppose that were the motto not only of the
+churches but of the business men, the politicians, the newspapers,
+the workingmen, the society people&mdash;how long would it take under
+such a standard of conduct to revolutionize the world? What was the
+trouble with the world? It was suffering from selfishness. No one
+ever lived who had succeeded in overcoming selfishness like Jesus.
+If men followed Him regardless of results the world would at once
+begin to enjoy a new life.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Maxwell never knew how much it meant to hold the respectful
+attention of that hall full of diseased and sinful humanity. The
+Bishop and Dr. Bruce, sitting there, looking on, seeing many faces
+that represented scorn of creeds, hatred of the social order,
+desperate narrowness and selfishness, marveled that even so soon
+under the influence of the Settlement life, the softening process
+had begun already to lessen the bitterness of hearts, many of which
+had grown bitter from neglect and indifference.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+And still, in spite of the outward show of respect to the speaker,
+no one, not even the Bishop, had any true conception of the feeling
+pent up in that room that night. Among those who had heard of the
+meeting and had responded to the invitation were twenty or thirty
+men out of work who had strolled past the Settlement that afternoon,
+read the notice of the meeting, and had come in out of curiosity and
+to escape the chill east wind. It was a bitter night and the saloons
+were full. But in that whole district of over thirty thousand souls,
+with the exception of the saloons, there was not a door open except
+the clean, pure Christian door of the Settlement. Where would a man
+without a home or without work or without friends naturally go
+unless to the saloon?
+</P>
+
+<P>
+It had been the custom at the Settlement for a free discussion to
+follow any open meeting of this kind, and when Mr. Maxwell finished
+and sat down, the Bishop, who presided that night, rose and made the
+announcement that any man in the hall was at liberty to ask
+questions, to speak out his feelings or declare his convictions,
+always with the understanding that whoever took part was to observe
+the simple rules that governed parliamentary bodies and obey the
+three-minute rule which, by common consent, would be enforced on
+account of the numbers present.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Instantly a number of voices from men who had been at previous
+meetings of this kind exclaimed, "Consent! consent!"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The Bishop sat down, and immediately a man near the middle of the
+hall rose and began to speak.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I want to say that what Mr. Maxwell has said tonight comes pretty
+close to me. I knew Jack Manning, the fellow he told about who died
+at his house. I worked on the next case to his in a printer's shop
+in Philadelphia for two years. Jack was a good fellow. He loaned me
+five dollars once when I was in a hole and I never got a chance to
+pay him back. He moved to New York, owing to a change in the
+management of the office that threw him out, and I never saw him
+again. When the linotype machines came in I was one of the men to go
+out, just as he did. I have been out most of the time since. They
+say inventions are a good thing. I don't always see it myself; but I
+suppose I'm prejudiced. A man naturally is when he loses a steady
+job because a machine takes his place. About this Christianity he
+tells about, it's all right. But I never expect to see any such
+sacrifices on the part of the church people. So far as my
+observation goes they're just as selfish and as greedy for money and
+worldly success as anybody. I except the Bishop and Dr. Bruce and a
+few others. But I never found much difference between men of the
+world, as they are called, and church members when it came to
+business and money making. One class is just as bad as another
+there."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Cries of "That's so!" "You're right!" "Of course!" interrupted the
+speaker, and the minute he sat down two men who were on the floor
+for several seconds before the first speaker was through began to
+talk at once.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The Bishop called them to order and indicated which was entitled to
+the floor. The man who remained standing began eagerly:
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"This is the first time I was ever in here, and may be it'll be the
+last. Fact is, I am about at the end of my string. I've tramped this
+city for work till I'm sick. I'm in plenty of company. Say! I'd like
+to ask a question of the minister, if it's fair. May I?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"That's for Mr. Maxwell to say," said the Bishop.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"By all means," replied Mr. Maxwell quickly. "Of course, I will not
+promise to answer it to the gentleman's satisfaction."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"This is my question." The man leaned forward and stretched out a
+long arm with a certain dramatic force that grew naturally enough
+out of his condition as a human being. "I want to know what Jesus
+would do in my case. I haven't had a stroke of work for two months.
+I've got a wife and three children, and I love them as much as if I
+was worth a million dollars. I've been living off a little earnings
+I saved up during the World's Fair jobs I got. I'm a carpenter by
+trade, and I've tried every way I know to get a job. You say we
+ought to take for our motto, 'What would Jesus do?' What would He do
+if He was out of work like me? I can't be somebody else and ask the
+question. I want to work. I'd give anything to grow tired of working
+ten hours a day the way I used to. Am I to blame because I can't
+manufacture a job for myself? I've got to live, and my wife and my
+children have got to live. But how? What would Jesus do? You say
+that's the question we ought to ask."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Mr. Maxwell sat there staring at the great sea of faces all intent
+on his, and no answer to this man's question seemed for the time
+being to be possible. "O God!" his heart prayed; "this is a question
+that brings up the entire social problem in all its perplexing
+entanglement of human wrongs and its present condition contrary to
+every desire of God for a human being's welfare. Is there any
+condition more awful than for a man in good health, able and eager
+to work, with no means of honest livelihood unless he does work,
+actually unable to get anything to do, and driven to one of three
+things: begging or charity at the hands of friends or strangers,
+suicide or starvation? 'What would Jesus do?'" It was a fair
+question for the man to ask. It was the only question he could ask,
+supposing him to be a disciple of Jesus. But what a question for any
+man to be obliged to answer under such conditions?
+</P>
+
+<P>
+All this and more did Henry Maxwell ponder. All the others were
+thinking in the same way. The Bishop sat there with a look so stern
+and sad that it was not hard to tell how the question moved him. Dr.
+Bruce had his head bowed. The human problem had never seemed to him
+so tragical as since he had taken the pledge and left his church to
+enter the Settlement. What would Jesus do? It was a terrible
+question. And still the man stood there, tall and gaunt and almost
+terrible, with his arm stretched out in an appeal which grew every
+second in meaning. At length Mr. Maxwell spoke.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Is there any man in the room, who is a Christian disciple, who has
+been in this condition and has tried to do as Jesus would do? If so,
+such a man can answer this question better than I can."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+There was a moment's hush over the room and then a man near the
+front of the hall slowly rose. He was an old man, and the hand he
+laid on the back of the bench in front of him trembled as he spoke.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"I think I can safely say that I have many times been in just such a
+condition, and I have always tried to be a Christian under all
+conditions. I don't know as I have always asked this question, 'What
+would Jesus do?' when I have been out of work, but I do know I have
+tried to be His disciple at all times. Yes," the man went on, with a
+sad smile that was more pathetic to the Bishop and Mr. Maxwell than
+the younger man's grim despair; "yes, I have begged, and I have been
+to charity institutions, and I have done everything when out of a
+job except steal and lie in order to get food and fuel. I don't know
+as Jesus would have done some of the things I have been obliged to
+do for a living, but I know I have never knowingly done wrong when
+out of work. Sometimes I think maybe He would have starved sooner
+than beg. I don't know."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The old man's voice trembled and he looked around the room timidly.
+A silence followed, broken by a fierce voice from a large,
+black-haired, heavily-bearded man who sat three seats from the
+Bishop. The minute he spoke nearly every man in the hall leaned
+forward eagerly. The man who had asked the question, "What would
+Jesus do in my case?" slowly sat down and whispered to the man next
+to him: "Who's that?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"That's Carlsen, the Socialist leader. Now you'll hear something."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"This is all bosh, to my mind," began Carlsen, while his great
+bristling beard shook with the deep inward anger of the man. "The
+whole of our system is at fault. What we call civilization is rotten
+to the core. There is no use trying to hide it or cover it up. We
+live in an age of trusts and combines and capitalistic greed that
+means simply death to thousands of innocent men, women and children.
+I thank God, if there is a God&mdash;which I very much doubt&mdash;that I, for
+one, have never dared to marry and make a home. Home! Talk of hell!
+Is there any bigger one than this man and his three children has on
+his hands right this minute? And he's only one out of thousands. And
+yet this city, and every other big city in this country, has its
+thousands of professed Christians who have all the luxuries and
+comforts, and who go to church Sundays and sing their hymns about
+giving all to Jesus and bearing the cross and following Him all the
+way and being saved! I don't say that there aren't good men and
+women among them, but let the minister who has spoken to us here
+tonight go into any one of a dozen aristocratic churches I could
+name and propose to the members to take any such pledge as the one
+he's mentioned here tonight, and see how quick the people would
+laugh at him for a fool or a crank or a fanatic. Oh, no! That's not
+the remedy. That can't ever amount to anything. We've got to have a
+new start in the way of government. The whole thing needs
+reconstructing. I don't look for any reform worth anything to come
+out of the churches. They are not with the people. They are with the
+aristocrats, with the men of money. The trusts and monopolies have
+their greatest men in the churches. The ministers as a class are
+their slaves. What we need is a system that shall start from the
+common basis of socialism, founded on the rights of the common
+people&mdash;"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Carlsen had evidently forgotten all about the three-minutes rule and
+was launching himself into a regular oration that meant, in his
+usual surroundings before his usual audience, an hour at least, when
+the man just behind him pulled him down unceremoniously and arose.
+Carlsen was angry at first and threatened a little disturbance, but
+the Bishop reminded him of the rule, and he subsided with several
+mutterings in his beard, while the next speaker began with a very
+strong eulogy on the value of the single tax as a genuine remedy for
+all the social ills. He was followed by a man who made a bitter
+attack on the churches and ministers, and declared that the two
+great obstacles in the way of all true reform were the courts and
+the ecclesiastical machines.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+When he sat down a man who bore every mark of being a street laborer
+sprang to his feet and poured a perfect torrent of abuse against the
+corporations, especially the railroads. The minute his time was up a
+big, brawny fellow, who said he was a metal worker by trade, claimed
+the floor and declared that the remedy for the social wrongs was
+Trades Unionism. This, he said, would bring on the millennium for
+labor more surely than anything else. The next man endeavored to
+give some reasons why so many persons were out of employment, and
+condemned inventions as works of the devil. He was loudly applauded
+by the rest.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Finally the Bishop called time on the "free for all," and asked
+Rachel to sing.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Rachel Winslow had grown into a very strong, healthful, humble
+Christian during that wonderful year in Raymond dating from the
+Sunday when she first took the pledge to do as Jesus would do, and
+her great talent for song had been fully consecrated to the service
+of the Master. When she began to sing tonight at this Settlement
+meeting, she had never prayed more deeply for results to come from
+her voice, the voice which she now regarded as the Master's, to be
+used for Him.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Certainly her prayer was being answered as she sang. She had chosen
+the words,
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Hark! The voice of Jesus calling, Follow me, follow me!"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Again Henry Maxwell, sitting there, was reminded of his first night
+at the Rectangle in the tent when Rachel sang the people into quiet.
+The effect was the same here. What wonderful power a good voice
+consecrated to the Master's service always is! Rachel's great
+natural ability would have made her one of the foremost opera
+singers of the age. Surely this audience had never heard such a
+melody. How could it? The men who had drifted in from the street sat
+entranced by a voice which "back in the world," as the Bishop said,
+never could be heard by the common people because the owner of it
+would charge two or three dollars for the privilege. The song poured
+out through the hall as free and glad as if it were a foretaste of
+salvation itself. Carlsen, with his great, black-bearded face
+uplifted, absorbed the music with the deep love of it peculiar to
+his nationality, and a tear ran over his cheek and glistened in his
+beard as his face softened and became almost noble in its aspect.
+The man out of work who had wanted to know what Jesus would do in
+his place sat with one grimy hand on the back of the bench in front
+of him, with his mouth partly open, his great tragedy for the moment
+forgotten. The song, while it lasted, was food and work and warmth
+and union with his wife and babies once more. The man who had spoken
+so fiercely against the churches and ministers sat with his head
+erect, at first with a look of stolid resistance, as if he
+stubbornly resisted the introduction into the exercises of anything
+that was even remotely connected with the church or its forms of
+worship. But gradually he yielded to the power that was swaying the
+hearts of all the persons in that room, and a look of sad
+thoughtfulness crept over his face.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The Bishop said that night while Rachel was singing that if the
+world of sinful, diseased, depraved, lost humanity could only have
+the gospel preached to it by consecrated prima donnas and
+professional tenors and altos and bassos, he believed it would
+hasten the coming of the Kingdom quicker than any other one force.
+"Why, oh why," he cried in his heart as he listened, "has the
+world's great treasure of song been so often held far from the poor
+because the personal possessor of voice or fingers, capable of
+stirring divinest melody, has so often regarded the gift as
+something with which to make money? Shall there be no martyrs among
+the gifted ones of the earth? Shall there be no giving of this great
+gift as well as of others?"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+And Henry Maxwell, again as before, called up that other audience at
+the Rectangle with increasing longing for a larger spread of the new
+discipleship. What he had seen and heard at the Settlement burned
+into him deeper the belief that the problem of the city would be
+solved if the Christians in it should once follow Jesus as He gave
+commandment. But what of this great mass of humanity, neglected and
+sinful, the very kind of humanity the Savior came to save, with all
+its mistakes and narrowness, its wretchedness and loss of hope,
+above all its unqualified bitterness towards the church? That was
+what smote him deepest. Was the church then so far from the Master
+that the people no longer found Him in the church? Was it true that
+the church had lost its power over the very kind of humanity which
+in the early ages of Christianity it reached in the greatest
+numbers? How much was true in what the Socialist leader said about
+the uselessness of looking to the church for reform or redemption,
+because of the selfishness and seclusion and aristocracy of its
+members?
+</P>
+
+<P>
+He was more and more impressed with the appalling fact that the
+comparatively few men in that hall, now being held quiet for a while
+by Rachel's voice, represented thousands of others just like them,
+to whom a church and a minister stood for less than a saloon or a
+beer garden as a source of comfort or happiness. Ought it to be so?
+If the church members were all doing as Jesus would do, could it
+remain true that armies of men would walk the streets for jobs and
+hundreds of them curse the church and thousands of them find in the
+saloon their best friend? How far were the Christians responsible
+for this human problem that was personally illustrated right in this
+hall tonight? Was it true that the great city churches would as a
+rule refuse to walk in Jesus' steps so closely as to
+suffer&mdash;actually suffer&mdash;for His sake?
+</P>
+
+<BR><BR><BR>
+
+<A NAME="chap31"></A>
+<H3 ALIGN="center">
+Chapter Thirty-one
+</H3>
+
+<P>
+HE had planned when he came to the city to return to Raymond and be
+in his own pulpit on Sunday. But Friday morning he had received at
+the Settlement a call from the pastor of one of the largest churches
+in Chicago, and had been invited to fill the pulpit for both morning
+and evening service.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+At first he hesitated, but finally accepted, seeing in it the hand
+of the Spirit's guiding power. He would test his own question. He
+would prove the truth or falsity of the charge made against the
+church at the Settlement meeting. How far would it go in its
+self-denial for Jesus' sake? How closely would it walk in His steps?
+Was the church willing to suffer for its Master?
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Saturday night he spent in prayer, nearly the whole night. There had
+never been so great a wrestling in his soul, not even during his
+strongest experiences in Raymond. He had in fact entered upon
+another new experience. The definition of his own discipleship was
+receiving an added test at this time, and he was being led into a
+larger truth of the Lord.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Sunday morning the great church was filled to its utmost. Henry
+Maxwell, coming into the pulpit from that all-night vigil, felt the
+pressure of a great curiosity on the part of the people. They had
+heard of the Raymond movement, as all the churches had, and the
+recent action of Dr. Bruce had added to the general interest in the
+pledge. With this curiosity was something deeper, more serious. Mr.
+Maxwell felt that also. And in the knowledge that the Spirit's
+presence was his living strength, he brought his message and gave it
+to that church that day.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+He had never been what would be called a great preacher. He had not
+the force nor the quality that makes remarkable preachers. But ever
+since he had promised to do as Jesus would do, he had grown in a
+certain quality of persuasiveness that had all the essentials of
+true eloquence. This morning the people felt the complete sincerity
+and humility of a man who had gone deep into the heart of a great
+truth.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+After telling briefly of some results in his own church in Raymond
+since the pledge was taken, he went on to ask the question he had
+been asking since the Settlement meeting. He had taken for his theme
+the story of the young man who came to Jesus asking what he must do
+to obtain eternal life. Jesus had tested him. "Sell all that thou
+hast and give to the poor, and thou shalt have treasure in heaven;
+and come follow me." But the young man was not willing to suffer to
+that extent. If following Jesus meant suffering in that way, he was
+not willing. He would like to follow Jesus, but not if he had to
+give so much.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Is it true," continued Henry Maxwell, and his fine, thoughtful face
+glowed with a passion of appeal that stirred the people as they had
+seldom been stirred, "is it true that the church of today, the
+church that is called after Christ's own name, would refuse to
+follow Him at the expense of suffering, of physical loss, of
+temporary gain? The statement was made at a large gathering in the
+Settlement last week by a leader of workingmen that it was hopeless
+to look to the church for any reform or redemption of society. On
+what was that statement based? Plainly on the assumption that the
+church contains for the most part men and women who think more 'of
+their own ease and luxury' than of the sufferings and needs and sins
+of humanity. How far is that true? Are the Christians of America
+ready to have their discipleship tested? How about the men who
+possess large wealth? Are they ready to take that wealth and use it
+as Jesus would? How about the men and women of great talent? Are
+they ready to consecrate that talent to humanity as Jesus
+undoubtedly would do?
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Is it not true that the call has come in this age for a new
+exhibition of Christian discipleship? You who live in this great
+sinful city must know that better than I do. Is it possible you can
+go your ways careless or thoughtless of the awful condition of men
+and women and children who are dying, body and soul, for need of
+Christian help? Is it not a matter of concern to you personally that
+the saloon kills its thousands more surely than war? Is it not a
+matter of personal suffering in some form for you that thousands of
+able-bodied, willing men tramp the streets of this city and all
+cities, crying for work and drifting into crime and suicide because
+they cannot find it? Can you say that this is none of your business?
+Let each man look after himself? Would it not be true, think you,
+that if every Christian in America did as Jesus would do, society
+itself, the business world, yes, the very political system under
+which our commercial and governmental activity is carried on, would
+be so changed that human suffering would be reduced to a minimum?
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"What would be the result if all the church members of this city
+tried to do as Jesus would do? It is not possible to say in detail
+what the effect would be. But it is easy to say, and it is true,
+that instantly the human problem would begin to find an adequate
+answer.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"What is the test of Christian discipleship? Is it not the same as
+in Christ's own time? Have our surroundings modified or changed the
+test? If Jesus were here today would He not call some of the members
+of this very church to do just what He commanded the young man, and
+ask them to give up their wealth and literally follow Him? I believe
+He would do that if He felt certain that any church member thought
+more of his possessions than of the Savior. The test would be the
+same today as then. I believe Jesus would demand He does demand
+now&mdash;as close a following, as much suffering, as great self-denial
+as when He lived in person on the earth and said, 'Except a man
+renounce all that he hath he cannot be my disciple.' That is, unless
+he is willing to do it for my sake, he cannot be my disciple.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"What would be the result if in this city every church member should
+begin to do as Jesus would do? It is not easy to go into details of
+the result. But we all know that certain things would be impossible
+that are now practiced by church members.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"What would Jesus do in the matter of wealth? How would He spend it?
+What principle would regulate His use of money? Would He be likely
+to live in great luxury and spend ten times as much on personal
+adornment and entertainment as He spent to relieve the needs of
+suffering humanity? How would Jesus be governed in the making of
+money? Would He take rentals from saloons and other disreputable
+property, or even from tenement property that was so constructed
+that the inmates had no such things as a home and no such
+possibility as privacy or cleanliness?
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"What would Jesus do about the great army of unemployed and
+desperate who tramp the streets and curse the church, or are
+indifferent to it, lost in the bitter struggle for the bread that
+tastes bitter when it is earned on account of the desperate conflict
+to get it? Would Jesus care nothing for them? Would He go His way in
+comparative ease and comfort? Would He say that it was none of His
+business? Would He excuse Himself from all responsibility to remove
+the causes of such a condition?
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"What would Jesus do in the center of a civilization that hurries so
+fast after money that the very girls employed in great business
+houses are not paid enough to keep soul and body together without
+fearful temptations so great that scores of them fall and are swept
+over the great boiling abyss; where the demands of trade sacrifice
+hundreds of lads in a business that ignores all Christian duties
+toward them in the way of education and moral training and personal
+affection? Would Jesus, if He were here today as a part of our age
+and commercial industry, feel nothing, do nothing, say nothing, in
+the face of these facts which every business man knows?
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"What would Jesus do? Is not that what the disciple ought to do? Is
+he not commanded to follow in His steps? How much is the
+Christianity of the age suffering for Him? Is it denying itself at
+the cost of ease, comfort, luxury, elegance of living? What does the
+age need more than personal sacrifice? Does the church do its duty
+in following Jesus when it gives a little money to establish
+missions or relieve extreme cases of want? Is it any sacrifice for a
+man who is worth ten million dollars simply to give ten thousand
+dollars for some benevolent work? Is he not giving something that
+cost him practically nothing so far as any personal suffering goes?
+Is it true that the Christian disciples today in most of our
+churches are living soft, easy, selfish lives, very far from any
+sacrifice that can be called sacrifice? What would Jesus do?
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"It is the personal element that Christian discipleship needs to
+emphasize. 'The gift without the giver is bare.' The Christianity
+that attempts to suffer by proxy is not the Christianity of Christ.
+Each individual Christian business man, citizen, needs to follow in
+His steps along the path of personal sacrifice to Him. There is not
+a different path today from that of Jesus' own times. It is the same
+path. The call of this dying century and of the new one soon to be,
+is a call for a new discipleship, a new following of Jesus, more
+like the early, simple, apostolic Christianity, when the disciples
+left all and literally followed the Master. Nothing but a
+discipleship of this kind can face the destructive selfishness of
+the age with any hope of overcoming it. There is a great quantity of
+nominal Christianity today. There is need of more of the real kind.
+We need revival of the Christianity of Christ. We have,
+unconsciously, lazily, selfishly, formally grown into a discipleship
+that Jesus himself would not acknowledge. He would say to many of us
+when we cry, 'Lord, Lord,' 'I never knew you!' Are we ready to take
+up the cross? Is it possible for this church to sing with exact
+truth,
+</P>
+
+<P CLASS="poem">
+ 'Jesus, I my cross have taken,<BR>
+ All to leave and follow Thee?'<BR>
+</P>
+
+<P>
+If we can sing that truly, then we may claim discipleship. But if
+our definition of being a Christian is simply to enjoy the
+privileges of worship, be generous at no expense to ourselves, have
+a good, easy time surrounded by pleasant friends and by comfortable
+things, live respectably and at the same time avoid the world's
+great stress of sin and trouble because it is too much pain to bear
+it&mdash;if this is our definition of Christianity, surely we are a long
+way from following the steps of Him who trod the way with groans and
+tears and sobs of anguish for a lost humanity; who sweat, as it
+were, great drops of blood, who cried out on the upreared cross, 'My
+God, my God, why hast thou forsaken me?'
+</P>
+
+<P>
+"Are we ready to make and live a new discipleship? Are we ready to
+reconsider our definition of a Christian? What is it to be a
+Christian? It is to imitate Jesus. It is to do as He would do. It is
+to walk in His steps."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+When Henry Maxwell finished his sermon, he paused and looked at the
+people with a look they never forgot and, at the moment, did not
+understand. Crowded into that fashionable church that day were
+hundreds of men and women who had for years lived the easy,
+satisfied life of a nominal Christianity. A great silence fell over
+the congregation. Through the silence there came to the
+consciousness of all the souls there present a knowledge, stranger
+to them now for years, of a Divine Power. Every one expected the
+preacher to call for volunteers who would do as Jesus would do. But
+Maxwell had been led by the Spirit to deliver his message this time
+and wait for results to come.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+He closed the service with a tender prayer that kept the Divine
+Presence lingering very near every hearer, and the people slowly
+rose to go out. Then followed a scene that would have been
+impossible if any mere man had been alone in his striving for
+results.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+Men and women in great numbers crowded around the platform to see
+Mr. Maxwell and to bring him the promise of their consecration to
+the pledge to do as Jesus would do. It was a voluntary, spontaneous
+movement that broke upon his soul with a result he could not
+measure. But had he not been praying for is very thing? It was an
+answer that more than met his desires.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+There followed this movement a prayer service that in its
+impressions repeated the Raymond experience. In the evening, to Mr.
+Maxwell's joy, the Endeavor Society almost to a member came forward,
+as so many of the church members had done in the morning, and
+seriously, solemnly, tenderly, took the pledge to do as Jesus would
+do. A deep wave of spiritual baptism broke over the meeting near its
+close that was indescribable in its tender, joyful, sympathetic
+results.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+That was a remarkable day in the history of that church, but even
+more so in the history of Henry Maxwell. He left the meeting very
+late. He went to his room at the Settlement where he was still
+stopping, and after an hour with the Bishop and Dr. Bruce, spent in
+a joyful rehearsal of the wonderful events of the day, he sat down
+to think over again by himself all the experience he was having as a
+Christian disciple.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+He had kneeled to pray, as he always did before going to sleep, and
+it was while he was on his knees that he had a waking vision of what
+might be in the world when once the new discipleship had made its
+way into the conscience and conscientiousness of Christendom. He was
+fully conscious of being awake, but no less certainly did it seem to
+him that he saw certain results with great distinctiveness, partly
+as realities of the future, partly great longings that they might be
+realities. And this is what Henry Maxwell saw in this waking vision:
+</P>
+
+<P>
+He saw himself, first, going back to the First Church in Raymond,
+living there in a simpler, more self-denying fashion than he had yet
+been willing to live, because he saw ways in which he could help
+others who were really dependent on him for help. He also saw, more
+dimly, that the time would come when his position as pastor of the
+church would cause him to suffer more on account of growing
+opposition to his interpretation of Jesus and His conduct. But this
+was vaguely outlined. Through it all he heard the words "My grace is
+sufficient for thee."
+</P>
+
+<P>
+He saw Rachel Winslow and Virginia Page going on with their work of
+service at the Rectangle, and reaching out loving hands of
+helpfulness far beyond the limits of Raymond. Rachel he saw married
+to Rollin Page, both fully consecrated to the Master's use, both
+following His steps with an eagerness intensified and purified by
+their love for each other. And Rachel's voice sang on, in slums and
+dark places of despair and sin, and drew lost souls back to God and
+heaven once more.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+He saw President Marsh of the college using his great learning and
+his great influence to purify the city, to ennoble its patriotism,
+to inspire the young men and women who loved as well as admired him
+to lives of Christian service, always teaching them that education
+means great responsibility for the weak and the ignorant.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+He saw Alexander Powers meeting with sore trials in his family life,
+with a constant sorrow in the estrangement of wife and friends, but
+still going his way in all honor, serving in all his strength the
+Master whom he had obeyed, even unto the loss of social distinction
+and wealth.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+He saw Milton Wright, the merchant, meeting with great reverses.
+Thrown upon the future by a combination of circumstances, with vast
+business interests involved in ruin through no fault of his own, but
+coming out of his reverses with clean Christian honor, to begin
+again and work up to a position where he could again be to hundreds
+of young men an example of what Jesus would do in business.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+He saw Edward Norman, editor of the NEWS, by means of the money
+given by Virginia, creating a force in journalism that in time came
+to be recognized as one of the real factors of the nation to mold
+its principles and actually shape its policy, a daily illustration
+of the might of a Christian press, and the first of a series of such
+papers begun and carried on by other disciples who had also taken
+the pledge.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+He saw Jasper Chase, who had denied his Master, growing into a cold,
+cynical, formal life, writing novels that were social successes, but
+each one with a sting in it, the reminder of his denial, the bitter
+remorse that, do what he would, no social success could remove.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+He saw Rose Sterling, dependent for some years upon her aunt and
+Felicia, finally married to a man far older than herself, accepting
+the burden of a relation that had no love in it on her part, because
+of her desire to be the wife of a rich man and enjoy the physical
+luxuries that were all of life to her. Over this life also the
+vision cast certain dark and awful shadows but they were not shown
+in detail.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+He saw Felicia and Stephen Clyde happily married, living a beautiful
+life together, enthusiastic, joyful in suffering, pouring out their
+great, strong, fragrant service into the dull, dark, terrible places
+of the great city, and redeeming souls through the personal touch of
+their home, dedicated to the Human Homesickness all about them.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+He saw Dr. Bruce and the Bishop going on with the Settlement work.
+He seemed to see the great blazing motto over the door enlarged,
+"What would Jesus do?" and by this motto every one who entered the
+Settlement walked in the steps of the Master.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+He saw Burns and his companion and a great company of men like them,
+redeemed and giving in turn to others, conquering their passions by
+the divine grace, and proving by their daily lives the reality of
+the new birth even in the lowest and most abandoned.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+And now the vision was troubled. It seemed to him that as he kneeled
+he began to pray, and the vision was more of a longing for a future
+than a reality in the future. The church of Jesus in the city and
+throughout the country! Would it follow Jesus? Was the movement
+begun in Raymond to spend itself in a few churches like Nazareth
+Avenue and the one where he had preached today, and then die away as
+a local movement, a stirring on the surface but not to extend deep
+and far? He felt with agony after the vision again. He thought he
+saw the church of Jesus in America open its heart to the moving of
+the Spirit and rise to the sacrifice of its ease and
+self-satisfaction in the name of Jesus. He thought he saw the motto,
+"What would Jesus do?" inscribed over every church door, and written
+on every church member's heart.
+</P>
+
+<P>
+The vision vanished. It came back clearer than before, and he saw
+the Endeavor Societies all over the world carrying in their great
+processions at some mighty convention a banner on which was written,
+"What would Jesus do?" And he thought in the faces of the young men
+and women he saw future joy of suffering, loss, self-denial,
+martyrdom. And when this part of the vision slowly faded, he saw the
+figure of the Son of God beckoning to him and to all the other
+actors in his life history. An Angel Choir somewhere was singing.
+There was a sound as of many voices and a shout as of a great
+victory. And the figure of Jesus grew more and more splendid. He
+stood at the end of a long flight of steps. "Yes! Yes! O my Master,
+has not the time come for this dawn of the millennium of Christian
+history? Oh, break upon the Christendom of this age with the light
+and the truth! Help us to follow Thee all the way!"
+</P>
+
+<P>
+He rose at last with the awe of one who has looked at heavenly
+things. He felt the human forces and the human sins of the world as
+never before. And with a hope that walks hand in hand with faith and
+love Henry Maxwell, disciple of Jesus, laid him down to sleep and
+dreamed of the regeneration of Christendom, and saw in his dream a
+church of Jesus without spot or wrinkle or any such thing, following
+him all the way, walking obediently in His steps.
+</P>
+
+<BR><BR><BR>
+
+<P CLASS="finis">
+THE END
+</P>
+
+<BR><BR><BR><BR>
+
+
+
+
+
+
+
+
+<pre>
+
+
+
+
+
+End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of In His Steps, by Charles M. Sheldon
+
+*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK IN HIS STEPS ***
+
+***** This file should be named 4540-h.htm or 4540-h.zip *****
+This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
+ https://www.gutenberg.org/4/5/4/4540/
+
+Produced by Charles Aldarondo. HTML version by Al Haines.
+
+Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
+will be renamed.
+
+Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
+one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
+(and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
+permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
+set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
+copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
+protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project
+Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
+charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you
+do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
+rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
+such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
+research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
+practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
+subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
+redistribution.
+
+
+
+*** START: FULL LICENSE ***
+
+THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
+PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
+
+To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
+distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
+(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
+Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
+Gutenberg-tm License (available with this file or online at
+https://gutenberg.org/license).
+
+
+Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic works
+
+1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
+and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
+(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
+the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
+all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
+If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
+terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
+entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
+
+1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
+used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
+agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
+things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
+even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
+paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
+and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works. See paragraph 1.E below.
+
+1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation"
+or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the
+collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
+individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
+located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
+copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
+works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
+are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
+Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
+freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
+this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
+the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
+keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
+Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.
+
+1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
+what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
+a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
+the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
+before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
+creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
+Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
+the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
+States.
+
+1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
+
+1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
+access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
+whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
+phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project
+Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
+copied or distributed:
+
+This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
+almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
+re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
+with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
+
+1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
+from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
+posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
+and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
+or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
+with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the
+work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
+through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
+Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
+1.E.9.
+
+1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
+with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
+must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
+terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
+to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
+permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
+
+1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
+work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
+
+1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
+electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
+prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
+active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
+Gutenberg-tm License.
+
+1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
+compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
+word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
+distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
+"Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version
+posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org),
+you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
+copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
+request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other
+form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
+
+1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
+performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
+unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
+
+1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
+access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
+that
+
+- You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
+ the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
+ you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
+ owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
+ has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
+ Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
+ must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
+ prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
+ returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
+ sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
+ address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to
+ the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."
+
+- You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
+ you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
+ does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+ License. You must require such a user to return or
+ destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
+ and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
+ Project Gutenberg-tm works.
+
+- You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
+ money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
+ electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
+ of receipt of the work.
+
+- You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
+ distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
+
+1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
+forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
+both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
+Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the
+Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
+
+1.F.
+
+1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
+effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
+public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
+collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
+"Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
+corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
+property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
+computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
+your equipment.
+
+1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
+of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
+Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
+Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
+liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
+fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
+LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
+PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH F3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
+TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
+LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
+INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
+DAMAGE.
+
+1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
+defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
+receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
+written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
+received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
+your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
+the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
+refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
+providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
+receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
+is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
+opportunities to fix the problem.
+
+1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
+in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS' WITH NO OTHER
+WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
+WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTIBILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
+
+1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
+warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
+If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
+law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
+interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
+the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
+provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
+
+1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
+trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
+providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
+with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
+promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
+harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
+that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
+or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
+work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
+Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
+
+
+Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
+electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
+including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
+because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
+people in all walks of life.
+
+Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
+assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
+goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
+remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
+Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
+and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
+To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
+and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
+and the Foundation web page at https://www.pglaf.org.
+
+
+Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
+Foundation
+
+The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
+501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
+state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
+Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
+number is 64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at
+https://pglaf.org/fundraising. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
+Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
+permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
+
+The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
+Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
+throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at
+809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email
+business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact
+information can be found at the Foundation's web site and official
+page at https://pglaf.org
+
+For additional contact information:
+ Dr. Gregory B. Newby
+ Chief Executive and Director
+ gbnewby@pglaf.org
+
+
+Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
+Literary Archive Foundation
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
+spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
+increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
+freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
+array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
+($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
+status with the IRS.
+
+The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
+charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
+States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
+considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
+with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
+where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To
+SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
+particular state visit https://pglaf.org
+
+While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
+have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
+against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
+approach us with offers to donate.
+
+International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
+any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
+outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
+
+Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
+methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
+ways including including checks, online payments and credit card
+donations. To donate, please visit: https://pglaf.org/donate
+
+
+Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works.
+
+Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
+concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
+with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project
+Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
+
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
+editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
+unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily
+keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
+
+
+Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
+
+ https://www.gutenberg.org
+
+This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
+including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
+Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
+subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
+
+
+</pre>
+
+</BODY>
+
+</HTML>
+
+
diff --git a/4540.txt b/4540.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..99b8df0
--- /dev/null
+++ b/4540.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,8897 @@
+The Project Gutenberg EBook of In His Steps, by Charles M. Sheldon
+
+This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
+almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
+re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
+with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
+
+
+Title: In His Steps
+
+Author: Charles M. Sheldon
+
+Posting Date: August 11, 2009 [EBook #4540]
+Release Date: October, 2003
+First Posted: February 5, 2002
+
+Language: English
+
+Character set encoding: ASCII
+
+*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK IN HIS STEPS ***
+
+
+
+
+Produced by Charles Aldarondo. HTML version by Al Haines.
+
+
+
+
+
+
+
+
+
+In His Steps
+
+
+by
+
+Charles M. Sheldon
+
+
+JTABLEA 10 31 1
+
+
+
+Chapter One
+
+
+"For hereunto were ye called; because Christ also suffered for you,
+leaving you an example, that ye should follow in his steps."
+
+
+It was Friday morning and the Rev. Henry Maxwell was trying to
+finish his Sunday morning sermon. He had been interrupted several
+times and was growing nervous as the morning wore away, and the
+sermon grew very slowly toward a satisfactory finish.
+
+"Mary," he called to his wife, as he went upstairs after the last
+interruption, "if any one comes after this, I wish you would say I
+am very busy and cannot come down unless it is something very
+important."
+
+"Yes, Henry. But I am going over to visit the kindergarten and you
+will have the house all to yourself."
+
+The minister went up into his study and shut the door. In a few
+minutes he heard his wife go out, and then everything was quiet. He
+settled himself at his desk with a sigh of relief and began to
+write. His text was from 1 Peter 2:21: "For hereunto were ye called;
+because Christ also suffered for you, leaving you an example that ye
+should follow his steps."
+
+He had emphasized in the first part of the sermon the Atonement as a
+personal sacrifice, calling attention to the fact of Jesus'
+suffering in various ways, in His life as well as in His death. He
+had then gone on to emphasize the Atonement from the side of
+example, giving illustrations from the life and teachings of Jesus
+to show how faith in the Christ helped to save men because of the
+pattern or character He displayed for their imitation. He was now on
+the third and last point, the necessity of following Jesus in His
+sacrifice and example.
+
+He had put down "Three Steps. What are they?" and was about to
+enumerate them in logical order when the bell rang sharply. It was
+one of those clock-work bells, and always went off as a clock might
+go if it tried to strike twelve all at once.
+
+Henry Maxwell sat at his desk and frowned a little. He made no
+movement to answer the bell. Very soon it rang again; then he rose
+and walked over to one of his windows which commanded the view of
+the front door. A man was standing on the steps. He was a young man,
+very shabbily dressed.
+
+"Looks like a tramp," said the minister. "I suppose I'll have to go
+down and--"
+
+He did not finish his sentence but he went downstairs and opened the
+front door. There was a moment's pause as the two men stood facing
+each other, then the shabby-looking young man said:
+
+"I'm out of a job, sir, and thought maybe you might put me in the
+way of getting something."
+
+"I don't know of anything. Jobs are scarce--" replied the minister,
+beginning to shut the door slowly.
+
+"I didn't know but you might perhaps be able to give me a line to
+the city railway or the superintendent of the shops, or something,"
+continued the young man, shifting his faded hat from one hand to the
+other nervously.
+
+"It would be of no use. You will have to excuse me. I am very busy
+this morning. I hope you will find something. Sorry I can't give you
+something to do here. But I keep only a horse and a cow and do the
+work myself."
+
+The Rev. Henry Maxwell closed the door and heard the man walk down
+the steps. As he went up into his study he saw from his hall window
+that the man was going slowly down the street, still holding his hat
+between his hands. There was something in the figure so dejected,
+homeless and forsaken that the minister hesitated a moment as he
+stood looking at it. Then he turned to his desk and with a sigh
+began the writing where he had left off.
+
+He had no more interruptions, and when his wife came in two hours
+later the sermon was finished, the loose leaves gathered up and
+neatly tied together, and laid on his Bible all ready for the Sunday
+morning service.
+
+"A queer thing happened at the kindergarten this morning, Henry,"
+said his wife while they were eating dinner. "You know I went over
+with Mrs. Brown to visit the school, and just after the games, while
+the children were at the tables, the door opened and a young man
+came in holding a dirty hat in both hands. He sat down near the door
+and never said a word; only looked at the children. He was evidently
+a tramp, and Miss Wren and her assistant Miss Kyle were a little
+frightened at first, but he sat there very quietly and after a few
+minutes he went out."
+
+"Perhaps he was tired and wanted to rest somewhere. The same man
+called here, I think. Did you say he looked like a tramp?"
+
+"Yes, very dusty, shabby and generally tramp-like. Not more than
+thirty or thirty-three years old, I should say."
+
+"The same man," said the Rev. Henry Maxwell thoughtfully.
+
+"Did you finish your sermon, Henry?" his wife asked after a pause.
+
+"Yes, all done. It has been a very busy week with me. The two
+sermons have cost me a good deal of labor."
+
+"They will be appreciated by a large audience, Sunday, I hope,"
+replied his wife smiling. "What are you going to preach about in the
+morning?"
+
+"Following Christ. I take up the Atonement under the head of
+sacrifice and example, and then show the steps needed to follow His
+sacrifice and example."
+
+"I am sure it is a good sermon. I hope it won't rain Sunday. We have
+had so many stormy Sundays lately."
+
+"Yes, the audiences have been quite small for some time. People will
+not come out to church in a storm." The Rev. Henry Maxwell sighed as
+he said it. He was thinking of the careful, laborious effort he had
+made in preparing sermons for large audiences that failed to appear.
+
+But Sunday morning dawned on the town of Raymond one of the perfect
+days that sometimes come after long periods of wind and mud and
+rain. The air was clear and bracing, the sky was free from all
+threatening signs, and every one in Mr. Maxwell's parish prepared to
+go to church. When the service opened at eleven o'clock the large
+building was filled with an audience of the best-dressed, most
+comfortable looking people of Raymond.
+
+The First Church of Raymond believed in having the best music that
+money could buy, and its quartet choir this morning was a source of
+great pleasure to the congregation. The anthem was inspiring. All
+the music was in keeping with the subject of the sermon. And the
+anthem was an elaborate adaptation to the most modern music of the
+hymn,
+
+ "Jesus, I my cross have taken,
+ All to leave and follow Thee."
+
+Just before the sermon, the soprano sang a solo, the well-known
+hymn,
+
+ "Where He leads me I will follow,
+ I'll go with Him, with Him, all the way."
+
+Rachel Winslow looked very beautiful that morning as she stood up
+behind the screen of carved oak which was significantly marked with
+the emblems of the cross and the crown. Her voice was even more
+beautiful than her face, and that meant a great deal. There was a
+general rustle of expectation over the audience as she rose. Mr.
+Maxwell settled himself contentedly behind the pulpit. Rachel
+Winslow's singing always helped him. He generally arranged for a
+song before the sermon. It made possible a certain inspiration of
+feeling that made his delivery more impressive.
+
+People said to themselves they had never heard such singing even in
+the First Church. It is certain that if it had not been a church
+service, her solo would have been vigorously applauded. It even
+seemed to the minister when she sat down that something like an
+attempted clapping of hands or a striking of feet on the floor swept
+through the church. He was startled by it. As he rose, however, and
+laid his sermon on the Bible, he said to himself he had been
+deceived. Of course it could not occur. In a few moments he was
+absorbed in his sermon and everything else was forgotten in the
+pleasure of his delivery.
+
+No one had ever accused Henry Maxwell of being a dull preacher. On
+the contrary, he had often been charged with being sensational; not
+in what he had said so much as in his way of saying it. But the
+First Church people liked that. It gave their preacher and their
+parish a pleasant distinction that was agreeable.
+
+It was also true that the pastor of the First Church loved to
+preach. He seldom exchanged. He was eager to be in his own pulpit
+when Sunday came. There was an exhilarating half hour for him as he
+faced a church full of people and know that he had a hearing. He was
+peculiarly sensitive to variations in the attendance. He never
+preached well before a small audience. The weather also affected him
+decidedly. He was at his best before just such an audience as faced
+him now, on just such a morning. He felt a glow of satisfaction as
+he went on. The church was the first in the city. It had the best
+choir. It had a membership composed of the leading people,
+representatives of the wealth, society and intelligence of Raymond.
+He was going abroad on a three months vacation in the summer, and
+the circumstances of his pastorate, his influence and his position
+as pastor of the First Church in the city--
+
+It is not certain that the Rev. Henry Maxwell knew just how he could
+carry on that thought in connection with his sermon, but as he drew
+near the end of it he knew that he had at some point in his delivery
+had all those feelings. They had entered into the very substance of
+his thought; it might have been all in a few seconds of time, but he
+had been conscious of defining his position and his emotions as well
+as if he had held a soliloquy, and his delivery partook of the
+thrill of deep personal satisfaction.
+
+The sermon was interesting. It was full of striking sentences. They
+would have commanded attention printed. Spoken with the passion of a
+dramatic utterance that had the good taste never to offend with a
+suspicion of ranting or declamation, they were very effective. If
+the Rev. Henry Maxwell that morning felt satisfied with the
+conditions of his pastorate, the First Church also had a similar
+feeling as it congratulated itself on the presence in the pulpit of
+this scholarly, refined, somewhat striking face and figure,
+preaching with such animation and freedom from all vulgar, noisy or
+disagreeable mannerism.
+
+Suddenly, into the midst of this perfect accord and concord between
+preacher and audience, there came a very remarkable interruption. It
+would be difficult to indicate the extent of the shock which this
+interruption measured. It was so unexpected, so entirely contrary to
+any thought of any person present that it offered no room for
+argument or, for the time being, of resistance.
+
+The sermon had come to a close. Mr. Maxwell had just turned the half
+of the big Bible over upon his manuscript and was about to sit down
+as the quartet prepared to arise to sing the closing selection,
+
+ "All for Jesus, all for Jesus,
+ All my being's ransomed powers..."
+
+when the entire congregation was startled by the sound of a man's
+voice. It came from the rear of the church, from one of the seats
+under the gallery. The next moment the figure of a man came out of
+the shadow there and walked down the middle aisle.
+
+Before the startled congregation fairly realized what was going on
+the man had reached the open space in front of the pulpit and had
+turned about facing the people.
+
+"I've been wondering since I came in here"--they were the words he
+used under the gallery, and he repeated them--"if it would be just
+the thing to say a word at the close of the service. I'm not drunk
+and I'm not crazy, and I am perfectly harmless, but if I die, as
+there is every likelihood I shall in a few days, I want the
+satisfaction of thinking that I said my say in a place like this,
+and before this sort of a crowd."
+
+Henry Maxwell had not taken his seat, and he now remained standing,
+leaning on his pulpit, looking down at the stranger. It was the man
+who had come to his house the Friday before, the same dusty, worn,
+shabby-looking young man. He held his faded hat in his two hands. It
+seemed to be a favorite gesture. He had not been shaved and his hair
+was rough and tangled. It is doubtful if any one like this had ever
+confronted the First Church within the sanctuary. It was tolerably
+familiar with this sort of humanity out on the street, around the
+railroad shops, wandering up and down the avenue, but it had never
+dreamed of such an incident as this so near.
+
+There was nothing offensive in the man's manner or tone. He was not
+excited and he spoke in a low but distinct voice. Mr. Maxwell was
+conscious, even as he stood there smitten into dumb astonishment at
+the event, that somehow the man's action reminded him of a person he
+had once seen walking and talking in his sleep.
+
+No one in the house made any motion to stop the stranger or in any
+way interrupt him. Perhaps the first shock of his sudden appearance
+deepened into a genuine perplexity concerning what was best to do.
+However that may be, he went on as if he had no thought of
+interruption and no thought of the unusual element which he had
+introduced into the decorum of the First Church service. And all the
+while he was speaking, the minister leaded over the pulpit, his face
+growing more white and sad every moment. But he made no movement to
+stop him, and the people sat smitten into breathless silence. One
+other face, that of Rachel Winslow from the choir, stared white and
+intent down at the shabby figure with the faded hat. Her face was
+striking at any time. Under the pressure of the present unheard-of
+incident it was as personally distinct as if it had been framed in
+fire.
+
+"I'm not an ordinary tramp, though I don't know of any teaching of
+Jesus that makes one kind of a tramp less worth saving than another.
+Do you?" He put the question as naturally as if the whole
+congregation had been a small Bible class. He paused just a moment
+and coughed painfully. Then he went on.
+
+"I lost my job ten months ago. I am a printer by trade. The new
+linotype machines are beautiful specimens of invention, but I know
+six men who have killed themselves inside of the year just on
+account of those machines. Of course I don't blame the newspapers
+for getting the machines. Meanwhile, what can a man do? I know I
+never learned but the one trade, and that's all I can do. I've
+tramped all over the country trying to find something. There are a
+good many others like me. I'm not complaining, am I? Just stating
+facts. But I was wondering as I sat there under the gallery, if what
+you call following Jesus is the same thing as what He taught. What
+did He mean when He said: 'Follow Me!'? The minister said,"--here he
+turned about and looked up at the pulpit--"that it is necessary for
+the disciple of Jesus to follow His steps, and he said the steps are
+'obedience, faith, love and imitation.' But I did not hear him tell
+you just what he meant that to mean, especially the last step. What
+do you Christians mean by following the steps of Jesus?
+
+"I've tramped through this city for three days trying to find a job;
+and in all that time I've not had a word of sympathy or comfort
+except from your minister here, who said he was sorry for me and
+hoped I would find a job somewhere. I suppose it is because you get
+so imposed on by the professional tramp that you have lost your
+interest in any other sort. I'm not blaming anybody, am I? Just
+stating facts. Of course, I understand you can't all go out of your
+way to hunt up jobs for other people like me. I'm not asking you to;
+but what I feel puzzled about is, what is meant by following Jesus.
+What do you mean when you sing 'I'll go with Him, with Him, all the
+way?' Do you mean that you are suffering and denying yourselves and
+trying to save lost, suffering humanity just as I understand Jesus
+did? What do you mean by it? I see the ragged edge of things a good
+deal. I understand there are more than five hundred men in this city
+in my case. Most of them have families. My wife died four months
+ago. I'm glad she is out of trouble. My little girl is staying with
+a printer's family until I find a job. Somehow I get puzzled when I
+see so many Christians living in luxury and singing 'Jesus, I my
+cross have taken, all to leave and follow Thee,' and remember how my
+wife died in a tenement in New York City, gasping for air and asking
+God to take the little girl too. Of course I don't expect you people
+can prevent every one from dying of starvation, lack of proper
+nourishment and tenement air, but what does following Jesus mean? I
+understand that Christian people own a good many of the tenements. A
+member of a church was the owner of the one where my wife died, and
+I have wondered if following Jesus all the way was true in his case.
+I heard some people singing at a church prayer meeting the other
+night,
+
+ 'All for Jesus, all for Jesus,
+ All my being's ransomed powers,
+ All my thoughts, and all my doings,
+ All my days, and all my hours.'
+
+and I kept wondering as I sat on the steps outside just what they
+meant by it. It seems to me there's an awful lot of trouble in the
+world that somehow wouldn't exist if all the people who sing such
+songs went and lived them out. I suppose I don't understand. But
+what would Jesus do? Is that what you mean by following His steps?
+It seems to me sometimes as if the people in the big churches had
+good clothes and nice houses to live in, and money to spend for
+luxuries, and could go away on summer vacations and all that, while
+the people outside the churches, thousands of them, I mean, die in
+tenements, and walk the streets for jobs, and never have a piano or
+a picture in the house, and grow up in misery and drunkenness and
+sin."
+
+The man suddenly gave a queer lurch over in the direction of the
+communion table and laid one grimy hand on it. His hat fell upon the
+carpet at his feet. A stir went through the congregation. Dr. West
+half rose from his pew, but as yet the silence was unbroken by any
+voice or movement worth mentioning in the audience. The man passed
+his other hand across his eyes, and then, without any warning, fell
+heavily forward on his face, full length up the aisle. Henry Maxwell
+spoke:
+
+"We will consider the service closed."
+
+
+
+
+Chapter Two
+
+
+Henry Maxwell and a group of his church members remained some time
+in the study. The man lay on the couch there and breathed heavily.
+When the question of what to do with him came up, the minister
+insisted on taking the man to his own house; he lived near by and
+had an extra room. Rachel Winslow said:
+
+"Mother has no company at present. I am sure we would be glad to
+give him a place with us."
+
+She looked strongly agitated. No one noticed it particularly. They
+were all excited over the strange event, the strangest that First
+Church people could remember. But the minister insisted on taking
+charge of the man, and when a carriage came the unconscious but
+living form was carried to his house; and with the entrance of that
+humanity into the minister's spare room a new chapter in Henry
+Maxwell's life began, and yet no one, himself least of all, dreamed
+of the remarkable change it was destined to make in all his after
+definition of the Christian discipleship.
+
+The event created a great sensation in the First Church parish.
+People talked of nothing else for a week. It was the general
+impression that the man had wandered into the church in a condition
+of mental disturbance caused by his troubles, and that all the time
+he was talking he was in a strange delirium of fever and really
+ignorant of his surroundings. That was the most charitable
+construction to put upon his action. It was the general agreement
+also that there was a singular absence of anything bitter or
+complaining in what the man had said. He had, throughout, spoken in
+a mild, apologetic tone, almost as if he were one of the
+congregation seeking for light on a very difficult subject.
+
+The third day after his removal to the minister's house there was a
+marked change in his condition. The doctor spoke of it but offered
+no hope. Saturday morning he still lingered, although he had rapidly
+failed as the week drew near its close. Sunday morning, just before
+the clock struck one, he rallied and asked if his child had come.
+The minister had sent for her at once as soon as he had been able to
+secure her address from some letters found in the man's pocket. He
+had been conscious and able to talk coherently only a few moments
+since his attack.
+
+"The child is coming. She will be here," Mr. Maxwell said as he sat
+there, his face showing marks of the strain of the week's vigil; for
+he had insisted on sitting up nearly every night.
+
+"I shall never see her in this world," the man whispered. Then he
+uttered with great difficulty the words, "You have been good to me.
+Somehow I feel as if it was what Jesus would do."
+
+After a few minutes he turned his head slightly, and before Mr.
+Maxwell could realize the fact, the doctor said quietly, "He is
+gone."
+
+The Sunday morning that dawned on the city of Raymond was exactly
+like the Sunday of a week before. Mr. Maxwell entered his pulpit to
+face one of the largest congregations that had ever crowded the
+First Church. He was haggard and looked as if he had just risen from
+a long illness. His wife was at home with the little girl, who had
+come on the morning train an hour after her father had died. He lay
+in that spare room, his troubles over, and the minister could see
+the face as he opened the Bible and arranged his different notices
+on the side of the desk as he had been in the habit of doing for ten
+years.
+
+The service that morning contained a new element. No one could
+remember when Henry Maxwell had preached in the morning without
+notes. As a matter of fact he had done so occasionally when he first
+entered the ministry, but for a long time he had carefully written
+every word of his morning sermon, and nearly always his evening
+discourses as well. It cannot be said that his sermon this morning
+was striking or impressive. He talked with considerable hesitation.
+It was evident that some great idea struggled in his thought for
+utterance, but it was not expressed in the theme he had chosen for
+his preaching. It was near the close of his sermon that he began to
+gather a certain strength that had been painfully lacking at the
+beginning.
+
+He closed the Bible and, stepping out at the side of the desk, faced
+his people and began to talk to them about the remarkable scene of
+the week before.
+
+"Our brother," somehow the words sounded a little strange coming
+from his lips, "passed away this morning. I have not yet had time to
+learn all his history. He had one sister living in Chicago. I have
+written her and have not yet received an answer. His little girl is
+with us and will remain for the time."
+
+He paused and looked over the house. He thought he had never seen so
+many earnest faces during his entire pastorate. He was not able yet
+to tell his people his experiences, the crisis through which he was
+even now moving. But something of his feeling passed from him to
+them, and it did not seem to him that he was acting under a careless
+impulse at all to go on and break to them this morning something of
+the message he bore in his heart.
+
+So he went on: "The appearance and words of this stranger in the
+church last Sunday made a very powerful impression on me. I am not
+able to conceal from you or myself the fact that what he said,
+followed as it has been by his death in my house, has compelled me
+to ask as I never asked before 'What does following Jesus mean?' I
+am not in a position yet to utter any condemnation of this people
+or, to a certain extent, of myself, either in our Christ-like
+relations to this man or the numbers that he represents in the
+world. But all that does not prevent me from feeling that much that
+the man said was so vitally true that we must face it in an attempt
+to answer it or else stand condemned as Christian disciples. A good
+deal that was said here last Sunday was in the nature of a challenge
+to Christianity as it is seen and felt in our churches. I have felt
+this with increasing emphasis every day since.
+
+"And I do not know that any time is more appropriate than the
+present for me to propose a plan, or a purpose, which has been
+forming in my mind as a satisfactory reply to much that was said
+here last Sunday."
+
+Again Henry Maxwell paused and looked into the faces of his people.
+There were some strong, earnest men and women in the First Church.
+
+He could see Edward Norman, editor of the Raymond DAILY NEWS. He had
+been a member of the First Church for ten years.
+
+No man was more honored in the community. There was Alexander
+Powers, superintendent of the great railroad shops in Raymond, a
+typical railroad man, one who had been born into the business. There
+sat Donald Marsh, president of Lincoln College, situated in the
+suburbs of Raymond. There was Milton Wright, one of the great
+merchants of Raymond, having in his employ at least one hundred men
+in various shops. There was Dr. West who, although still
+comparatively young, was quoted as authority in special surgical
+cases. There was young Jasper Chase the author, who had written one
+successful book and was said to be at work on a new novel. There was
+Miss Virginia Page the heiress, who through the recent death of her
+father had inherited a million at least, and was gifted with unusual
+attractions of person and intellect. And not least of all, Rachel
+Winslow, from her seat in the choir, glowed with her peculiar beauty
+of light this morning because she was so intensely interested in the
+whole scene.
+
+There was some reason, perhaps, in view of such material in the
+First Church, for Henry Maxwell's feeling of satisfaction whenever
+he considered his parish as he had the previous Sunday. There was an
+unusually large number of strong, individual characters who claimed
+membership there. But as he noted their faces this morning he was
+simply wondering how many of them would respond to the strange
+proposition he was about to make. He continued slowly, taking time
+to choose his words carefully, and giving the people an impression
+they had never felt before, even when he was at his best with his
+most dramatic delivery.
+
+"What I am going to propose now is something which ought not to
+appear unusual or at all impossible of execution. Yet I am aware
+that it will be so regarded by a large number, perhaps, of the
+members of this church. But in order that we may have a thorough
+understanding of what we are considering, I will put my proposition
+very plainly, perhaps bluntly. I want volunteers from the First
+Church who will pledge themselves, earnestly and honestly for an
+entire year, not to do anything without first asking the question,
+'What would Jesus do?' And after asking that question, each one will
+follow Jesus as exactly as he knows how, no matter what the result
+may be. I will of course include myself in this company of
+volunteers, and shall take for granted that my church here will not
+be surprised at my future conduct, as based upon this standard of
+action, and will not oppose whatever is done if they think Christ
+would do it. Have I made my meaning clear? At the close of the
+service I want all those members who are willing to join such a
+company to remain and we will talk over the details of the plan. Our
+motto will be, 'What would Jesus do?' Our aim will be to act just as
+He would if He was in our places, regardless of immediate results.
+In other words, we propose to follow Jesus' steps as closely and as
+literally as we believe He taught His disciples to do. And those who
+volunteer to do this will pledge themselves for an entire year,
+beginning with today, so to act."
+
+Henry Maxwell paused again and looked out over his people. It is not
+easy to describe the sensation that such a simple proposition
+apparently made. Men glanced at one another in astonishment. It was
+not like Henry Maxwell to define Christian discipleship in this way.
+There was evident confusion of thought over his proposition. It was
+understood well enough, but there was, apparently, a great
+difference of opinion as to the application of Jesus' teaching and
+example.
+
+He calmly closed the service with a brief prayer. The organist began
+his postlude immediately after the benediction and the people began
+to go out. There was a great deal of conversation. Animated groups
+stood all over the church discussing the minister's proposition. It
+was evidently provoking great discussion. After several minutes he
+asked all who expected to remain to pass into the lecture-room which
+joined the large room on the side. He was himself detained at the
+front of the church talking with several persons there, and when he
+finally turned around, the church was empty. He walked over to the
+lecture-room entrance and went in. He was almost startled to see the
+people who were there. He had not made up his mind about any of his
+members, but he had hardly expected that so many were ready to enter
+into such a literal testing of their Christian discipleship as now
+awaited him. There were perhaps fifty present, among them Rachel
+Winslow and Virginia Page, Mr. Norman, President Marsh, Alexander
+Powers the railroad superintendent, Milton Wright, Dr. West and
+Jasper Chase.
+
+He closed the door of the lecture-room and went and stood before the
+little group. His face was pale and his lips trembled with genuine
+emotion. It was to him a genuine crisis in his own life and that of
+his parish. No man can tell until he is moved by the Divine Spirit
+what he may do, or how he may change the current of a lifetime of
+fixed habits of thought and speech and action. Henry Maxwell did
+not, as we have said, yet know himself all that he was passing
+through, but he was conscious of a great upheaval in his definition
+of Christian discipleship, and he was moved with a depth of feeling
+he could not measure as he looked into the faces of those men and
+women on this occasion.
+
+It seemed to him that the most fitting word to be spoken first was
+that of prayer. He asked them all to pray with him. And almost with
+the first syllable he uttered there was a distinct presence of the
+Spirit felt by them all. As the prayer went on, this presence grew
+in power. They all felt it. The room was filled with it as plainly
+as if it had been visible. When the prayer closed there was a
+silence that lasted several moments. All the heads were bowed. Henry
+Maxwell's face was wet with tears. If an audible voice from heaven
+had sanctioned their pledge to follow the Master's steps, not one
+person present could have felt more certain of the divine blessing.
+And so the most serious movement ever started in the First Church of
+Raymond was begun.
+
+"We all understand," said he, speaking very quietly, "what we have
+undertaken to do. We pledge ourselves to do everything in our daily
+lives after asking the question, 'What would Jesus do?' regardless
+of what may be the result to us. Some time I shall be able to tell
+you what a marvelous change has come over my life within a week's
+time. I cannot now. But the experience I have been through since
+last Sunday has left me so dissatisfied with my previous definition
+of Christian discipleship that I have been compelled to take this
+action. I did not dare begin it alone. I know that I am being led by
+the hand of divine love in all this. The same divine impulse must
+have led you also.
+
+"Do we understand fully what we have undertaken?"
+
+"I want to ask a question," said Rachel Winslow. Every one turned
+towards her. Her face glowed with a beauty that no physical
+loveliness could ever create.
+
+"I am a little in doubt as to the source of our knowledge concerning
+what Jesus would do. Who is to decide for me just what He would do
+in my case? It is a different age. There are many perplexing
+questions in our civilization that are not mentioned in the
+teachings of Jesus. How am I going to tell what He would do?"
+
+"There is no way that I know of," replied the pastor, "except as we
+study Jesus through the medium of the Holy Spirit. You remember what
+Christ said speaking to His disciples about the Holy Spirit:
+'Howbeit when he, the Spirit of truth, is come, he shall guide you
+into all the truth: for he shall not speak from himself; but what
+things soever he shall hear, these shall he speak: and he shall
+declare unto you the things that are to come. He shall glorify me;
+for he shall take of mine, and shall declare it unto you. All things
+whatsoever the Father hath are mine: therefore said I, that he
+taketh of mine, and shall declare it unto you.' There is no other
+test that I know of. We shall all have to decide what Jesus would do
+after going to that source of knowledge."
+
+"What if others say of us, when we do certain things, that Jesus
+would not do so?" asked the superintendent of railroads.
+
+"We cannot prevent that. But we must be absolutely honest with
+ourselves. The standard of Christian action cannot vary in most of
+our acts."
+
+"And yet what one church member thinks Jesus would do, another
+refuses to accept as His probable course of action. What is to
+render our conduct uniformly Christ-like? Will it be possible to
+reach the same conclusions always in all cases?" asked President
+Marsh.
+
+Mr. Maxwell was silent some time. Then he answered, "No; I don't
+know that we can expect that. But when it comes to a genuine,
+honest, enlightened following of Jesus' steps, I cannot believe
+there will be any confusion either in our own minds or in the
+judgment of others. We must be free from fanaticism on one hand and
+too much caution on the other. If Jesus' example is the example for
+the world to follow, it certainly must be feasible to follow it. But
+we need to remember this great fact. After we have asked the Spirit
+to tell us what Jesus would do and have received an answer to it, we
+are to act regardless of the results to ourselves. Is that
+understood?"
+
+All the faces in the room were raised towards the minister in solemn
+assent. There was no misunderstanding that proposition. Henry
+Maxwell's face quivered again as he noted the president of the
+Endeavor Society with several members seated back of the older men
+and women.
+
+
+
+
+Chapter Three
+
+
+"He that saith he abideth in Him ought himself also to walk even as
+He walked."
+
+
+EDWARD NORMAN, editor of the Raymond DAILY NEWS, sat in his office
+room Monday morning and faced a new world of action. He had made his
+pledge in good faith to do everything after asking "What would Jesus
+do?" and, as he supposed, with his eyes open to all the possible
+results. But as the regular life of the paper started on another
+week's rush and whirl of activity, he confronted it with a degree of
+hesitation and a feeling nearly akin to fear.
+
+He had come down to the office very early, and for a few minutes was
+by himself. He sat at his desk in a growing thoughtfulness that
+finally became a desire which he knew was as great as it was
+unusual. He had yet to learn, with all the others in that little
+company pledged to do the Christlike thing, that the Spirit of Life
+was moving in power through his own life as never before. He rose
+and shut his door, and then did what he had not done for years. He
+kneeled down by his desk and prayed for the Divine Presence and
+wisdom to direct him.
+
+He rose with the day before him, and his promise distinct and clear
+in his mind. "Now for action," he seemed to say. But he would be led
+by events as fast as they came on.
+
+He opened his door and began the routine of the office work. The
+managing editor had just come in and was at his desk in the
+adjoining room. One of the reporters there was pounding out
+something on a typewriter. Edward Norman began to write an
+editorial. The DAILY NEWS was an evening paper, and Norman usually
+completed his leading editorial before nine o'clock.
+
+He had been writing for fifteen minutes when the managing editor
+called out: "Here's this press report of yesterday's prize fight at
+the Resort. It will make up three columns and a half. I suppose it
+all goes in?"
+
+Norman was one of those newspaper men who keep an eye on every
+detail of the paper. The managing editor always consulted his chief
+in matters of both small and large importance. Sometimes, as in this
+case, it was merely a nominal inquiry.
+
+"Yes--No. Let me see it."
+
+He took the type-written matter just as it came from the telegraph
+editor and ran over it carefully. Then he laid the sheets down on
+his desk and did some very hard thinking.
+
+"We won't run this today," he said finally.
+
+The managing editor was standing in the doorway between the two
+rooms. He was astounded at his chief's remark, and thought he had
+perhaps misunderstood him.
+
+"What did you say?"
+
+"Leave it out. We won't use it."
+
+"But--" The managing editor was simply dumbfounded. He stared at
+Norman as if the man was out of his mind.
+
+"I don't think, Clark, that it ought to be printed, and that's the
+end of it," said Norman, looking up from his desk.
+
+Clark seldom had any words with the chief. His word had always been
+law in the office and he had seldom been known to change his mind.
+The circumstances now, however, seemed to be so extraordinary that
+Clark could not help expressing himself.
+
+"Do you mean that the paper is to go to press without a word of the
+prize fight in it?"
+
+"Yes. That's what I mean."
+
+"But it's unheard of. All the other papers will print it. What will
+our subscribers say? Why, it is simply--" Clark paused, unable to
+find words to say what he thought.
+
+Norman looked at Clark thoughtfully. The managing editor was a
+member of a church of a different denomination from that of
+Norman's. The two men had never talked together on religious matters
+although they had been associated on the paper for several years.
+
+"Come in here a minute, Clark, and shut the door," said Norman.
+
+Clark came in and the two men faced each other alone. Norman did not
+speak for a minute. Then he said abruptly: "Clark, if Christ was
+editor of a daily paper, do you honestly think He would print three
+columns and a half of prize fight in it?"
+
+"No, I don't suppose He would."
+
+"Well, that's my only reason for shutting this account out of the
+NEWS. I have decided not to do a thing in connection with the paper
+for a whole year that I honestly believe Jesus would not do."
+
+Clark could not have looked more amazed if the chief had suddenly
+gone crazy. In fact, he did think something was wrong, though Mr.
+Norman was one of the last men in the world, in his judgment, to
+lose his mind.
+
+"What effect will that have on the paper?" he finally managed to ask
+in a faint voice.
+
+"What do you think?" asked Norman with a keen glance.
+
+"I think it will simply ruin the paper," replied Clark promptly. He
+was gathering up his bewildered senses, and began to remonstrate,
+"Why, it isn't feasible to run a paper nowadays on any such basis.
+It's too ideal. The world isn't ready for it. You can't make it pay.
+Just as sure as you live, if you shut out this prize fight report
+you will lose hundreds of subscribers. It doesn't take a prophet to
+see that. The very best people in town are eager to read it. They
+know it has taken place, and when they get the paper this evening
+they will expect half a page at least. Surely, you can't afford to
+disregard the wishes of the public to such an extent. It will be a
+great mistake if you do, in my opinion."
+
+Norman sat silent a minute. Then he spoke gently but firmly.
+
+"Clark, what in your honest opinion is the right standard for
+determining conduct? Is the only right standard for every one, the
+probable action of Jesus Christ? Would you say that the highest,
+best law for a man to live by was contained in asking the question,
+What would Jesus do?' And then doing it regardless of results? In
+other words, do you think men everywhere ought to follow Jesus'
+example as closely as they can in their daily lives?" Clark turned
+red, and moved uneasily in his chair before he answered the editor's
+question.
+
+"Why--yes--I suppose if you put it on the ground of what men ought
+to do there is no other standard of conduct. But the question is,
+What is feasible? Is it possible to make it pay? To succeed in the
+newspaper business we have got to conform to custom and the
+recognized methods of society. We can't do as we would in an ideal
+world."
+
+"Do you mean that we can't run the paper strictly on Christian
+principles and make it succeed?"
+
+"Yes, that's just what I mean. It can't be done. We'll go bankrupt
+in thirty days."
+
+Norman did not reply at once. He was very thoughtful.
+
+"We shall have occasion to talk this over again, Clark. Meanwhile I
+think we ought to understand each other frankly. I have pledged
+myself for a year to do everything connected with the paper after
+answering the question, What would Jesus do?' as honestly as
+possible. I shall continue to do this in the belief that not only
+can we succeed but that we can succeed better than we ever did."
+
+Clark rose. "The report does not go in?"
+
+"It does not. There is plenty of good material to take its place,
+and you know what it is."
+
+Clark hesitated. "Are you going to say anything about the absence of
+the report?"
+
+"No, let the paper go to press as if there had been no such thing as
+a prize fight yesterday."
+
+Clark walked out of the room to his own desk feeling as if the
+bottom had dropped out of everything. He was astonished, bewildered,
+excited and considerably angered. His great respect for Norman
+checked his rising indignation and disgust, but with it all was a
+feeling of growing wonder at the sudden change of motive which had
+entered the office of the DAILY NEWS and threatened, as he firmly
+believed, to destroy it.
+
+Before noon every reporter, pressman and employee on the DAILY NEWS
+was informed of the remarkable fact that the paper was going to
+press without a word in it about the famous prize fight of Sunday.
+The reporters were simply astonished beyond measure at the
+announcement of the fact. Every one in the stereotyping and
+composing rooms had something to say about the unheard of omission.
+Two or three times during the day when Mr. Norman had occasion to
+visit the composing rooms the men stopped their work or glanced
+around their cases looking at him curiously. He knew that he was
+being observed, but said nothing and did not appear to note it.
+
+There had been several minor changes in the paper, suggested by the
+editor, but nothing marked. He was waiting and thinking deeply.
+
+He felt as if he needed time and considerable opportunity for the
+exercise of his best judgment in several matters before he answered
+his ever present question in the right way. It was not because there
+were not a great many things in the life of the paper that were
+contrary to the spirit of Christ that he did not act at once, but
+because he was yet honestly in doubt concerning what action Jesus
+would take.
+
+When the DAILY NEWS came out that evening it carried to its
+subscribers a distinct sensation.
+
+The presence of the report of the prize fight could not have
+produced anything equal to the effect of its omission. Hundreds of
+men in the hotels and stores down town, as well as regular
+subscribers, eagerly opened the paper and searched it through for
+the account of the great fight; not finding it, they rushed to the
+NEWS stands and bought other papers. Even the newsboys had not a
+understood the fact of omission. One of them was calling out "DAILY
+NEWS! Full 'count great prize fight 't Resort. NEWS, sir?"
+
+A man on the corner of the avenue close by the NEWS office bought
+the paper, looked over its front page hurriedly and then angrily
+called the boy back.
+
+"Here, boy! What's the matter with your paper? There's no prize
+fight here! What do you mean by selling old papers?"
+
+"Old papers nuthin'!" replied the boy indignantly. "Dat's today's
+paper. What's de matter wid you?"
+
+"But there is no account of the prize fight here! Look!"
+
+The man handed back the paper and the boy glanced at k hurriedly.
+Then he whistled, while a bewildered look crept over his face.
+Seeing another boy running by with papers he called out "Say, Sam,
+le'me see your pile." A hasty examination revealed the remarkable
+fact that all the copies of the NEWS were silent on the subject of
+the prize fight.
+
+"Here, give me another paper!" shouted the customer; "one with the
+prize fight account."
+
+He received it and walked off, while the two boys remained comparing
+notes and lost in wonder at the result. "Sump'n slipped a cog in the
+Newsy, sure," said the first boy. But he couldn't tell why, and ran
+over to the NEWS office to find out.
+
+There were several other boys at the delivery room and they were all
+excited and disgusted. The amount of slangy remonstrance hurled at
+the clerk back of the long counter would have driven any one else to
+despair.
+
+He was used to more or less of it all the time, and consequently
+hardened to it. Mr. Norman was just coming downstairs on his way
+home, and he paused as he went by the door of the delivery room and
+looked in.
+
+"What's the matter here, George?" he asked the clerk as he noted the
+unusual confusion.
+
+"The boys say they can't sell any copies of the NEWS tonight because
+the prize fight isn't in it," replied George, looking curiously at
+the editor as so many of the employees had done during the day. Mr.
+Norman hesitated a moment, then walked into the room and confronted
+the boys.
+
+"How many papers are there here? Boys, count them out, and I'll buy
+them tonight."
+
+There was a combined stare and a wild counting of papers on the part
+of the boys.
+
+"Give them their money, George, and if any of the other boys come in
+with the same complaint buy their unsold copies. Is that fair?" he
+asked the boys who were smitten into unusual silence by the unheard
+of action on the part of the editor.
+
+"Fair! Well, I should--But will you keep this up? Will dis be a
+continual performance for the benefit of de fraternity?"
+
+Mr. Norman smiled slightly but he did not think it was necessary to
+answer the question.
+
+He walked out of the office and went home. On the way he could not
+avoid that constant query, "Would Jesus have done it?" It was not so
+much with reference to this last transaction as to the entire motive
+that had urged him on since he had made the promise.
+
+The newsboys were necessarily sufferers through the action he had
+taken. Why should they lose money by it? They were not to blame. He
+was a rich man and could afford to put a little brightness into
+their lives if he chose to do it. He believed, as he went on his way
+home, that Jesus would have done either what he did or something
+similar in order to be free from any possible feeling of injustice.
+
+
+
+
+Chapter Four
+
+
+DURING the week he was in receipt of numerous letters commenting on
+the absence from the News of the account of the prize fight. Two or
+three of these letters may be of interest.
+
+
+Editor of the News:
+
+Dear Sir--I have been thinking for some time of changing my paper. I
+want a journal that is up to the times, progressive and
+enterprising, supplying the public demand at all points. The recent
+freak of your paper in refusing to print the account of the famous
+contest at the Resort has decided me finally to change my paper.
+
+Please discontinue it.
+
+Very truly yours,-------
+
+
+Here followed the name of a business man who had been a subscriber
+for many years.
+
+
+Edward Norman,
+
+Editor of the Daily News, Raymond:
+
+Dear Ed.--What is this sensation you have given the people of your
+burg? What new policy have you taken up? Hope you don't intend to
+try the "Reform Business" through the avenue of the press. It's
+dangerous to experiment much along that line. Take my advice and
+stick to the enterprising modern methods you have made so successful
+for the News. The public wants prize fights and such. Give it what
+it wants, and let some one else do the reforming business.
+
+Yours,-------
+
+
+Here followed the name of one of Norman's old friends, the editor of
+a daily in an adjoining town.
+
+
+My Dear Mr. Norman:
+
+I hasten to write you a note of appreciation for the evident
+carrying out of your promise. It is a splendid beginning and no one
+feels the value of it more than I do. I know something of what it
+will cost you, but not all. Your pastor,
+
+HENRY MAXWELL.
+
+
+One other letter which he opened immediately after reading this from
+Maxwell revealed to him something of the loss to his business that
+possibly awaited him.
+
+
+Mr. Edward Norman,
+
+Editor of the Daily News:
+
+Dear Sir--At the expiration of my advertising limit, you will do me
+the favor not to continue it as you have done heretofore. I enclose
+check for payment in full and shall consider my account with your
+paper closed after date.
+
+Very truly yours,-------
+
+
+Here followed the name of one of the largest dealers in tobacco in
+the city. He had been in the habit of inserting a column of
+conspicuous advertising and paying for it a very large price.
+
+Norman laid this letter down thoughtfully, and then after a moment
+he took up a copy of his paper and looked through the advertising
+columns. There was no connection implied in the tobacco merchant's
+letter between the omission of the prize fight and the withdrawal of
+the advertisement, but he could not avoid putting the two together.
+In point of fact, he afterward learned that the tobacco dealer
+withdrew his advertisement because he had heard that the editor of
+the NEWS was about to enter upon some queer reform policy that would
+be certain to reduce its subscription list.
+
+But the letter directed Norman's attention to the advertising phase
+of his paper. He had not considered this before.
+
+As he glanced over the columns he could not escape the conviction
+that his Master could not permit some of them in his paper.
+
+What would He do with that other long advertisement of choice
+liquors and cigars? As a member of a church and a respected citizen,
+he had incurred no special censure because the saloon men advertised
+in his columns. No one thought anything about it. It was all
+legitimate business. Why not? Raymond enjoyed a system of high
+license, and the saloon and the billiard hall and the beer garden
+were a part of the city's Christian civilization. He was simply
+doing what every other business man in Raymond did. And it was one
+of the best paying sources of revenue. What would the paper do if it
+cut these out? Could it live? That was the question. But was that
+the question after all? "What would Jesus do?" That was the question
+he was answering, or trying to answer, this week. Would Jesus
+advertise whiskey and tobacco in his paper?
+
+Edward Norman asked it honestly, and after a prayer for help and
+wisdom he asked Clark to come into the office.
+
+Clark came in, feeling that the paper was at a crisis, and prepared
+for almost anything after his Monday morning experience. This was
+Thursday.
+
+"Clark," said Norman, speaking slowly and carefully, "I have been
+looking at our advertising columns and have decided to dispense with
+some of the matter as soon as the contracts run out. I wish you
+would notify the advertising agent not to solicit or renew the ads
+that I have marked here."
+
+He handed the paper with the marked places over to Clark, who took
+it and looked over the columns with a very serious air.
+
+"This will mean a great loss to the NEWS. How long do you think you
+can keep this sort of thing up?" Clark was astounded at the editor's
+action and could not understand it.
+
+"Clark, do you think if Jesus was the editor and proprietor of a
+daily paper in Raymond He would permit advertisements of whiskey and
+tobacco in it?"
+
+"Well no--I--don't suppose He would. But what has that to do with
+us? We can't do as He would. Newspapers can't be run on any such
+basis."
+
+"Why not?" asked Norman quietly.
+
+"Why not? Because they will lose more money than they make, that's
+all!" Clark spoke out with an irritation that he really felt. "We
+shall certainly bankrupt the paper with this sort of business
+policy."
+
+"Do you think so?" Norman asked the question not as if he expected
+an answer, but simply as if he were talking with himself. After a
+pause he said:
+
+"You may direct Marks to do as I have said. I believe it is what
+Christ would do, and as I told you, Clark, that is what I have
+promised to try to do for a year, regardless of what the results may
+be to me. I cannot believe that by any kind of reasoning we could
+reach a conclusion justifying our Lord in the advertisement, in this
+age, of whiskey and tobacco in a newspaper. There are some other
+advertisements of a doubtful character I shall study into.
+Meanwhile, I feel a conviction in regard to these that cannot be
+silenced."
+
+Clark went back to his desk feeling as if he had been in the
+presence of a very peculiar person. He could not grasp the meaning
+of it all. He felt enraged and alarmed. He was sure any such policy
+would ruin the paper as soon as it became generally known that the
+editor was trying to do everything by such an absurd moral standard.
+What would become of business if this standard was adopted? It would
+upset every custom and introduce endless confusion. It was simply
+foolishness. It was downright idiocy. So Clark said to himself, and
+when Marks was informed of the action he seconded the managing
+editor with some very forcible ejaculations. What was the matter
+with the chief? Was he insane? Was he going to bankrupt the whole
+business?
+
+But Edward Norman had not yet faced his most serious problem. When
+he came down to the office Friday morning he was confronted with the
+usual program for the Sunday morning edition. The NEWS was one one
+of the few evening papers in Raymond to issue a Sunday edition, and
+it had always been remarkably successful financially. There was an
+average of one page of literary and religious items to thirty or
+forty pages of sport, theatre, gossip, fashion, society and
+political material. This made a very interesting magazine of all
+sorts of reading matter, and had always been welcomed by all the
+subscribers, church members and all, as a Sunday morning necessity.
+Edward Norman now faced this fact and put to himself the question:
+"What would Jesus do?" If He was editor of a paper, would he
+deliberately plan to put into the homes of all the church people and
+Christians of Raymond such a collection of reading matter on the one
+day in the week which ought to be given up to something better
+holier? He was of course familiar with the regular arguments of the
+Sunday paper, that the public needed something of the sort; and the
+working man especially, who would not go to church any way, ought to
+have something entertaining and instructive on Sunday, his only day
+of rest. But suppose the Sunday morning paper did not pay? Suppose
+there was no money in it? How eager would the editor or publisher be
+then to supply this crying need of the poor workman? Edward Norman
+communed honestly with himself over the subject.
+
+Taking everything into account, would Jesus probably edit a Sunday
+morning paper? No matter whether it paid. That was not the question.
+As a matter of fact, the Sunday NEWS paid so well that it would be a
+direct loss of thousands of dollars to discontinue it. Besides, the
+regular subscribers had paid for a seven-day paper. Had he any right
+now to give them less than they supposed they had paid for?
+
+He was honestly perplexed by the question. So much was involved in
+the discontinuance of the Sunday edition that for the first time he
+almost decided to refuse to be guided by the standard of Jesus'
+probable action. He was sole proprietor of the paper; it was his to
+shape as he chose. He had no board of directors to consult as to
+policy. But as he sat there surrounded by the usual quantity of
+material for the Sunday edition he reached some definite
+conclusions. And among them was a determination to call in the force
+of the paper and frankly state his motive and purpose. He sent word
+for Clark and the other men it the office, including the few
+reporters who were in the building and the foreman, with what men
+were in the composing room (it was early in the morning and they
+were not all in) to come into the mailing room. This was a large
+room, and the men came in curiously and perched around on the tables
+and counters. It was a very unusual proceeding, but they all agreed
+that the paper was being run on new principles anyhow, and they all
+watched Mr. Norman carefully as he spoke.
+
+"I called you in here to let you know my further plans for the NEWS.
+I propose certain changes which I believe are necessary. I
+understand very well that some things I have already done are
+regarded by the men as very strange. I wish to state my motive in
+doing what I have done."
+
+Here he told the men what he had already told Clark, and they stared
+as Clark had done, and looked as painfully conscious.
+
+"Now, in acting on this standard of conduct I have reached a
+conclusion which will, no doubt, cause some surprise.
+
+"I have decided that the Sunday morning edition of the NEWS shall be
+discontinued after next Sunday's issue. I shall state in that issue
+my reasons for discontinuing. In order to make up to the subscribers
+the amount of reading matter they may suppose themselves entitled
+to, we can issue a double number on Saturday, as is done by many
+evening papers that make no attempt at a Sunday edition. I am
+convinced that from a Christian point of view more harm than good
+has been done by our Sunday morning paper. I do not believe that
+Jesus would be responsible for it if He were in my place today. It
+will occasion some trouble to arrange the details caused by this
+change with the advertisers and subscribers. That is for me to look
+after. The change itself is one that will take place. So far as I
+can see, the loss will fall on myself. Neither the reporters nor the
+pressmen need make any particular changes in their plans."
+
+He looked around the room and no one spoke. He was struck for the
+first time in his life with the fact that in all the years of his
+newspaper life he had never had the force of the paper together in
+this way. Would Jesus do that? That is, would He probably run a
+newspaper on some loving family plan, where editors, reporters,
+pressmen and all meet to discuss and devise and plan for the making
+of a paper that should have in view--
+
+He caught himself drawing almost away from the facts of
+typographical unions and office rules and reporters' enterprise and
+all the cold, businesslike methods that make a great daily
+successful. But still the vague picture that came up in the mailing
+room would not fade away when he had gone into his office and the
+men had gone back to their places with wonder in their looks and
+questions of all sorts on their tongues as they talked over the
+editor's remarkable actions.
+
+Clark came in and had a long, serious talk with his chief. He was
+thoroughly roused, and his protest almost reached the point of
+resigning his place. Norman guarded himself carefully. Every minute
+of the interview was painful to him, but he felt more than ever the
+necessity of doing the Christ-like thing. Clark was a very valuable
+man. It would be difficult to fill his place. But he was not able to
+give any reasons for continuing the Sunday paper that answered the
+question, "What would Jesus do?" by letting Jesus print that
+edition.
+
+"It comes to this, then," said Clark frankly, "you will bankrupt the
+paper in thirty days. We might as well face that future fact."
+
+"I don't think we shall. Will you stay by the NEWS until it is
+bankrupt?" asked Norman with a strange smile.
+
+"Mr. Norman, I don't understand you. You are not the same man this
+week that I always knew before."
+
+"I don't know myself either, Clark. Something remarkable has caught
+me up and borne me on. But I was never more convinced of final
+success and power for the paper. You have not answered my question.
+Will you stay with me?"
+
+
+
+
+Chapter Five
+
+
+SUNDAY morning dawned again on Raymond, and Henry Maxwell's church
+was again crowded. Before the service began Edward Norman attracted
+great attention. He sat quietly in his usual place about three seats
+from the pulpit. The Sunday morning issue of the NEWS containing the
+statement of its discontinuance had been expressed in such
+remarkable language that every reader was struck by it. No such
+series of distinct sensations had ever disturbed the usual business
+custom of Raymond. The events connected with the NEWS were not all.
+People were eagerly talking about strange things done during the
+week by Alexander Powers at the railroad shops, and Milton Wright in
+his stores on the avenue. The service progressed upon a distinct
+wave of excitement in the pews. Henry Maxwell faced it all with a
+calmness which indicated a strength and purpose more than usual. His
+prayers were very helpful. His sermon was not so easy to describe.
+How would a minister be apt to preach to his people if he came
+before them after an entire week of eager asking, "How would Jesus
+preach? What would He probably say?" It is very certain that he did
+not preach as he had done two Sundays before. Tuesday of the past
+week he had stood by the grave of the dead stranger and said the
+words, "Earth to earth, ashes to ashes, dust to dust," and still he
+was moved by the spirit of a deeper impulse than he could measure as
+he thought of his people and yearned for the Christ message when he
+should be in his pulpit again.
+
+Now that Sunday had come and the people were there to hear, what
+would the Master tell them? He agonized over his preparation for
+them, and yet he knew he had not been able to fit his message into
+his ideal of the Christ. Nevertheless no one in the First Church
+could remember ever hearing such a sermon before. There was in it
+rebuke for sin, especially hypocrisy, there was definite rebuke of
+the greed of wealth and the selfishness of fashion, two things that
+First Church never heard rebuked this way before, and there was a
+love of his people that gathered new force as the sermon went on.
+When it was finished there were those who were saying in their
+hearts, "The Spirit moved that sermon." And they were right.
+
+Then Rachel Winslow rose to sing, this time after the sermon, by Mr.
+Maxwell's request. Rachel's singing did not provoke applause this
+time. What deeper feeling carried the people's hearts into a
+reverent silence and tenderness of thought? Rachel was beautiful.
+But her consciousness of her remarkable loveliness had always marred
+her singing with those who had the deepest spiritual feeling. It had
+also marred her rendering of certain kinds of music with herself.
+Today this was all gone. There was no lack of power in her grand
+voice. But there was an actual added element of humility and purity
+which the audience distinctly felt and bowed to.
+
+Before service closed Mr. Maxwell asked those who had remained the
+week before to stay again for a few moments of consultation, and any
+others who were willing to make the pledge taken at that time. When
+he was at liberty he went into the lecture-room. To his astonishment
+it was almost filled. This time a large proportion of young people
+had come, but among them were a few business men and officers of the
+church.
+
+As before, he, Maxwell, asked them to pray with him. And, as before,
+a distinct answer came from the presence of the divine Spirit. There
+was no doubt in the minds of any present that what they purposed to
+do was so clearly in line with the divine will, that a blessing
+rested upon it in a very special manner.
+
+They remained some time to ask questions and consult together. There
+was a feeling of fellowship such as they had never known in their
+church membership. Mr. Norman's action was well understood by them
+all, and he answered several questions.
+
+"What will be the probable result of your discontinuance of the
+Sunday paper?" asked Alexander Powers, who sat next to him.
+
+"I don't know yet. I presume it will result in the falling off of
+subscriptions and advertisements. I anticipate that."
+
+"Do you have any doubts about your action. I mean, do you regret it,
+or fear it is not what Jesus would do?" asked Mr. Maxwell.
+
+"Not in the least. But I would like to ask, for my own satisfaction,
+if any of you here think Jesus would issue a Sunday morning paper?"
+
+No one spoke for a minute. Then Jasper Chase said, "We seem to think
+alike on that, but I have been puzzled several times during the week
+to know just what He would do. It is not always an easy question to
+answer."
+
+"I find that trouble," said Virginia Page. She sat by Rachel
+Winslow. Every one who knew Virginia Page was wondering how she
+would succeed in keeping her promise. "I think perhaps I find it
+specially difficult to answer that question on account of my money.
+Our Lord never owned any property, and there is nothing in His
+example to guide me in the use of mine. I am studying and praying. I
+think I see clearly a part of what He would do, but not all. What
+would He do with a million dollars? is my question really. I confess
+I am not yet able to answer it to my satisfaction.
+
+"I could tell you what you could do with a part of it," said Rachel,
+turning her face toward Virginia. "That does not trouble me,"
+replied Virginia with a slight smile. "What I am trying to discover
+is a principle that will enable me to come to the nearest possible
+to His action as it ought to influence the entire course of my life
+so far as my wealth and its use are concerned."
+
+"That will take time," said the minister slowly. All the rest of the
+room were thinking hard of the same thing. Milton Wright told
+something of his experience. He was gradually working out a plan for
+his business relations with his employees, and it was opening up a
+new world to him and to them. A few of the young men told of special
+attempts to answer the question. There was almost general consent
+over the fact that the application of the Christ spirit and practice
+to the everyday life was the serious thing. It required a knowledge
+of Him and an insight into His motives that most of them did not yet
+possess.
+
+When they finally adjourned after a silent prayer that marked with
+growing power the Divine Presence, they went away discussing
+earnestly their difficulties and seeking light from one another.
+
+Rachel Winslow and Virginia Page went out together. Edward Norman
+and Milton Wright became so interested in their mutual conference
+that they walked on past Norman's house and came back together.
+Jasper Chase and the president of the Endeavor Society stood talking
+earnestly in one corner of the room. Alexander Powers and Henry
+Maxwell remained, even after the others had gone.
+
+"I want you to come down to the shops tomorrow and see my plan and
+talk to the men. Somehow I feel as if you could get nearer to them
+than any one else just now."
+
+"I don't know about that, but I will come," replied Mr. Maxwell a
+little sadly. How was he fitted to stand before two or three hundred
+working men and give them a message? Yet in the moment of his
+weakness, as he asked the question, he rebuked himself for it. What
+would Jesus do? That was an end to the discussion.
+
+He went down the next day and found Mr. Powers in his office. It
+lacked a few minutes of twelve and the superintendent said, "Come
+upstairs, and I'll show you what I've been trying to do."
+
+They went through the machine shop, climbed a long flight of stairs
+and entered a very large, empty room. It had once been used by the
+company for a store room.
+
+"Since making that promise a week ago I have had a good many things
+to think of," said the superintendent, "and among them is this: The
+company gives me the use of this room, and I am going to fit it up
+with tables and a coffee plant in the corner there where those steam
+pipes are. My plan is to provide a good place where the men can come
+up and eat their noon lunch, and give them, two or three times a
+week, the privilege of a fifteen minutes' talk on some subject that
+will be a real help to them in their lives."
+
+Maxwell looked surprised and asked if the men would come for any
+such purpose.
+
+"Yes, they'll come. After all, I know the men pretty well. They are
+among the most intelligent working men in the country today. But
+they are, as a whole, entirely removed from church influence. I
+asked, 'What would Jesus do?' and among other things it seemed to me
+He would begin to act in some way to add to the lives of these men
+more physical and spiritual comfort. It is a very little thing, this
+room and what it represents, but I acted on the first impulse, to do
+the first thing that appealed to my good sense, and I want to work
+out this idea. I want you to speak to the men when they come up at
+noon. I have asked them to come up and see the place and I'll tell
+them something about it."
+
+Maxwell was ashamed to say how uneasy he felt at being asked to
+speak a few words to a company of working men. How could he speak
+without notes, or to such a crowd? He was honestly in a condition of
+genuine fright over the prospect. He actually felt afraid of facing
+those men. He shrank from the ordeal of confronting such a crowd, so
+different from the Sunday audiences he was familiar with.
+
+There were a dozen rude benches and tables in the room, and when the
+noon whistle sounded the men poured upstairs from the machine shops
+below and, seating themselves at the tables, began to cat their
+lunch. There were present about three hundred of them. They had read
+the superintendent's notice which he had posted up in various
+places, and came largely out of curiosity.
+
+They were favorably impressed. The room was large and airy, free
+from smoke and dust, and well warmed from the steam pipes. At about
+twenty minutes to one Mr. Powers told the men what he had in mind.
+He spoke very simply, like one who understands thoroughly the
+character of his audience, and then introduced the Rev. Henry
+Maxwell of the First Church, his pastor, who had consented to speak
+a few minutes.
+
+Maxwell will never forget the feeling with which for the first time
+he stood before the grimy-faced audience of working men. Like
+hundreds of other ministers, he had never spoken to any gatherings
+except those made up of people of his own class in the sense that
+they were familiar in their dress and education and habits. This was
+a new world to him, and nothing but his new rule of conduct could
+have made possible his message and its effect. He spoke on the
+subject of satisfaction with life; what caused it, what its real
+sources were. He had the great good sense on this his first
+appearance not to recognize the men as a class distinct from
+himself. He did not use the term working man, and did not say a word
+to suggest any difference between their lives and his own.
+
+The men were pleased. A good many of them shook hands with him
+before going down to their work, and the minister telling it all to
+his wife when he reached home, said that never in all his life had
+he known the delight he then felt in having the handshake from a man
+of physical labor. The day marked an important one in his Christian
+experience, more important than he knew. It was the beginning of a
+fellowship between him and the working world. It was the first plank
+laid down to help bridge the chasm between the church and labor in
+Raymond.
+
+Alexander Powers went back to his desk that afternoon much pleased
+with his plan and seeing much help in it for the men. He knew where
+he could get some good tables from an abandoned eating house at one
+of the stations down the road, and he saw how the coffee arrangement
+could be made a very attractive feature. The men had responded even
+better than he anticipated, and the whole thing could not help being
+a great benefit to them.
+
+He took up the routine of his work with a glow of satisfaction.
+After all, he wanted to do as Jesus would, he said to himself.
+
+It was nearly four o'clock when he opened one of the company's long
+envelopes which he supposed contained orders for the purchasing of
+stores. He ran over the first page of typewritten matter in his
+usual quick, business-like manner, before he saw that what he was
+reading was not intended for his office but for the superintendent
+of the freight department.
+
+He turned over a page mechanically, not meaning to read what was not
+addressed to him, but before he knew it, he was in possession of
+evidence which conclusively proved that the company was engaged in a
+systematic violation of the Interstate Commerce Laws of the United
+States. It was as distinct and unequivocal a breaking of law as if a
+private citizen should enter a house and rob the inmates. The
+discrimination shown in rebates was in total contempt of all the
+statutes. Under the laws of the state it was also a distinct
+violation of certain provisions recently passed by the legislature
+to prevent railroad trusts. There was no question that he had in his
+hands evidence sufficient to convict the company of willful,
+intelligent violation of the law of the commission and the law of
+the state also.
+
+He dropped the papers on his desk as if they were poison, and
+instantly the question flashed across his mind, "What would Jesus
+do?" He tried to shut the question out. He tried to reason with
+himself by saying it was none of his business. He had known in a
+more or less definite way, as did nearly all the officers of the
+company, that this had been going on right along on nearly all the
+roads. He was not in a position, owing to his place in the shops, to
+prove anything direct, and he had regarded it as a matter which did
+not concern him at all. The papers now before him revealed the
+entire affair. They had through some carelessness been addressed to
+him. What business of his was it? If he saw a man entering his
+neighbor's house to steal, would it not be his duty to inform the
+officers of the law? Was a railroad company such a different thing?
+Was it under a different rule of conduct, so that it could rob the
+public and defy law and be undisturbed because it was such a great
+organization? What would Jesus do? Then there was his family. Of
+course, if he took any steps to inform the commission it would mean
+the loss of his position. His wife and daughter had always enjoyed
+luxury and a good place in society. If he came out against this
+lawlessness as a witness it would drag him into courts, his motives
+would be misunderstood, and the whole thing would end in his
+disgrace and the loss of his position. Surely it was none of his
+business. He could easily get the papers back to the freight
+department and no one be the wiser. Let the iniquity go on. Let the
+law be defied. What was it to him? He would work out his plans for
+bettering the condition just before him. What more could a man do in
+this railroad business when there was so much going on anyway that
+made it impossible to live by the Christian standard? But what would
+Jesus do if He knew the facts? That was the question that confronted
+Alexander Powers as the day wore into evening.
+
+The lights in the office had been turned on. The whirr of the great
+engine and the clash of the planers in the big shop continued until
+six o'clock. Then the whistle blew, the engine slowed up, the men
+dropped their tools and ran for the block house.
+
+Powers heard the familiar click, click, of the clocks as the men
+filed past the window of the block house just outside. He said to
+his clerks, "I'm not going just yet. I have something extra
+tonight." He waited until he heard the last man deposit his block.
+The men behind the block case went out. The engineer and his
+assistants had work for half an hour but they went out by another
+door.
+
+
+
+
+Chapter Six
+
+
+"If any man cometh unto me and hateth not his own father and mother
+and wife and children and brethren and sisters, yea, and his own
+life also, he cannot be my disciple."
+
+"And whosoever forsaketh not all that he hath, he cannot be my
+disciple."
+
+
+WHEN Rachel Winslow and Virginia Page separated after the meeting at
+the First Church on Sunday they agreed to continue their
+conversation the next day. Virginia asked Rachel to come and lunch
+with her at noon, and Rachel accordingly rang the bell at the Page
+mansion about half-past eleven. Virginia herself met her and the two
+were soon talking earnestly.
+
+"The fact is," Rachel was saying, after they had been talking a few
+moments, "I cannot reconcile it with my judgment of what Christ
+would do. I cannot tell another person what to do, but I feel that I
+ought not to accept this offer."
+
+"What will you do then?" asked Virginia with great interest.
+
+"I don't know yet, but I have decided to refuse this offer."
+
+Rachel picked up a letter that had been lying in her lap and ran
+over its contents again. It was a letter from the manager of a comic
+opera offering her a place with a large traveling company of the
+season. The salary was a very large figure, and the prospect held
+out by the manager was flattering. He had heard Rachel sing that
+Sunday morning when the stranger had interrupted the service. He had
+been much impressed. There was money in that voice and it ought to
+be used in comic opera, so said the letter, and the manager wanted a
+reply as soon as possible.
+
+"There's no great virtue in saying 'No' to this offer when I have
+the other one," Rachel went on thoughtfully. "That's harder to
+decide. But I've about made up my mind. To tell the truth,
+Virginia, I'm completely convinced in the first case that Jesus
+would never use any talent like a good voice just to make money. But
+now, take this concert offer. Here is a reputable company, to travel
+with an impersonator and a violinist and a male quartet, all people
+of good reputation. I'm asked to go as one of the company and sing
+leading soprano. The salary--I mentioned it, didn't I?--is
+guaranteed to be $200 a month for the season. But I don't feel
+satisfied that Jesus would go. What do you think?"
+
+"You mustn't ask me to decide for you," replied Virginia with a sad
+smile. "I believe Mr. Maxwell was right when he said we must each
+one of us decide according to the judgment we feel for ourselves to
+be Christ-like. I am having a harder time than you are, dear, to
+decide what He would do."
+
+"Are you?" Rachel asked. She rose and walked over to the window and
+looked out. Virginia came and stood by her. The street was crowded
+with life and the two young women looked at it silently for a
+moment. Suddenly Virginia broke out as Rachel had never heard her
+before:
+
+"Rachel, what does all this contrast in conditions mean to you as
+you ask this question of what Jesus would do? It maddens me to think
+that the society in which I have been brought up, the same to which
+we are both said to belong, is satisfied year after year to go on
+dressing and eating and having a good time, giving and receiving
+entertainments, spending its money on houses and luxuries and,
+occasionally, to ease its conscience, donating, without any personal
+sacrifice, a little money to charity. I have been educated, as you
+have, in one of the most expensive schools in America; launched into
+society as an heiress; supposed to be in a very enviable position.
+I'm perfectly well; I can travel or stay at home. I can do as I
+please. I can gratify almost any want or desire; and yet when I
+honestly try to imagine Jesus living the life I have lived and am
+expected to live, and doing for the rest of my life what thousands
+of other rich people do, I am under condemnation for being one of
+the most wicked, selfish, useless creatures in all the world. I have
+not looked out of this window for weeks without a feeling of horror
+toward myself as I see the humanity that passes by this house."
+
+Virginia turned away and walked up and down the room. Rachel watched
+her and could not repress the rising tide of her own growing
+definition of discipleship. Of what Christian use was her own talent
+of song? Was the best she could do to sell her talent for so much a
+month, go on a concert company's tour, dress beautifully, enjoy the
+excitement of public applause and gain a reputation as a great
+singer? Was that what Jesus would do?
+
+She was not morbid. She was in sound health, was conscious of her
+great powers as a singer, and knew that if she went out into public
+life she could make a great deal of money and become well known. It
+is doubtful if she overestimated her ability to accomplish all she
+thought herself capable of. And Virginia--what she had just said
+smote Rachel with great force because of the similar position in
+which the two friends found themselves.
+
+Lunch was announced and they went out and were joined by Virginia's
+grandmother, Madam Page, a handsome, stately woman of sixty-five,
+and Virginia's brother Rollin, a young man who spent most of his
+time at one of the clubs and had no ambition for anything but a
+growing admiration for Rachel Winslow, and whenever she dined or
+lunched at the Page's, if he knew of it he always planned to be at
+home.
+
+These three made up the Page family. Virginia's father had been a
+banker and grain speculator. Her mother had died ten years before,
+her father within the past year. The grandmother, a Southern woman
+in birth and training, had all the traditions and feelings that
+accompany the possession of wealth and social standing that have
+never been disturbed. She was a shrewd, careful business woman of
+more than average ability. The family property and wealth were
+invested, in large measure, under her personal care. Virginia's
+portion was, without any restriction, her own. She had been trained
+by her father to understand the ways of the business world, and even
+the grandmother had been compelled to acknowledge the girl's
+capacity for taking care of her own money.
+
+Perhaps two persons could not be found anywhere less capable of
+understanding a girl like Virginia than Madam Page and Rollin.
+Rachel, who had known the family since she was a girl playmate of
+Virginia's, could not help thinking of what confronted Virginia in
+her own home when she once decided on the course which she honestly
+believed Jesus would take. Today at lunch, as she recalled
+Virginia's outbreak in the front room, she tried to picture the
+scene that would at some time occur between Madam Page and her
+granddaughter.
+
+"I understand that you are going on the stage, Miss Winslow. We
+shall all be delighted, I'm sure," said Rollin during the
+conversation, which had not been very animated.
+
+Rachel colored and felt annoyed. "Who told you?" she asked, while
+Virginia, who had been very silent and reserved, suddenly roused
+herself and appeared ready to join in the talk.
+
+"Oh! we hear a thing or two on the street. Besides, every one saw
+Crandall the manager at church two weeks ago. He doesn't go to
+church to hear the preaching. In fact, I know other people who don't
+either, not when there's something better to hear."
+
+Rachel did not color this time, but she answered quietly, "You're
+mistaken. I'm not going on the stage."
+
+"It's a great pity. You'd make a hit. Everybody is talking about
+your singing."
+
+This time Rachel flushed with genuine anger. Before she could say
+anything, Virginia broke in: "Whom do you mean by 'everybody?'"
+
+"Whom? I mean all the people who hear Miss Winslow on Sundays. What
+other time do they hear her? It's a great pity, I say, that the
+general public outside of Raymond cannot hear her voice."
+
+"Let us talk about something else," said Rachel a little sharply.
+Madam Page glanced at her and spoke with a gentle courtesy.
+
+"My dear, Rollin never could pay an indirect compliment. He is like
+his father in that. But we are all curious to know something of your
+plans. We claim the right from old acquaintance, you know; and
+Virginia has already told us of your concert company offer."
+
+"I supposed of course that was public property," said Virginia,
+smiling across the table. "I was in the NEWS office day before
+yesterday."
+
+"Yes, yes," replied Rachel hastily. "I understand that, Madam Page.
+Well, Virginia and I have been talking about it. I have decided not
+to accept, and that is as far as I have gone at present."
+
+Rachel was conscious of the fact that the conversation had, up to
+this point, been narrowing her hesitation concerning the concert
+company's offer down to a decision that would absolutely satisfy her
+own judgment of Jesus' probable action. It had been the last thing
+in the world, however, that she had desired, to have her decision
+made in any way so public as this. Somehow what Rollin Page had said
+and his manner in saying it had hastened her decision in the matter.
+
+"Would you mind telling us, Rachel, your reasons for refusing the
+offer? It looks like a great opportunity for a young girl like you.
+Don't you think the general public ought to hear you? I feel like
+Rollin about that. A voice like yours belongs to a larger audience
+than Raymond and the First Church."
+
+Rachel Winslow was naturally a girl of great reserve. She shrank
+from making her plans or her thoughts public. But with all her
+repression there was possible in her an occasional sudden breaking
+out that was simply an impulsive, thoroughly frank, truthful
+expression of her most inner personal feeling. She spoke now in
+reply to Madam Page in one of those rare moments of unreserve that
+added to the attractiveness of her whole character.
+
+"I have no other reason than a conviction that Jesus Christ would do
+the same thing," she said, looking into Madam Page's eyes with a
+clear, earnest gaze.
+
+Madam Page turned red and Rollin stared. Before her grandmother
+could say anything, Virginia spoke. Her rising color showed how she
+was stirred. Virginia's pale, clear complexion was that of health,
+but it was generally in marked contrast with Rachel's tropical type
+of beauty.
+
+"Grandmother, you know we promised to make that the standard of our
+conduct for a year. Mr. Maxwell's proposition was plain to all who
+heard it. We have not been able to arrive at our decisions very
+rapidly. The difficulty in knowing what Jesus would do has perplexed
+Rachel and me a good deal."
+
+Madam Page looked sharply at Virginia before she said anything.
+
+"Of course I understand Mr. Maxwell's statement. It is perfectly
+impracticable to put it into practice. I felt confident at the time
+that those who promised would find it out after a trial and abandon
+it as visionary and absurd. I have nothing to say about Miss
+Winslow's affairs, but," she paused and continued with a sharpness
+that was new to Rachel, "I hope you have no foolish notions in this
+matter, Virginia."
+
+"I have a great many notions," replied Virginia quietly. "Whether
+they are foolish or not depends upon my right understanding of what
+He would do. As soon as I find out I shall do it."
+
+"Excuse me, ladies," said Rollin, rising from the table. "The
+conversation is getting beyond my depth. I shall retire to the
+library for a cigar."
+
+He went out of the dining-room and there was silence for a moment.
+Madam Page waited until the servant had brought in something and
+then asked her to go out. She was angry and her anger was
+formidable, although checked in some measure by the presence of
+Rachel.
+
+"I am older by several years than you, young ladies," she said, and
+her traditional type of bearing seemed to Rachel to rise up like a
+great frozen wall between her and every conception of Jesus as a
+sacrifice. "What you have promised, in a spirit of false emotion I
+presume, is impossible of performance."
+
+"Do you mean, grandmother, that we cannot possibly act as our Lord
+would? or do you mean that, if we try to, we shall offend the
+customs and prejudices of society?" asked Virginia.
+
+"It is not required! It is not necessary! Besides how can you act
+with any--" Madam Page paused, broke off her sentence, and then
+turned to Rachel. "What will your mother say to your decision? My
+dear, is it not foolish? What do you expect to do with your voice
+anyway?"
+
+"I don't know what mother will say yet," Rachel answered, with a
+great shrinking from trying to give her mother's probable answer. If
+there was a woman in all Raymond with great ambitions for her
+daughter's success as a singer, Mrs. Winslow was that woman.
+
+"Oh! you will see it in a different light after wiser thought of it.
+My dear," continued Madam Page rising from the table, "you will live
+to regret it if you do not accept the concert company's offer or
+something like it."
+
+
+
+
+Chapter Seven
+
+
+RACHEL was glad to escape and be by herself. A plan was slowly
+forming in her mind, and she wanted to be alone and think it out
+carefully. But before she had walked two blocks she was annoyed to
+find Rollin Page walking beside her.
+
+"Sorry to disturb your thoughts, Miss Winslow, but I happened to be
+going your way and had an idea you might not object. In fact, I've
+been walking here for a whole block and you haven't objected."
+
+"I did not see you," said Rachel briefly.
+
+"I wouldn't mind that if you only thought of me once in a while,"
+said Rollin suddenly. He took one last nervous puff on his cigar,
+tossed it into the street and walked along with a pale look on his
+face.
+
+Rachel was surprised, but not startled. She had known Rollin as a
+boy, and there had been a time when they had used each other's first
+name familiarly. Lately, however, something in Rachel's manner had
+put an end to that. She was used to his direct attempts at
+compliments and was sometimes amused by them. Today she honestly
+wished him anywhere else.
+
+"Do you ever think of me, Miss Winslow?" asked Rollin after a pause.
+
+"Oh, yes, quite often!" said Rachel with a smile.
+
+"Are you thinking of me now?"
+
+"Yes. That is--yes--I am."
+
+"What?"
+
+"Do you want me to be absolutely truthful?"
+
+"Of course."
+
+"Then I was thinking that I wished you were not here." Rollin bit
+his lip and looked gloomy.
+
+"Now look here, Rachel--oh, I know that's forbidden, but I've got to
+speak some time!--you know how I feel. What makes you treat me so?
+You used to like me a little, you know."
+
+"Did I? Of course we used to get on very well as boy and girl. But
+we are older now."
+
+Rachel still spoke in the light, easy way she had used since her
+first annoyance at seeing him. She was still somewhat preoccupied
+with her plan which had been disturbed by Rollin's sudden
+appearance.
+
+They walked along in silence a little way. The avenue was full of
+people. Among the persons passing was Jasper Chase. He saw Rachel
+and Rollin and bowed as they went by. Rollin was watching Rachel
+closely.
+
+"I wish I was Jasper Chase. Maybe I would stand some chance then,"
+he said moodily.
+
+Rachel colored in spite of herself. She did not say anything and
+quickened her pace a little. Rollin seemed determined to say
+something, and Rachel seemed helpless to prevent him. After all, she
+thought, he might as well know the truth one time as another.
+
+"You know well enough, Rachel, how I feel toward you. Isn't there
+any hope? I could make you happy. I've loved you a good many
+years--"
+
+"Why, how old do you think I am?" broke in Rachel with a nervous
+laugh. She was shaken out of her usual poise of manner.
+
+"You know what I mean," went on Rollin doggedly. "And you have no
+right to laugh at me just because I want you to marry me."
+
+"I'm not! But it is useless for you to speak, Rollin," said Rachel
+after a little hesitation, and then using his name in such a frank,
+simple way that he could attach no meaning to it beyond the
+familiarity of the old family acquaintance. "It is impossible." She
+was still a little agitated by the fact of receiving a proposal of
+marriage on the avenue. But the noise on the street and sidewalk
+made the conversation as private as if they were in the house.
+
+"Would that is--do you think--if you gave me time I would."
+
+"No!" said Rachel. She spoke firmly; perhaps, she thought afterward,
+although she did not mean to, she spoke harshly.
+
+They walked on for some time without a word. They were nearing
+Rachel's home and she was anxious to end the scene.
+
+As they turned off the avenue into one of the quieter streets Rollin
+spoke suddenly and with more manliness than he had yet shown. There
+was a distinct note of dignity in his voice that was new to Rachel.
+
+"Miss Winslow, I ask you to be my wife. Is there any hope for me
+that you will ever consent?"
+
+"None in the least." Rachel spoke decidedly.
+
+"Will you tell me why?" He asked the question as if he had a right
+to a truthful answer.
+
+"Because I do not feel toward you as a woman ought to feel toward
+the man she marries."
+
+"In other words, you do not love me?"
+
+"I do not and I cannot."
+
+"Why?" That was another question, and Rachel was a little surprised
+that he should ask it.
+
+"Because--" she hesitated for fear she might say too much in an
+attempt to speak the exact truth.
+
+"Tell me just why. You can't hurt me more than you have already."
+
+"Well, I do not and I cannot love you because you have no purpose in
+life. What do you ever do to make the world better? You spend your
+time in club life, in amusements, in travel, in luxury. What is
+there in such a life to attract a woman?"
+
+"Not much, I guess," said Rollin with a bitter laugh. "Still, I
+don't know that I'm any worse than the rest of the men around me.
+I'm not so bad as some. I'm glad to know your reasons."
+
+He suddenly stopped, took off his hat, bowed gravely and turned
+back. Rachel went on home and hurried into her room, disturbed in
+many ways by the event which had so unexpectedly thrust itself into
+her experience.
+
+When she had time to think it all over she found herself condemned
+by the very judgment she had passed on Rollin Page. What purpose had
+she in life? She had been abroad and studied music with one of the
+famous teachers of Europe. She had come home to Raymond and had been
+singing in the First Church choir now for a year. She was well paid.
+Up to that Sunday two weeks ago she had been quite satisfied with
+herself and with her position. She had shared her mother's ambition,
+and anticipated growing triumphs in the musical world. What possible
+career was before her except the regular career of every singer?
+
+She asked the question again and, in the light of her recent reply
+to Rollin, asked again, if she had any very great purpose in life
+herself. What would Jesus do? There was a fortune in her voice. She
+knew it, not necessarily as a matter of personal pride or
+professional egotism, but simply as a fact. And she was obliged to
+acknowledge that until two weeks ago she had purposed to use her
+voice to make money and win admiration and applause. Was that a much
+higher purpose, after all, than Rollin Page lived for?
+
+She sat in her room a long time and finally went downstairs,
+resolved to have a frank talk with her mother about the concert
+company's offer and the new plan which was gradually shaping in her
+mind. She had already had one talk with her mother and knew that she
+expected Rachel to accept the offer and enter on a successful career
+as a public singer.
+
+"Mother," Rachel said, coming at once to the point, much as she
+dreaded the interview, "I have decided not to go out with the
+company. I have a good reason for it."
+
+Mrs. Winslow was a large, handsome woman, fond of much company,
+ambitious for distinction in society and devoted, according to her
+definitions of success, to the success of her children. Her youngest
+boy, Louis, two years younger than Rachel, was ready to graduate
+from a military academy in the summer. Meanwhile she and Rachel were
+at home together. Rachel's father, like Virginia's, had died while
+the family was abroad. Like Virginia she found herself, under her
+present rule of conduct, in complete antagonism with her own
+immediate home circle. Mrs. Winslow waited for Rachel to go on.
+
+"You know the promise I made two weeks ago, mother?"
+
+"Mr. Maxwell's promise?"
+
+"No, mine. You know what it was, do you not, mother?"
+
+"I suppose I do. Of course all the church members mean to imitate
+Christ and follow Him, as far as is consistent with our present day
+surroundings. But what has that to do with your decision in the
+concert company matter?"
+
+"It has everything to do with it. After asking, 'What would Jesus
+do?' and going to the source of authority for wisdom, I have been
+obliged to say that I do not believe He would, in my case, make that
+use of my voice."
+
+"Why? Is there anything wrong about such a career?"
+
+"No, I don't know that I can say there is."
+
+"Do you presume to sit in judgment on other people who go out to
+sing in this way? Do you presume to say they are doing what Christ
+would not do?"
+
+"Mother, I wish you to understand me. I judge no one else; I condemn
+no other professional singer. I simply decide my own course. As I
+look at it, I have a conviction that Jesus would do something else."
+
+"What else?" Mrs. Winslow had not yet lost her temper. She did not
+understand the situation nor Rachel in the midst of it, but she was
+anxious that her daughter's course should be as distinguished as her
+natural gifts promised. And she felt confident that when the present
+unusual religious excitement in the First Church had passed away
+Rachel would go on with her public life according to the wishes of
+the family. She was totally unprepared for Rachel's next remark.
+
+"What? Something that will serve mankind where it most needs the
+service of song. Mother, I have made up my mind to use my voice in
+some way so as to satisfy my own soul that I am doing something
+better than pleasing fashionable audiences, or making money, or even
+gratifying my own love of singing. I am going to do something that
+will satisfy me when I ask: 'What would Jesus do?' I am not
+satisfied, and cannot be, when I think of myself as singing myself
+into the career of a concert company performer."
+
+Rachel spoke with a vigor and earnestness that surprised her mother.
+But Mrs. Winslow was angry now; and she never tried to conceal her
+feelings.
+
+"It is simply absurd! Rachel, you are a fanatic! What can you do?"
+
+"The world has been served by men and women who have given it other
+things that were gifts. Why should I, because I am blessed with a
+natural gift, at once proceed to put a market price on it and make
+all the money I can out of it? You know, mother, that you have
+taught me to think of a musical career always in the light of
+financial and social success. I have been unable, since I made my
+promise two weeks ago, to imagine Jesus joining a concert company to
+do what I should do and live the life I should have to live if I
+joined it."
+
+Mrs. Winslow rose and then sat down again. With a great effort she
+composed herself.
+
+"What do you intend to do then? You have not answered my question."
+
+"I shall continue to sing for the time being in the church. I am
+pledged to sing there through the spring. During the week I am going
+to sing at the White Cross meetings, down in the Rectangle."
+
+"What! Rachel Winslow! Do you know what you are saying? Do you know
+what sort of people those are down there?"
+
+Rachel almost quailed before her mother. For a moment she shrank
+back and was silent. Then she spoke firmly: "I know very well. That
+is the reason I am going. Mr. and Mrs. Gray have been working there
+several weeks. I learned only this morning that they want singers
+from the churches to help them in their meetings. They use a tent.
+It is in a part of the city where Christian work is most needed. I
+shall offer them my help. Mother!" Rachel cried out with the first
+passionate utterance she had yet used, "I want to do something that
+will cost me something in the way of sacrifice. I know you will not
+understand me. But I am hungry to suffer for something. What have we
+done all our lives for the suffering, sinning side of Raymond? How
+much have we denied ourselves or given of our personal ease and
+pleasure to bless the place in which we live or imitate the life of
+the Savior of the world? Are we always to go on doing as society
+selfishly dictates, moving on its little narrow round of pleasures
+and entertainments, and never knowing the pain of things that cost?"
+
+"Are you preaching at me?" asked Mrs. Winslow slowly. Rachel rose,
+and understood her mother's words.
+
+"No. I am preaching at myself," she replied gently. She paused a
+moment as if she thought her mother would say something more, and
+then went out of the room. When she reached her own room she felt
+that so far as her own mother was concerned she could expect no
+sympathy, nor even a fair understanding from her.
+
+She kneeled. It is safe to say that within the two weeks since Henry
+Maxwell's church had faced that shabby figure with the faded hat
+more members of his parish had been driven to their knees in prayer
+than during all the previous term of his pastorate.
+
+She rose, and her face was wet with tears. She sat thoughtfully a
+little while and then wrote a note to Virginia Page. She sent it to
+her by a messenger and then went downstairs and told her mother that
+she and Virginia were going down to the Rectangle that evening to
+see Mr. and Mrs. Gray, the evangelists.
+
+"Virginia's uncle, Dr. West, will go with us, if she goes. I have
+asked her to call him up by telephone and go with us. The Doctor is
+a friend of the Grays, and attended some of their meetings last
+winter."
+
+Mrs. Winslow did not say anything. Her manner showed her complete
+disapproval of Rachel's course, and Rachel felt her unspoken
+bitterness.
+
+About seven o'clock the Doctor and Virginia appeared, and together
+the three started for the scene of the White Cross meetings.
+
+The Rectangle was the most notorious district in Raymond. It was on
+the territory close by the railroad shops and the packing houses.
+The great slum and tenement district of Raymond congested its worst
+and most wretched elements about the Rectangle. This was a barren
+field used in the summer by circus companies and wandering showmen.
+It was shut in by rows of saloons, gambling hells and cheap, dirty
+boarding and lodging houses.
+
+The First Church of Raymond had never touched the Rectangle problem.
+It was too dirty, too coarse, too sinful, too awful for close
+contact. Let us be honest. There had been an attempt to cleanse this
+sore spot by sending down an occasional committee of singers or
+Sunday-school teachers or gospel visitors from various churches. But
+the First Church of Raymond, as an institution, had never really
+done anything to make the Rectangle any less a stronghold of the
+devil as the years went by.
+
+Into this heart of the coarse part of the sin of Raymond the
+traveling evangelist and his brave little wife had pitched a
+good-sized tent and begun meetings. It was the spring of the year
+and the evenings were beginning to be pleasant. The evangelists had
+asked for the help of Christian people, and had received more than
+the usual amount of encouragement. But they felt a great need of
+more and better music. During the meetings on the Sunday just gone
+the assistant at the organ had been taken ill. The volunteers from
+the city were few and the voices were of ordinary quality.
+
+"There will be a small meeting tonight, John," said his wife, as
+they entered the tent a little after seven o'clock and began to
+arrange the chairs and light up.
+
+"Yes, I fear so." Mr. Gray was a small, energetic man, with a
+pleasant voice and the courage of a high-born fighter. He had
+already made friends in the neighborhood and one of his converts, a
+heavy-faced man who had just come in, began to help in the arranging
+of seats.
+
+It was after eight o'clock when Alexander Powers opened the door of
+his office and started for home. He was going to take a car at the
+corner of the Rectangle. But he was roused by a voice coming from
+the tent.
+
+It was the voice of Rachel Winslow. It struck through his
+consciousness of struggle over his own question that had sent him
+into the Divine Presence for an answer. He had not yet reached a
+conclusion. He was tortured with uncertainty. His whole previous
+course of action as a railroad man was the poorest possible
+preparation for anything sacrificial. And he could not yet say what
+he would do in the matter.
+
+Hark! What was she singing? How did Rachel Winslow happen to be down
+here? Several windows near by went up. Some men quarreling near a
+saloon stopped and listened. Other figures were walking rapidly in
+the direction of the Rectangle and the tent. Surely Rachel Winslow
+had never sung like that in the First Church. It was a marvelous
+voice. What was it she was singing? Again Alexander Powers,
+Superintendent of the machine shops, paused and listened,
+
+ "Where He leads me I will follow,
+ Where He leads me I will follow,
+ Where He leads me I will follow,
+ I'll go with Him, with Him.
+ All the way!"
+
+The brutal, coarse, impure life of the Rectangle stirred itself into
+new life as the song, as pure as the surroundings were vile, floated
+out and into saloon and den and foul lodging. Some one stumbled
+hastily by Alexander Powers and said in answer to a question: "De
+tent's beginning to run over tonight. That's what the talent calls
+music, eh?"
+
+
+
+
+Chapter Eight
+
+
+"If any man would come after me, let him deny himself and take up
+his cross daily and follow me."
+
+
+HENRY MAXWELL paced his study back and forth. It was Wednesday and
+he had started to think out the subject of his evening service which
+fell upon that night. Out of one of his study windows he could see
+the tall chimney of the railroad shops. The top of the evangelist's
+tent just showed over the buildings around the Rectangle. He looked
+out of his window every time he turned in his walk. After a while he
+sat down at his desk and drew a large piece of paper toward him.
+After thinking several moments he wrote in large letters the
+following:
+
+A NUMBER OF THINGS THAT JESUS WOULD PROBABLY DO IN THIS PARISH
+
+Live in a simple, plain manner, without needless luxury on the one
+hand or undue asceticism on the other. Preach fearlessly to the
+hypocrites in the church, no matter what their social importance or
+wealth. Show in some practical form His sympathy and love for the
+common people as well as for the well-to-do, educated, refined
+people who make up the majority of the parish. Identify Himself with
+the great causes of humanity in some personal way that would call
+for self-denial and suffering. Preach against the saloon in Raymond.
+Become known as a friend and companion of the sinful people in the
+Rectangle. Give up the summer trip to Europe this year. (I have been
+abroad twice and cannot claim any special need of rest. I am well,
+and could forego this pleasure, using the money for some one who
+needs a vacation more than I do. There are probably plenty of such
+people in the city.)
+
+He was conscious, with a humility that was once a stranger to him,
+that his outline of Jesus' probable action was painfully lacking in
+depth and power, but he was seeking carefully for concrete shapes
+into which he might cast his thought of Jesus' conduct. Nearly every
+point he had put down, meant, for him, a complete overturning of the
+custom and habit of years in the ministry. In spite of that, he
+still searched deeper for sources of the Christ-like spirit. He did
+not attempt to write any more, but sat at his desk absorbed in his
+effort to catch more and more the spirit of Jesus in his own life.
+He had forgotten the particular subject for his prayer meeting with
+which he had begun his morning study.
+
+He was so absorbed over his thought that he did not hear the bell
+ring; he was roused by the servant who announced a caller. He had
+sent up his name, Mr. Gray.
+
+Maxwell stepped to the head of the stairs and asked Gray to come up.
+So Gray came up and stated the reason for his call.
+
+"I want your help, Mr. Maxwell. Of course you have heard what a
+wonderful meeting we had Monday night and last night. Miss Winslow
+has done more with her voice than I could do, and the tent won't
+hold the people."
+
+"I've heard of that. It is the first time the people there have
+heard her. It is no wonder they are attracted."
+
+"It has been a wonderful revelation to us, and a most encouraging
+event in our work. But I came to ask if you could not come down
+tonight and preach. I am suffering from a severe cold. I do not dare
+trust my voice again. I know it is asking a good deal from such a
+busy man. But, if you can't come, say so frankly, and I'll try
+somewhere else."
+
+"I'm sorry, but it's my regular prayer meeting night," began Henry
+Maxwell. Then he flushed and added, "I shall be able to arrange it
+in some way so as to come down. You can count on me."
+
+Gray thanked him earnestly and rose to go.
+
+"Won't you stay a minute, Gray, and let us have a prayer together?"
+
+"Yes," said Gray simply.
+
+So the two men kneeled together in the study. Henry Maxwell prayed
+like a child. Gray was touched to tears as he knelt there. There was
+something almost pitiful in the way this man who had lived his
+ministerial life in such a narrow limit of exercise now begged for
+wisdom and strength to speak a message to the people in the
+Rectangle.
+
+Gray rose and held out his hand. "God bless you, Mr. Maxwell. I'm
+sure the Spirit will give you power tonight."
+
+Henry Maxwell made no answer. He did not even trust himself to say
+that he hoped so. But he thought of his promise and it brought him a
+certain peace that was refreshing to his heart and mind alike.
+
+So that is how it came about that when the First Church audience
+came into the lecture room that evening it met with another
+surprise. There was an unusually large number present. The prayer
+meetings ever since that remarkable Sunday morning had been attended
+as never before in the history of the First Church. Mr. Maxwell came
+at once to the point.
+
+"I feel that I am called to go down to the Rectangle tonight, and I
+will leave it with you to say whether you will go on with this
+meeting here. I think perhaps the best plan would be for a few
+volunteers to go down to the Rectangle with me prepared to help in
+the after-meeting, if necessary, and the rest to remain here and
+pray that the Spirit power may go with us."
+
+So half a dozen of the men went with the pastor, and the rest of the
+audience stayed in the lecture room. Maxwell could not escape the
+thought as he left the room that probably in his entire church
+membership there might not be found a score of disciples who were
+capable of doing work that would successfully lead needy, sinful men
+into the knowledge of Christ. The thought did not linger in his mind
+to vex him as he went his way, but it was simply a part of his whole
+new conception of the meaning of Christian discipleship.
+
+When he and his little company of volunteers reached the Rectangle,
+the tent was already crowded. They had difficulty in getting to the
+platform. Rachel was there with Virginia and Jasper Chase who had
+come instead of the Doctor tonight.
+
+When the meeting began with a song in which Rachel sang the solo and
+the people were asked to join in the chorus, not a foot of standing
+room was left in the tent. The night was mild and the sides of the
+tent were up and a great border of faces stretched around, looking
+in and forming part of the audience. After the singing, and a prayer
+by one of the city pastors who was present, Gray stated the reason
+for his inability to speak, and in his simple manner turned the
+service over to "Brother Maxwell of the First Church."
+
+"Who's de bloke?" asked a hoarse voice near the outside of the tent.
+
+"De Fust Church parson. We've got de whole high-tone swell outfit
+tonight."
+
+"Did you say Fust Church? I know him. My landlord's got a front pew
+up there," said another voice, and there was a laugh, for the
+speaker was a saloon keeper.
+
+"Trow out de life line 'cross de dark wave!" began a drunken man
+near by, singing in such an unconscious imitation of a local
+traveling singer's nasal tone that roars of laughter and jeers of
+approval rose around him. The people in the tent turned in the
+direction of the disturbance. There were shouts of "Put him out!"
+"Give the Fust Church a chance!" "Song! Song! Give us another song!"
+
+Henry Maxwell stood up, and a great wave of actual terror went over
+him. This was not like preaching to the well-dressed, respectable,
+good-mannered people up on the boulevard. He began to speak, but the
+confusion increased. Gray went down into the crowd, but did not seem
+able to quiet it. Maxwell raised his arm and his voice. The crowd in
+the tent began to pay some attention, but the noise on the outside
+increased. In a few minutes the audience was beyond his control. He
+turned to Rachel with a sad smile.
+
+"Sing something, Miss Winslow. They will listen to you," he said,
+and then sat down and covered his face with his hands.
+
+It was Rachel's opportunity, and she was fully equal to it. Virginia
+was at the organ and Rachel asked her to play a few notes of the
+hymn.
+
+ "Savior, I follow on,
+ Guided by Thee,
+ Seeing not yet the hand
+ That leadeth me.
+ Hushed be my heart and still
+ Fear I no farther ill,
+ Only to meet Thy will,
+ My will shall be."
+
+Rachel had not sung the first line before the people in the tent
+were all turned toward her, hushed and reverent. Before she had
+finished the verse the Rectangle was subdued and tamed. It lay like
+some wild beast at her feet, and she sang it into harmlessness. Ah!
+What were the flippant, perfumed, critical audiences in concert
+halls compared with this dirty, drunken, impure, besotted mass of
+humanity that trembled and wept and grew strangely, sadly thoughtful
+under the touch of this divine ministry of this beautiful young
+woman! Mr. Maxwell, as he raised his head and saw the transformed
+mob, had a glimpse of something that Jesus would probably do with a
+voice like Rachel Winslow's. Jasper Chase sat with his eyes on the
+singer, and his greatest longing as an ambitious author was
+swallowed up in his thought of what Rachel Winslow's love might
+sometimes mean to him. And over in the shadow outside stood the last
+person any one might have expected to see at a gospel tent
+service--Rollin Page, who, jostled on every side by rough men and
+women who stared at the swell in fine clothes, seemed careless of
+his surroundings and at the same time evidently swayed by the power
+that Rachel possessed. He had just come over from the club. Neither
+Rachel nor Virginia saw him that night.
+
+The song was over. Maxwell rose again. This time he felt calmer.
+What would Jesus do? He spoke as he thought once he never could
+speak. Who were these people? They were immortal souls. What was
+Christianity? A calling of sinners, not the righteous, to
+repentance. How would Jesus speak? What would He say? He could not
+tell all that His message would include, but he felt sure of a part
+of it. And in that certainty he spoke on. Never before had he felt
+"compassion for the multitude." What had the multitude been to him
+during his ten years in the First Church but a vague, dangerous,
+dirty, troublesome factor in society, outside of the church and of
+his reach, an element that caused him occasionally an unpleasant
+twinge of conscience, a factor in Raymond that was talked about at
+associations as the "masses," in papers written by the brethren in
+attempts to show why the "masses" were not being reached. But
+tonight as he faced the masses he asked himself whether, after all,
+this was not just about such a multitude as Jesus faced oftenest,
+and he felt the genuine emotion of love for a crowd which is one of
+the best indications a preacher ever has that he is living close to
+the heart of the world's eternal Life. It is easy to love an
+individual sinner, especially if he is personally picturesque or
+interesting. To love a multitude of sinners is distinctively a
+Christ-like quality.
+
+When the meeting closed, there was no special interest shown. No one
+stayed to the after-meeting. The people rapidly melted away from the
+tent, and the saloons, which had been experiencing a dull season
+while the meetings progressed, again drove a thriving trade. The
+Rectangle, as if to make up for lost time, started in with vigor on
+its usual night debauch. Maxwell and his little party, including
+Virginia, Rachel and Jasper Chase, walked down past the row of
+saloons and dens until they reached the corner where the cars
+passed.
+
+"This is a terrible spot," said the minister as he stood waiting for
+their car. "I never realized that Raymond had such a festering sore.
+It does not seem possible that this is a city full of Christian
+disciples."
+
+"Do you think any one can ever remove this great curse of drink?"
+asked Jasper Chase.
+
+"I have thought lately as never before of what Christian people
+might do to remove the curse of the saloon. Why don't we all act
+together against it? Why don't the Christian pastors and the church
+members of Raymond move as one man against the traffic? What would
+Jesus do? Would He keep silent? Would He vote to license these
+causes of crime and death?"
+
+He was talking to himself more than to the others. He remembered
+that he had always voted for license, and so had nearly all his
+church members. What would Jesus do? Could he answer that question?
+Would the Master preach and act against the saloon if He lived
+today? How would He preach and act? Suppose it was not popular to
+preach against license? Suppose the Christian people thought it was
+all that could be done to license the evil and so get revenue from
+the necessary sin? Or suppose the church members themselves owned
+the property where the saloons stood--what then? He knew that those
+were the facts in Raymond. What would Jesus do?
+
+He went up into his study the next morning with that question only
+partly answered. He thought of it all day. He was still thinking of
+it and reaching certain real conclusions when the EVENING NEWS came.
+His wife brought it up and sat down a few minutes while he read to
+her.
+
+The EVENING NEWS was at present the most sensational paper in
+Raymond. That is to say, it was being edited in such a remarkable
+fashion that its subscribers had never been so excited over a
+newspaper before. First they had noticed the absence of the prize
+fight, and gradually it began to dawn upon them that the NEWS no
+longer printed accounts of crime with detailed descriptions, or
+scandals in private life. Then they noticed that the advertisements
+of liquor and tobacco were dropped, together with certain others of
+a questionable character. The discontinuance of the Sunday paper
+caused the greatest comment of all, and now the character of the
+editorials was creating the greatest excitement. A quotation from
+the Monday paper of this week will show what Edward Norman was doing
+to keep his promise. The editorial was headed:
+
+THE MORAL SIDE OF POLITICAL QUESTIONS
+
+The editor of the News has always advocated the principles of the
+great political party at present in power, and has heretofore
+discussed all political questions from the standpoint of expediency,
+or of belief in the party as opposed to other political
+organizations. Hereafter, to be perfectly honest with all our
+readers, the editor will present and discuss all political questions
+from the standpoint of right and wrong. In other words, the first
+question asked in this office about any political question will not
+be, "Is it in the interests of our party?" or, "Is it according to
+the principles laid down by our party in its platform?" but the
+question first asked will be, "Is this measure in accordance with
+the spirit and teachings of Jesus as the author of the greatest
+standard of life known to men?" That is, to be perfectly plain, the
+moral side of every political question will be considered its most
+important side, and the ground will be distinctly taken that nations
+as well as individuals are under the same law to do all things to
+the glory of God as the first rule of action.
+
+The same principle will be observed in this office toward candidates
+for places of responsibility and trust in the republic. Regardless
+of party politics the editor of the News will do all in his power to
+bring the best men into power, and will not knowingly help to
+support for office any candidate who is unworthy, no matter how much
+he may be endorsed by the party. The first question asked about the
+man and about the measures will be, "Is he the right man for the
+place?" "Is he a good man with ability?" "Is the measure right?"
+
+There had been more of this, but we have quoted enough to show the
+character of the editorial. Hundreds of men in Raymond had read it
+and rubbed their eyes in amazement. A good many of them had promptly
+written to the NEWS, telling the editor to stop their paper. The
+paper still came out, however, and was eagerly read all over the
+city. At the end of a week Edward Norman knew very well that he was
+fast losing a large number of subscribers. He faced the conditions
+calmly, although Clark, the managing editor, grimly anticipated
+ultimate bankruptcy, especially since Monday's editorial.
+
+Tonight, as Maxwell read to his wife, he could see in almost every
+column evidences of Norman's conscientious obedience to his promise.
+There was an absence of slangy, sensational scare heads. The reading
+matter under the head lines was in perfect keeping with them. He
+noticed in two columns that the reporters' name appeared signed at
+the bottom. And there was a distinct advance in the dignity and
+style of their contributions.
+
+"So Norman is beginning to get his reporters to sign their work. He
+has talked with me about that. It is a good thing. It fixes
+responsibility for items where it belongs and raises the standard of
+work done. A good thing all around for the public and the writers."
+
+Maxwell suddenly paused. His wife looked up from some work she was
+doing. He was reading something with the utmost interest. "Listen to
+this, Mary," he said, after a moment while his lip trembled:
+
+"This morning Alexander Powers, Superintendent of the L. and T. R. R.
+shops in this city, handed in his resignation to the road, and gave
+as his reason the fact that certain proofs had fallen into his hands
+of the violation of the Interstate Commerce Law, and also of the
+state law which has recently been framed to prevent and punish
+railroad pooling for the benefit of certain favored shippers. Mr.
+Powers states in his resignation that he can no longer consistently
+withhold the information he possesses against the road. He will be a
+witness against it. He has placed his evidence against the company
+in the hands of the Commission and it is now for them to take action
+upon it.
+
+The News wishes to express itself on this action of Mr. Powers. In
+the first place he has nothing to gain by it. He has lost a very
+valuable place voluntarily, when by keeping silent he might have
+retained it. In the second place, we believe his action ought to
+receive the approval of all thoughtful, honest citizens who believe
+in seeing law obeyed and lawbreakers brought to justice. In a case
+like this, where evidence against a railroad company is generally
+understood to be almost impossible to obtain, it is the general
+belief that the officers of the road are often in possession of
+criminating facts but do not consider it to be any of their business
+to inform the authorities that the law is being defied. The entire
+result of this evasion of responsibility on the part of those who
+are responsible is demoralizing to every young man connected with
+the road. The editor of the News recalls the statement made by a
+prominent railroad official in this city a little while ago, that
+nearly every clerk in a certain department of the road understood
+that large sums of money were made by shrewd violations of the
+Interstate Commerce Law, was ready to admire the shrewdness with
+which it was done, and declared that they would all do the same
+thing if they were high enough in railroad circles to attempt it."
+
+
+
+
+Chapter Nine
+
+
+HENRY MAXWELL finished reading and dropped the paper.
+
+"I must go and see Powers. This is the result of his promise."
+
+He rose, and as he was going out, his wife said: "Do you think,
+Henry, that Jesus would have done that?"
+
+Maxwell paused a moment. Then he answered slowly, "Yes, I think He
+would. At any rate, Powers has decided so and each one of us who
+made the promise understands that he is not deciding Jesus' conduct
+for any one else, only for himself."
+
+"How about his family? How will Mrs. Powers and Celia be likely to
+take it?"
+
+"Very hard, I've no doubt. That will be Powers' cross in this
+matter. They will not understand his motive."
+
+Maxwell went out and walked over to the next block where
+Superintendent Powers lived. To his relief, Powers himself came to
+the door.
+
+The two men shook hands silently. They instantly understood each
+other without words. There had never before been such a bond of
+union between the minister and his parishioner.
+
+"What are you going to do?" Henry Maxwell asked after they had
+talked over the facts in the case.
+
+"You mean another position? I have no plans yet. I can go back to my
+old work as a telegraph operator. My family will not suffer, except
+in a social way."
+
+Powers spoke calmly and sadly. Henry Maxwell did not need to ask him
+how the wife and daughter felt. He knew well enough that the
+superintendent had suffered deepest at that point.
+
+"There is one matter I wish you would see to," said Powers after
+awhile, "and that is, the work begun at the shops. So far as I know,
+the company will not object to that going on. It is one of the
+contradictions of the railroad world that Y. M. C. A.'s and other
+Christian influences are encouraged by the roads, while all the time
+the most un-Christian and lawless acts may be committed in the
+official management of the roads themselves. Of course it is well
+understood that it pays a railroad to have in its employ men who are
+temperate, honest and Christian. So I have no doubt the master
+mechanic will have the same courtesy shown him in the use of the
+room. But what I want you to do, Mr. Maxwell, is to see that my plan
+is carried out. Will you? You understand what it was in general. You
+made a very favorable impression on the men. Go down there as often
+as you can. Get Milton Wright interested to provide something for
+the furnishing and expense of the coffee plant and reading tables.
+Will you do it?"
+
+"Yes," replied Henry Maxwell. He stayed a little longer. Before he
+went away, he and the superintendent had a prayer together, and they
+parted with that silent hand grasp that seemed to them like a new
+token of their Christian discipleship and fellowship.
+
+The pastor of the First Church went home stirred deeply by the
+events of the week. Gradually the truth was growing upon him that
+the pledge to do as Jesus would was working out a revolution in his
+parish and throughout the city. Every day added to the serious
+results of obedience to that pledge. Maxwell did not pretend to see
+the end. He was, in fact, only now at the very beginning of events
+that were destined to change the history of hundreds of families not
+only in Raymond but throughout the entire country. As he thought of
+Edward Norman and Rachel and Mr. Powers, and of the results that had
+already come from their actions, he could not help a feeling of
+intense interest in the probable effect if all the persons in the
+First Church who had made the pledge, faithfully kept it. Would they
+all keep it, or would some of them turn back when the cross became
+too heavy?
+
+He was asking this question the next morning as he sat in his study
+when the President of the Endeavor Society of his church called to
+see him.
+
+"I suppose I ought not to trouble you with my case," said young
+Morris coming at once to his errand, "but I thought, Mr. Maxwell,
+that you might advise me a little."
+
+"I'm glad you came. Go on, Fred." He had known the young man ever
+since his first year in the pastorate, and loved and honored him for
+his consistent, faithful service in the church.
+
+"Well, the fact is, I am out of a job. You know I've been doing
+reporter work on the morning SENTINEL since I graduated last year.
+Well, last Saturday Mr. Burr asked me to go down the road Sunday
+morning and get the details of that train robbery at the Junction,
+and write the thing up for the extra edition that came out Monday
+morning, just to get the start of the NEWS. I refused to go, and
+Burr gave me my dismissal. He was in a bad temper, or I think
+perhaps he would not have done it. He has always treated me well
+before. Now, do you think Jesus would have done as I did? I ask
+because the other fellows say I was a fool not to do the work. I
+want to feel that a Christian acts from motives that may seem
+strange to others sometimes, but not foolish. What do you think?"
+
+"I think you kept your promise, Fred. I cannot believe Jesus would
+do newspaper reporting on Sunday as you were asked to do it."
+
+"Thank you, Mr. Maxwell. I felt a little troubled over it, but the
+longer I think it over the better I feel."
+
+Morris rose to go, and his pastor rose and laid a loving hand on the
+young man's shoulder. "What are you going to do, Fred?"
+
+"I don't know yet. I have thought some of going to Chicago or some
+large city ."
+
+"Why don't you try the NEWS?"
+
+"They are all supplied. I have not thought of applying there."
+
+Maxwell thought a moment. "Come down to the NEWS office with me, and
+let us see Norman about it."
+
+So a few minutes later Edward Norman received into his room the
+minister and young Morris, and Maxwell briefly told the cause of the
+errand.
+
+"I can give you a place on the NEWS," said Norman with his keen look
+softened by a smile that made it winsome. "I want reporters who
+won't work Sundays. And what is more, I am making plans for a
+special kind of reporting which I believe you can develop because
+you are in sympathy with what Jesus would do."
+
+He assigned Morris a definite task, and Maxwell started back to his
+study, feeling that kind of satisfaction (and it is a very deep
+kind) which a man feels when he has been even partly instrumental in
+finding an unemployed person a remunerative position.
+
+He had intended to go right to his study, but on his way home he
+passed by one of Milton Wright's stores. He thought he would simply
+step in and shake hands with his parishioner and bid him God-speed
+in what he had heard he was doing to put Christ into his business.
+But when he went into the office, Wright insisted on detaining him
+to talk over some of his new plans. Maxwell asked himself if this
+was the Milton Wright he used to know, eminently practical,
+business-like, according to the regular code of the business world,
+and viewing every thing first and foremost from the standpoint of,
+"Will it pay?"
+
+"There is no use to disguise the fact, Mr. Maxwell, that I have been
+compelled to revolutionize the entire method of my business since I
+made that promise. I have been doing a great many things during the
+last twenty years in this store that I know Jesus would not do. But
+that is a small item compared with the number of things I begin to
+believe Jesus would do. My sins of commission have not been as many
+as those of omission in business relations."
+
+"What was the first change you made?" He felt as if his sermon could
+wait for him in his study. As the interview with Milton Wright
+continued, he was not so sure but that he had found material for a
+sermon without going back to his study.
+
+"I think the first change I had to make was in my thought of my
+employees. I came down here Monday morning after that Sunday and
+asked myself, 'What would Jesus do in His relation to these clerks,
+bookkeepers, office-boys, draymen, salesmen? Would He try to
+establish some sort of personal relation to them different from that
+which I have sustained all these years?' I soon answered this by
+saying, 'Yes.' Then came the question of what that relation would be
+and what it would lead me to do. I did not see how I could answer it
+to my satisfaction without getting all my employees together and
+having a talk with them. So I sent invitations to all of them, and
+we had a meeting out there in the warehouse Tuesday night. A good
+many things came out of that meeting. I can't tell you all. I tried
+to talk with the men as I imagined Jesus might. It was hard work,
+for I have not been in the habit of it, and must have made some
+mistakes. But I can hardly make you believe, Mr. Maxwell, the effect
+of that meeting on some of the men. Before it closed I saw more than
+a dozen of them with tears on their faces. I kept asking, 'What
+would Jesus do?' and the more I asked it the farther along it pushed
+me into the most intimate and loving relations with the men who have
+worked for me all these years. Every day something new is coming up
+and I am right now in the midst of a reconstruction of the entire
+business so far as its motive for being conducted is concerned. I am
+so practically ignorant of all plans for co-operation and its
+application to business that I am trying to get information from
+every possible source. I have lately made a special study of the
+life of Titus Salt, the great mill-owner of Bradford, England, who
+afterward built that model town on the banks of the Aire. There is a
+good deal in his plans that will help me. But I have not yet reached
+definite conclusions in regard to all the details. I am not enough
+used to Jesus' methods. But see here."
+
+Wright eagerly reached up into one of the pigeon holes of his desk
+and took out a paper.
+
+"I have sketched out what seems to me like a program such as Jesus
+might go by in a business like mine. I want you to tell me what you
+think of it:
+
+"WHAT JESUS WOULD PROBABLY DO IN MILTON WRIGHT'S PLACE AS A BUSINESS
+MAN"
+
+He would engage in the business first of all for the purpose of
+glorifying God, and not for the primary purpose of making money. All
+money that might be made he would never regard as his own, but as
+trust funds to be used for the good of humanity. His relations with
+all the persons in his employ would be the most loving and helpful.
+He could not help thinking of all of them in the light of souls to
+be saved. This thought would always be greater than his thought of
+making money in the business. He would never do a single dishonest
+or questionable thing or try in any remotest way to get the
+advantage of any one else in the same business. The principle of
+unselfishness and helpfulness in the business would direct all its
+details. Upon this principle he would shape the entire plan of his
+relations to his employees, to the people who were his customers and
+to the general business world with which he was connected.
+
+Henry Maxwell read this over slowly. It reminded him of his own
+attempts the day before to put into a concrete form his thought of
+Jesus' probable action. He was very thoughtful as he looked up and
+met Wright's eager gaze.
+
+"Do you believe you can continue to make your business pay on these
+lines?"
+
+"I do. Intelligent unselfishness ought to be wiser than intelligent
+selfishness, don't you think? If the men who work as employees begin
+to feel a personal share in the profits of the business and, more
+than that, a personal love for themselves on the part of the firm,
+won't the result be more care, less waste, more diligence, more
+faithfulness?"
+
+"Yes, I think so. A good many other business men don't, do they? I
+mean as a general thing. How about your relations to the selfish
+world that is not trying to make money on Christian principles?"
+
+"That complicates my action, of course."
+
+"Does your plan contemplate what is coming to be known as
+co-operation?"
+
+"Yes, as far as I have gone, it does. As I told you, I am studying
+out my details carefully. I am absolutely convinced that Jesus in my
+place would be absolutely unselfish. He would love all these men in
+His employ. He would consider the main purpose of all the business
+to be a mutual helpfulness, and would conduct it all so that God's
+kingdom would be evidently the first object sought. On those general
+principles, as I say, I am working. I must have time to complete the
+details."
+
+When Maxwell finally left he was profoundly impressed with the
+revolution that was being wrought already in the business. As he
+passed out of the store he caught something of the new spirit of the
+place. There was no mistaking the fact that Milton Wright's new
+relations to his employees were beginning even so soon, after less
+than two weeks, to transform the entire business. This was apparent
+in the conduct and faces of the clerks.
+
+"If he keeps on he will be one of the most influential preachers in
+Raymond," said Maxwell to himself when he reached his study. The
+question rose as to his continuance in this course when he began to
+lose money by it, as was possible. He prayed that the Holy Spirit,
+who had shown Himself with growing power in the company of First
+Church disciples, might abide long with them all. And with that
+prayer on his lips and in his heart he began the preparation of a
+sermon in which he was going to present to his people on Sunday the
+subject of the saloon in Raymond, as he now believed Jesus would do.
+He had never preached against the saloon in this way before. He knew
+that the things he should say would lead to serious results.
+Nevertheless, he went on with his work, and every sentence he wrote
+or shaped was preceded with the question, "Would Jesus say that?"
+Once in the course of his study, he went down on his knees. No one
+except himself could know what that meant to him. When had he done
+that in his preparation of sermons, before the change that had come
+into his thought of discipleship? As he viewed his ministry now, he
+did not dare preach without praying long for wisdom. He no longer
+thought of his dramatic delivery and its effect on his audience. The
+great question with him now was, "What would Jesus do?"
+
+Saturday night at the Rectangle witnessed some of the most
+remarkable scenes that Mr. Gray and his wife had ever known. The
+meetings had intensified with each night of Rachel's singing. A
+stranger passing through the Rectangle in the day-time might have
+heard a good deal about the meetings in one way and another. It
+cannot be said that up to that Saturday night there was any
+appreciable lack of oaths and impurity and heavy drinking. The
+Rectangle would not have acknowledged that it was growing any better
+or that even the singing had softened its outward manner. It had too
+much local pride in being "tough." But in spite of itself there was
+a yielding to a power it had never measured and did not know we
+enough to resist beforehand.
+
+Gray had recovered his voice so that by Saturday he was able to
+speak. The fact that he was obliged to use his voice carefully made
+it necessary for the people to be very quiet if they wanted to hear.
+Gradually they had come to understand that this man was talking
+these many weeks and giving his time and strength to give them a
+knowledge of a Savior, all out of a perfectly unselfish love for
+them. Tonight the great crowd was as quiet as Henry Maxwell's
+decorous audience ever was. The fringe around the tent was deeper
+and the saloons were practically empty. The Holy Spirit had come at
+last, and Gray knew that one of the great prayers of his life was
+going to be answered.
+
+And Rachel her singing was the best, most wonderful, that Virginia
+or Jasper Chase had ever known. They came together again tonight,
+this time with Dr. West, who had spent all his spare time that week
+in the Rectangle with some charity cases. Virginia was at the organ,
+Jasper sat on a front seat looking up at Rachel, and the Rectangle
+swayed as one man towards the platform as she sang:
+
+ "Just as I am, without one plea,
+ But that Thy blood was shed for me,
+ And that Thou bidst me come to Thee,
+ O Lamb of God, I come, I come."
+
+Gray hardly said a word. He stretched out his hand with a gesture of
+invitation. And down the two aisles of the tent, broken, sinful
+creatures, men and women, stumbled towards the platform. One woman
+out of the street was near the organ. Virginia caught the look of
+her face, and for the first time in the life of the rich girl the
+thought of what Jesus was to the sinful woman came with a suddenness
+and power that was like nothing but a new birth. Virginia left the
+organ, went to her, looked into her face and caught her hands in her
+own. The other girl trembled, then fell on her knees sobbing, with
+her head down upon the back of the rude bench in front of her, still
+clinging to Virginia. And Virginia, after a moment's hesitation,
+kneeled down by her and the two heads were bowed close together.
+
+But when the people had crowded in a double row all about the
+platform, most of them kneeling and crying, a man in evening dress,
+different from the others, pushed through the seats and came and
+kneeled down by the side of the drunken man who had disturbed the
+meeting when Maxwell spoke. He kneeled within a few feet of Rachel
+Winslow, who was still singing softly. And as she turned for a
+moment and looked in his direction, she was amazed to see the face
+of Rollin Page! For a moment her voice faltered. Then she went on:
+
+ "Just as I am, thou wilt receive,
+ Wilt welcome, pardon, cleanse, relieve,
+ Because Thy promise I believe,
+ O Lamb of God, I come, I come."
+
+
+
+
+Chapter Ten
+
+
+"If any man serve me, let him follow me."
+
+
+IT was nearly midnight before the services at the Rectangle closed.
+Gray stayed up long into Sunday morning, praying and talking with a
+little group of converts who in the great experiences of their new
+life, clung to the evangelist with a personal helplessness that made
+it as impossible for him to leave them as if they had been depending
+upon him to save them from physical death. Among these converts was
+Rollin Page.
+
+Virginia and her uncle had gone home about eleven o'clock, and
+Rachel and Jasper Chase had gone with them as far as the avenue
+where Virginia lived. Dr. West had walked on a little way with them
+to his own home, and Rachel and Jasper had then gone on together to
+her mother's.
+
+That was a little after eleven. It was now striking midnight, and
+Jasper Chase sat in his room staring at the papers on his desk and
+going over the last half hour with painful persistence.
+
+He had told Rachel Winslow of his love for her, and she had not
+given him her love in return. It would be difficult to know what was
+most powerful in the impulse that had moved him to speak to her
+tonight. He had yielded to his feelings without any special thought
+of results to himself, because he had felt so certain that Rachel
+would respond to his love. He tried to recall the impression she
+made on him when he first spoke to her.
+
+Never had her beauty and her strength influenced him as tonight.
+While she was singing he saw and heard no one else. The tent swarmed
+with a confused crowd of faces and he knew he was sitting there
+hemmed in by a mob of people, but they had no meaning to him. He
+felt powerless to avoid speaking to her. He knew he should speak
+when they were alone.
+
+Now that he had spoken, he felt that he had misjudged either Rachel
+or the opportunity. He knew, or thought he knew, that she had begun
+to care something for him. It was no secret between them that the
+heroine of Jasper's first novel had been his own ideal of Rachel,
+and the hero in the story was himself and they had loved each other
+in the book, and Rachel had not objected. No one else knew. The
+names and characters had been drawn with a subtle skill that
+revealed to Rachel, when she received a copy of the book from
+Jasper, the fact of his love for her, and she had not been offended.
+That was nearly a year ago.
+
+Tonight he recalled the scene between them with every inflection and
+movement unerased from his memory. He even recalled the fact that he
+began to speak just at that point on the avenue where, a few days
+before, he had met Rachel walking with Rollin Page. He had wondered
+at the time what Rollin was saying.
+
+"Rachel," Jasper had said, and it was the first time he had ever
+spoken her first name, "I never knew till tonight how much I loved
+you. Why should I try to conceal any longer what you have seen me
+look? You know I love you as my life. I can no longer hide it from
+you if I would."
+
+The first intimation he had of a repulse was the trembling of
+Rachel's arm in his. She had allowed him to speak and had neither
+turned her face toward him nor away from him. She had looked
+straight on and her voice was sad but firm and quiet when she spoke.
+
+"Why do you speak to me now? I cannot bear it--after what we have
+seen tonight."
+
+"Why--what--" he had stammered and then was silent.
+
+Rachel withdrew her arm from his but still walked near him. Then he
+had cried out with the anguish of one who begins to see a great loss
+facing him where he expected a great joy.
+
+"Rachel! Do you not love me? Is not my love for you as sacred as
+anything in all of life itself?"
+
+She had walked silent for a few steps after that. They passed a
+street lamp. Her face was pale and beautiful. He had made a movement
+to clutch her arm and she had moved a little farther from him.
+
+"No," she had replied. "There was a time I--cannot answer for that
+you--should not have spoken to me--now."
+
+He had seen in these words his answer. He was extremely sensitive.
+Nothing short of a joyous response to his own love would ever have
+satisfied him. He could not think of pleading with her.
+
+"Some time--when I am more worthy?" he had asked in a low voice, but
+she did not seem to hear, and they had parted at her home, and he
+recalled vividly the fact that no good-night had been said.
+
+Now as he went over the brief but significant scene he lashed
+himself for his foolish precipitancy. He had not reckoned on
+Rachel's tense, passionate absorption of all her feeling in the
+scenes at the tent which were so new in her mind. But he did not
+know her well enough even yet to understand the meaning of her
+refusal. When the clock in the First Church struck one he was still
+sitting at his desk staring at the last page of manuscript of his
+unfinished novel.
+
+Rachel went up to her room and faced her evening's experience with
+conflicting emotions. Had she ever loved Jasper Chase? Yes. No. One
+moment she felt that her life's happiness was at stake over the
+result of her action. Another, she had a strange feeling of relief
+that she had spoken as she had. There was one great, overmastering
+feeling in her. The response of the wretched creatures in the tent
+to her singing, the swift, powerful, awesome presence of the Holy
+Spirit had affected her as never in all her life before. The moment
+Jasper had spoken her name and she realized that he was telling her
+of his love she had felt a sudden revulsion for him, as if he should
+have respected the supernatural events they had just witnessed. She
+felt as if it was not the time to be absorbed in anything less than
+the divine glory of those conversions. The thought that all the time
+she was singing, with the one passion of her soul to touch the
+conscience of that tent full of sin, Jasper Chase had been unmoved
+by it except to love her for herself, gave her a shock as of
+irreverence on her part as well as on his. She could not tell why
+she felt as she did, only she knew that if he had not told her
+tonight she would still have felt the same toward him as she always
+had. What was that feeling? What had he been to her? Had she made a
+mistake? She went to her book case and took out the novel which
+Jasper had given her. Her face deepened in color as she turned to
+certain passages which she had read often and which she knew Jasper
+had written for her. She read them again. Somehow they failed to
+touch her strongly. She closed the book and let it lie on the table.
+She gradually felt that her thought was busy with the sights she had
+witnessed in the tent. Those faces, men and women, touched for the
+first time with the Spirit's glory--what a wonderful thing life was
+after all! The complete regeneration revealed in the sight of
+drunken, vile, debauched humanity kneeling down to give itself to a
+life of purity and Christlikeness--oh, it was surely a witness to
+the superhuman in the world! And the face of Rollin Page by the side
+of that miserable wreck out of the gutter! She could recall as if
+she now saw it, Virginia crying with her arms about her brother just
+before she left the tent, and Mr. Gray kneeling close by, and the
+girl Virginia had taken into her heart while she whispered something
+to her before she went out. All these pictures drawn by the Holy
+Spirit in the human tragedies brought to a climax there in the most
+abandoned spot in all Raymond, stood out in Rachel's memory now, a
+memory so recent that her room seemed for the time being to contain
+all the actors and their movements.
+
+"No! No!" she said aloud. "He had no right to speak after all that!
+He should have respected the place where our thoughts should have
+been. I am sure I do not love him--not enough to give him my life!"
+
+And after she had thus spoken, the evening's experience at the tent
+came crowding in again, thrusting out all other things. It is
+perhaps the most striking evidence of the tremendous spiritual
+factor which had now entered the Rectangle that Rachel felt, even
+when the great love of a strong man had come very near to her, that
+the spiritual manifestation moved her with an agitation far greater
+than anything Jasper had felt for her personally or she for him.
+
+The people of Raymond awoke Sunday morning to a growing knowledge of
+events which were beginning to revolutionize many of the regular,
+customary habits of the town. Alexander Powers' action in the matter
+of the railroad frauds had created a sensation not only in Raymond
+but throughout the country. Edward Norman's daily changes of policy
+in the conduct of his paper had startled the community and caused
+more comment than any recent political event. Rachel Winslow's
+singing at the Rectangle meetings had made a stir in society and
+excited the wonder of all her friends.
+
+Virginia's conduct, her presence every night with Rachel, her
+absence from the usual circle of her wealthy, fashionable
+acquaintances, had furnished a great deal of material for gossip and
+question. In addition to these events which centered about these
+persons who were so well known, there had been all through the city
+in very many homes and in business and social circles strange
+happenings. Nearly one hundred persons in Henry Maxwell's church had
+made the pledge to do everything after asking: "What would Jesus
+do?" and the result had been, in many cases, unheard-of actions. The
+city was stirred as it had never been before. As a climax to the
+week's events had come the spiritual manifestation at the Rectangle,
+and the announcement which came to most people before church time of
+the actual conversion at the tent of nearly fifty of the worst
+characters in that neighborhood, together with the con version of
+Rollin Page, the well-known society and club man.
+
+It is no wonder that under the pressure of all this the First Church
+of Raymond came to the morning service in a condition that made it
+quickly sensitive to any large truth. Perhaps nothing had astonished
+the people more than the great change that had come over the
+minister, since he had proposed to them the imitation of Jesus in
+conduct. The dramatic delivery of his sermons no longer impressed
+them. The self-satisfied, contented, easy attitude of the fine
+figure and refined face in the pulpit had been displaced by a manner
+that could not be compared with the old style of his delivery. The
+sermon had become a message. It was no longer delivered. It was
+brought to them with a love, an earnestness, a passion, a desire, a
+humility that poured its enthusiasm about the truth and made the
+speaker no more prominent than he had to be as the living voice of
+God. His prayers were unlike any the people had heard before. They
+were often broken, even once or twice they had been actually
+ungrammatical in a phrase or two. When had Henry Maxwell so far
+forgotten himself in a prayer as to make a mistake of that sort? He
+knew that he had often taken as much pride in the diction and
+delivery of his prayers as of his sermons. Was it possible he now so
+abhorred the elegant refinement of a formal public petition that he
+purposely chose to rebuke himself for his previous precise manner of
+prayer? It is more likely that he had no thought of all that. His
+great longing to voice the needs and wants of his people made him
+unmindful of an occasional mistake. It is certain that he had never
+prayed so effectively as he did now.
+
+There are times when a sermon has a value and power due to
+conditions in the audience rather than to anything new or startling
+or eloquent in the words said or arguments presented. Such
+conditions faced Henry Maxwell this morning as he preached against
+the saloon, according to his purpose determined on the week before.
+He had no new statements to make about the evil influence of the
+saloon in Raymond. What new facts were there? He had no startling
+illustrations of the power of the saloon in business or politics.
+What could he say that had not been said by temperance orators a
+great many times? The effect of his message this morning owed its
+power to the unusual fact of his preaching about the saloon at all,
+together with the events that had stirred the people. He had never
+in the course of his ten years' pastorate mentioned the saloon as
+something to be regarded in the light of an enemy, not only to the
+poor and tempted, but to the business life of the place and the
+church itself. He spoke now with a freedom that seemed to measure
+his complete sense of conviction that Jesus would speak so. At the
+close he pleaded with the people to remember the new life that had
+begun at the Rectangle. The regular election of city officers was
+near at hand. The question of license would be an issue in the
+election. What of the poor creatures surrounded by the hell of drink
+while just beginning to feel the joy of deliverance from sin? Who
+could tell what depended on their environment? Was there one word to
+be said by the Christian disciple, business man, citizen, in favor
+of continuing the license to crime and shame-producing institutions?
+Was not the most Christian thing they could do to act as citizens in
+the matter, fight the saloon at the polls, elect good men to the
+city offices, and clean the municipality? How much had prayers
+helped to make Raymond better while votes and actions had really
+been on the side of the enemies of Jesus? Would not Jesus do this?
+What disciple could imagine Him refusing to suffer or to take up His
+cross in this matter? How much had the members of the First Church
+ever suffered in an attempt to imitate Jesus? Was Christian
+discipleship a thing of conscience simply, of custom, of tradition?
+Where did the suffering come in? Was it necessary in order to follow
+Jesus' steps to go up Calvary as well as the Mount of
+Transfiguration?
+
+His appeal was stronger at this point than he knew. It is not too
+much to say that the spiritual tension of the people reached its
+highest point right there. The imitation of Jesus which had begun
+with the volunteers in the church was working like leaven in the
+organization, and Henry Maxwell would even thus early in his life
+have been amazed if he could have measured the extent of desire on
+the part of his people to take up the cross. While he was speaking
+this morning, before he closed with a loving appeal to the
+discipleship of two thousand years' knowledge of the Master, many a
+man and woman in the church was saying as Rachel had said so
+passionately to her mother: "I want to do something that will cost
+me something in the way of sacrifice." "I am hungry to suffer
+something." Truly, Mazzini was right when he said that no appeal is
+quite so powerful in the end as the call: "Come and suffer."
+
+The service was over, the great audience had gone, and Maxwell again
+faced the company gathered in the lecture room as on the two
+previous Sundays. He had asked all to remain who had made the pledge
+of discipleship, and any others who wished to be included. The after
+service seemed now to be a necessity. As he went in and faced the
+people there his heart trembled. There were at least one hundred
+present. The Holy Spirit was never before so manifest. He missed
+Jasper Chase. But all the others were present. He asked Milton
+Wright to pray. The very air was charged with divine possibilities.
+What could resist such a baptism of power? How had they lived all
+these years without it?
+
+
+
+
+Chapter Eleven
+
+
+DONALD MARSH, President of Lincoln College, walked home with Mr.
+Maxwell.
+
+"I have reached one conclusion, Maxwell," said Marsh, speaking
+slowly. "I have found my cross and it is a heavy one, but I shall
+never be satisfied until I take it up and carry it." Maxwell was
+silent and the President went on.
+
+"Your sermon today made clear to me what I have long been feeling I
+ought to do. 'What would Jesus do in my place?' I have asked the
+question repeatedly since I made my promise. I have tried to satisfy
+myself that He would simply go on as I have done, attending to the
+duties of my college work, teaching the classes in Ethics and
+Philosophy. But I have not been able to avoid the feeling that He
+would do something more. That something is what I do not want to do.
+It will cause me genuine suffering to do it. I dread it with all my
+soul. You may be able to guess what it is."
+
+"Yes, I think I know. It is my cross too. I would almost rather do
+any thing else."
+
+Donald Marsh looked surprised, then relieved. Then he spoke sadly
+but with great conviction: "Maxwell, you and I belong to a class of
+professional men who have always avoided the duties of citizenship.
+We have lived in a little world of literature and scholarly
+seclusion, doing work we have enjoyed and shrinking from the
+disagreeable duties that belong to the life of the citizen. I
+confess with shame that I have purposely avoided the responsibility
+that I owe to this city personally. I understand that our city
+officials are a corrupt, unprincipled set of men, controlled in
+large part by the whiskey element and thoroughly selfish so far as
+the affairs of city government are concerned. Yet all these years I,
+with nearly every teacher in the college, have been satisfied to let
+other men run the municipality and have lived in a little world of
+my own, out of touch and sympathy with the real world of the people.
+'What would Jesus do?' I have even tried to avoid an honest answer.
+I can no longer do so. My plain duty is to take a personal part in
+this coming election, go to the primaries, throw the weight of my
+influence, whatever it is, toward the nomination and election of
+good men, and plunge into the very depths of the entire horrible
+whirlpool of deceit, bribery, political trickery and saloonism as it
+exists in Raymond today. I would sooner walk up to the mouth of a
+cannon any time than do this. I dread it because I hate the touch of
+the whole matter. I would give almost any thing to be able to say,
+'I do not believe Jesus would do anything of the sort.' But I am
+more and more persuaded that He would. This is where the suffering
+comes for me. It would not hurt me half so much to lose my position
+or my home. I loathe the contact with this municipal problem. I
+would so much prefer to remain quietly in my scholastic life with my
+classes in Ethics and Philosophy. But the call has come to me so
+plainly that I cannot escape. 'Donald Marsh, follow me. Do your duty
+as a citizen of Raymond at the point where your citizenship will
+cost you something. Help to cleanse this municipal stable, even if
+you do have to soil your aristocratic feelings a little.' Maxwell,
+this is my cross, I must take it up or deny my Lord."
+
+"You have spoken for me also," replied Maxwell with a sad smile.
+"Why should I, simply because I am a minister, shelter myself behind
+my refined, sensitive feelings, and like a coward refuse to touch,
+except in a sermon possibly, the duty of citizenship? I am unused to
+the ways of the political life of the city. I have never taken an
+active part in any nomination of good men. There are hundreds of
+ministers like me. As a class we do not practice in the municipal
+life the duties and privileges we preach from the pulpit. 'What
+would Jesus do?' I am now at a point where, like you, I am driven to
+answer the question one way. My duty is plain. I must suffer. All my
+parish work, all my little trials or self-sacrifices are as nothing
+to me compared with the breaking into my scholarly, intellectual,
+self-contained habits, of this open, coarse, public fight for a
+clean city life. I could go and live at the Rectangle the rest of my
+life and work in the slums for a bare living, and I could enjoy it
+more than the thought of plunging into a fight for the reform of
+this whiskey-ridden city. It would cost me less. But, like you, I
+have been unable to shake off my responsibility. The answer to the
+question 'What would Jesus do?' in this case leaves me no peace
+except when I say, Jesus would have me act the part of a Christian
+citizen. Marsh, as you say, we professional men, ministers,
+professors, artists, literary men, scholars, have almost invariably
+been political cowards. We have avoided the sacred duties of
+citizenship either ignorantly or selfishly. Certainly Jesus in our
+age would not do that. We can do no less than take up this cross,
+and follow Him."
+
+The two men walked on in silence for a while. Finally President
+Marsh said: "We do not need to act alone in this matter. With all
+the men who have made the promise we certainly can have
+companionship, and strength even, of numbers. Let us organize the
+Christian forces of Raymond for the battle against rum and
+corruption. We certainly ought to enter the primaries with a force
+that will be able to do more than enter a protest. It is a fact that
+the saloon element is cowardly and easily frightened in spite of its
+lawlessness and corruption. Let us plan a campaign that will mean
+something because it is organized righteousness. Jesus would use
+great wisdom in this matter. He would employ means. He would make
+large plans. Let us do so. If we bear this cross let us do it
+bravely, like men."
+
+They talked over the matter a long time and met again the next day
+in Maxwell's study to develop plans. The city primaries were called
+for Friday. Rumors of strange and unknown events to the average
+citizen were current that week in political circles throughout
+Raymond. The Crawford system of balloting for nominations was not in
+use in the state, and the primary was called for a public meeting at
+the court house.
+
+The citizens of Raymond will never forget that meeting. It was so
+unlike any political meeting ever held in Raymond before, that there
+was no attempt at comparison. The special officers to be nominated
+were mayor, city council, chief of police, city clerk and city
+treasurer.
+
+The evening NEWS in its Saturday edition gave a full account of the
+primaries, and in the editorial columns Edward Norman spoke with a
+directness and conviction that the Christian people of Raymond were
+learning to respect deeply, because it was so evidently sincere and
+unselfish. A part of that editorial is also a part of this history.
+We quote the following:
+
+"It is safe to say that never before in the history of Raymond was
+there a primary like the one in the court house last night. It was,
+first of all, a complete surprise to the city politicians who have
+been in the habit of carrying on the affairs of the city as if they
+owned them, and every one else was simply a tool or a cipher. The
+overwhelming surprise of the wire pullers last night consisted in
+the fact that a large number of the citizens of Raymond who have
+heretofore taken no part in the city's affairs, entered the primary
+and controlled it, nominating some of the best men for all the
+offices to be filled at the coming election.
+
+"It was a tremendous lesson in good citizenship. President Marsh of
+Lincoln College, who never before entered a city primary, and whose
+face was not even known to the ward politicians, made one of the
+best speeches ever made in Raymond. It was almost ludicrous to see
+the faces of the men who for years have done as they pleased, when
+President Marsh rose to speak. Many of them asked, 'Who is he?' The
+consternation deepened as the primary proceeded and it became
+evident that the oldtime ring of city rulers was outnumbered. Rev.
+Henry Maxwell of the First Church, Milton Wright, Alexander Powers,
+Professors Brown, Willard and Park of Lincoln College, Dr. West,
+Rev. George Main of the Pilgrim Church, Dean Ward of the Holy
+Trinity, and scores of well-known business men and professional men,
+most of them church members, were present, and it did not take long
+to see that they had all come with the one direct and definite
+purpose of nominating the best men possible. Most of those men had
+never before been seen in a primary. They were complete strangers to
+the politicians. But they had evidently profited by the politician's
+methods and were able by organized and united effort to nominate the
+entire ticket.
+
+"As soon as it became plain that the primary was out of their
+control the regular ring withdrew in disgust and nominated another
+ticket. The NEWS simply calls the attention of all decent citizens
+to the fact that this last ticket contains the names of whiskey men,
+and the line is sharply and distinctly drawn between the saloon and
+corrupt management such as we have known for years, and a clean,
+honest, capable, business-like city administration, such as every
+good citizen ought to want. It is not necessary to remind the people
+of Raymond that the question of local option comes up at the
+election. That will be the most important question on the ticket.
+The crisis of our city affairs has been reached. The issue is
+squarely before us. Shall we continue the rule of rum and boodle and
+shameless incompetency, or shall we, as President Marsh said in his
+noble speech, rise as good citizens and begin a new order of things,
+cleansing our city of the worst enemy known to municipal honesty,
+and doing what lies in our power to do with the ballot to purify our
+civic life?
+
+"The NEWS is positively and without reservation on the side of the
+new movement. We shall henceforth do all in our power to drive out
+the saloon and destroy its political strength. We shall advocate the
+election of the men nominated by the majority of citizens met in the
+first primary and we call upon all Christians, church members,
+lovers of right, purity, temperance, and the home, to stand by
+President Marsh and the rest of the citizens who have thus begun a
+long-needed reform in our city."
+
+President Marsh read this editorial and thanked God for Edward
+Norman. At the same time he understood well enough that every other
+paper in Raymond was on the other side. He did not underestimate the
+importance and seriousness of the fight which was only just begun.
+It was no secret that the NEWS had lost enormously since it had been
+governed by the standard of "What would Jesus do?" And the question
+was, Would the Christian people of Raymond stand by it? Would they
+make it possible for Norman to conduct a daily Christian paper? Or
+would the desire for what is called news in the way of crime,
+scandal, political partisanship of the regular sort, and a dislike
+to champion so remarkable a reform in journalism, influence them to
+drop the paper and refuse to give it their financial support? That
+was, in fact, the question Edward Norman was asking even while he
+wrote that Saturday editorial. He knew well enough that his actions
+expressed in that editorial would cost him very heavily from the
+hands of many business men in Raymond. And still, as he drove his
+pen over the paper, he asked another question, "What would Jesus
+do?" That question had become a part of this whole life now. It was
+greater than any other.
+
+But for the first time in its history Raymond had seen the
+professional men, the teachers, the college professors, the doctors,
+the ministers, take political action and put themselves definitely
+and sharply in public antagonism to the evil forces that had so long
+controlled the machine of municipal government. The fact itself was
+astounding. President Marsh acknowledged to himself with a feeling
+of humiliation, that never before had he known what civic
+righteousness could accomplish. From that Friday night's work he
+dated for himself and his college a new definition of the worn
+phrase "the scholar in politics." Education for him and those who
+were under his influence ever after meant some element of suffering.
+Sacrifice must now enter into the factor of development.
+
+At the Rectangle that week the tide of spiritual life rose high, and
+as yet showed no signs of flowing back. Rachel and Virginia went
+every night. Virginia was rapidly reaching a conclusion with respect
+to a large part of her money. She had talked it over with Rachel and
+they had been able to agree that if Jesus had a vast amount of money
+at His disposal He might do with some of it as Virginia planned. At
+any rate they felt that whatever He might do in such case would have
+as large an element of variety in it as the differences in persons
+and circumstances. There could be no one fixed Christian way of
+using money. The rule that regulated its use was unselfish utility.
+
+But meanwhile the glory of the Spirit's power possessed all their
+best thought. Night after night that week witnessed miracles as
+great as walking on the sea or feeding the multitude with a few
+loaves and fishes. For what greater miracle is there than a
+regenerate humanity? The transformation of these coarse, brutal,
+sottish lives into praying, rapturous lovers of Christ, struck
+Rachel and Virginia every time with the feeling that people may have
+had when they saw Lazarus walk out of the tomb. It was an experience
+full of profound excitement for them.
+
+Rollin Page came to all the meetings. There was no doubt of the
+change that had come over him. Rachel had not yet spoken much with
+him. He was wonderfully quiet. It seemed as if he was thinking all
+the time. Certainly he was not the same person. He talked more with
+Gray than with any one else. He did not avoid Rachel, but he seemed
+to shrink from any appearance of seeming to renew the acquaintance
+with her. Rachel found it even difficult to express to him her
+pleasure at the new life he had begun to know. He seemed to be
+waiting to adjust himself to his previous relations before this new
+life began. He had not forgotten those relations. But he was not yet
+able to fit his consciousness into new ones.
+
+The end of the week found the Rectangle struggling hard between two
+mighty opposing forces. The Holy Spirit was battling with all His
+supernatural strength against the saloon devil which had so long
+held a jealous grasp on its slaves. If the Christian people of
+Raymond once could realize what the contest meant to the souls newly
+awakened to a purer life it did not seem possible that the election
+could result in the old system of license. But that remained yet to
+be seen. The horror of the daily surroundings of many of the
+converts was slowly burning its way into the knowledge of Virginia
+and Rachel, and every night as they went uptown to their luxurious
+homes they carried heavy hearts.
+
+"A good many of these poor creatures will go back again," Gray would
+say with sadness too deep for tears. "The environment does have a
+good deal to do with the character. It does not stand to reason that
+these people can always resist the sight and smell of the devilish
+drink about them. O Lord, how long shall Christian people continue
+to support by their silence and their ballots the greatest form of
+slavery known in America?"
+
+He asked the question, and did not have much hope of an immediate
+answer. There was a ray of hope in the action of Friday night's
+primary, but what the result would be he did not dare to anticipate.
+The whiskey forces were organized, alert, aggressive, roused into
+unusual hatred by the events of the last week at the tent and in the
+city. Would the Christian forces act as a unit against the saloon?
+Or would they be divided on account of their business interests or
+because they were not in the habit of acting all together as the
+whiskey power always did? That remained to be seen. Meanwhile the
+saloon reared itself about the Rectangle like some deadly viper
+hissing and coiling, ready to strike its poison into any unguarded
+part.
+
+Saturday afternoon as Virginia was just stepping out of her house to
+go and see Rachel to talk over her new plans, a carriage drove up
+containing three of her fashionable friends. Virginia went out to
+the drive-way and stood there talking with them. They had not come
+to make a formal call but wanted Virginia to go driving with them up
+on the boulevard. There was a band concert in the park. The day was
+too pleasant to be spent indoors.
+
+"Where have you been all this time, Virginia?" asked one of the
+girls, tapping her playfully on the shoulder with a red silk
+parasol. "We hear that you have gone into the show business. Tell us
+about it."
+
+Virginia colored, but after a moment's hesitation she frankly told
+something of her experience at the Rectangle. The girls in the
+carriage began to be really interested.
+
+"I tell you, girls, let's go 'slumming' with Virginia this afternoon
+instead of going to the band concert. I've never been down to the
+Rectangle. I've heard it's an awful wicked place and lots to see.
+Virginia will act as guide, and it would be"--"real fun" she was
+going to say, but Virginia's look made her substitute the word
+"interesting."
+
+Virginia was angry. At first thought she said to herself she would
+never go under such circumstances. The other girls seemed to be of
+the same mind with the speaker. They chimed in with earnestness and
+asked Virginia to take them down there.
+
+Suddenly she saw in the idle curiosity of the girls an opportunity.
+They had never seen the sin and misery of Raymond. Why should they
+not see it, even if their motive in going down there was simply to
+pass away an afternoon.
+
+
+
+
+Chapter Twelve
+
+
+"For I come to set a man at variance against his father, and the
+daughter against her mother, and the daughter-in-law against her
+mother-in-law; and a man's foes shall be they of his own household."
+
+"Be ye therefore imitators of God, as beloved children; and walk in
+love, even as Christ also loved you."
+
+
+"HADN'T we better take a policeman along?" said one of the girls
+with a nervous laugh. "It really isn't safe down there, you know."
+
+"There's no danger," said Virginia briefly.
+
+"Is it true that your brother Rollin has been converted?" asked the
+first speaker, looking at Virginia curiously. It impressed her
+during the drive to the Rectangle that all three of her friends were
+regarding her with close attention as if she were peculiar.
+
+"Yes, he certainly is."
+
+"I understand he is going around to the clubs talking with his old
+friends there, trying to preach to them. Doesn't that seem funny?"
+said the girl with the red silk parasol.
+
+Virginia did not answer, and the other girls were beginning to feel
+sober as the carriage turned into a street leading to the Rectangle.
+As they neared the district they grew more and more nervous. The
+sights and smells and sounds which had become familiar to Virginia
+struck the senses of these refined, delicate society girls as
+something horrible. As they entered farther into the district, the
+Rectangle seemed to stare as with one great, bleary, beer-soaked
+countenance at this fine carriage with its load of fashionably
+dressed young women. "Slumming" had never been a fad with Raymond
+society, and this was perhaps the first time that the two had come
+together in this way. The girls felt that instead of seeing the
+Rectangle they were being made the objects of curiosity. They were
+frightened and disgusted.
+
+"Let's go back. I've seen enough," said the girl who was sitting
+with Virginia.
+
+They were at that moment just opposite a notorious saloon and
+gambling house. The street was narrow and the sidewalk crowded.
+Suddenly, out of the door of this saloon a young woman reeled. She
+was singing in a broken, drunken sob that seemed to indicate that
+she partly realized her awful condition, "Just as I am, without one
+plea"--and as the carriage rolled past she leered at it, raising her
+face so that Virginia saw it very close to her own. It was the face
+of the girl who had kneeled sobbing, that night with Virginia
+kneeling beside her and praying for her.
+
+"Stop!" cried Virginia, motioning to the driver who was looking
+around. The carriage stopped, and in a moment she was out and had
+gone up to the girl and taken her by the arm. "Loreen!" she said,
+and that was all. The girl looked into her face, and her own changed
+into a look of utter horror. The girls in the carriage were smitten
+into helpless astonishment. The saloon-keeper had come to the door
+of the saloon and was standing there looking on with his hands on
+his hips. And the Rectangle from its windows, its saloon steps, its
+filthy sidewalk, gutter and roadway, paused, and with undisguised
+wonder stared at the two girls. Over the scene the warm sun of
+spring poured its mellow light. A faint breath of music from the
+band-stand in the park floated into the Rectangle. The concert had
+begun, and the fashion and wealth of Raymond were displaying
+themselves up town on the boulevard.
+
+When Virginia left the carriage and went up to Loreen she had no
+definite idea as to what she would do or what the result of her
+action would be. She simply saw a soul that had tasted of the joy of
+a better life slipping back again into its old hell of shame and
+death. And before she had touched the drunken girl's arm she had
+asked only one question, "What would Jesus do?" That question was
+becoming with her, as with many others, a habit of life.
+
+She looked around now as she stood close by Loreen, and the whole
+scene was cruelly vivid to her. She thought first of the girls in
+the carriage.
+
+"Drive on; don't wait for me. I am going to see my friend home," she
+said calmly enough.
+
+The girl with the red parasol seemed to gasp at the word "friend,"
+when Virginia spoke it. She did not say anything.
+
+The other girls seemed speechless.
+
+"Go on. I cannot go back with you," said Virginia. The driver
+started the horses slowly. One of the girls leaned a little out of
+the carriage.
+
+"Can't we--that is--do you want our help? Couldn't you--"
+
+"No, no!" exclaimed Virginia. "You cannot be of any help to me."
+
+The carriage moved on and Virginia was alone with her charge. She
+looked up and around. Many faces in the crowd were sympathetic. They
+were not all cruel or brutal. The Holy Spirit had softened a good
+deal of the Rectangle.
+
+"Where does she live?" asked Virginia.
+
+No one answered. It occurred to Virginia afterward when she had time
+to think it over, that the Rectangle showed a delicacy in its sad
+silence that would have done credit to the boulevard. For the first
+time it flashed across her that the immortal being who was flung
+like wreckage upon the shore of this early hell called the saloon,
+had no place that could be called home. The girl suddenly wrenched
+her arm from Virginia's grasp. In doing so she nearly threw Virginia
+down.
+
+"You shall not touch me! Leave me! Let me go to hell! That's where I
+belong! The devil is waiting for me. See him!" she exclaimed
+hoarsely. She turned and pointed with a shaking finger at the
+saloon-keeper. The crowd laughed. Virginia stepped up to her and put
+her arm about her.
+
+"Loreen," she said firmly, "come with me. You do not belong to hell.
+You belong to Jesus and He will save you. Come."
+
+The girl suddenly burst into tears. She was only partly sobered by
+the shock of meeting Virginia.
+
+Virginia looked around again. "Where does Mr. Gray live?" she asked.
+She knew that the evangelist boarded somewhere near the tent. A
+number of voices gave the direction.
+
+"Come, Loreen, I want you to go with me to Mr. Gray's," she said,
+still keeping her hold of the swaying, trembling creature who moaned
+and sobbed and now clung to her as firmly as before she had repulsed
+her.
+
+So the two moved on through the Rectangle toward the evangelist's
+lodging place. The sight seemed to impress the Rectangle seriously.
+It never took itself seriously when it was drunk, but this was
+different. The fact that one of the richest, most
+beautifully-dressed girls in all Raymond was taking care of one of
+the Rectangle's most noted characters, who reeled along under the
+influence of liquor, was a fact astounding enough to throw more or
+less dignity and importance about Loreen herself. The event of
+Loreen's stumbling through the gutter dead-drunk always made the
+Rectangle laugh and jest. But Loreen staggering along with a young
+lady from the society circles uptown supporting her, was another
+thing. The Rectangle viewed it with soberness and more or less
+wondering admiration.
+
+When they finally reached Mr. Gray's lodging place the woman who
+answered Virginia's knock said that both Mr. and Mrs. Gray were out
+somewhere and would not be back until six o'clock.
+
+Virginia had not planned anything farther than a possible appeal to
+the Grays, either to take charge of Loreen for a while or find some
+safe place for her until she was sober. She stood now at the door
+after the woman had spoken, and she was really at a loss to know
+what to do. Loreen sank down stupidly on the steps and buried her
+face in her arms. Virginia eyed the miserable figure of the girl
+with a feeling that she was afraid would grow into disgust.
+
+Finally a thought possessed her that she could not escape. What was
+to hinder her from taking Loreen home with her? Why should not this
+homeless, wretched creature, reeking with the fumes of liquor, be
+cared for in Virginia's own home instead of being consigned to
+strangers in some hospital or house of charity? Virginia really knew
+very little about any such places of refuge. As a matter of fact,
+there were two or three such institutions in Raymond, but it is
+doubtful if any of them would have taken a person like Loreen in her
+present condition. But that was not the question with Virginia just
+now. "What would Jesus do with Loreen?" That was what Virginia
+faced, and she finally answered it by touching the girl again.
+
+"Loreen, come. You are going home with me. We will take the car here
+at the corner."
+
+Loreen staggered to her feet and, to Virginia's surprise, made no
+trouble. She had expected resistance or a stubborn refusal to move.
+When they reached the corner and took the car it was nearly full of
+people going uptown. Virginia was painfully conscious of the stare
+that greeted her and her companion as they entered. But her thought
+was directed more and more to the approaching scene with her
+grandmother. What would Madam Page say?
+
+Loreen was nearly sober now. But she was lapsing into a state of
+stupor. Virginia was obliged to hold fast to her arm. Several times
+the girl lurched heavily against her, and as the two went up the
+avenue a curious crowd of so-called civilized people turned and
+gazed at them. When she mounted the steps of her handsome house
+Virginia breathed a sigh of relief, even in the face of the
+interview with the grandmother, and when the door shut and she was
+in the wide hall with her homeless outcast, she felt equal to
+anything that might now come.
+
+Madam Page was in the library. Hearing Virginia come in, she came
+into the hall. Virginia stood there supporting Loreen, who stared
+stupidly at the rich magnificence of the furnishings around her.
+
+"Grandmother," Virginia spoke without hesitation and very clearly,
+"I have brought one of my friends from the Rectangle. She is in
+trouble and has no home. I am going to care for her here a little
+while."
+
+Madam Page glanced from her granddaughter to Loreen in astonishment.
+
+"Did you say she is one of your friends?" she asked in a cold,
+sneering voice that hurt Virginia more than anything she had yet
+felt.
+
+"Yes, I said so." Virginia's face flushed, but she seemed to recall
+a verse that Mr. Gray had used for one of his recent sermons, "A
+friend of publicans and sinners." Surely, Jesus would do this that
+she was doing.
+
+"Do you know what this girl is?" asked Madam Page, in an angry
+whisper, stepping near Virginia.
+
+"I know very well. She is an outcast. You need not tell me,
+grandmother. I know it even better than you do. She is drunk at this
+minute. But she is also a child of God. I have seen her on her
+knees, repentant. And I have seen hell reach out its horrible
+fingers after her again. And by the grace of Christ I feel that the
+least that I can do is to rescue her from such peril. Grandmother,
+we call ourselves Christians. Here is a poor, lost human creature
+without a home, slipping back into a life of misery and possibly
+eternal loss, and we have more than enough. I have brought her here,
+and I shall keep her."
+
+Madam Page glared at Virginia and clenched her hands. All this was
+contrary to her social code of conduct. How could society excuse
+familiarity with the scum of the streets? What would Virginia's
+action cost the family in the way of criticism and loss of standing,
+and all that long list of necessary relations which people of wealth
+and position must sustain to the leaders of society? To Madam Page
+society represented more than the church or any other institution.
+It was a power to be feared and obeyed. The loss of its good-will
+was a loss more to be dreaded than anything except the loss of
+wealth itself.
+
+She stood erect and stern and confronted Virginia, fully roused and
+determined. Virginia placed her arm about Loreen and calmly looked
+her grandmother in the face.
+
+"You shall not do this, Virginia! You can send her to the asylum for
+helpless women. We can pay all the expenses. We cannot afford for
+the sake of our reputations to shelter such a person."
+
+"Grandmother, I do not wish to do anything that is displeasing to
+you, but I must keep Loreen here tonight, and longer if it seems
+best."
+
+"Then you can answer for the consequences! I do not stay in the same
+house with a miserable--" Madam Page lost her self-control. Virginia
+stopped her before she could speak the next word.
+
+"Grandmother, this house is mine. It is your home with me as long as
+you choose to remain. But in this matter I must act as I fully
+believe Jesus would in my place. I am willing to bear all that
+society may say or do. Society is not my God. By the side of this
+poor soul I do not count the verdict of society as of any value."
+
+"I shall not stay here, then!" said Madam Page. She turned suddenly
+and walked to the end of the hall. She then came back, and going up
+to Virginia said, with an emphasis that revealed her intensive
+excitement of passion: "You can always remember that you have driven
+your grandmother out of your house in favor of a drunken woman;"
+then, without waiting for Virginia to reply, she turned again and
+went upstairs. Virginia called a servant and soon had Loreen cared
+for. She was fast lapsing into a wretched condition. During the
+brief scene in the hall she had clung to Virginia so hard that her
+arm was sore from the clutch of the girl's fingers.
+
+
+
+
+Chapter Thirteen
+
+
+WHEN the bell rang for tea she went down and her grandmother did not
+appear. She sent a servant to her room who brought back word that
+Madam Page was not there. A few minutes later Rollin came in. He
+brought word that his grandmother had taken the evening train for
+the South. He had been at the station to see some friends off, and
+had by chance met his grandmother as he was coming out. She had told
+him her reason for going.
+
+Virginia and Rollin comforted each other at the tea table, looking
+at each other with earnest, sad faces.
+
+"Rollin," said Virginia, and for the first time, almost, since his
+conversion she realized what a wonderful thing her brother's changed
+life meant to her, "do you blame me? Am I wrong?"
+
+"No, dear, I cannot believe you are. This is very painful for us.
+But if you think this poor creature owes her safety and salvation to
+your personal care, it was the only thing for you to do. O Virginia,
+to think that we have all these years enjoyed our beautiful home and
+all these luxuries selfishly, forgetful of the multitudes like this
+woman! Surely Jesus in our places would do what you have done."
+
+And so Rollin comforted Virginia and counseled with her that
+evening. And of all the wonderful changes that she henceforth was to
+know on account of her great pledge, nothing affected her so
+powerfully as the thought of Rollin's change of life. Truly, this
+man in Christ was a new creature. Old things were passed away.
+Behold, all things in him had become new.
+
+Dr. West came that evening at Virginia's summons and did everything
+necessary for the outcast. She had drunk herself almost into
+delirium. The best that could be done for her now was quiet nursing
+and careful watching and personal love. So, in a beautiful room,
+with a picture of Christ walking by the sea hanging on the wall,
+where her bewildered eyes caught daily something more of its hidden
+meaning, Loreen lay, tossed she hardly knew how into this haven, and
+Virginia crept nearer the Master than she had ever been, as her
+heart went out towards this wreck which had thus been flung torn and
+beaten at her feet.
+
+Meanwhile the Rectangle awaited the issue of the election with more
+than usual interest; and Mr. Gray and his wife wept over the poor,
+pitiful creatures who, after a struggle with surroundings that daily
+tempted them, too often wearied of the struggle and, like Loreen,
+threw up their arms and went whirling over the cataract into the
+boiling abyss of their previous condition.
+
+The after-meeting at the First Church was now eagerly established.
+Henry Maxwell went into the lecture-room on the Sunday succeeding
+the week of the primary, and was greeted with an enthusiasm that
+made him tremble at first for its reality. He noted again the
+absence of Jasper Chase, but all the others were present, and they
+seemed drawn very close together by a bond of common fellowship that
+demanded and enjoyed mutual confidences. It was the general feeling
+that the spirit of Jesus was the spirit of very open, frank
+confession of experience. It seemed the most natural thing in the
+world, therefore, for Edward Norman to be telling all the rest of
+the company about the details of his newspaper.
+
+"The fact is, I have lost a great deal of money during the last
+three weeks. I cannot tell just how much. I am losing a great many
+subscribers every day."
+
+"What do the subscribers give as their reason for dropping the
+paper?" asked Mr. Maxwell. All the rest were listening eagerly.
+
+"There are a good many different reasons. Some say they want a paper
+that prints all the news; meaning, by that, the crime details,
+sensations like prize fights, scandals and horrors of various kinds.
+Others object to the discontinuance of the Sunday edition. I have
+lost hundreds of subscribers by that action, although I have made
+satisfactory arrangements with many of the old subscribers by giving
+them even more in the extra Saturday edition than they formerly had
+in the Sunday issue. My greatest loss has come from a falling off in
+advertisements, and from the attitude I have felt obliged to take on
+political questions. The last action has really cost me more than
+any other. The bulk of my subscribers are intensely partisan. I may
+as well tell you all frankly that if I continue to pursue the plan
+which I honestly believe Jesus would pursue in the matter of
+political issues and their treatment from a non-partisan and moral
+standpoint, the NEWS will not be able to pay its operating expenses
+unless one factor in Raymond can be depended on."
+
+He paused a moment and the room was very quiet. Virginia seemed
+specially interested. Her face glowed with interest. It was like the
+interest of a person who had been thinking hard of the same thing
+which Norman went on to mention.
+
+"That one factor is the Christian element in Raymond. Say the NEWS
+has lost heavily from the dropping off of people who do not care for
+a Christian daily, and from others who simply look upon a newspaper
+as a purveyor of all sorts of material to amuse or interest them,
+are there enough genuine Christian people in Raymond who will rally
+to the support of a paper such as Jesus would probably edit? or are
+the habits of the church people so firmly established in their
+demand for the regular type of journalism that they will not take a
+paper unless it is stripped largely of the Christian and moral
+purpose? I may say in this fellowship gathering that owing to recent
+complications in my business affairs outside of my paper I have been
+obliged to lose a large part of my fortune. I had to apply the same
+rule of Jesus' probable conduct to certain transactions with other
+men who did not apply it to their conduct, and the result has been
+the loss of a great deal of money. As I understand the promise we
+made, we were not to ask any question about 'Will it pay?' but all
+our action was to be based on the one question, 'What would Jesus
+do?' Acting on that rule of conduct, I have been obliged to lose
+nearly all the money I have accumulated in my paper. It is not
+necessary for me to go into details. There is no question with me
+now, after the three weeks' experience I have had, that a great many
+men would lose vast sums of money under the present system of
+business if this rule of Jesus was honestly applied. I mention my
+loss here because I have the fullest faith in the final success of a
+daily paper conducted on the lines I have recently laid down, and I
+had planned to put into it my entire fortune in order to win final
+success. As it is now, unless, as I said, the Christian people of
+Raymond, the church members and professing disciples, will support
+the paper with subscriptions and advertisements, I cannot continue
+its publication on the present basis."
+
+Virginia asked a question. She had followed Mr. Norman's confession
+with the most intense eagerness.
+
+"Do you mean that a Christian daily ought to be endowed with a large
+sum like a Christian college in order to make it pay?"
+
+"That is exactly what I mean. I had laid out plans for putting into
+the NEWS such a variety of material in such a strong and truly
+interesting way that it would more than make up for whatever was
+absent from its columns in the way of un-Christian matter. But my
+plans called for a very large output of money. I am very confident
+that a Christian daily such as Jesus would approve, containing only
+what He would print, can be made to succeed financially if it is
+planned on the right lines. But it will take a large sum of money to
+work out the plans."
+
+"How much, do you think?" asked Virginia quietly.
+
+Edward Norman looked at her keenly, and his face flushed a moment as
+an idea of her purpose crossed his mind. He had known her when she
+was a little girl in the Sunday-school, and he had been on intimate
+business relations with her father.
+
+"I should say half a million dollars in a town like Raymond could be
+well spent in the establishment of a paper such as we have in mind,"
+he answered. His voice trembled a little. The keen look on his
+grizzled face flashed out with a stern but thoroughly Christian
+anticipation of great achievements in the world of newspaper life,
+as it had opened up to him within the last few seconds.
+
+"Then," said Virginia, speaking as if the thought was fully
+considered, "I am ready to put that amount of money into the paper
+on the one condition, of course, that it be carried on as it has
+been begun."
+
+"Thank God!" exclaimed Mr. Maxwell softly. Norman was pale. The rest
+were looking at Virginia. She had more to say.
+
+"Dear friends," she went on, and there was a sadness in her voice
+that made an impression on the rest that deepened when they thought
+it over afterwards, "I do not want any of you to credit me with an
+act of great generosity. I have come to know lately that the money
+which I have called my own is not mine, but God's. If I, as steward
+of His, see some wise way to invest His money, it is not an occasion
+for vainglory or thanks from any one simply because I have proved in
+my administration of the funds He has asked me to use for His glory.
+I have been thinking of this very plan for some time. The fact is,
+dear friends, that in our coming fight with the whiskey power in
+Raymond--and it has only just begun--we shall need the NEWS to
+champion the Christian side. You all know that all the other papers
+are for the saloon. As long as the saloon exists, the work of
+rescuing dying souls at the Rectangle is carried on at a terrible
+disadvantage. What can Mr. Gray do with his gospel meetings when
+half his converts are drinking people, daily tempted and enticed by
+the saloon on every corner? It would be giving up to the enemy to
+allow the NEWS to fail. I have great confidence in Mr. Norman's
+ability. I have not seen his plans, but I have the same confidence
+that he has in making the paper succeed if it is carried forward on
+a large enough scale. I cannot believe that Christian intelligence
+in journalism will be inferior to un-Christian intelligence, even
+when it comes to making the paper pay financially. So that is my
+reason for putting this money--God's, not mine--into this powerful
+agent for doing as Jesus would do. If we can keep such a paper going
+for one year, I shall be willing to see that amount of money used in
+that experiment. Do not thank me. Do not consider my doing it a
+wonderful thing. What have I done with God's money all these years
+but gratify my own selfish personal desires? What can I do with the
+rest of it but try to make some reparation for what I have stolen
+from God? That is the way I look at it now. I believe it is what
+Jesus would do."
+
+Over the lecture-room swept that unseen yet distinctly felt wave of
+Divine Presence. No one spoke for a while. Mr. Maxwell standing
+there, where the faces lifted their intense gaze into his, felt what
+he had already felt--a strange setting back out of the nineteenth
+century into the first, when the disciples had all things in common,
+and a spirit of fellowship must have flowed freely between them such
+as the First Church of Raymond had never before known. How much had
+his church membership known of this fellowship in daily interests
+before this little company had begun to do as they believed Jesus
+would do? It was with difficulty that he thought of his present age
+and surroundings. The same thought was present with all the rest,
+also. There was an unspoken comradeship such as they had never
+known. It was present with them while Virginia was speaking, and
+during the silence that followed. If it had been defined by any of
+them it would perhaps have taken some such shape as this: "If I
+shall, in the course of my obedience to my promise, meet with loss
+or trouble in the world, I can depend upon the genuine, practical
+sympathy and fellowship of any other Christian in this room who has,
+with me, made the pledge to do all things by the rule, 'What would
+Jesus do?'"
+
+All this, the distinct wave of spiritual power emphasized. It had
+the effect that a physical miracle may have had on the early
+disciples in giving them a feeling of confidence in the Lord that
+helped them to face loss and martyrdom with courage and even joy.
+
+Before they went away this time there were several confidences like
+those of Edward Norman's. Some of the young men told of loss of
+places owing to their honest obedience to their promise. Alexander
+Powers spoke briefly of the fact that the Commission had promised to
+take action on his evidence at the earliest date possible.
+
+
+
+
+Chapter Fourteen
+
+
+BUT more than any other feeling at this meeting rose the tide of
+fellowship for one another. Maxwell watched it, trembling for its
+climax which he knew was not yet reached. When it was, where would
+it lead them? He did not know, but he was not unduly alarmed about
+it. Only he watched with growing wonder the results of that simple
+promise as it was being obeyed in these various lives. Those results
+were already being felt all over the city. Who could measure their
+influence at the end of a year?
+
+One practical form of this fellowship showed itself in the
+assurances which Edward Norman received of support for his paper.
+There was a general flocking toward him when the meeting closed, and
+the response to his appeal for help from the Christian disciples in
+Raymond was fully understood by this little company. The value of
+such a paper in the homes and in behalf of good citizenship,
+especially at the present crisis in the city, could not be measured.
+It remained to be seen what could be done now that the paper was
+endowed so liberally. But it still was true, as Norman insisted,
+that money alone could not make the paper a power. It must receive
+the support and sympathy of the Christians in Raymond before it
+could be counted as one of the great forces of the city.
+
+The week that followed this Sunday meeting was one of great
+excitement in Raymond. It was the week of the election. President
+Marsh, true to his promise, took up his cross and bore it manfully,
+but with shuddering, with groans and even tears, for his deepest
+conviction was touched, and he tore himself out of the scholarly
+seclusion of years with a pain and anguish that cost him more than
+anything he had ever done as a follower of Christ. With him were a
+few of the college professors who had made the pledge in the First
+Church. Their experience and suffering were the same as his; for
+their isolation from all the duties of citizenship had been the
+same. The same was also true of Henry Maxwell, who plunged into the
+horror of this fight against whiskey and its allies with a sickening
+dread of each day's new encounter with it. For never before had he
+borne such a cross. He staggered under it, and in the brief
+intervals when he came in from the work and sought the quiet of his
+study for rest, the sweat broke out on his forehead, and he felt the
+actual terror of one who marches into unseen, unknown horrors.
+Looking back on it afterwards he was amazed at his experience. He
+was not a coward, but he felt the dread that any man of his habits
+feels when confronted suddenly with a duty which carries with it the
+doing of certain things so unfamiliar that the actual details
+connected with it betray his ignorance and fill him with the shame
+of humiliation.
+
+When Saturday, the election day, came, the excitement rose to its
+height. An attempt was made to close all the saloons. It was only
+partly successful. There was a great deal of drinking going on all
+day. The Rectangle boiled and heaved and cursed and turned its worst
+side out to the gaze of the city. Gray had continued his meetings
+during the week, and the results had been even greater than he had
+dared to hope. When Saturday came, it seemed to him that the crisis
+in his work had been reached. The Holy Spirit and the Satan of rum
+seemed to rouse up to a desperate conflict. The more interest in the
+meetings, the more ferocity and vileness outside. The saloon men no
+longer concealed their feelings. Open threats of violence were made.
+Once during the week Gray and his little company of helpers were
+assailed with missiles of various kinds as they left the tent late
+at night. The police sent down a special force, and Virginia and
+Rachel were always under the protection of either Rollin or Dr.
+West. Rachel's power in song had not diminished. Rather, with each
+night, it seemed to add to the intensity and reality of the Spirit's
+presence.
+
+Gray had at first hesitated about having a meeting that night. But
+he had a simple rule of action, and was always guided by it. The
+Spirit seemed to lead him to continue the meeting, and so Saturday
+night he went on as usual.
+
+The excitement all over the city had reached its climax when the
+polls closed at six o'clock. Never before had there been such a
+contest in Raymond. The issue of license or no-license had never
+been an issue under such circumstances. Never before had such
+elements in the city been arrayed against each other. It was an
+unheard-of thing that the President of Lincoln College, the pastor
+of the First Church, the Dean of the Cathedral, the professional men
+living in fine houses on the boulevard, should come personally into
+the wards, and by their presence and their example represent the
+Christian conscience of the place. The ward politicians were
+astonished at the sight. However, their astonishment did not prevent
+their activity. The fight grew hotter every hour, and when six
+o'clock came neither side could have guessed at the result with any
+certainty. Every one agreed that never before had there been such an
+election in Raymond, and both sides awaited the announcement of the
+result with the greatest interest.
+
+It was after ten o'clock when the meeting at the tent was closed. It
+had been a strange and, in some respects, a remarkable meeting.
+Maxwell had come down again at Gray's request. He was completely
+worn out by the day's work, but the appeal from Gray came to him in
+such a form that he did not feel able to resist it. President Marsh
+was also present. He had never been to the Rectangle, and his
+curiosity was aroused from what he had noticed of the influence of
+the evangelist in the worst part of the city. Dr. West and Rollin
+had come with Rachel and Virginia; and Loreen, who still stayed with
+Virginia, was present near the organ, in her right mind, sober, with
+a humility and dread of herself that kept her as close to Virginia
+as a faithful dog. All through the service she sat with bowed head,
+weeping a part of the time, sobbing when Rachel sang the song, "I
+was a wandering sheep," clinging with almost visible, tangible
+yearning to the one hope she had found, listening to prayer and
+appeal and confession all about her like one who was a part of a new
+creation, yet fearful of her right to share in it fully.
+
+The tent had been crowded. As on some other occasions, there was
+more or less disturbance on the outside. This had increased as the
+night advanced, and Gray thought it wise not to prolong the service.
+
+Once in a while a shout as from a large crowd swept into the tent.
+The returns from the election were beginning to come in, and the
+Rectangle had emptied every lodging house, den and hovel into the
+streets.
+
+In spite of these distractions Rachel's singing kept the crowd in
+the tent from dissolving. There were a dozen or more conversions.
+Finally the people became restless and Gray closed the service,
+remaining a little while with the converts.
+
+Rachel, Virginia, Loreen, Rollin and the Doctor, President Marsh,
+Mr. Maxwell and Dr. West went out together, intending to go down to
+the usual waiting place for their car. As they came out of the tent
+they were at once aware that the Rectangle was trembling on the
+verge of a drunken riot, and as they pushed through the gathering
+mobs in the narrow streets they began to realize that they
+themselves were objects of great attention.
+
+"There he is--the bloke in the tall hat! He's the leader! shouted a
+rough voice. President Marsh, with his erect, commanding figure, was
+conspicuous in the little company.
+
+"How has the election gone? It is too early to know the result yet,
+isn't it?" He asked the question aloud, and a man answered:
+
+"They say second and third wards have gone almost solid for
+no-license. If that is so, the whiskey men have been beaten."
+
+"Thank God! I hope it is true!" exclaimed Maxwell. "Marsh, we are in
+danger here. Do you realize our situation? We ought to get the
+ladies to a place of safety."
+
+"That is true," said Marsh gravely. At that moment a shower of
+stones and other missiles fell over them. The narrow street and
+sidewalk in front of them was completely choked with the worst
+elements of the Rectangle.
+
+"This looks serious," said Maxwell. With Marsh and Rollin and Dr.
+West he started to go forward through a small opening, Virginia,
+Rachel, and Loreen following close and sheltered by the men, who now
+realized something of their danger. The Rectangle was drunk and
+enraged. It saw in Marsh and Maxwell two of the leaders in the
+election contest which had perhaps robbed them of their beloved
+saloon.
+
+"Down with the aristocrats!" shouted a shrill voice, more like a
+woman's than a man's. A shower of mud and stones followed. Rachel
+remembered afterwards that Rollin jumped directly in front of her
+and received on his head and chest a number of blows that would
+probably have struck her if he had not shielded her from them.
+
+And just then, before the police reached them, Loreen darted forward
+in front of Virginia and pushed her aside, looking up and screaming.
+It was so sudden that no one had time to catch the face of the one
+who did it. But out of the upper window of a room, over the very
+saloon where Loreen had come out a week before, someone had thrown a
+heavy bottle. It struck Loreen on the head and she fell to the
+ground. Virginia turned and instantly kneeled down by her. The
+police officers by that time had reached the little company.
+
+President Marsh raised his arm and shouted over the howl that was
+beginning to rise from the wild beast in the mob.
+
+"Stop! You've killed a woman!" The announcement partly sobered the
+crowd.
+
+"Is it true?" Maxwell asked it, as Dr. West kneeled on the other
+side of Loreen, supporting her.
+
+"She's dying!" said Dr. West briefly.
+
+Loreen opened her eyes and smiled at Virginia, who wiped the blood
+from her face and then bent over and kissed her. Loreen smiled
+again, and the next minute her soul was in Paradise.
+
+
+
+
+Chapter Fifteen
+
+
+"He that followeth me shall not walk in darkness."
+
+
+THE body of Loreen lay in state at the Page mansion on the avenue.
+It was Sunday morning and the clear sweet spring air, just beginning
+to breathe over the city the perfume of early blossoms in the woods
+and fields, swept over the casket from one of the open windows at
+the end of the grand hall. The church bells were ringing and people
+on the avenue going by to service turned curious, inquiring looks up
+at the great house and then went on, talking of the recent events
+which had so strangely entered into and made history in the city.
+
+At the First Church, Mr. Maxwell, bearing on his face marks of the
+scene he had been through, confronted an immense congregation, and
+spoke to it with a passion and a power that came so naturally out of
+the profound experiences of the day before that his people felt for
+him something of the old feeling of pride they once had in his
+dramatic delivery. Only this was with a different attitude. And all
+through his impassioned appeal this morning, there was a note of
+sadness and rebuke and stern condemnation that made many of the
+members pale with self-accusation or with inward anger.
+
+For Raymond had awakened that morning to the fact that the city had
+gone for license after all. The rumor at the Rectangle that the
+second and third wards had gone no-license proved to be false. It
+was true that the victory was won by a very meager majority. But the
+result was the same as if it had been overwhelming. Raymond had
+voted to continue for another year the saloon. The Christians of
+Raymond stood condemned by the result. More than a hundred
+professing Christian disciples had failed to go to the polls, and
+many more than that number had voted with the whiskey men. If all
+the church members of Raymond had voted against the saloon, it would
+today be outlawed instead of crowned king of the municipality. For
+that had been the fact in Raymond for years. The saloon ruled. No
+one denied that. What would Jesus do? And this woman who had been
+brutally struck down by the very hand that had assisted so eagerly
+to work her earthly ruin what of her? Was it anything more than the
+logical sequence of the whole horrible system of license, that for
+another year the very saloon that received her so often and
+compassed her degradation, from whose very spot the weapon had been
+hurled that struck her dead, would, by the law which the Christian
+people of Raymond voted to support, perhaps open its doors tomorrow
+and damn a hundred Loreens before the year had drawn to its bloody
+close?
+
+All this, with a voice that rang and trembled and broke in sobs of
+anguish for the result, did Henry Maxwell pour out upon his people
+that Sunday morning. And men and women wept as he spoke. President
+Marsh sat there, his usual erect, handsome, firm, bright
+self-confident bearing all gone; his head bowed upon his breast, the
+great tears rolling down his cheeks, unmindful of the fact that
+never before had he shown outward emotion in a public service.
+Edward Norman near by sat with his clear-cut, keen face erect, but
+his lip trembled and he clutched the end of the pew with a feeling
+of emotion that struck deep into his knowledge of the truth as
+Maxwell spoke it. No man had given or suffered more to influence
+public opinion that week than Norman. The thought that the Christian
+conscience had been aroused too late or too feebly, lay with a
+weight of accusation upon the heart of the editor. What if he had
+begun to do as Jesus would have done, long ago? Who could tell what
+might have been accomplished by this time! And up in the choir,
+Rachel Winslow, with her face bowed on the railing of the oak
+screen, gave way to a feeling which she had not allowed yet to
+master her, but it so unfitted her for her part that when Mr.
+Maxwell finished and she tried to sing the closing solo after the
+prayer, her voice broke, and for the first time in her life she was
+obliged to sit down, sobbing, and unable to go on.
+
+Over the church, in the silence that followed this strange scene,
+sobs and the noise of weeping arose. When had the First Church
+yielded to such a baptism of tears? What had become of its regular,
+precise, conventional order of service, undisturbed by any vulgar
+emotion and unmoved by any foolish excitement? But the people had
+lately had their deepest convictions touched. They had been living
+so long on their surface feelings that they had almost forgotten the
+deeper wells of life. Now that they had broken the surface, the
+people were convicted of the meaning of their discipleship.
+
+Mr. Maxwell did not ask, this morning, for volunteers to join those
+who had already pledged to do as Jesus would. But when the
+congregation had finally gone, and he had entered the lecture-room,
+it needed but a glance to show him that the original company of
+followers had been largely increased. The meeting was tender; it
+glowed with the Spirit's presence; it was alive with strong and
+lasting resolve to begin a war on the whiskey power in Raymond that
+would break its reign forever. Since the first Sunday when the first
+company of volunteers had pledged themselves to do as Jesus would
+do, the different meetings had been characterized by distinct
+impulses or impressions. Today, the entire force of the gathering
+seemed to be directed to this one large purpose. It was a meeting
+full of broken prayers of contrition, of confession, of strong
+yearning for a new and better city life. And all through it ran one
+general cry for deliverance from the saloon and its awful curse.
+
+But if the First Church was deeply stirred by the events of the last
+week, the Rectangle also felt moved strangely in its own way. The
+death of Loreen was not in itself so remarkable a fact. It was her
+recent acquaintance with the people from the city that lifted her
+into special prominence and surrounded her death with more than
+ordinary importance. Every one in the Rectangle knew that Loreen was
+at this moment lying in the Page mansion up on the avenue.
+Exaggerated reports of the magnificence of the casket had already
+furnished material for eager gossip. The Rectangle was excited to
+know the details of the funeral. Would it be public? What did Miss
+Page intend to do? The Rectangle had never before mingled even in
+this distant personal manner with the aristocracy on the boulevard.
+The opportunities for doing so were not frequent. Gray and his wife
+were besieged by inquirers who wanted to know what Loreen's friends
+and acquaintances were expected to do in paying their last respects
+to her. For her acquaintance was large and many of the recent
+converts were among her friends.
+
+So that is how it happened that Monday afternoon, at the tent, the
+funeral service of Loreen was held before an immense audience that
+choked the tent and overflowed beyond all previous bounds. Gray had
+gone up to Virginia's and, after talking it over with her and
+Maxwell, the arrangement had been made.
+
+"I am and always have been opposed to large public funerals," said
+Gray, whose complete wholesome simplicity of character was one of
+its great sources of strength; "but the cry of the poor creatures
+who knew Loreen is so earnest that I do not know how to refuse this
+desire to see her and pay her poor body some last little honor. What
+do you think, Mr. Maxwell? I will be guided by your judgment in the
+matter. I am sure that whatever you and Miss Page think best, will
+be right."
+
+"I feel as you do," replied Mr. Maxwell. "Under the circumstances I
+have a great distaste for what seems like display at such times. But
+this seems different. The people at the Rectangle will not come here
+to service. I think the most Christian thing will be to let them
+have the service at the tent. Do you think so, Miss Virginia?"
+
+"Yes," said Virginia. "Poor soul! I do not know but that some time I
+shall know she gave her life for mine. We certainly cannot and will
+not use the occasion for vulgar display. Let her friends be allowed
+the gratification of their wishes. I see no harm in it."
+
+So the arrangements were made, with some difficulty, for the service
+at the tent; and Virginia with her uncle and Rollin, accompanied by
+Maxwell, Rachel and President Marsh, and the quartet from the First
+Church, went down and witnessed one of the strange things of their
+lives.
+
+It happened that that afternoon a somewhat noted newspaper
+correspondent was passing through Raymond on his way to an editorial
+convention in a neighboring city. He heard of the contemplated
+service at the tent and went down. His description of it was written
+in a graphic style that caught the attention of very many readers
+the next day. A fragment of his account belongs to this part of the
+history of Raymond:
+
+"There was a very unique and unusual funeral service held here this
+afternoon at the tent of an evangelist, Rev. John Gray, down in the
+slum district known as the Rectangle. The occasion was caused by the
+killing of a woman during an election riot last Saturday night. It
+seems she had been recently converted during the evangelist's
+meetings, and was killed while returning from one of the meetings in
+company with other converts and some of her friends. She was a
+common street drunkard, and yet the services at the tent were as
+impressive as any I ever witnessed in a metropolitan church over the
+most distinguished citizen.
+
+"In the first place, a most exquisite anthem was sung by a trained
+choir. It struck me, of course--being a stranger in the place--with
+considerable astonishment to hear voices like those one naturally
+expects to hear only in great churches or concerts, at such a
+meeting as this. But the most remarkable part of the music was a
+solo sung by a strikingly beautiful young woman, a Miss Winslow who,
+if I remember right, is the young singer who was sought for by
+Crandall the manager of National Opera, and who for some reason
+refused to accept his offer to go on the stage. She had a most
+wonderful manner in singing, and everybody was weeping before she
+had sung a dozen words. That, of course, is not so strange an effect
+to be produced at a funeral service, but the voice itself was one of
+thousands. I understand Miss Winslow sings in the First Church of
+Raymond and could probably command almost any salary as a public
+singer. She will probably be heard from soon. Such a voice could win
+its way anywhere.
+
+"The service aside from the singing was peculiar. The evangelist, a
+man of apparently very simple, unassuming style, spoke a few words,
+and he was followed by a fine-looking man, the Rev. Henry Maxwell,
+pastor of the First Church of Raymond. Mr. Maxwell spoke of the fact
+that the dead woman had been fully prepared to go, but he spoke in a
+peculiarly sensitive manner of the effect of the liquor business on
+the lives of men and women like this one. Raymond, of course, being
+a railroad town and the centre of the great packing interests for
+this region, is full of saloons. I caught from the minister's
+remarks that he had only recently changed his views in regard to
+license. He certainly made a very striking address, and yet it was
+in no sense inappropriate for a funeral.
+
+"Then followed what was perhaps the queer part of this strange
+service. The women in the tent, at least a large part of them up
+near the coffin, began to sing in a soft, tearful way, 'I was a
+wandering sheep.' Then while the singing was going on, one row of
+women stood up and walked slowly past the casket, and as they went
+by, each one placed a flower of some kind upon it. Then they sat
+down and another row filed past, leaving their flowers. All the time
+the singing continued softly like rain on a tent cover when the wind
+is gentle. It was one of the simplest and at the same time one of
+the most impressive sights I ever witnessed. The sides of the tent
+were up, and hundreds of people who could not get in, stood outside,
+all as still as death itself, with wonderful sadness and solemnity
+for such rough looking people. There must have been a hundred of
+these women, and I was told many of them had been converted at the
+meetings just recently. I cannot describe the effect of that
+singing. Not a man sang a note. All women's voices, and so soft, and
+yet so distinct, that the effect was startling.
+
+"The service closed with another solo by Miss Winslow, who sang,
+'There were ninety and nine.' And then the evangelist asked them all
+to bow their heads while he prayed. I was obliged in order to catch
+my train to leave during the prayer, and the last view I caught of
+the service as the train went by the shops was a sight of the great
+crowd pouring out of the tent and forming in open ranks while the
+coffin was borne out by six of the women. It is a long time since I
+have seen such a picture in this unpoetic Republic."
+
+If Loreen's funeral impressed a passing stranger like this, it is
+not difficult to imagine the profound feelings of those who had been
+so intimately connected with her life and death. Nothing had ever
+entered the Rectangle that had moved it so deeply as Loreen's body
+in that coffin. And the Holy Spirit seemed to bless with special
+power the use of this senseless clay. For that night He swept more
+than a score of lost souls, mostly women, into the fold of the Good
+Shepherd.
+
+
+
+
+Chapter Sixteen
+
+
+No one in all Raymond, including the Rectangle, felt Loreen's death
+more keenly than Virginia. It came like a distinct personal loss to
+her. That short week while the girl had been in her home had opened
+Virginia's heart to a new life. She was talking it over with Rachel
+the day after the funeral. Thee were sitting in the hall of the Page
+mansion.
+
+"I am going to do something with my money to help those women to a
+better life." Virginia looked over to the end of the hall where, the
+day before, Loreen's body had lain. "I have decided on a good plan,
+as it seems to me. I have talked it over with Rollin. He will devote
+a large part of his money also to the same plan."
+
+"How much money have you, Virginia, to give in this way?" asked
+Rachel. Once, she would never have asked such a personal question.
+Now, it seemed as natural to talk frankly about money as about
+anything else that belonged to God.
+
+"I have available for use at least four hundred and fifty-thousand
+dollars. Rollin has as much more. It is one of his bitter regrets
+now that his extravagant habits of life before his conversion
+practically threw away half that father left him. We are both eager
+to make all the reparation in our power. 'What would Jesus do with
+this money?' We want to answer that question honestly and wisely.
+The money I shall put into the NEWS is, I am confident, in a line
+with His probable action. It is as necessary that we have a
+Christian daily paper in Raymond, especially now that we have the
+saloon influence to meet, as it is to have a church or a college. So
+I am satisfied that the five hundred thousand dollars that Mr.
+Norman will know how to use so well will be a powerful factor in
+Raymond to do as Jesus would.
+
+"About my other plan, Rachel, I want you to work with me. Rollin and
+I are going to buy up a large part of the property in the Rectangle.
+The field where the tent now is, has been in litigation for years.
+We mean to secure the entire tract as soon as the courts have
+settled the title. For some time I have been making a special study
+of the various forms of college settlements and residence methods of
+Christian work and Institutional church work in the heart of great
+city slums. I do not know that I have yet been able to tell just
+what is the wisest and most effective kind of work that can be done
+in Raymond. But I do know this much. My money--I mean God's, which
+he wants me to use--can build wholesome lodging-houses, refuges for
+poor women, asylums for shop girls, safety for many and many a lost
+girl like Loreen. And I do not want to be simply a dispenser of this
+money. God help me! I do want to put myself into the problem. But
+you know, Rachel, I have a feeling all the time that all that
+limitless money and limitless personal sacrifice can possibly do,
+will not really lessen very much the awful condition at the
+Rectangle as long as the saloon is legally established there. I
+think that is true of any Christian work now being carried on in any
+great city. The saloon furnishes material to be saved faster than
+the settlement or residence or rescue mission work can save it."
+
+Virginia suddenly rose and paced the hall. Rachel answered sadly,
+and yet with a note of hope in her voice:
+
+"It is true. But, Virginia, what a wonderful amount of good can be
+done with this money! And the saloon cannot always remain here. The
+time must come when the Christian forces in the city will triumph."
+
+Virginia paused near Rachel, and her pale, earnest face lighted up.
+
+"I believe that too. The number of those who have promised to do as
+Jesus would is increasing. If we once have, say, five hundred such
+disciples in Raymond, the saloon is doomed. But now, dear, I want
+you to look at your part in this plan for capturing and saving the
+Rectangle. Your voice is a power. I have had many ideas lately. Here
+is one of them. You could organize among the girls a Musical
+Institute; give them the benefit of your training. There are some
+splendid voices in the rough there. Did any one ever hear such
+singing as that yesterday by those women? Rachel, what a beautiful
+opportunity! You shall have the best of material in the way of
+organs and orchestras that money can provide, and what cannot be
+done with music to win souls there into higher and purer and better
+living?"
+
+Before Virginia had ceased speaking Rachel's face was perfectly
+transformed with the thought of her life work. It flowed into her
+heart and mind like a flood, and the torrent of her feeling
+overflowed in tears that could not be restrained. It was what she
+had dreamed of doing herself. It represented to her something that
+she felt was in keeping with a right use of her talent.
+
+"Yes," she said, as she rose and put her arm about Virginia, while
+both girls in the excitement of their enthusiasm paced the hall.
+"Yes, I will gladly put my life into that kind of service. I do
+believe that Jesus would have me use my life in this way. Virginia,
+what miracles can we not accomplish in humanity if we have such a
+lever as consecrated money to move things with!"
+
+"Add to it consecrated personal enthusiasm like yours, and it
+certainly can accomplish great things," said Virginia smiling. And
+before Rachel could reply, Rollin came in.
+
+He hesitated a moment, and then was passing out of the hall into the
+library when Virginia called him back and asked some questions about
+his work.
+
+Rollin came back and sat down, and together the three discussed
+their future plans. Rollin was apparently entirely free from
+embarrassment in Rachel's presence while Virginia was with them,
+only his manner with her was almost precise, if not cold. The past
+seemed to have been entirely absorbed in his wonderful conversion.
+He had not forgotten it, but he seemed to be completely caught up
+for this present time in the purpose of his new life. After a while
+Rollin was called out, and Rachel and Virginia began to talk of
+other things.
+
+"By the way, what has become of Jasper Chase?" Virginia asked the
+question innocently, but Rachel flushed and Virginia added with a
+smile, "I suppose he is writing another book. Is he going to put you
+into this one, Rachel? You know I always suspected Jasper Chase of
+doing that very thing in his first story."
+
+"Virginia," Rachel spoke with the frankness that had always existed
+between the two friends, "Jasper Chase told me the other night that
+he--in fact--he proposed to me--or he would, if--"
+
+Rachel stopped and sat with her hands clasped on her lap, and there
+were tears in her eyes.
+
+"Virginia, I thought a little while ago I loved him, as he said he
+loved me. But when he spoke, my heart felt repelled, and I said what
+I ought to say. I told him no. I have not seen him since. That was
+the night of the first conversions at the Rectangle."
+
+"I am glad for you," said Virginia quietly.
+
+"Why?" asked Rachel a little startled.
+
+"Because, I have never really liked Jasper Chase. He is too cold
+and--I do not like to judge him, but I have always distrusted his
+sincerity in taking the pledge at the church with the rest."
+
+Rachel looked at Virginia thoughtfully.
+
+"I have never given my heart to him I am sure. He touched my
+emotions, and I admired his skill as a writer. I have thought at
+times that I cared a good deal for him. I think perhaps if he had
+spoken to me at any other time than the one he chose, I could easily
+have persuaded myself that I loved him. But not now."
+
+Again Rachel paused suddenly, and when she looked up at Virginia
+again there were tears on her face. Virginia came to her and put her
+arm about her tenderly.
+
+When Rachel had left the house, Virginia sat in the hall thinking
+over the confidence her friend had just shown her. There was
+something still to be told, Virginia felt sure from Rachel's manner,
+but she did not feel hurt that Rachel had kept back something. She
+was simply conscious of more on Rachel's mind than she had revealed.
+
+Very soon Rollin came back, and he and Virginia, arm in arm as they
+had lately been in the habit of doing, walked up and down the long
+hall. It was easy for their talk to settle finally upon Rachel
+because of the place she was to occupy in the plans which were being
+made for the purchase of property at the Rectangle.
+
+"Did you ever know of a girl of such really gifted powers in vocal
+music who was willing to give her life to the people as Rachel is
+going to do? She is going to give music lessons in the city, have
+private pupils to make her living, and then give the people in the
+Rectangle the benefit of her culture and her voice."
+
+"It is certainly a very good example of self-sacrifice," replied
+Rollin a little stiffly.
+
+Virginia looked at him a little sharply. "But don't you think it is
+a very unusual example? Can you imagine--" here Virginia named half
+a dozen famous opera singers--"doing anything of this sort?"
+
+"No, I cannot," Rollin answered briefly. "Neither can I imagine
+Miss--" he spoke the name of the girl with the red parasol who had
+begged Virginia to take the girls to the Rectangle--"doing what you
+are doing, Virginia."
+
+"Any more than I can imagine Mr.--" Virginia spoke the name of a
+young society leader "going about to the clubs doing your work,
+Rollin." The two walked on in silence for the length of the hall.
+
+"Coming back to Rachel," began Virginia, "Rollin, why do you treat
+her with such a distinct, precise manner? I think, Rollin--pardon me
+if I hurt you--that she is annoyed by it. You need to be on easy
+terms. I don't think Rachel likes this change."
+
+Rollin suddenly stopped. He seemed deeply agitated. He took his arm
+from Virginia's and walked alone to the end of the hall. Then he
+returned, with his hands behind him, and stopped near his sister and
+said, "Virginia, have you not learned my secret?"
+
+Virginia looked bewildered, then over her face the unusual color
+crept, showing that she understood.
+
+"I have never loved any one but Rachel Winslow." Rollin spoke calmly
+enough now. "That day she was here when you talked about her refusal
+to join the concert company, I asked her to be my wife; out there on
+the avenue. She refused me, as I knew she would. And she gave as her
+reason the fact that I had no purpose in life, which was true
+enough. Now that I have a purpose, now that I am a new man, don't
+you see, Virginia, how impossible it is for me to say anything? I
+owe my very conversion to Rachel's singing. And yet that night while
+she sang I can honestly say that, for the time being, I never
+thought of her voice except as God's message. I believe that all my
+personal love for her was for the time merged into a personal love
+to my God and my Saviour." Rollin was silent, then he went on with
+more emotion. "I still love her, Virginia. But I do not think she
+ever could love me." He stopped and looked his sister in the face
+with a sad smile.
+
+"I don't know about that," said Virginia to herself. She was noting
+Rollin's handsome face, his marks of dissipation nearly all gone
+now, the firm lips showing manhood and courage, the clear eyes
+looking into hers frankly, the form strong and graceful. Rollin was
+a man now. Why should not Rachel come to love him in time? Surely
+the two were well fitted for each other, especially now that their
+purpose in life was moved by the same Christian force.
+
+
+
+
+Chapter Seventeen
+
+
+THE next day she went down to the NEWS office to see Edward Norman
+and arrange the details of her part in the establishment of the
+paper on its new foundation. Mr. Maxwell was present at this
+conference, and the three agreed that whatever Jesus would do in
+detail as editor of a daily paper, He would be guided by the same
+general principles that directed His conduct as the Saviour of the
+world.
+
+"I have tried to put down here in concrete form some of the things
+that it has seemed to me Jesus would do," said Edward Norman. He
+read from a paper lying on his desk, and Maxwell was reminded again
+of his own effort to put into written form his own conception of
+Jesus' probable action, and also of Milton Wright's same attempt in
+his business.
+
+"I have headed this, 'What would Jesus do as Edward Norman, editor
+of a daily newspaper in Raymond?'
+
+"1. He would never allow a sentence or a picture in his paper that
+could be called bad or coarse or impure in any way.
+
+"2. He would probably conduct the political part of the paper from
+the standpoint of non-partisan patriotism, always looking upon all
+political questions in the light of their relation to the Kingdom of
+God, and advocating measures from the standpoint of their relation
+to the welfare of the people, always on the basis of 'What is
+right?' never on the basis of 'What is for the best interests of
+this or that party?' In other words, He would treat all political
+questions as he would treat every other subject, from the standpoint
+of the advancement of the Kingdom of God on earth."
+
+Edward Norman looked up from the reading a moment. "You understand
+that is my opinion of Jesus' probable action on political matters in
+a daily paper. I am not passing judgment on other newspaper men who
+may have a different conception of Jesus' probable action from mine.
+I am simply trying to answer honestly, 'What would Jesus do as
+Edward Norman?' And the answer I find is what I have put down.'
+
+"3. The end and aim of a daily paper conducted by Jesus would be to
+do the will of God. That is, His main purpose in carrying on a
+newspaper would not be to make money, or gain political influence;
+but His first and ruling purpose would be to so conduct his paper
+that it would be evident to all his subscribers that He was trying
+to seek first the Kingdom of God by means of His paper. This purpose
+would be as distinct and unquestioned as the purpose of a minister
+or a missionary or any unselfish martyr in Christian work anywhere.
+
+"4. All questionable advertisements would be impossible.
+
+"5. The relations of Jesus to the employees on the paper would be of
+the most loving character."
+
+"So far as I have gone," said Norman again looking up, "I am of
+opinion that Jesus would employ practically some form of
+co-operation that would represent the idea of a mutual interest in a
+business where all were to move together for the same great end. I
+am working out such a plan, and I am confident it will be
+successful. At any rate, once introduce the element of personal love
+into a business like this, take out the selfish principle of doing
+it for personal profits to a man or company, and I do not see any
+way except the most loving personal interest between editors,
+reporters, pressmen, and all who contribute anything to the life of
+the paper. And that interest would be expressed not only in the
+personal love and sympathy but in a sharing with the profits of the
+business."
+
+"6. As editor of a daily paper today, Jesus would give large space
+to the work of the Christian world. He would devote a page possibly
+to the facts of Reform, of sociological problems, of institutional
+church work and similar movements.
+
+"7. He would do all in His power in His paper to fight the saloon as
+an enemy of the human race and an unnecessary part of our
+civilization. He would do this regardless of public sentiment in the
+matter and, of course, always regardless of its effect upon His
+subscription list."
+
+Again Edward Norman looked up. "I state my honest conviction on this
+point. Of course, I do not pass judgment on the Christian men who
+are editing other kinds of papers today. But as I interpret Jesus, I
+believe He would use the influence of His paper to remove the saloon
+entirely from the political and social life of the nation."
+
+"8. Jesus would not issue a Sunday edition.
+
+"9. He would print the news of the world that people ought to know.
+Among the things they do not need to know, and which would not be
+published, would be accounts of brutal prize-fights, long accounts
+of crimes, scandals in private families, or any other human events
+which in any way would conflict with the first point mentioned in
+this outline.
+
+"10. If Jesus had the amount of money to use on a paper which we
+have, He would probably secure the best and strongest Christian men
+and women to co-operate with him in the matter of contributions.
+That will be my purpose, as I shall be able to show you in a few
+days.
+
+"11. Whatever the details of the paper might demand as the paper
+developed along its definite plan, the main principle that guided it
+would always be the establishment of the Kingdom of God in the
+world. This large general principle would necessarily shape all the
+detail."
+
+Edward Norman finished reading the plan. He was very thoughtful.
+
+"I have merely sketched a faint outline. I have a hundred ideas for
+making the paper powerful that I have not thought out fully as yet.
+This is simply suggestive. I have talked it over with other
+newspaper men. Some of them say I will have a weak, namby-pamby
+Sunday-school sheet. If I get out something as good as a
+Sunday-school it will be pretty good. Why do men, when they want to
+characterize something as particularly feeble, always use a
+Sunday-school as a comparison, when they ought to know that the
+Sunday-school is one of the strongest, most powerful influences in
+our civilization in this country today? But the paper will not
+necessarily be weak because it is good. Good things are more
+powerful than bad. The question with me is largely one of support
+from the Christian people of Raymond. There are over twenty thousand
+church members here in this city. If half of them will stand by the
+NEWS its life is assured. What do you think, Maxwell, of the
+probability of such support?"
+
+"I don't know enough about it to give an intelligent answer. I
+believe in the paper with all my heart. If it lives a year, as Miss
+Virginia said, there is no telling what it can do. The great thing
+will be to issue such a paper, as near as we can judge, as Jesus
+probably would, and put into it all the elements of Christian
+brains, strength, intelligence and sense; and command respect for
+freedom from bigotry, fanaticism, narrowness and anything else that
+is contrary to the spirit of Jesus. Such a paper will call for the
+best that human thought and action is capable of giving. The
+greatest minds in the world would have their powers taxed to the
+utmost to issue a Christian daily."
+
+"Yes," Edward Norman spoke humbly. "I shall make a great many
+mistakes, no doubt. I need a great deal of wisdom. But I want to do
+as Jesus would. 'What would He do?' I have asked it, and shall
+continue to do so, and abide by the results."
+
+"I think we are beginning to understand," said Virginia, "the
+meaning of that command, 'Grow in the grace and knowledge of our
+Lord and Saviour Jesus Christ.' I am sure I do not know all that He
+would do in detail until I know Him better."
+
+"That is very true," said Henry Maxwell. "I am beginning to
+understand that I cannot interpret the probable action of Jesus
+until I know better what His spirit is. The greatest question in all
+of human life is summed up when we ask, 'What would Jesus do?' if,
+as we ask it, we also try to answer it from a growth in knowledge of
+Jesus himself. We must know Jesus before we can imitate Him."
+
+When the arrangement had been made between Virginia an Edward
+Norman, he found himself in possession of the sum of five hundred
+thousand dollars to use for the establishment of a Christian daily
+paper. When Virginia and Maxwell had gone, Norman closed his door
+and, alone with the Divine Presence, asked like a child for help
+from his all-powerful Father. All through his prayer as he kneeled
+before his desk ran the promise, "If any man lack wisdom, let him
+ask of God who giveth to all men liberally and upbraideth not, and
+it shall be given him." Surely his prayer would be answered, and the
+kingdom advanced through this instrument of God's power, this mighty
+press, which had become so largely degraded to the base uses of
+man's avarice and ambition.
+
+Two months went by. They were full of action and of results in the
+city of Raymond and especially in the First Church. In spite of the
+approaching heat of the summer season, the after-meeting of the
+disciples who had made the pledge to do as Jesus would do, continued
+with enthusiasm and power. Gray had finished his work at the
+Rectangle, and an outward observer going through the place could not
+have seen any difference in the old conditions, although there was
+an actual change in hundreds of lives. But the saloons, dens,
+hovels, gambling houses, still ran, overflowing their vileness into
+the lives of fresh victims to take the place of those rescued by the
+evangelist. And the devil recruited his ranks very fast.
+
+Henry Maxwell did not go abroad. Instead of that, he took the money
+he had been saving for the trip and quietly arranged for a summer
+vacation for a whole family living down in the Rectangle, who had
+never gone outside of the foul district of the tenements. The pastor
+of the First Church will never forget the week he spent with this
+family making the arrangements. He went down into the Rectangle one
+hot day when something of the terrible heat in the horrible
+tenements was beginning to be felt, and helped the family to the
+station, and then went with them to a beautiful spot on the coast
+where, in the home of a Christian woman, the bewildered city tenants
+breathed for the first time in years the cool salt air, and felt
+blow about them the pine-scented fragrance of a new lease of life.
+
+There was a sickly babe with the mother, and three other children,
+one a cripple. The father, who had been out of work until he had
+been, as he afterwards confessed to Maxwell, several times on the
+edge of suicide, sat with the baby in his arms during the journey,
+and when Maxwell started back to Raymond, after seeing the family
+settled, the man held his hand at parting, and choked with his
+utterance, and finally broke down, to Maxwell's great confusion. The
+mother, a wearied, worn-out woman who had lost three children the
+year before from a fever scourge in the Rectangle, sat by the car
+window all the way and drank in the delights of sea and sky and
+field. It all seemed a miracle to her. And Maxwell, coming back into
+Raymond at the end of that week, feeling the scorching, sickening
+heat all the more because of his little taste of the ocean breezes,
+thanked God for the joy he had witnessed, and entered upon his
+discipleship with a humble heart, knowing for almost the first time
+in his life this special kind of sacrifice. For never before had he
+denied himself his regular summer trip away from the heat of
+Raymond, whether he felt in any great need of rest or not.
+
+"It is a fact," he said in reply to several inquiries on the part of
+his church, "I do not feel in need of a vacation this year. I am
+very well and prefer to stay here." It was with a feeling of relief
+that he succeeded in concealing from every one but his wife what he
+had done with this other family. He felt the need of doing anything
+of that sort without display or approval from others.
+
+So the summer came on, and Maxwell grew into a large knowledge of
+his Lord. The First Church was still swayed by the power of the
+Spirit. Maxwell marveled at the continuance of His stay. He knew
+very well that from the beginning nothing but the Spirit's presence
+had kept the church from being torn asunder by the remarkable
+testing it had received of its discipleship. Even now there were
+many of the members among those who had not taken the pledge, who
+regarded the whole movement as Mrs. Winslow did, in the nature of a
+fanatical interpretation of Christian duty, and looked for the
+return of the old normal condition. Meanwhile the whole body of
+disciples was under the influence of the Spirit, and the pastor went
+his way that summer, doing his parish work in great joy, keeping up
+his meetings with the railroad men as he had promised Alexander
+Powers, and daily growing into a better knowledge of the Master.
+
+Early one afternoon in August, after a day of refreshing coolness
+following a long period of heat, Jasper Chase walked to his window
+in the apartment house on the avenue and looked out.
+
+On his desk lay a pile of manuscript. Since that evening when he had
+spoken to Rachel Winslow he had not met her. His singularly
+sensitive nature--sensitive to the point of extreme irritability
+when he was thwarted--served to thrust him into an isolation that
+was intensified by his habits as an author.
+
+All through the heat of summer he had been writing. His book was
+nearly done now. He had thrown himself into its construction with a
+feverish strength that threatened at any moment to desert him and
+leave him helpless. He had not forgotten his pledge made with the
+other church members at the First Church. It had forced itself upon
+his notice all through his writing, and ever since Rachel had said
+no to him, he had asked a thousand times, "Would Jesus do this?
+Would He write this story?" It was a social novel, written in a
+style that had proved popular. It had no purpose except to amuse.
+Its moral teaching was not bad, but neither was it Christian in any
+positive way. Jasper Chase knew that such a story would probably
+sell. He was conscious of powers in this way that the social world
+petted and admired. "What would Jesus do?" He felt that Jesus would
+never write such a book. The question obtruded on him at the most
+inopportune times. He became irascible over it. The standard of
+Jesus for an author was too ideal. Of course, Jesus would use His
+powers to produce something useful or helpful, or with a purpose.
+What was he, Jasper Chase, writing this novel for? Why, what nearly
+every writer wrote for--money, money, and fame as a writer. There
+was no secret with him that he was writing this new story with that
+object. He was not poor, and so had no great temptation to write for
+money. But he was urged on by his desire for fame as much as
+anything. He must write this kind of matter. But what would Jesus
+do? The question plagued him even more than Rachel's refusal. Was he
+going to break his promise? "Did the promise mean much after all?"
+he asked.
+
+As he stood at the window, Rollin Page came out of the club house
+just opposite. Jasper noted his handsome face and noble figure as he
+started down the street. He went back to his desk and turned over
+some papers there. Then he came back to the window. Rollin was
+walking down past the block and Rachel Winslow was walking beside
+him. Rollin must have overtaken her as she was coming from
+Virginia's that afternoon.
+
+Jasper watched the two figures until they disappeared in the crowd
+on the walk. Then he turned to his desk and began to write. When he
+had finished the last page of the last chapter of his book it was
+nearly dark. "What would Jesus do?" He had finally answered the
+question by denying his Lord. It grew darker in his room. He had
+deliberately chosen his course, urged on by his disappointment and
+loss.
+
+
+
+
+Chapter Eighteen
+
+
+"What is that to thee? Follow thou me."
+
+
+WHEN Rollin started down the street the afternoon that Jasper stood
+looking out of his window he was not thinking of Rachel Winslow and
+did not expect to see her anywhere. He had come suddenly upon her as
+he turned into the avenue and his heart had leaped up at the sight
+of her. He walked along by her now, rejoicing after all in a little
+moment of this earthly love he could not drive out of his life.
+
+"I have just been over to see Virginia," said Rachel. "She tells me
+the arrangements are nearly completed for the transfer of the
+Rectangle property."
+
+"Yes. It has been a tedious case in the courts. Did Virginia show
+you all the plans and specifications for building?"
+
+"We looked over a good many. It is astonishing to me where Virginia
+has managed to get all her ideas about this work."
+
+"Virginia knows more now about Arnold Toynbee and East End London
+and Institutional Church work in America than a good many
+professional slum workers. She has been spending nearly all summer
+in getting information." Rollin was beginning to feel more at ease
+as they talked over this coming work of humanity. It was safe,
+common ground.
+
+"What have you been doing all summer? I have not seen much of you,"
+Rachel suddenly asked, and then her face warmed with its quick flush
+of tropical color as if she might have implied too much interest in
+Rollin or too much regret at not seeing him oftener.
+
+"I have been busy," replied Rollin briefly.
+
+"Tell me something about it," persisted Rachel. "You say so little.
+Have I a right to ask?"
+
+She put the question very frankly, turning toward Rollin in real
+earnest.
+
+"Yes, certainly," he replied, with a graceful smile. "I am not so
+certain that I can tell you much. I have been trying to find some
+way to reach the men I once knew and win them into more useful
+lives."
+
+He stopped suddenly as if he were almost afraid to go on. Rachel did
+not venture to suggest anything.
+
+"I have been a member of the same company to which you and Virginia
+belong," continued Rollin, beginning again. "I have made the pledge
+to do as I believe Jesus would do, and it is in trying to answer
+this question that I have been doing my work."
+
+"That is what I do not understand. Virginia told me about the other.
+It seems wonderful to think that you are trying to keep that pledge
+with us. But what can you do with the club men?"
+
+"You have asked me a direct question and I shall have to answer it
+now," replied Rollin, smiling again. "You see, I asked myself after
+that night at the tent, you remember" (he spoke hurriedly and his
+voice trembled a little), "what purpose I could now have in my life
+to redeem it, to satisfy my thought of Christian discipleship? And
+the more I thought of it, the more I was driven to a place where I
+knew I must take up the cross. Did you ever think that of all the
+neglected beings in our social system none are quite so completely
+left alone as the fast young men who fill the clubs and waste their
+time and money as I used to? The churches look after the poor,
+miserable creatures like those in the Rectangle; they make some
+effort to reach the working man, they have a large constituency
+among the average salary-earning people, they send money and
+missionaries to the foreign heathen, but the fashionable, dissipated
+young men around town, the club men, are left out of all plans for
+reaching and Christianizing. And yet no class of people need it
+more. I said to myself: 'I know these men, their good and their bad
+qualities. I have been one of them. I am not fitted to reach the
+Rectangle people. I do not know how. But I think I could possibly
+reach some of the young men and boys who have money and time to
+spend.' So that is what I have been trying to do. When I asked as
+you did, What would Jesus do?' that was my answer. It has been also
+my cross."
+
+Rollin's voice was so low on this last sentence that Rachel had
+difficulty in hearing him above the noise around them, But she knew
+what he had said. She wanted to ask what his methods were. But she
+did not know how to ask him. Her interest in his plan was larger
+than mere curiosity. Rollin Page was so different now from the
+fashionable young man who had asked her to be his wife that she
+could not help thinking of him and talking with him as if he were an
+entirely new acquaintance.
+
+They had turned off the avenue and were going up the street to
+Rachel's home. It was the same street where Rollin had asked Rachel
+why she could not love him. They were both stricken with a sudden
+shyness as they went on. Rachel had not forgotten that day and
+Rollin could not. She finally broke a long silence by asking what
+she had not found words for before.
+
+"In your work with the club men, with your old acquaintances, what
+sort of reception do they give you? How do you approach them? What
+do they say?"
+
+Rollin was relieved when Rachel spoke. He answered quickly: "Oh, it
+depends on the man. A good many of them think I am a crank. I have
+kept my membership up and am in good standing in that way. I try to
+be wise and not provoke any unnecessary criticism. But you would be
+surprised to know how many of the men have responded to my appeal. I
+could hardly make you believe that only a few nights ago a dozen men
+became honestly and earnestly engaged in a conversation over
+religious matters. I have had the great joy of seeing some of the
+men give up bad habits and begin a new life. 'What would Jesus do?'
+I keep asking it. The answer comes slowly, for I am feeling my way
+slowly. One thing I have found out. The men are not fighting shy of
+me. I think that is a good sign. Another thing: I have actually
+interested some of them in the Rectangle work, and when it is
+started up they will give something to help make it more powerful.
+And in addition to all the rest, I have found a way to save several
+of the young fellows from going to the bad in gambling."
+
+Rollin spoke with enthusiasm. His face was transformed by his
+interest in the subject which had now become a part of his real
+life. Rachel again noted the strong, manly tone of his speech. With
+it all she knew there was a deep, underlying seriousness which felt
+the burden of the cross even while carrying it with joy. The next
+time she spoke it was with a swift feeling of justice due to Rollin
+and his new life.
+
+"Do you remember I reproached you once for not having any purpose
+worth living for?" she asked, while her beautiful face seemed to
+Rollin more beautiful than ever when he had won sufficient
+self-control to look up. "I want to say, I feel the need of saying,
+in justice to you now, that I honor you for your courage and your
+obedience to the promise you have made as you interpret the promise.
+The life you are living is a noble one."
+
+Rollin trembled. His agitation was greater than he could control.
+Rachel could not help seeing it. They walked along in silence. At
+last Rollin said: "I thank you. It has been worth more to me than I
+can tell you to hear you say that." He looked into her face for one
+moment. She read his love for her in that look, but he did not
+speak.
+
+When they separated Rachel went into the house and, sitting down in
+her room, she put her face in her hands and said to herself: "I am
+beginning to know what it means to be loved by a noble man. I shall
+love Rollin Page after all. What am I saying! Rachel Winslow, have
+you forgotten--"
+
+She rose and walked back and forth. She was deeply moved.
+Nevertheless, it was evident to herself that her emotion was not
+that of regret or sorrow. Somehow a glad new joy had come to her.
+She had entered another circle of experience, and later in the day
+she rejoiced with a very strong and sincere gladness that her
+Christian discipleship found room in this crisis for her feeling. It
+was indeed a part of it, for if she was beginning to love Rollin
+Page it was the Christian man she had begun to love; the other never
+would have moved her to this great change.
+
+And Rollin, as he went back, treasured a hope that had been a
+stranger to him since Rachel had said no that day. In that hope he
+went on with his work as the days sped on, and at no time was he
+more successful in reaching and saving his old acquaintances than in
+the time that followed that chance meeting with Rachel Winslow.
+
+The summer had gone and Raymond was once more facing the rigor of
+her winter season. Virginia had been able to accomplish a part of
+her plan for "capturing the Rectangle," as she called it. But the
+building of houses in the field, the transforming of its bleak, bare
+aspect into an attractive park, all of which was included in her
+plan, was a work too large to be completed that fall after she had
+secured the property. But a million dollars in the hands of a person
+who truly wants to do with it as Jesus would, ought to accomplish
+wonders for humanity in a short time, and Henry Maxwell, going over
+to the scene of the new work one day after a noon hour with the shop
+men, was amazed to see how much had been done outwardly.
+
+Yet he walked home thoughtfully, and on his way he could not avoid
+the question of the continual problem thrust upon his notice by the
+saloon. How much had been done for the Rectangle after all? Even
+counting Virginia's and Rachel's work and Mr. Gray's, where had it
+actually counted in any visible quantity? Of course, he said to
+himself, the redemptive work begun and carried on by the Holy Spirit
+in His wonderful displays of power in the First Church and in the
+tent meetings had had its effect upon the life of Raymond. But as he
+walked past saloon after saloon and noted the crowds going in and
+coming out of them, as he saw the wretched dens, as many as ever
+apparently, as he caught the brutality and squalor and open misery
+and degradation on countless faces of men and women and children, he
+sickened at the sight. He found himself asking how much cleansing
+could a million dollars poured into this cesspool accomplish? Was
+not the living source of nearly all the human misery they sought to
+relieve untouched as long as the saloons did their deadly but
+legitimate work? What could even such unselfish Christian
+discipleship as Virginia's and Rachel's do to lessen the stream of
+vice and crime so long as the great spring of vice and crime flowed
+as deep and strong as ever? Was it not a practical waste of
+beautiful lives for these young women to throw themselves into this
+earthly hell, when for every soul rescued by their sacrifice the
+saloon made two more that needed rescue?
+
+He could not escape the question. It was the same that Virginia had
+put to Rachel in her statement that, in her opinion, nothing really
+permanent would ever be done until the saloon was taken out of the
+Rectangle. Henry Maxwell went back to his parish work that afternoon
+with added convictions on the license business.
+
+But if the saloon was a factor in the problem of the life of
+Raymond, no less was the First Church and its little company of
+disciples who had pledged to do as Jesus would do. Henry Maxwell,
+standing at the very centre of the movement, was not in a position
+to judge of its power as some one from the outside might have done.
+But Raymond itself felt the touch in very many ways, not knowing all
+the reasons for the change.
+
+The winter was gone and the year was ended, the year which Henry
+Maxwell had fixed as the time during which the pledge should be kept
+to do as Jesus would do. Sunday, the anniversary of that one a year
+ago, was in many ways the most remarkable day that the First Church
+ever knew. It was more important than the disciples in the First
+Church realized. The year had made history so fast and so serious
+that the people were not yet able to grasp its significance. And the
+day itself which marked the completion of a whole year of such
+discipleship was characterized by such revelations and confessions
+that the immediate actors in the events themselves could not
+understand the value of what had been done, or the relation of their
+trial to the rest of the churches and cities of the country.
+
+
+
+
+Chapter Nineteen
+
+
+[Letter from Rev. Calvin Bruce, D.D., of the Nazareth Avenue Church,
+Chicago, to Rev. Philip A. Caxton, D.D., New York City.]
+
+
+"My Dear Caxton:
+
+"It is late Sunday night, but I am so intensely awake and so
+overflowing with what I have seen and heard that I feel driven to
+write you now some account of the situation in Raymond as I have
+been studying it, and as it has apparently come to a climax today.
+So this is my only excuse for writing so extended a letter at this
+time.
+
+"You remember Henry Maxwell in the Seminary. I think you said the
+last time I visited you in New York that you had not seen him since
+we graduated. He was a refined, scholarly fellow, you remember, and
+when he was called to the First Church of Raymond within a year
+after leaving the Seminary, I said to my wife, 'Raymond has made a
+good choice. Maxwell will satisfy them as a sermonizer.' He has been
+here eleven years, and I understand that up to a year ago he had
+gone on in the regular course of the ministry, giving good
+satisfaction and drawing good congregations. His church was counted
+the largest and wealthiest church in Raymond. All the best people
+attended it, and most of them belonged. The quartet choir was famous
+for its music, especially for its soprano, Miss Winslow, of whom I
+shall have more to say; and, on the whole, as I understand the
+facts, Maxwell was in a comfortable berth, with a very good salary,
+pleasant surroundings, a not very exacting parish of refined, rich,
+respectable people--such a church and parish as nearly all the young
+men of the seminary in our time looked forward to as very desirable.
+
+"But a year ago today Maxwell came into his church on Sunday
+morning, and at the close of the service made the astounding
+proposition that the members of his church volunteer for a year not
+to do anything without first asking the question, 'What would Jesus
+do?' and, after answering it, to do what in their honest judgment He
+would do, regardless of what the result might be to them.
+
+"The effect of this proposition, as it has been met and obeyed by a
+number of members of the church, has been so remarkable that, as you
+know, the attention of the whole country has been directed to the
+movement. I call it a 'movement' because from the action taken
+today, it seems probable that what has been tried here will reach
+out into the other churches and cause a revolution in methods, but
+more especially in a new definition of Christian discipleship.
+
+"In the first place, Maxwell tells me he was astonished at the
+response to his proposition. Some of the most prominent members in
+the church made the promise to do as Jesus would. Among them were
+Edward Norman, editor of the DAILY NEWS, which has made such a
+sensation in the newspaper world; Milton Wright, one of the leading
+merchants in Raymond; Alexander Powers, whose action in the matter
+of the railroads against the interstate commerce laws made such a
+stir about a year ago; Miss Page, one of Raymond's leading society
+heiresses, who has lately dedicated her entire fortune, as I
+understand, to the Christian daily paper and the work of reform in
+the slum district known as the Rectangle; and Miss Winslow, whose
+reputation as a singer is now national, but who in obedience to what
+she has decided to be Jesus' probable action, has devoted her talent
+to volunteer work among the girls and women who make up a large part
+of the city's worst and most abandoned population.
+
+"In addition to these well-known people has been a gradually
+increasing number of Christians from the First Church and lately
+from other churches of Raymond. A large proportion of these
+volunteers who pledged themselves to do as Jesus would do comes from
+the Endeavor societies. The young people say that they have already
+embodied in their society pledge the same principle in the words, 'I
+promise Him that I will strive to do whatever He would have me do.'
+This is not exactly what is included in Maxwell's proposition, which
+is that the disciple shall try to do what Jesus would probably do in
+the disciple's place. But the result of an honest obedience to
+either pledge, he claims, will be practically the same, and he is
+not surprised that the largest numbers have joined the new
+discipleship from the Endeavor Society.
+
+"I am sure the first question you will ask is, 'What has been the
+result of this attempt? What has it accomplished or how has it
+changed in any way the regular life of the church or the community?'
+
+"You already know something, from reports of Raymond that have gone
+over the country, what the events have been. But one needs to come
+here and learn something of the changes in individual lives, and
+especially the change in the church life, to realize all that is
+meant by this following of Jesus' steps so literally. To tell all
+that would be to write a long story or series of stories. I am not
+in a position to do that, but I can give you some idea perhaps of
+what has been done as told me by friends here and by Maxwell
+himself.
+
+"The result of the pledge upon the First Church has been two-fold.
+It has brought upon a spirit of Christian fellowship which Maxwell
+tells me never before existed, and which now impresses him as being
+very nearly what the Christian fellowship of the apostolic churches
+must have been; and it has divided the church into two distinct
+groups of members. Those who have not taken the pledge regard the
+others as foolishly literal in their attempt to imitate the example
+of Jesus. Some of them have drawn out of the church and no longer
+attend, or they have removed their membership entirely to other
+churches. Some are an element of internal strife, and I heard rumors
+of an attempt on their part to force Maxwell's resignation. I do not
+know that this element is very strong in the church. It has been
+held in check by a wonderful continuance of spiritual power, which
+dates from the first Sunday the pledge was taken a year ago, and
+also by the fact that so many of the most prominent members have
+been identified with the movement.
+
+"The effect on Maxwell is very marked. I heard him preach in our
+State Association four years ago. He impressed me at the time as
+having considerable power in dramatic delivery, of which he himself
+was somewhat conscious. His sermon was well written and abounded in
+what the Seminary students used to call 'fine passages.' The effect
+of it was what an average congregation would call 'pleasing.' This
+morning I heard Maxwell preach again, for the first time since then.
+I shall speak of that farther on. He is not the same man. He gives
+me the impression of one who has passed through a crisis of
+revolution. He tells me this revolution is simply a new definition
+of Christian discipleship. He certainly has changed many of his old
+habits and many of his old views. His attitude on the saloon
+question is radically opposite to the one he entertained a year ago.
+And in his entire thought of the ministry, his pulpit and parish
+work, I find he has made a complete change. So far as I can
+understand, the idea that is moving him on now is the idea that the
+Christianity of our times must represent a more literal imitation of
+Jesus, and especially in the element of suffering. He quoted to me
+in the course of our conversation several times the verses in Peter:
+'For even hereunto were ye called, because Christ also suffered for
+you, leaving you an example, that ye would follow His steps'; and he
+seems filled with the conviction that what our churches need today
+more than anything else is this factor of joyful suffering for Jesus
+in some form. I do not know as I agree with him, altogether; but, my
+dear Caxton, it is certainly astonishing to note the results of this
+idea as they have impressed themselves upon this city and this
+church.
+
+"You ask how about the results on the individuals who have made this
+pledge and honestly tried to be true to it. Those results are, as I
+have said, a part of individual history and cannot be told in
+detail. Some of them I can give you so that you may see that this
+form of discipleship is not merely sentiment or fine posing for
+effect.
+
+"For instance, take the case of Mr. Powers, who was superintendent
+of the machine shops of the L. and T. R. R. here. When he acted upon
+the evidence which incriminated the road he lost his position, and
+more than that, I learn from my friends here, his family and social
+relations have become so changed that he and his family no longer
+appear in public. They have dropped out of the social circle where
+once they were so prominent. By the way, Caxton, I understand in
+this connection that the Commission, for one reason or another,
+postponed action on this case, and it is now rumored that the L. and
+T. R. R. will pass into a receiver's hands very soon. The president
+of the road who, according to the evidence submitted by Powers, was
+the principal offender, has resigned, and complications which have
+risen since point to the receivership. Meanwhile, the superintendent
+has gone back to his old work as a telegraph operator. I met him at
+the church yesterday. He impressed me as a man who had, like
+Maxwell, gone through a crisis in character. I could not help
+thinking of him as being good material for the church of the first
+century when the disciples had all things in common.
+
+"Or take the case of Mr. Norman, editor of the DAILY NEWS. He risked
+his entire fortune in obedience to what he believed was Jesus'
+action, and revolutionized his entire conduct of the paper at the
+risk of a failure. I send you a copy of yesterday's paper. I want
+you to read it carefully. To my mind it is one of the most
+interesting and remarkable papers ever printed in the United States.
+It is open to criticism, but what could any mere man attempt in this
+line that would be free from criticism. Take it all in all, it is so
+far above the ordinary conception of a daily paper that I am amazed
+at the result. He tells me that the paper is beginning to be read
+more and more by the Christian people of the city. He was very
+confident of its final success. Read his editorial on the money
+questions, also the one on the coming election in Raymond when the
+question of license will again be an issue. Both articles are of the
+best from his point of view. He says he never begins an editorial
+or, in fact, any part of his newspaper work, without first asking,
+'What would Jesus do?' The result is certainly apparent.
+
+"Then there is Milton Wright, the merchant. He has, I am told, so
+revolutionized his business that no man is more beloved today in
+Raymond. His own clerks and employees have an affection for him that
+is very touching. During the winter, while he was lying dangerously
+ill at his home, scores of clerks volunteered to watch and help in
+any way possible, and his return to his store was greeted with
+marked demonstrations. All this has been brought about by the
+element of personal love introduced into the business. This love is
+not mere words, but the business itself is carried on under a system
+of co-operation that is not a patronizing recognition of inferiors,
+but a real sharing in the whole business. Other men on the street
+look upon Milton Wright as odd. It is a fact, however, that while he
+has lost heavily in some directions, he has increased his business,
+and is today respected and honored as one of the best and most
+successful merchants in Raymond.
+
+"And there is Miss Winslow. She has chosen to give her great talent
+to the poor of the city. Her plans include a Musical Institute where
+choruses and classes in vocal music shall be a feature. She is
+enthusiastic over her life work. In connection with her friend Miss
+Page she has planned a course in music which, if carried out, will
+certainly do much to lift up the lives of the people down there. I
+am not too old, dear Caxton, to be interested in the romantic side
+of much that has also been tragic here in Raymond, and I must tell
+you that it is well understood here that Miss Winslow expects to be
+married this spring to a brother of Miss Page who was once a society
+leader and club man, and who was converted in a tent where his
+wife-that-is-to-be took an active part in the service. I don't know
+all the details of this little romance, but I imagine there is a
+story wrapped up in it, and it would make interesting reading if we
+only knew it all.
+
+"These are only a few illustrations of results in individual lives
+owing to obedience to the pledge. I meant to have spoken of
+President Marsh of Lincoln College. He is a graduate of my alma
+mater and I knew him slightly when I was in the senior year. He has
+taken an active part in the recent municipal campaign, and his
+influence in the city is regarded as a very large factor in the
+coming election. He impressed me, as did all the other disciples in
+this movement, as having fought out some hard questions, and as
+having taken up some real burdens that have caused and still do
+cause that suffering of which Henry Maxwell speaks, a suffering that
+does not eliminate, but does appear to intensify, a positive and
+practical joy."
+
+
+
+
+Chapter Twenty
+
+
+"BUT I am prolonging this letter, possibly to your weariness. I am
+unable to avoid the feeling of fascination which my entire stay here
+has increased. I want to tell you something of the meeting in the
+First Church today.
+
+"As I said, I heard Maxwell preach. At his earnest request I had
+preached for him the Sunday before, and this was the first time I
+had heard him since the Association meeting four years ago. His
+sermon this morning was as different from his sermon then as if it
+had been thought out and preached by some one living on another
+planet. I was profoundly touched. I believe I actually shed tears
+once. Others in the congregation were moved like myself. His text
+was: 'What is that to thee? Follow thou Me.' It was a most unusually
+impressive appeal to the Christians of Raymond to obey Jesus'
+teachings and follow in His steps regardless of what others might
+do. I cannot give you even the plan of the sermon. It would take too
+long. At the close of the service there was the usual after meeting
+that has become a regular feature of the First Church. Into this
+meeting have come all those who made the pledge to do as Jesus would
+do, and the time is spent in mutual fellowship, confession, question
+as to what Jesus would do in special cases, and prayer that the one
+great guide of every disciple's conduct may be the Holy Spirit.
+
+"Maxwell asked me to come into this meeting. Nothing in all my
+ministerial life, Caxton, has so moved me as that meeting. I never
+felt the Spirit's presence so powerfully. It was a meeting of
+reminiscences and of the most loving fellowship. I was irresistibly
+driven in thought back to the first years of Christianity. There was
+something about all this that was apostolic in its simplicity and
+Christ imitation.
+
+"I asked questions. One that seemed to arouse more interest than any
+other was in regard to the extent of the Christian disciple's
+sacrifice of personal property. Maxwell tells me that so far no one
+has interpreted the spirit of Jesus in such a way as to abandon his
+earthly possessions, give away of his wealth, or in any literal way
+imitate the Christians of the order, for example, of St. Francis of
+Assisi. It was the unanimous consent, however, that if any disciple
+should feel that Jesus in his own particular case would do that,
+there could be only one answer to the question. Maxwell admitted
+that he was still to a certain degree uncertain as to Jesus'
+probable action when it came to the details of household living, the
+possession of wealth, the holding of certain luxuries. It is,
+however, very evident that many of these disciples have repeatedly
+carried their obedience to Jesus to the extreme limit, regardless of
+financial loss. There is no lack of courage or consistency at this
+point.
+
+"It is also true that some of the business men who took the pledge
+have lost great sums of money in this imitation of Jesus, and many
+have, like Alexander Powers, lost valuable positions owing to the
+impossibility of doing what they had been accustomed to do and at
+the same time what they felt Jesus would do in the same place. In
+connection with these cases it is pleasant to record the fact that
+many who have suffered in this way have been at once helped
+financially by those who still have means. In this respect I think
+it is true that these disciples have all things in common. Certainly
+such scenes as I witnessed at the First Church at that after service
+this morning I never saw in my church or in any other. I never
+dreamed that such Christian fellowship could exist in this age of
+the world. I was almost incredulous as to the witness of my own
+senses. I still seem to be asking myself if this is the close of the
+nineteenth century in America.
+
+"But now, dear friend, I come to the real cause of this letter, the
+real heart of the whole question as the First Church of Raymond has
+forced it upon me. Before the meeting closed today steps were taken
+to secure the co-operation of all other Christian disciples in this
+country. I think Maxwell took this step after long deliberation. He
+said as much to me one day when we were discussing the effect of
+this movement upon the church in general.
+
+"'Why,' he said, 'suppose that the church membership generally in
+this country made this pledge and lived up to it! What a revolution
+it would cause in Christendom! But why not? Is it any more than the
+disciple ought to do? Has he followed Jesus, unless he is willing to
+do this? Is the test of discipleship any less today than it was in
+Jesus' time?'
+
+"I do not know all that preceded or followed his thought of what
+ought to be done outside of Raymond, but the idea crystallized today
+in a plan to secure the fellowship of all the Christians in America.
+The churches, through their pastors, will be asked to form disciple
+gatherings like the one in the First Church. Volunteers will be
+called for in the great body of church members in the United States,
+who will promise to do as Jesus would do. Maxwell spoke particularly
+of the result of such general action on the saloon question. He is
+terribly in earnest over this. He told me that there was no question
+in his mind that the saloon would be beaten in Raymond at the
+election now near at hand. If so, they could go on with some courage
+to do the redemptive work begun by the evangelist and now taken up
+by the disciples in his own church. If the saloon triumphs again
+there will be a terrible and, as he thinks, unnecessary waste of
+Christian sacrifice. But, however we differ on that point, he
+convinced his church that the time had come for a fellowship with
+other Christians. Surely, if the First Church could work such
+changes in society and its surroundings, the church in general if
+combining such a fellowship, not of creed but of conduct, ought to
+stir the entire nation to a higher life and a new conception of
+Christian following.
+
+"This is a grand idea, Caxton, but right here is where I find my
+self hesitating. I do not deny that the Christian disciple ought to
+follow Christ's steps as closely as these here in Raymond have tried
+to do. But I cannot avoid asking what the result would be if I ask
+my church in Chicago to do it. I am writing this after feeling the
+solemn, profound touch of the Spirit's presence, and I confess to
+you, old friend, that I cannot call up in my church a dozen
+prominent business or professional men who would make this trial at
+the risk of all they hold dear. Can you do any better in your
+church? What are we to say? That the churches would not respond to
+the call: 'Come and suffer?' Is our standard of Christian
+discipleship a wrong one? Or are we possibly deceiving ourselves,
+and would we be agreeably disappointed if we once asked our people
+to take such a pledge faithfully? The actual results of the pledge
+as obeyed here in Raymond are enough to make any pastor tremble, and
+at the same time long with yearning that they might occur in his own
+parish. Certainly never have I seen a church so signally blessed by
+the Spirit as this one. But--am I myself ready to take this pledge?
+I ask the question honestly, and I dread to face an honest answer. I
+know well enough that I should have to change very much in my life
+if I undertook to follow His steps so closely. I have called myself
+a Christian for many years. For the past ten years I have enjoyed a
+life that has had comparatively little suffering in it. I am,
+honestly I say it, living at a long distance from municipal problems
+and the life of the poor, the degraded and the abandoned. What would
+the obedience to this pledge demand of me? I hesitate to answer. My
+church is wealthy, full of well-to-do, satisfied people. The
+standard of their discipleship is, I am aware, not of a nature to
+respond to the call of suffering or personal loss. I say: 'I am
+aware.' I may be mistaken. I may have erred in not stirring their
+deeper life. Caxton, my friend, I have spoken my inmost thought to
+you. Shall I go back to my people next Sunday and stand up before
+them in my large city church and say: 'Let us follow Jesus closer;
+let us walk in His steps where it will cost us something more than
+it is costing us now; let us pledge not to do anything without first
+asking: 'What would Jesus do?' If I should go before them with that
+message, it would be a strange and startling one to them. But why?
+Are we not ready to follow Him all the way? What is it to be a
+follower of Jesus? What does it mean to imitate Him? What does it
+mean to walk in His steps?"
+
+The Rev. Calvin Bruce, D. D., of the Nazareth Avenue Church,
+Chicago, let his pen fall on the table. He had come to the parting
+of the ways, and his question, he felt sure, was the question of
+many and many a man in the ministry and in the church. He went to
+his window and opened it. He was oppressed with the weight of his
+convictions and he felt almost suffocated with the air in the room.
+He wanted to see the stars and feel the breath of the world.
+
+The night was very still. The clock in the First Church was just
+striking midnight. As it finished a clear, strong voice down in the
+direction of the Rectangle came floating up to him as if borne on
+radiant pinions.
+
+It was a voice of one of Gray's old converts, a night watchman at
+the packing houses, who sometimes solaced his lonesome hours by a
+verse or two of some familiar hymn:
+
+ "Must Jesus bear the cross alone
+ And all the world go free?
+ No, there's a cross for every one,
+ And there's a cross for me."
+
+The Rev. Calvin Bruce turned away from the window and, after a
+little hesitation, he kneeled. "What would Jesus do?" That was the
+burden of his prayer. Never had he yielded himself so completely to
+the Spirit's searching revealing of Jesus. He was on his knees a
+long time. He retired and slept fitfully with many awakenings. He
+rose before it was clear dawn, and threw open his window again. As
+the light in the east grew stronger he repeated to himself: "What
+would Jesus do? Shall I follow His steps?"
+
+The sun rose and flooded the city with its power. When shall the
+dawn of a new discipleship usher in the conquering triumph of a
+closer walk with Jesus? When shall Christendom tread more closely
+the path he made?
+
+"It is the way the Master trod; Shall not the servant tread it
+still?"
+
+
+
+
+Chapter Twenty-one
+
+
+"Master, I will follow Thee whithersoever Thou goest."
+
+
+THE Saturday afternoon matinee at the Auditorium in Chicago was just
+over and the usual crowd was struggling to get to its carriage
+before any one else. The Auditorium attendant was shouting out the
+numbers of different carriages and the carriage doors were slamming
+as the horses were driven rapidly up to the curb, held there
+impatiently by the drivers who had shivered long in the raw east
+wind, and then let go to plunge for a few minutes into the river of
+vehicles that tossed under the elevated railway and finally went
+whirling off up the avenue.
+
+"Now then, 624," shouted the Auditorium attendant; "624!" he
+repeated, and there dashed up to the curb a splendid span of black
+horses attached to a carriage having the monogram, "C. R. S." in
+gilt letters on the panel of the door.
+
+Two girls stepped out of the crowd towards the carriage. The older
+one had entered and taken her seat and the attendant was still
+holding the door open for the younger, who stood hesitating on the
+curb.
+
+"Come, Felicia! What are you waiting for! I shall freeze to death!"
+called the voice from the carriage.
+
+The girl outside of the carriage hastily unpinned a bunch of English
+violets from her dress and handed them to a small boy who was
+standing shivering on the edge of the sidewalk almost under the
+horses' feet. He took them, with a look of astonishment and a "Thank
+ye, lady!" and instantly buried a very grimy face in the bunch of
+perfume. The girl stepped into the carriage, the door shut with the
+incisive bang peculiar to well-made carriages of this sort, and in a
+few moments the coachman was speeding the horses rapidly up one of
+the boulevards.
+
+"You are always doing some queer thing or other, Felicia," said the
+older girl as the carriage whirled on past the great residences
+already brilliantly lighted.
+
+"Am I? What have I done that is queer now, Rose?" asked the other,
+looking up suddenly and turning her head towards her sister.
+
+"Oh, giving those violets to that boy! He looked as if he needed a
+good hot supper more than a bunch of violets. It's a wonder you
+didn't invite him home with us. I shouldn't have been surprised if
+you had. You are always doing such queer things."
+
+"Would it be queer to invite a boy like that to come to the house
+and get a hot supper?" Felicia asked the question softly and almost
+as if she were alone.
+
+"'Queer' isn't just the word, of course," replied Rose
+indifferently. "It would be what Madam Blanc calls 'outre.'
+Decidedly. Therefore you will please not invite him or others like
+him to hot suppers because I suggested it. Oh, dear! I'm awfully
+tired."
+
+She yawned, and Felicia silently looked out of the window in the
+door.
+
+"The concert was stupid and the violinist was simply a bore. I don't
+see how you could sit so still through it all," Rose exclaimed a
+little impatiently.
+
+"I liked the music," answered Felicia quietly.
+
+"You like anything. I never saw a girl with so little critical
+taste."
+
+Felicia colored slightly, but would not answer. Rose yawned again,
+and then hummed a fragment of a popular song. Then she exclaimed
+abruptly: "I'm sick of 'most everything. I hope the 'Shadows of
+London' will be exciting tonight."
+
+"The 'Shadows of Chicago,'" murmured Felicia. "The 'Shadows of
+Chicago!' The 'Shadows of London,' the play, the great drama with
+its wonderful scenery, the sensation of New York for two months. You
+know we have a box with the Delanos tonight."
+
+Felicia turned her face towards her sister. Her great brown eyes
+were very expressive and not altogether free from a sparkle of
+luminous heat.
+
+"And yet we never weep over the real thing on the actual stage of
+life. What are the 'Shadows of London' on the stage to the shadows
+of London or Chicago as they really exist? Why don't we get excited
+over the facts as they are?"
+
+"Because the actual people are dirty and disagreeable and it's too
+much bother, I suppose," replied Rose carelessly. "Felicia, you can
+never reform the world. What's the use? We're not to blame for the
+poverty and misery. There have always been rich and poor; and there
+always will be. We ought to be thankful we're rich."
+
+"Suppose Christ had gone on that principle," replied Felicia, with
+unusual persistence. "Do you remember Dr. Bruce's sermon on that
+verse a few Sundays ago: 'For ye know the grace of our Lord Jesus
+Christ, that though he was rich yet for our sakes he became poor,
+that ye through his poverty might become rich'?"
+
+"I remember it well enough," said Rose with some petulance, "and
+didn't Dr. Bruce go on to say that there is no blame attached to
+people who have wealth if they are kind and give to the needs of the
+poor? And I am sure that he himself is pretty comfortably settled.
+He never gives up his luxuries just because some people go hungry.
+What good would it do if he did? I tell you, Felicia, there will
+always be poor and rich in spite of all we can do. Ever since Rachel
+Winslow has written about those queer doings in Raymond you have
+upset the whole family. People can't live at that concert pitch all
+the time. You see if Rachel doesn't give it up soon. It's a great
+pity she doesn't come to Chicago and sing in the Auditorium
+concerts. She has received an offer. I'm going to write and urge her
+to come. I'm just dying to hear her sing."
+
+Felicia looked out of the window and was silent. The carriage rolled
+on past two blocks of magnificent private residences and turned into
+a wide driveway under a covered passage, and the sisters hurried
+into the house. It was an elegant mansion of gray stone furnished
+like a palace, every corner of it warm with the luxury of paintings,
+sculpture, art and modern refinement.
+
+The owner of it all, Mr. Charles R. Sterling, stood before an open
+grate fire smoking a cigar. He had made his money in grain
+speculation and railroad ventures, and was reputed to be worth
+something over two millions. His wife was a sister of Mrs. Winslow
+of Raymond. She had been an invalid for several years. The two
+girls, Rose and Felicia, were the only children. Rose was twenty-one
+years old, fair, vivacious, educated in a fashionable college, just
+entering society and already somewhat cynical and indifferent. A
+very hard young lady to please, her father said, sometimes
+playfully, sometimes sternly. Felicia was nineteen, with a tropical
+beauty somewhat like her cousin, Rachel Winslow, with warm, generous
+impulses just waking into Christian feeling, capable of all sorts of
+expression, a puzzle to her father, a source of irritation to her
+mother and with a great unsurveyed territory of thought and action
+in herself, of which she was more than dimly conscious. There was
+that in Felicia that would easily endure any condition in life if
+only the liberty to act fully on her conscientious convictions were
+granted her.
+
+"Here's a letter for you, Felicia," said Mr. Sterling, handing it to
+her.
+
+Felicia sat down and instantly opened the letter, saying as she did
+so: "It's from Rachel."
+
+"Well, what's the latest news from Raymond?" asked Mr. Sterling,
+taking his cigar out of his mouth and looking at Felicia with
+half-shut eyes, as if he were studying her.
+
+"Rachel says Dr. Bruce has been staying in Raymond for two Sundays
+and has seemed very much interested in Mr. Maxwell's pledge in the
+First Church."
+
+"What does Rachel say about herself?" asked Rose, who was lying on a
+couch almost buried under elegant cushions.
+
+"She is still singing at the Rectangle. Since the tent meetings
+closed she sings in an old hall until the new buildings which her
+friend, Virginia Page, is putting up are completed.
+
+"I must write Rachel to come to Chicago and visit us. She ought not
+to throw away her voice in that railroad town upon all those people
+who don't appreciate her."
+
+Mr. Sterling lighted a new cigar and Rose exclaimed: "Rachel is so
+queer. She might set Chicago wild with her voice if she sang in the
+Auditorium. And there she goes on throwing it away on people who
+don't know what they are hearing."
+
+"Rachel won't come here unless she can do it and keep her pledge at
+the same time," said Felicia, after a pause.
+
+"What pledge?" Mr. Sterling asked the question and then added
+hastily: "Oh, I know, yes! A very peculiar thing that. Alexander
+Powers used to be a friend of mine. We learned telegraphy in the
+same office. Made a great sensation when he resigned and handed over
+that evidence to the Interstate Commerce Commission. And he's back
+at his telegraph again. There have been queer doings in Raymond
+during the past year. I wonder what Dr. Bruce thinks of it on the
+whole. I must have a talk with him about it."
+
+"He is at home and will preach tomorrow," said Felicia. "Perhaps he
+will tell us something about it."
+
+There was silence for a minute. Then Felicia said abruptly, as if
+she had gone on with a spoken thought to some invisible hearer: "And
+what if he should propose the same pledge to the Nazareth Avenue
+Church?"
+
+"Who? What are you talking about?" asked her father a little
+sharply.
+
+"About Dr. Bruce. I say, what if he should propose to our church
+what Mr. Maxwell proposed to his, and ask for volunteers who would
+pledge themselves to do everything after asking the question, 'What
+would Jesus do?'"
+
+"There's no danger of it," said Rose, rising suddenly from the couch
+as the tea-bell rang.
+
+"It's a very impracticable movement, to my mind," said Mr. Sterling
+shortly.
+
+"I understand from Rachel's letter that the Raymond church is going
+to make an attempt to extend the idea of the pledge to other
+churches. If it succeeds it will certainly make great changes in the
+churches and in people's lives," said Felicia.
+
+"Oh, well, let's have some tea first!" said Rose, walking into the
+dining-room. Her father and Felicia followed, and the meal proceeded
+in silence. Mrs. Sterling had her meals served in her room. Mr.
+Sterling was preoccupied. He ate very little and excused himself
+early, and although it was Saturday night, he remarked as he went
+out that he should be down town on some special business.
+
+"Don't you think father looks very much disturbed lately?" asked
+Felicia a little while after he had gone out.
+
+"Oh, I don't know! I hadn't noticed anything unusual," replied Rose.
+After a silence she said: "Are you going to the play tonight,
+Felicia? Mrs. Delano will be here at half past seven. I think you
+ought to go. She will feel hurt if you refuse."
+
+"I'll go. I don't care about it. I can see shadows enough without
+going to the play."
+
+"That's a doleful remark for a girl nineteen years old to make,"
+replied Rose. "But then you're queer in your ideas anyhow, Felicia.
+If you are going up to see mother, tell her I'll run in after the
+play if she is still awake."
+
+
+
+
+Chapter Twenty-two
+
+
+FELICIA started off to the play not very happy, but she was familiar
+with that feeling, only sometimes she was more unhappy than at
+others. Her feeling expressed itself tonight by a withdrawal into
+herself. When the company was seated in the box and the curtain had
+gone up Felicia was back of the others and remained for the evening
+by herself. Mrs. Delano, as chaperon for half a dozen young ladies,
+understood Felicia well enough to know that she was "queer," as Rose
+so often said, and she made no attempt to draw her out of her
+corner. And so the girl really experienced that night by herself one
+of the feelings that added to the momentum that was increasing the
+coming on of her great crisis.
+
+The play was an English melodrama, full of startling situations,
+realistic scenery and unexpected climaxes. There was one scene in
+the third act that impressed even Rose Sterling.
+
+It was midnight on Blackfriars Bridge. The Thames flowed dark and
+forbidden below. St. Paul's rose through the dim light imposing, its
+dome seeming to float above the buildings surrounding it. The figure
+of a child came upon the bridge and stood there for a moment peering
+about as if looking for some one. Several persons were crossing the
+bridge, but in one of the recesses about midway of the river a woman
+stood, leaning out over the parapet, with a strained agony of face
+and figure that told plainly of her intention. Just as she was
+stealthily mounting the parapet to throw herself into the river, the
+child caught sight of her, ran forward with a shrill cry more animal
+than human, and seizing the woman's dress dragged back upon it with
+all her little strength. Then there came suddenly upon the scene two
+other characters who had already figured in the play, a tall,
+handsome, athletic gentleman dressed in the fashion, attended by a
+slim-figured lad who was as refined in dress and appearance as the
+little girl clinging to her mother, who was mournfully hideous in
+her rags and repulsive poverty. These two, the gentleman and the
+lad, prevented the attempted suicide, and after a tableau on the
+bridge where the audience learned that the man and woman were
+brother and sister, the scene was transferred to the interior of one
+of the slum tenements in the East Side of London. Here the scene
+painter and carpenter had done their utmost to produce an exact copy
+of a famous court and alley well known to the poor creatures who
+make up a part of the outcast London humanity. The rags, the
+crowding, the vileness, the broken furniture, the horrible animal
+existence forced upon creatures made in God's image were so
+skilfully shown in this scene that more than one elegant woman in
+the theatre, seated like Rose Sterling in a sumptuous box surrounded
+with silk hangings and velvet covered railing, caught herself
+shrinking back a little as if contamination were possible from the
+nearness of this piece of scenery. It was almost too realistic, and
+yet it had a horrible fascination for Felicia as she sat there
+alone, buried back in a cushioned seat and absorbed in thoughts that
+went far beyond the dialogue on the stage.
+
+From the tenement scene the play shifted to the interior of a
+nobleman's palace, and almost a sigh of relief went up all over the
+house at the sight of the accustomed luxury of the upper classes.
+The contrast was startling. It was brought about by a clever piece
+of staging that allowed only a few moments to elapse between the
+slum and the palace scene. The dialogue went on, the actors came and
+went in their various roles, but upon Felicia the play made but one
+distinct impression. In realty the scenes on the bridge and in the
+slums were only incidents in the story of the play, but Felicia
+found herself living those scenes over and over. She had never
+philosophized about the causes of human misery, she was not old
+enough she had not the temperament that philosophizes. But she felt
+intensely, and this was not the first time she had felt the contrast
+thrust into her feeling between the upper and the lower conditions
+of human life. It had been growing upon her until it had made her
+what Rose called "queer," and other people in her circle of wealthy
+acquaintances called very unusual. It was simply the human problem
+in its extreme of riches and poverty, its refinement and its
+vileness, that was, in spite of her unconscious attempts to struggle
+against the facts, burning into her life the impression that would
+in the end either transform her into a woman of rare love and
+self-sacrifice for the world, or a miserable enigma to herself and
+all who knew her.
+
+"Come, Felicia, aren't you going home?" said Rose. The play was
+over, the curtain down, and people were going noisily out, laughing
+and gossiping as if "The Shadows of London" were simply good
+diversion, as they were, put on the stage so effectively.
+
+Felicia rose and went out with the rest quietly, and with the
+absorbed feeling that had actually left her in her seat oblivious of
+the play's ending. She was never absent-minded, but often thought
+herself into a condition that left her alone in the midst of a
+crowd.
+
+"Well, what did you think of it?" asked Rose when the sisters had
+reached home and were in the drawing-room. Rose really had
+considerable respect for Felicia's judgment of a play.
+
+"I thought it was a pretty fair picture of real life."
+
+"I mean the acting," said Rose, annoyed.
+
+"The bridge scene was well acted, especially the woman's part. I
+thought the man overdid the sentiment a little."
+
+"Did you? I enjoyed that. And wasn't the scene between the two
+cousins funny when they first learned they were related? But the
+slum scene was horrible. I think they ought not to show such things
+in a play. They are too painful."
+
+"They must be painful in real life, too," replied Felicia.
+
+"Yes, but we don't have to look at the real thing. It's bad enough
+at the theatre where we pay for it."
+
+Rose went into the dining-room and began to eat from a plate of
+fruit and cakes on the sideboard.
+
+"Are you going up to see mother?" asked Felicia after a while. She
+had remained in front of the drawing-room fireplace.
+
+"No," replied Rose from the other room. "I won't trouble her
+tonight. If you go in tell her I am too tired to be agreeable."
+
+So Felicia turned into her mother's room, as she went up the great
+staircase and down the upper hall. The light was burning there, and
+the servant who always waited on Mrs. Sterling was beckoning Felicia
+to come in.
+
+"Tell Clara to go out," exclaimed Mrs. Sterling as Felicia came up
+to the bed.
+
+Felicia was surprised, but she did as her mother bade her, and then
+inquired how she was feeling.
+
+"Felicia," said her mother, "can you pray?"
+
+The question was so unlike any her mother had ever asked before that
+she was startled. But she answered: "Why, yes, mother. Why do you
+ask such a question?"
+
+"Felicia, I am frightened. Your father--I have had such strange
+fears about him all day. Something is wrong with him. I want you to
+pray--."
+
+"Now, here, mother?"
+
+"Yes. Pray, Felicia."
+
+Felicia reached out her hand and took her mother's. It was
+trembling. Mrs. Sterling had never shown such tenderness for her
+younger daughter, and her strange demand now was the first real sign
+of any confidence in Felicia's character.
+
+The girl kneeled, still holding her mother's trembling hand, and
+prayed. It is doubtful if she had ever prayed aloud before. She must
+have said in her prayer the words that her mother needed, for when
+it was silent in the room the invalid was weeping softly and her
+nervous tension was over.
+
+Felicia stayed some time. When she was assured that her mother would
+not need her any longer she rose to go.
+
+"Good night, mother. You must let Clara call me if you feel badly in
+the night."
+
+"I feel better now." Then as Felicia was moving away, Mrs. Sterling
+said: "Won't you kiss me, Felicia?"
+
+Felicia went back and bent over her mother. The kiss was almost as
+strange to her as the prayer had been. When Felicia went out of the
+room her cheeks were wet with tears. She had not often cried since
+she was a little child.
+
+Sunday morning at the Sterling mansion was generally very quiet. The
+girls usually went to church at eleven o'clock service. Mr. Sterling
+was not a member but a heavy contributor, and he generally went to
+church in the morning. This time he did not come down to breakfast,
+and finally sent word by a servant that he did not feel well enough
+to go out. So Rose and Felicia drove up to the door of the Nazareth
+Avenue Church and entered the family pew alone.
+
+When Dr. Bruce walked out of the room at the rear of the platform
+and went up to the pulpit to open the Bible as his custom was, those
+who knew him best did not detect anything unusual in his manner or
+his expression. He proceeded with the service as usual. He was calm
+and his voice was steady and firm. His prayer was the first
+intimation the people had of anything new or strange in the service.
+It is safe to say that the Nazareth Avenue Church had not heard Dr.
+Bruce offer such a prayer before during the twelve years he had been
+pastor there. How would a minister be likely to pray who had come
+out of a revolution in Christian feeling that had completely changed
+his definition of what was meant by following Jesus? No one in
+Nazareth Avenue Church had any idea that the Rev. Calvin Bruce, D.
+D., the dignified, cultured, refined Doctor of Divinity, had within
+a few days been crying like a little child on his knees, asking for
+strength and courage and Christlikeness to speak his Sunday message;
+and yet the prayer was an unconscious involuntary disclosure of his
+soul's experience such as the Nazareth Avenue people had seldom
+heard, and never before from that pulpit.
+
+
+
+
+Chapter Twenty-three
+
+
+"I AM just back from a visit to Raymond," Dr. Bruce began, "and I
+want to tell you something of my impressions of the movement there."
+
+He paused and his look went out over his people with yearning for
+them and at the same time with a great uncertainty at his heart. How
+many of his rich, fashionable, refined, luxury-loving members would
+understand the nature of the appeal he was soon to make to them? He
+was altogether in the dark as to that. Nevertheless he had been
+through his desert, and had come out of it ready to suffer. He went
+on now after that brief pause and told them the story of his stay in
+Raymond. The people already knew something of that experiment in the
+First Church. The whole country had watched the progress of the
+pledge as it had become history in so many lives. Mr. Maxwell had at
+last decided that the time had come to seek the fellowship of other
+churches throughout the country. The new discipleship in Raymond had
+proved to be so valuable in its results that he wished the churches
+in general to share with the disciples in Raymond. Already there had
+begun a volunteer movement in many churches throughout the country,
+acting on their own desire to walk closer in the steps of Jesus. The
+Christian Endeavor Society had, with enthusiasm, in many churches
+taken the pledge to do as Jesus would do, and the result was already
+marked in a deeper spiritual life and a power in church influence
+that was like a new birth for the members.
+
+All this Dr. Bruce told his people simply and with a personal
+interest that evidently led the way to the announcement which now
+followed. Felicia had listened to every word with strained
+attention. She sat there by the side of Rose, in contrast like fire
+beside snow, although even Rose was alert and as excited as she
+could be.
+
+"Dear friends," he said, and for the first time since his prayer the
+emotion of the occasion was revealed in his voice and gesture, "I am
+going to ask that Nazareth Avenue Church take the same pledge that
+Raymond Church has taken. I know what this will mean to you and me.
+It will mean the complete change of very many habits. It will mean,
+possibly, social loss. It will mean very probably, in many cases,
+loss of money. It will mean suffering. It will mean what following
+Jesus meant in the first century, and then it meant suffering, loss,
+hardship, separation from everything un-Christian. But what does
+following Jesus mean? The test of discipleship is the same now as
+then. Those of us who volunteer in this church to do as Jesus would
+do, simply promise to walk in His steps as He gave us commandment."
+
+Again he paused, and now the result of his announcement was plainly
+visible in the stir that went up over the congregation. He added in
+a quiet voice that all who volunteered to make the pledge to do as
+Jesus would do, were asked to remain after the morning service.
+
+Instantly he proceeded with his sermon. His text was, "Master, I
+will follow Thee whithersoever Thou goest." It was a sermon that
+touched the deep springs of conduct; it was a revelation to the
+people of the definition their pastor had been learning; it took
+them back to the first century of Christianity; above all, it
+stirred them below the conventional thought of years as to the
+meaning and purpose of church membership. It was such a sermon as a
+man can preach once in a lifetime, and with enough in it for people
+to live on all through the rest of their lifetime.
+
+The service closed in a hush that was slowly broken. People rose
+here and there, a few at a time. There was a reluctance in the
+movements of some that was very striking. Rose, however, walked
+straight out of the pew, and as she reached the aisle she turned her
+head and beckoned to Felicia. By that time the congregation was
+rising all over the church. "I am going to stay," she said, and Rose
+had heard her speak in the same manner on other occasions, and knew
+that her resolve could not be changed. Nevertheless she went back
+into the pew two or three steps and faced her.
+
+"Felicia," she whispered, and there was a flush of anger on her
+cheeks, "this is folly. What can you do? You will bring some
+disgrace on the family. What will father say? Come!"
+
+Felicia looked at her but did not answer at once. Her lips were
+moving with a petition that came from the depth of feeling that
+measured a new life for her. She shocked her head.
+
+"No, I am going to stay. I shall take the pledge. I am ready to obey
+it. You do not know why I am doing this."
+
+Rose gave her one look and then turned and went out of the pew, and
+down the aisle. She did not even stop to talk with her
+acquaintances. Mrs. Delano was going out of the church just as Rose
+stepped into the vestibule.
+
+"So you are not going to join Dr. Bruce's volunteer company?" Mrs.
+Delano asked, in a queer tone that made Rose redden.
+
+"No, are you? It is simply absurd. I have always regarded that
+Raymond movement as fanatical. You know cousin Rachel keeps us
+posted about it."
+
+"Yes, I understand it is resulting in a great deal of hardship in
+many cases. For my part, I believe Dr. Bruce has simply provoked
+disturbance here. It will result in splitting our church. You see if
+it isn't so. There are scores of people in the church who are so
+situated that they can't take such a pledge and keep it. I am one of
+them," added Mrs. Delano as she went out with Rose.
+
+When Rose reached home, her father was standing in his usual
+attitude before the open fireplace, smoking a cigar.
+
+"Where is Felicia?" he asked as Rose came in.
+
+"She stayed to an after-meeting," replied Rose shortly. She threw
+off her wraps and was going upstairs when Mr. Sterling called after
+her.
+
+"An after-meeting? What do you mean?"
+
+"Dr. Bruce asked the church to take the Raymond pledge."
+
+Mr. Sterling took his cigar out of his mouth and twirled it
+nervously between his fingers.
+
+"I didn't expect that of Dr. Bruce. Did many of the members stay?"
+
+"I don't know. I didn't," replied Rose, and she went upstairs
+leaving her father standing in the drawing-room.
+
+After a few moments he went to the window and stood there looking
+out at the people driving on the boulevard. His cigar had gone out,
+but he still fingered it nervously. Then he turned from the window
+and walked up and down the room. A servant stepped across the hall
+and announced dinner and he told her to wait for Felicia. Rose came
+downstairs and went into the library. And still Mr. Sterling paced
+the drawing-room restlessly.
+
+He had finally wearied of the walking apparently, and throwing
+himself into a chair was brooding over something deeply when Felicia
+came in.
+
+He rose and faced her. Felicia was evidently very much moved by the
+meeting from which she had just come. At the same time she did not
+wish to talk too much about it. Just as she entered the
+drawing-room, Rose came in from the library.
+
+"How many stayed?" she asked. Rose was curious. At the same time she
+was skeptical of the whole movement in Raymond.
+
+"About a hundred," replied Felicia gravely. Mr. Sterling looked
+surprised. Felicia was going out of the room, but he called to her:
+"Do you really mean to keep the pledge?" he asked.
+
+Felicia colored. Over her face and neck the warm blood flowed and
+she answered, "You would not ask such a question, father, if you had
+been at the meeting." She lingered a moment in the room, then asked
+to be excused from dinner for a while and went up to see her mother.
+
+No one but they two ever knew what that interview between Felicia
+and her mother was. It is certain that she must have told her mother
+something of the spiritual power that had awed every person present
+in the company of disciples who faced Dr. Bruce in that meeting
+after the morning service. It is also certain that Felicia had never
+before known such an experience, and would never have thought of
+sharing it with her mother if it had not been for the prayer the
+evening before. Another fact is also known of Felicia's experience
+at this time. When she finally joined her father and Rose at the
+table she seemed unable to tell them much about the meeting. There
+was a reluctance to speak of it as one might hesitate to attempt a
+description of a wonderful sunset to a person who never talked about
+anything but the weather.
+
+When that Sunday in the Sterling mansion was drawing to a close and
+the soft, warm lights throughout the dwelling were glowing through
+the great windows, in a corner of her room, where the light was
+obscure, Felicia kneeled, and when she raised her face and turned it
+towards the light, it was the face of a woman who had already
+defined for herself the greatest issues of earthly life.
+
+That same evening, after the Sunday evening service, Dr. Bruce was
+talking over the events of the day with his wife. They were of one
+heart and mind in the matter, and faced their new future with all
+the faith and courage of new disciples. Neither was deceived as to
+the probable results of the pledge to themselves or to the church.
+
+They had been talking but a little while when the bell rang and Dr.
+Bruce going to the door exclaimed, as he opened it: "It is you,
+Edward! Come in."
+
+There came into the hall a commanding figure. The Bishop was of
+extraordinary height and breadth of shoulder, but of such good
+proportions that there was no thought of ungainly or even of unusual
+size. The impression the Bishop made on strangers was, first, that
+of great health, and then of great affection.
+
+He came into the parlor and greeted Mrs. Bruce, who after a few
+moments was called out of the room, leaving the two men together.
+The Bishop sat in a deep, easy chair before the open fire. There was
+just enough dampness in the early spring of the year to make an open
+fire pleasant.
+
+"Calvin, you have taken a very serious step today," he finally said,
+lifting his large dark eyes to his old college classmate's face. "I
+heard of it this afternoon. I could not resist the desire to see you
+about it tonight."
+
+"I'm glad you came." Dr. Bruce laid a hand on the Bishop's shoulder.
+"You understand what this means, Edward?"
+
+"I think I do. Yes, I am sure." The Bishop spoke very slowly and
+thoughtfully. He sat with his hands clasped together. Over his face,
+marked with lines of consecration and service and the love of men, a
+shadow crept, a shadow not caused by the firelight. Once more he
+lifted his eyes toward his old friend.
+
+"Calvin, we have always understood each other. Ever since our paths
+led us in different ways in church life we have walked together in
+Christian fellowship--."
+
+"It is true," replied Dr. Bruce with an emotion he made no attempt
+to conceal or subdue. "Thank God for it. I prize your fellowship
+more than any other man's. I have always known what it meant, though
+it has always been more than I deserve."
+
+The Bishop looked affectionately at his friend. But the shadow still
+rested on his face. After a pause he spoke again: "The new
+discipleship means a crisis for you in your work. If you keep this
+pledge to do all things as Jesus would do--as I know you will--it
+requires no prophet to predict some remarkable changes in your
+parish." The Bishop looked wistfully at his friend and then
+continued: "In fact, I do not see how a perfect upheaval of
+Christianity, as we now know it, can be prevented if the ministers
+and churches generally take the Raymond pledge and live it out." He
+paused as if he were waiting for his friend to say something, to ask
+some question. But Bruce did not know of the fire that was burning
+in the Bishop's heart over the very question that Maxwell and
+himself had fought out.
+
+"Now, in my church, for instance," continued the Bishop, "it would
+be rather a difficult matter, I fear, to find very many people who
+would take a pledge like that and live up to it. Martyrdom is a lost
+art with us. Our Christianity loves its ease and comfort too well to
+take up anything so rough and heavy as a cross. And yet what does
+following Jesus mean? What is it to walk in His steps?"
+
+The Bishop was soliloquizing now and it is doubtful if he thought,
+for the moment, of his friend's presence. For the first time there
+flashed into Dr. Bruce's mind a suspicion of the truth. What if the
+Bishop would throw the weight of his great influence on the side of
+the Raymond movement? He had the following of the most aristocratic,
+wealthy, fashionable people, not only in Chicago, but in several
+large cities. What if the Bishop should join this new discipleship!
+
+The thought was about to be followed by the word. Dr. Bruce had
+reached out his hand and with the familiarity of lifelong friendship
+had placed it on the Bishop's shoulder and was about to ask a very
+important question, when they were both startled by the violent
+ringing of the bell. Mrs. Bruce had gone to the door and was talking
+with some one in the hall. There was a loud exclamation and then, as
+the Bishop rose and Bruce was stepping toward the curtain that hung
+before the entrance to the parlor, Mrs. Bruce pushed it aside. Her
+face was white and she was trembling.
+
+"O Calvin! Such terrible news! Mr. Sterling--oh, I cannot tell it!
+What a blow to those girls!" "What is it?" Mr. Bruce advanced with
+the Bishop into the hall and confronted the messenger, a servant
+from the Sterlings. The man was without his hat and had evidently
+run over with the news, as Dr. Bruce lived nearest of any intimate
+friends of the family.
+
+"Mr. Sterling shot himself, sir, a few minutes ago. He killed
+himself in his bed-room. Mrs. Sterling--"
+
+"I will go right over, Edward. Will you go with me? The Sterlings
+are old friends of yours."'
+
+The Bishop was very pale, but calm as always. He looked his friend
+in the face and answered: "Aye, Calvin, I will go with you not only
+to this house of death, but also the whole way of human sin and
+sorrow, please God."
+
+
+
+
+Chapter Twenty-four
+
+
+These are they which follow the Lamb whithersoever He goeth.
+
+
+WHEN Dr. Bruce and the Bishop entered the Sterling mansion
+everything in the usually well appointed household was in the
+greatest confusion and terror. The great rooms downstairs were
+empty, but overhead were hurried footsteps and confused noises. One
+of the servants ran down the grand staircase with a look of horror
+on her face just as the Bishop and Dr. Bruce were starting to go up.
+
+"Miss Felicia is with Mrs. Sterling," the servant stammered in
+answer to a question, and then burst into a hysterical cry and ran
+through the drawing-room and out of doors.
+
+At the top of the staircase the two men were met by Felicia. She
+walked up to Dr. Bruce at once and put both hands in his. The Bishop
+then laid his hand on her head and the three stood there a moment in
+perfect silence. The Bishop had known Felicia since she was a little
+child. He was the first to break the silence.
+
+"The God of all mercy be with you, Felicia, in this dark hour. Your
+mother--"
+
+The Bishop hesitated. Out of the buried past he had, during his
+hurried passage from his friend's to this house of death,
+irresistibly drawn the one tender romance of his young manhood. Not
+even Bruce knew that. But there had been a time when the Bishop had
+offered the incense of a singularly undivided affection upon the
+altar of his youth to the beautiful Camilla Rolfe, and she had
+chosen between him and the millionaire. The Bishop carried no
+bitterness with his memory; but it was still a memory.
+
+For answer to the Bishop's unfinished query, Felicia turned and went
+back into her mother's room. She had not said a word yet, but both
+men were struck with her wonderful calm. She returned to the hall
+door and beckoned to them, and the two ministers, with a feeling
+that they were about to behold something very unusual, entered.
+
+Rose lay with her arms outstretched upon the bed. Clara, the nurse,
+sat with her head covered, sobbing in spasms of terror. And Mrs.
+Sterling with "the light that never was on sea or land" luminous on
+her face, lay there so still that even the Bishop was deceived at
+first. Then, as the great truth broke upon him and Dr. Bruce, he
+staggered, and the sharp agony of the old wound shot through him. It
+passed, and left him standing there in that chamber of death with
+the eternal calmness and strength that the children of God have a
+right to possess. And right well he used that calmness and strength
+in the days that followed.
+
+The next moment the house below was in a tumult. Almost at the same
+time the doctor who had been sent for at once, but lived some
+distance away, came in, together with police officers, who had been
+summoned by frightened servants. With them were four or five
+newspaper correspondents and several neighbors. Dr. Bruce and the
+Bishop met this miscellaneous crowd at the head of the stairs and
+succeeded in excluding all except those whose presence was
+necessary. With these the two friends learned all the facts ever
+known about the "Sterling tragedy," as the papers in their
+sensational accounts next day called it.
+
+Mr. Sterling had gone into his room that evening about nine o'clock
+and that was the last seen of him until, in half an hour, a shot was
+heard in the room, and a servant who was in the hall ran into the
+room and found him dead on the floor, killed by his own hand.
+Felicia at the time was sitting by her mother. Rose was reading in
+the library. She ran upstairs, saw her father as he was being lifted
+upon the couch by the servants, and then ran screaming into her
+mother's room, where she flung herself down at the foot of the bed
+in a swoon. Mrs. Sterling had at first fainted at the shock, then
+rallied with a wonderful swiftness and sent for Dr. Bruce. She had
+then insisted on seeing her husband. In spite of Felicia's efforts,
+she had compelled Clara to support her while she crossed the hall
+and entered the room where her husband lay. She had looked upon him
+with a tearless face, had gone back to her own room, was laid on her
+bed, and as Dr. Bruce and the Bishop entered the house she, with a
+prayer of forgiveness for herself and for her husband on her
+quivering lips, had died, with Felicia bending over her and Rose
+still lying senseless at her feet.
+
+So great and swift had been the entrance of grim Death into that
+palace of luxury that Sunday night! But the full cause of his coming
+was not learned until the facts in regard to Mr. Sterling's business
+affairs were finally disclosed.
+
+Then it was learned that for some time he had been facing financial
+ruin owing to certain speculations that had in a month's time swept
+his supposed wealth into complete destruction. With the cunning and
+desperation of a man who battles for his very life when he saw his
+money, which was all the life he ever valued, slipping from him, he
+had put off the evil day to the last moment. Sunday afternoon,
+however, he had received news that proved to him beyond a doubt the
+fact of his utter ruin. The very house that he called his, the
+chairs in which he sat, his carriage, the dishes from which he ate,
+had all been bought with money for which he himself had never really
+done an honest stroke of pure labor.
+
+It had all rested on a tissue of deceit and speculation that had no
+foundation in real values. He knew that fact better than any one
+else, but he had hoped, with the hope such men always have, that the
+same methods that brought him the money would also prevent the loss.
+He had been deceived in this as many others have been. As soon as
+the truth that he was practically a beggar had dawned upon him, he
+saw no escape from suicide. It was the irresistible result of such a
+life as he had lived. He had made money his god. As soon as that god
+was gone out of his little world there was nothing more to worship;
+and when a man's object of worship is gone he has no more to live
+for. Thus died the great millionaire, Charles R. Sterling. And,
+verily, he died as the fool dieth, for what is the gain or the loss
+of money compared with the unsearchable riches of eternal life which
+are beyond the reach of speculation, loss or change?
+
+Mrs. Sterling's death was the result of the shock. She had not been
+taken into her husband's confidence for years, but she knew that the
+source of his wealth was precarious. Her life for several years had
+been a death in life. The Rolfes always gave an impression that they
+could endure more disaster unmoved than any one else. Mrs. Sterling
+illustrated the old family tradition when she was carried into the
+room where her husband lay. But the feeble tenement could not hold
+the spirit and it gave up the ghost, torn and weakened by long years
+of suffering and disappointment.
+
+The effect of this triple blow, the death of father and mother, and
+the loss of property, was instantly apparent in the sisters. The
+horror of events stupefied Rose for weeks. She lay unmoved by
+sympathy or any effort to rally. She did not seem yet to realize
+that the money which had been so large a part of her very existence
+was gone. Even when she was told that she and Felicia must leave the
+house and be dependent on relatives and friends, she did not seem to
+understand what it meant.
+
+Felicia, however, was fully conscious of the facts. She knew just
+what had happened and why. She was talking over her future plans
+with her cousin Rachel a few days after the funerals. Mrs. Winslow
+and Rachel had left Raymond and come to Chicago at once as soon as
+the terrible news had reached them, and with other friends of the
+family were planning for the future of Rose and Felicia.
+
+"Felicia, you and Rose must come to Raymond with us. That is
+settled. Mother will not hear to any other plan at present," Rachel
+had said, while her beautiful face glowed with love for her cousin,
+a love that had deepened day by day, and was intensified by the
+knowledge that they both belonged to the new discipleship.
+
+"Unless I can find something to do here," answered Felicia. She
+looked wistfully at Rachel, and Rachel said gently:
+
+"What could you do, dear?"
+
+"Nothing. I was never taught to do anything except a little music,
+and I do not know enough about it to teach it or earn my living at
+it. I have learned to cook a little," Felicia added with a slight
+smile.
+
+"Then you can cook for us. Mother is always having trouble with her
+kitchen," said Rachel, understanding well enough she was now
+dependent for her very food and shelter upon the kindness of family
+friends. It is true the girls received a little something out of the
+wreck of their father's fortune, but with a speculator's mad folly
+he had managed to involve both his wife's and his children's portion
+in the common ruin.
+
+"Can I? Can I?" Felicia responded to Rachel's proposition as if it
+were to be considered seriously. "I am ready to do anything
+honorable to make my living and that of Rose. Poor Rose! She will
+never be able to get over the shock of our trouble."
+
+"We will arrange the details when we get to Raymond," Rachel said,
+smiling through her tears at Felicia's eager willingness to care for
+herself.
+
+So in a few weeks Rose and Felicia found themselves a part of the
+Winslow family in Raymond. It was a bitter experience for Rose, but
+there was nothing else for her to do and she accepted the
+inevitable, brooding over the great change in her life and in many
+ways adding to the burden of Felicia and her cousin Rachel.
+
+Felicia at once found herself in an atmosphere of discipleship that
+was like heaven to her in its revelation of companionship. It is
+true that Mrs. Winslow was not in sympathy with the course that
+Rachel was taking, but the remarkable events in Raymond since the
+pledge was taken were too powerful in their results not to impress
+even such a woman as Mrs. Winslow. With Rachel, Felicia found a
+perfect fellowship. She at once found a part to take in the new work
+at the Rectangle. In the spirit of her new life she insisted upon
+helping in the housework at her aunt's, and in a short time
+demonstrated her ability as a cook so clearly that Virginia
+suggested that she take charge of the cooking at the Rectangle.
+
+Felicia entered upon this work with the keenest pleasure. For the
+first time in her life she had the delight of doing something of
+value for the happiness of others. Her resolve to do everything
+after asking, "What would Jesus do?" touched her deepest nature. She
+began to develop and strengthen wonderfully. Even Mrs. Winslow was
+obliged to acknowledge the great usefulness and beauty of Felicia's
+character. The aunt looked with astonishment upon her niece, this
+city-bred girl, reared in the greatest luxury, the daughter of a
+millionaire, now walking around in her kitchen, her arms covered
+with flour and occasionally a streak of it on her nose, for Felicia
+at first had a habit of rubbing her nose forgetfully when she was
+trying to remember some recipe, mixing various dishes with the
+greatest interest in their results, washing up pans and kettles and
+doing the ordinary work of a servant in the Winslow kitchen and at
+the rooms at the Rectangle Settlement. At first Mrs. Winslow
+remonstrated.
+
+"Felicia, it is not your place to be out here doing this common
+work. I cannot allow it."
+
+"Why, Aunt? Don't you like the muffins I made this morning?" Felicia
+would ask meekly, but with a hidden smile, knowing her aunt's
+weakness for that kind of muffin.
+
+"They were beautiful, Felicia. But it does not seem right for you to
+be doing such work for us."
+
+"Why not? What else can I do?"
+
+Her aunt looked at her thoughtfully, noting her remarkable beauty of
+face and expression.
+
+"You do not always intend to do this kind of work, Felicia?"
+
+"Maybe I shall. I have had a dream of opening an ideal cook shop in
+Chicago or some large city and going around to the poor families in
+some slum district like the Rectangle, teaching the mothers how to
+prepare food properly. I remember hearing Dr. Bruce say once that he
+believed one of the great miseries of comparative poverty consisted
+in poor food. He even went so far as to say that he thought some
+kinds of crime could be traced to soggy biscuit and tough beefsteak.
+I'm sure I would be able to make a living for Rose and myself and at
+the same time help others."
+
+
+
+
+Chapter Twenty-five
+
+
+THREE months had gone by since the Sunday morning when Dr. Bruce
+came into his pulpit with the message of the new discipleship. They
+were three months of great excitement in Nazareth Avenue Church.
+Never before had Rev. Calvin Bruce realized how deep the feeling of
+his members flowed. He humbly confessed that the appeal he had made
+met with an unexpected response from men and women who, like
+Felicia, were hungry for something in their lives that the
+conventional type of church membership and fellowship had failed to
+give them.
+
+But Dr. Bruce was not yet satisfied for himself. He cannot tell what
+his feeling was or what led to the movement he finally made, to the
+great astonishment of all who knew him, better than by relating a
+conversation between him and the Bishop at this time in the history
+of the pledge in Nazareth Avenue Church. The two friends were as
+before in Dr. Bruce's house, seated in his study.
+
+"You know what I have come in this evening for?" the Bishop was
+saying after the friends had been talking some time about the
+results of the pledge with the Nazareth Avenue people.
+
+Dr. Bruce looked over at the Bishop and shook his head.
+
+"I have come to confess that I have not yet kept my promise to walk
+in His steps in the way that I believe I shall be obliged to if I
+satisfy my thought of what it means to walk in His steps."
+
+Dr. Bruce had risen and was pacing his study. The Bishop remained in
+the deep easy chair with his hands clasped, but his eye burned with
+the blow that belonged to him before he made some great resolve.
+
+"Edward," Dr. Bruce spoke abruptly, "I have not yet been able to
+satisfy myself, either, in obeying my promise. But I have at last
+decided on my course. In order to follow it I shall be obliged to
+resign from Nazareth Avenue Church."
+
+"I knew you would," replied the Bishop quietly. "And I came in this
+evening to say that I shall be obliged to do the same thing with my
+charge."
+
+Dr. Bruce turned and walked up to his friend. They were both
+laboring under a repressed excitement.
+
+"Is it necessary in your case?" asked Bruce.
+
+"Yes. Let me state my reasons. Probably they are the same as yours.
+In fact, I am sure they are." The Bishop paused a moment, then went
+on with increasing feeling:
+
+"Calvin, you know how many years I have been doing the work of my
+position, and you know something of the responsibility and care of
+it. I do not mean to say that my life has been free from
+burden-bearing or sorrow. But I have certainly led what the poor and
+desperate of this sinful city would call a very comfortable, yes, a
+very luxurious life. I have had a beautiful house to live in, the
+most expensive food, clothing and physical pleasures. I have been
+able to go abroad at least a dozen times, and have enjoyed for years
+the beautiful companionship of art and letters and music and all the
+rest, of the very best. I have never known what it meant to be
+without money or its equivalent. And I have been unable to silence
+the question of late: 'What have I suffered for the sake of Christ?'
+Paul was told what great things he must suffer for the sake of his
+Lord. Maxwell's position at Raymond is well taken when he insists
+that to walk in the steps of Christ means to suffer. Where has my
+suffering come in? The petty trials and annoyances of my clerical
+life are not worth mentioning as sorrows or sufferings. Compared
+with Paul or any of the Christian martyrs or early disciples I have
+lived a luxurious, sinful life, full of ease and pleasure. I cannot
+endure this any longer. I have that within me which of late rises in
+overwhelming condemnation of such a following of Jesus. I have not
+been walking in His steps. Under the present system of church and
+social life I see no escape from this condemnation except to give
+the most of my life personally to the actual physical and soul needs
+of the wretched people in the worst part of this city."
+
+The Bishop had risen now and walked over to the window. The street
+in front of the house was as light as day, and he looked out at the
+crowds passing, then turned and with a passionate utterance that
+showed how deep the volcanic fire in him burned, he exclaimed:
+
+"Calvin, this is a terrible city in which we live! Its misery, its
+sin, its selfishness, appall my heart. And I have struggled for
+years with the sickening dread of the time when I should be forced
+to leave the pleasant luxury of my official position to put my life
+into contact with the modern paganism of this century. The awful
+condition of the girls in some great business places, the brutal
+selfishness of the insolent society fashion and wealth that ignores
+all the sorrow of the city, the fearful curse of the drink and
+gambling hell, the wail of the unemployed, the hatred of the church
+by countless men who see in it only great piles of costly stone and
+upholstered furniture and the minister as a luxurious idler, all the
+vast tumult of this vast torrent of humanity with its false and its
+true ideas, its exaggeration of evils in the church and its
+bitterness and shame that are the result of many complex causes, all
+this as a total fact in its contrast with the easy, comfortable life
+I have lived, fills me more and more with a sense of mingled terror
+and self accusation. I have heard the words of Jesus many times
+lately: 'Inasmuch as ye did it not unto one of these least My
+brethren, ye did it not unto Me.' And when have I personally visited
+the prisoner or the desperate or the sinful in any way that has
+actually caused me suffering? Rather, I have followed the
+conventional soft habits of my position and have lived in the
+society of the rich, refined, aristocratic members of my
+congregations. Where has the suffering come in? What have I suffered
+for Jesus' sake? Do you know, Calvin," he turned abruptly toward his
+friend, "I have been tempted of late to lash myself with a scourge.
+If I had lived in Martin Luther's time I should have bared my back
+to a self-inflicted torture."
+
+Dr. Bruce was very pale. Never had he seen the Bishop or heard him
+when under the influence of such a passion. There was a sudden
+silence in the room. The Bishop sat down again and bowed his head.
+
+Dr. Bruce spoke at last: "Edward, I do not need to say that you have
+expressed my feelings also. I have been in a similar position for
+years. My life has been one of comparative luxury. I do not, of
+course, mean to say that I have not had trials and discouragements
+and burdens in my church ministry. But I cannot say that I have
+suffered any for Jesus. That verse in Peter constantly haunts me:
+'Christ also suffered for you, leaving you an example that ye should
+follow His steps.' I have lived in luxury. I do not know what it
+means to want. I also have had my leisure for travel and beautiful
+companionship. I have been surrounded by the soft, easy comforts of
+civilization. The sin and misery of this great city have beaten like
+waves against the stone walls of my church and of this house in
+which I live, and I have hardly heeded them, the walls have been so
+thick. I have reached a point where I cannot endure this any longer.
+I am not condemning the Church. I love her. I am not forsaking the
+Church. I believe in her mission and have no desire to destroy.
+Least of all, in the step I am about to take do I desire to be
+charged with abandoning the Christian fellowship. But I feel that I
+must resign my place as pastor of Nazareth Church in order to
+satisfy myself that I am walking as I ought to walk in His steps. In
+this action I judge no other minister and pass no criticism on
+others' discipleship. But I feel as you do. Into a close contact
+with the sin and shame and degradation of this great city I must
+come personally. And I know that to do that I must sever my
+immediate connection with Nazareth Avenue Church. I do not see any
+other way for myself to suffer for His sake as I feel that I ought
+to suffer."
+
+Again that sudden silence fell over those two men. It was no
+ordinary action they were deciding. They had both reached the same
+conclusion by the same reasoning, and they were too thoughtful, too
+well accustomed to the measuring of conduct, to underestimate the
+seriousness of their position.
+
+"What is your plan?" The Bishop at last spoke gently, looking with
+the smile that always beautified his face. The Bishop's face grew in
+glory now every day.
+
+"My plan," replied Dr. Bruce slowly, "is, in brief, the putting of
+myself into the centre of the greatest human need I can find in this
+city and living there. My wife is fully in accord with me. We have
+already decided to find a residence in that part of the city where
+we can make our personal lives count for the most."
+
+"Let me suggest a place." The Bishop was on fire now. His fine face
+actually glowed with the enthusiasm of the movement in which he and
+his friend were inevitably embarked. He went on and unfolded a plan
+of such far-reaching power and possibility that Dr. Bruce, capable
+and experienced as he was, felt amazed at the vision of a greater
+soul than his own.
+
+They sat up late, and were as eager and even glad as if they were
+planning for a trip together to some rare land of unexplored travel.
+Indeed, the Bishop said many times afterward that the moment his
+decision was reached to live the life of personal sacrifice he had
+chosen he suddenly felt an uplifting as if a great burden were taken
+from him. He was exultant. So was Dr. Bruce from the same cause.
+
+Their plan as it finally grew into a workable fact was in reality
+nothing more than the renting of a large building formerly used as a
+warehouse for a brewery, reconstructing it and living in it
+themselves in the very heart of a territory where the saloon ruled
+with power, where the tenement was its filthiest, where vice and
+ignorance and shame and poverty were congested into hideous forms.
+It was not a new idea. It was an idea started by Jesus Christ when
+He left His Father's House and forsook the riches that were His in
+order to get nearer humanity and, by becoming a part of its sin,
+helping to draw humanity apart from its sin. The University
+Settlement idea is not modern. It is as old as Bethlehem and
+Nazareth. And in this particular case it was the nearest approach to
+anything that would satisfy the hunger of these two men to suffer
+for Christ.
+
+There had sprung up in them at the same time a longing that amounted
+to a passion, to get nearer the great physical poverty and spiritual
+destitution of the mighty city that throbbed around them. How could
+they do this except as they became a part of it as nearly as one man
+can become a part of another's misery? Where was the suffering to
+come in unless there was an actual self-denial of some sort? And
+what was to make that self-denial apparent to themselves or any one
+else, unless it took this concrete, actual, personal form of trying
+to share the deepest suffering and sin of the city?
+
+So they reasoned for themselves, not judging others. They were
+simply keeping their own pledge to do as Jesus would do, as they
+honestly judged He would do. That was what they had promised. How
+could they quarrel with the result if they were irresistibly
+compelled to do what they were planning to do?
+
+
+
+
+Chapter Twenty-six
+
+
+MEANWHILE, Nazareth Avenue Church was experiencing something never
+known before in all its history. The simple appeal on the part of
+its pastor to his members to do as Jesus would do had created a
+sensation that still continued. The result of that appeal was very
+much the same as in Henry Maxwell's church in Raymond, only this
+church was far more aristocratic, wealthy and conventional.
+Nevertheless when, one Sunday morning in early summer, Dr. Bruce
+came into his pulpit and announced his resignation, the sensation
+deepened all over the city, although he had advised with his board
+of trustees, and the movement he intended was not a matter of
+surprise to them. But when it become publicly known that the Bishop
+had also announced his resignation and retirement from the position
+he had held so long, in order to go and live himself in the centre
+of the worst part of Chicago, the public astonishment reached its
+height.
+
+"But why?" the Bishop replied to one valued friend who had almost
+with tears tried to dissuade him from his purpose. "Why should what
+Dr. Bruce and I propose to do seem so remarkable a thing, as if it
+were unheard of that a Doctor of Divinity and a Bishop should want
+to save lost souls in this particular manner? If we were to resign
+our charge for the purpose of going to Bombay or Hong Kong or any
+place in Africa, the churches and the people would exclaim at the
+heroism of missions. Why should it seem so great a thing if we have
+been led to give our lives to help rescue the heathen and the lost
+of our own city in the way we are going to try it? Is it then such a
+tremendous event that two Christian ministers should be not only
+willing but eager to live close to the misery of the world in order
+to know it and realize it? Is it such a rare thing that love of
+humanity should find this particular form of expression in the
+rescue of souls?"
+
+And however the Bishop may have satisfied himself that there ought
+to be nothing so remarkable about it at all, the public continued to
+talk and the churches to record their astonishment that two such
+men, so prominent in the ministry, should leave their comfortable
+homes, voluntarily resign their pleasant social positions and enter
+upon a life of hardship, of self-denial and actual suffering.
+Christian America! Is it a reproach on the form of our discipleship
+that the exhibition of actual suffering for Jesus on the part of
+those who walk in His steps always provokes astonishment as at the
+sight of something very unusual?
+
+Nazareth Avenue Church parted from its pastor with regret for the
+most part, although the regret was modified with a feeling of relief
+on the part of those who had refused to take the pledge. Dr. Bruce
+carried with him the respect of men who, entangled in business in
+such a way that obedience to the pledge would have ruined them,
+still held in their deeper, better natures a genuine admiration for
+courage and consistency. They had known Dr. Bruce many years as a
+kindly, conservative, safe man, but the thought of him in the light
+of sacrifice of this sort was not familiar to them. As fast as they
+understood it, they gave their pastor the credit of being absolutely
+true to his recent convictions as to what following Jesus meant.
+Nazareth Avenue Church never lost the impulse of that movement
+started by Dr. Bruce. Those who went with him in making the promise
+breathed into the church the very breath of divine life, and are
+continuing that life-giving work at this present time.
+
+ * * * * *
+
+It was fall again, and the city faced another hard winter. The
+Bishop one afternoon came out of the Settlement and walked around
+the block, intending to go on a visit to one of his new friends in
+the district. He had walked about four blocks when he was attracted
+by a shop that looked different from the others. The neighborhood
+was still quite new to him, and every day he discovered some strange
+spot or stumbled upon some unexpected humanity.
+
+The place that attracted his notice was a small house close by a
+Chinese laundry. There were two windows in the front, very clean,
+and that was remarkable to begin with. Then, inside the window, was
+a tempting display of cookery, with prices attached to the various
+articles that made him wonder somewhat, for he was familiar by this
+time with many facts in the life of the people once unknown to him.
+As he stood looking at the windows, the door between them opened and
+Felicia Sterling came out.
+
+"Felicia!" exclaimed the Bishop. "When did you move into my parish
+without my knowledge?"
+
+"How did you find me so soon?" inquired Felicia.
+
+"Why, don't you know? These are the only clean windows in the
+block."
+
+"I believe they are," replied Felicia with a laugh that did the
+Bishop good to hear.
+
+"But why have you dared to come to Chicago without telling me, and
+how have you entered my diocese without my knowledge?" asked the
+Bishop. And Felicia looked so like that beautiful, clean, educated,
+refined world he once knew, that he might be pardoned for seeing in
+her something of the old Paradise. Although, to speak truth for him,
+he had no desire to go back to it.
+
+"Well, dear Bishop," said Felicia, who had always called him so, "I
+knew how overwhelmed you were with your work. I did not want to
+burden you with my plans. And besides, I am going to offer you my
+services. Indeed, I was just on my way to see you and ask your
+advice. I am settled here for the present with Mrs. Bascom, a
+saleswoman who rents our three rooms, and with one of Rachel's music
+pupils who is being helped to a course in violin by Virginia Page.
+She is from the people," continued Felicia, using the words "from
+the people" so gravely and unconsciously that her hearer smiled,
+"and I am keeping house for her and at the same time beginning an
+experiment in pure food for the masses. I am an expert and I have a
+plan I want you to admire and develop. Will you, dear Bishop?"
+
+"Indeed I will," he replied. The sight of Felicia and her remarkable
+vitality, enthusiasm and evident purpose almost bewildered him.
+
+"Martha can help at the Settlement with her violin and I will help
+with my messes. You see, I thought I would get settled first and
+work out something, and then come with some real thing to offer. I'm
+able to earn my own living now."
+
+"You are?" the Bishop said a little incredulously. "How? Making
+those things?"
+
+"Those things!" said Felicia with a show of indignation. "I would
+have you know, sir, that 'those things' are the best-cooked, purest
+food products in this whole city."
+
+"I don't doubt it," he replied hastily, while his eyes twinkled,
+"Still, 'the proof of the pudding'--you know the rest."
+
+"Come in and try some!" she exclaimed. "You poor Bishop! You look as
+if you hadn't had a good meal for a month."
+
+She insisted on his entering the little front room where Martha, a
+wide-awake girl with short, curly hair, and an unmistakable air of
+music about her, was busy with practice.
+
+"Go right on, Martha. This is the Bishop. You have heard me speak of
+him so often. Sit down there and let me give you a taste of the
+fleshpots of Egypt, for I believe you have been actually fasting."
+
+So they had an improvised lunch, and the Bishop who, to tell the
+truth, had not taken time for weeks to enjoy his meals, feasted on
+the delight of his unexpected discovery and was able to express his
+astonishment and gratification at the quality of the cookery.
+
+"I thought you would at least say it is as good as the meals you
+used to get at the Auditorium at the big banquets," said Felicia
+slyly.
+
+"As good as! The Auditorium banquets were simply husks compared with
+this one, Felicia. But you must come to the Settlement. I want you
+to see what we are doing. And I am simply astonished to find you
+here earning your living this way. I begin to see what your plan is.
+You can be of infinite help to us. You don't really mean that you
+will live here and help these people to know the value of good
+food?"
+
+"Indeed I do," she answered gravely. "That is my gospel. Shall I not
+follow it?"
+
+"Aye, Aye! You're right. Bless God for sense like yours! When I left
+the world," the Bishop smiled at the phrase, "they were talking a
+good deal about the 'new woman.' If you are one of them, I am a
+convert right now and here."
+
+"Flattery! Still is there no escape from it, even in the slums of
+Chicago?" Felicia laughed again. And the man's heart, heavy though
+it had grown during several months of vast sin-bearing, rejoiced to
+hear it! It sounded good. It was good. It belonged to God.
+
+Felicia wanted to visit the Settlement, and went back with him. She
+was amazed at the results of what considerable money an a good deal
+of consecrated brains had done. As they walked through the building
+they talked incessantly. She was the incarnation of vital
+enthusiasm, and he wondered at the exhibition of it as it bubbled up
+and sparkled over.
+
+They went down into the basement and the Bishop pushed open a door
+from behind which came the sound of a carpenter's plane. It was a
+small but well equipped carpenter's shop. A young man with a paper
+cap on his head and clad in blouse and overalls was whistling and
+driving the plane as he whistled. He looked up as the two entered,
+and took off his cap. As he did so, his little finger carried a
+small curling shaving up to his hair and it caught there.
+
+"Miss Sterling, Mr. Stephen Clyde," said the Bishop. "Clyde is one
+of our helpers here two afternoons in the week."
+
+Just then the bishop was called upstairs and he excused himself a
+moment, leaving Felicia and the young carpenter together.
+
+"We have met before," said Felicia looking at Clyde frankly.
+
+"Yes, 'back in the world,' as the Bishop says," replied the young
+man, and his fingers trembled a little as they lay on the board he
+had been planing.
+
+"Yes." Felicia hesitated. "I am very glad to see you."
+
+"Are you?" The flush of pleasure mounted to the young carpenter's
+forehead. "You have had a great deal of trouble since--since--then,"
+he said, and then he was afraid he had wounded her, or called up
+painful memories. But she had lived over all that.
+
+"Yes, and you also. How is it that you're working here?"
+
+"It is a long story, Miss Sterling. My father lost his money and I
+was obliged to go to work. A very good thing for me. The Bishop says
+I ought to be very grateful. I am. I am very happy now. I learned
+the trade, hoping some time to be of use, I am night clerk at one of
+the hotels. That Sunday morning when you took the pledge at Nazareth
+Avenue Church, I took it with the others."
+
+"Did you?" said Felicia slowly. "I am glad."
+
+Just then the Bishop came back, and very soon he and Felicia went
+away leaving the young carpenter at his work. Some one noticed that
+he whistled louder than ever as he planed.
+
+"Felicia," said the Bishop, "did you know Stephen Clyde before?"
+
+"Yes, 'back in the world,' dear Bishop. He was one of my
+acquaintances in Nazareth Avenue Church."
+
+"Ah!" said the Bishop.
+
+"We were very good friends," added Felicia.
+
+"But nothing more?" the Bishop ventured to ask.
+
+Felicia's face glowed for an instant. Then she looked her companion
+in the eyes frankly and answered: "Truly and truly, nothing more."
+
+"It would be just the way of the world for these two people to come
+to like each other, though," thought the man to himself, and somehow
+the thought made him grave. It was almost like the old pang over
+Camilla. But it passed, leaving him afterwards, when Felicia had
+gone back, with tears in his eyes and a feeling that was almost hope
+that Felicia and Stephen would like each other. "After all," he
+said, like the sensible, good man that he was, "is not romance a
+part of humanity? Love is older than I am, and wiser."
+
+The week following, the Bishop had an experience that belongs to
+this part of the Settlement history. He was coming back to the
+Settlement very late from some gathering of the striking tailors,
+and was walking along with his hands behind him, when two men jumped
+out from behind an old fence that shut off an abandoned factory from
+the street, and faced him. One of the men thrust a pistol in his
+face, and the other threatened him with a ragged stake that had
+evidently been torn from the fence.
+
+"Hold up your hands, and be quick about it!" said the man with the
+pistol.
+
+
+
+
+Chapter Twenty-seven
+
+
+"Righteousness shall go before him and shall set us in the way of
+his steps."
+
+
+THE Bishop was not in the habit of carrying much money with him, and
+the man with the stake who was searching him uttered an oath at the
+small amount of change he found. As he uttered it, the man with the
+pistol savagely said, "Jerk out his watch! We might as well get all
+we can out of the job!"
+
+The man with the stake was on the point of laying hold of the chain
+where there was a sound of footsteps coming towards him.
+
+"Get behind the fence! We haven't half searched him yet! Mind you
+keep shut now, if you don't want--"
+
+The man with the pistol made a significant gesture with it and, with
+his companion, pulled and pushed the Bishop down the alley and
+through a ragged, broken opening in the fence. The three stood still
+there in the shadow until the footsteps passed.
+
+"Now, then, have you got the watch?" asked the man with the pistol.
+
+"No, the chain is caught somewhere!" and the other man swore again.
+
+"Break it then!"
+
+"No, don't break it," the Bishop said, and it was the first time he
+had spoken. "The chain is the gift of a very dear friend. I should
+be sorry to have it broken."
+
+At the sound of the Bishop's voice the man with the pistol started
+as if he had been suddenly shot by his own weapon. With a quick
+movement of his other hand he turned the Bishop's head toward's what
+little light was shining from the alleyway, at the same time taking
+a step nearer. Then, to the amazement of his companion, he said
+roughly: "Leave the watch alone! We've got the money. That's
+enough!"
+
+"Enough! Fifty cents! You don't reckon--"
+
+Before the man with the stake could say another word he was
+confronted with the muzzle of the pistol turned from the Bishop's
+head towards his own.
+
+"Leave that watch be! And put back the money too. This is the Bishop
+we've held up--the Bishop--do you hear?"
+
+"And what of it! The President of the United States wouldn't be too
+good to hold up, if--"
+
+"I say, you put the money back, or in five seconds I'll blow a hole
+through your head that'll let in more sense than you have to spare
+now!" said the other.
+
+For a second the man with the stake seemed to hesitate at this
+strange turn in events, as if measuring his companion's intention.
+Then he hastily dropped the money back into the rifled pocket.
+
+"You can take your hands down, sir." The man lowered his weapon
+slowly, still keeping an eye on the other man, and speaking with
+rough respect. The Bishop slowly brought his arms to his side, and
+looked earnestly at the two men. In the dim light it was difficult
+to distinguish features. He was evidently free to go his way now,
+but he stood there making no movement.
+
+"You can go on. You needn't stay any longer on our account." The man
+who had acted as spokesman turned and sat down on a stone. The other
+man stood viciously digging his stake into the ground.
+
+"That's just what I am staying for," replied the Bishop. He sat down
+on a board that projected from the broken fence.
+
+"You must like our company. It is hard sometimes for people to tear
+themselves away from us," and the man standing up laughed coarsely.
+
+"Shut up!" exclaimed the other. "We're on the road to hell, though,
+that's sure enough. We need better company than ourselves and the
+devil."
+
+"If you would only allow me to be of any help," the Bishop spoke
+gently, even lovingly. The man on the stone stared at the Bishop
+through the darkness. After a moment of silence he spoke slowly like
+one who had finally decided upon a course he had at first rejected.
+
+"Do you remember ever seeing me before?"
+
+"No," said the Bishop. "The light is not very good and I have really
+not had a good look at you."
+
+"Do you know me now?" The man suddenly took off his hat and getting
+up from the stone walked over to the Bishop until they were near
+enough to touch each other.
+
+The man's hair was coal black except one spot on the top of his head
+about as large as the palm of the hand, which was white.
+
+The minute the Bishop saw that, he started. The memory of fifteen
+years ago began to stir in him. The man helped him.
+
+"Don't you remember one day back in '81 or '82 a man came to your
+house and told a story about his wife and child having been burned
+to death in a tenement fire in New York?"
+
+"Yes, I begin to remember now." The other man seemed to be
+interested. He ceased digging his stake in the ground and stood
+still listening.
+
+"Do you remember how you took me into your own house that night and
+spent all next day trying to find me a job? And how when you
+succeeded in getting me a place in a warehouse as foreman, I
+promised to quit drinking because you asked me to?"
+
+"I remember it now. I hope you have kept your promise."
+
+The man laughed savagely. Then he struck his hand against the fence
+with such sudden passion that he drew blood.
+
+"Kept it! I was drunk inside of a week! I've been drinking ever
+since. But I've never forgotten you nor your prayer. Do you remember
+the morning after I came to your house, after breakfast you had
+prayers and asked me to come in and sit with the rest? That got me!
+But my mother used to pray! I can see her now kneeling down by my
+bed when I was a lad. Father came in one night and kicked her while
+she was kneeling there by me. But I never forgot that prayer of
+yours that morning. You prayed for me just as mother used to, and
+you didn't seem to take 'count of the fact that I was ragged and
+tough-looking and more than half drunk when I rang your door bell.
+Oh, what a life I've lived! The saloon has housed me and homed me
+and made hell on earth for me. But that prayer stuck to me all the
+time. My promise not to drink was broken into a thousand pieces
+inside of two Sundays, and I lost the job you found for me and
+landed in a police station two days later, but I never forgot you
+nor your prayer. I don't know what good it has done me, but I never
+forgot it. And I won't do any harm to you nor let any one else. So
+you're free to go. That's why."
+
+The Bishop did not stir. Somewhere a church clock struck one. The
+man had put on his hat and gone back to his seat on the stone. The
+Bishop was thinking hard.
+
+"How long is it since you had work?" he asked, and the man standing
+up answered for the other.
+
+"More'n six months since either of us did anything to tell of;
+unless you count 'holding up' work. I call it pretty wearing kind of
+a job myself, especially when we put in a night like this and don't
+make nothin'."
+
+"Suppose I found good jobs for both of you? Would you quit this and
+begin all over?"
+
+"What's the use?" the man on the stone spoke sullenly. "I've
+reformed a hundred times. Every time I go down deeper. The devil's
+begun to foreclose on me already. It's too late."
+
+"No!" said the Bishop. And never before the most entranced audience
+had he felt the desire for souls burn up in him so strongly. All the
+time he sat there during the remarkable scene he prayed, "O Lord
+Jesus, give me the souls of these two for Thee! I am hungry for
+them. Give them to me!"
+
+"No!" the Bishop repeated. "What does God want of you two men? It
+doesn't so much matter what I want. But He wants just what I do in
+this case. You two men are of infinite value to Him." And then his
+wonderful memory came to his aid in an appeal such as no one on
+earth among men could make under such circumstances. He had
+remembered the man's name in spite of the wonderfully busy years
+that lay between his coming to the house and the present moment.
+
+"Burns," he said, and he yearned over the men with an unspeakable
+longing for them both, "if you and your friend here will go home
+with me tonight I will find you both places of honorable employment.
+I will believe in you and trust you. You are both comparatively
+young men. Why should God lose you? It is a great thing to win the
+love of the Great Father. It is a small thing that I should love
+you. But if you need to feel again that there is love in the world,
+you will believe me when I say, my brothers, that I love you, and in
+the name of Him who was crucified for our sins I cannot bear to see
+you miss the glory of the human life. Come, be men! Make another try
+for it, God helping you. No one but God and you and myself need ever
+know anything of this tonight. He has forgiven it the minute you ask
+Him to. You will find that true. Come! We'll fight it out together,
+you two and I. It's worth fighting for, everlasting life is. It was
+the sinner that Christ came to help. I'll do what I can for you. O
+God, give me the souls of these two men!" and he broke into a prayer
+to God that was a continuation of his appeal to the men. His pent-up
+feeling had no other outlet. Before he had prayed many moments Burns
+was sitting with his face buried in his hands, sobbing. Where were
+his mother's prayers now? They were adding to the power of the
+Bishop's. And the other man, harder, less moved, without a previous
+knowledge of the Bishop, leaned back against the fence, stolid at
+first. But as the prayer went on, he was moved by it. What force of
+the Holy Spirit swept over his dulled, brutal, coarsened life,
+nothing but the eternal records of the recording angel can ever
+disclose. But the same supernatural Presence that smote Paul on the
+road to Damascus, and poured through Henry Maxwell's church the
+morning he asked disciples to follow in Jesus' steps, and had again
+broken irresistibly over the Nazareth Avenue congregation, now
+manifested Himself in this foul corner of the mighty city and over
+the natures of these two sinful sunken men, apparently lost to all
+the pleadings of conscience and memory and God. The prayer seemed to
+red open the crust that for years had surrounded them and shut them
+off from divine communication. And they themselves were thoroughly
+startled by it.
+
+The Bishop ceased, and at first he himself did not realize what had
+happened. Neither did they. Burns still sat with his head bowed
+between his knees. The man leaning against the fence looked at the
+Bishop with a face in which new emotions of awe, repentance,
+astonishment and a broken gleam of joy struggled for expression. The
+Bishop rose.
+
+"Come, my brothers. God is good. You shall stay at the Settlement
+tonight, and I will make good my promise as to the work."
+
+The two men followed him in silence. When they reached the
+Settlement it was after two o'clock. He let them in and led them to
+a room. At the door he paused a moment. His tall, commanding figure
+stood in the doorway and his pale face was illuminated with the
+divine glory.
+
+"God bless you, my brothers!" he said, and leaving them his
+benediction he went away.
+
+
+
+
+Chapter Twenty-eight
+
+
+IT WAS the afternoon of that morning when Burns was installed in his
+new position as assistant janitor that he was cleaning off the front
+steps of the Settlement, when he paused a moment and stood up to
+look about him. The first thing he noticed was a beer sign just
+across the alley. He could almost touch it with his broom from where
+he stood. Over the street immediately opposite were two large
+saloons, and a little farther down were three more.
+
+Suddenly the door of the nearest saloon opened and a man came out.
+At the same time two more went in. A strong odor of beer floated up
+to Burns as he stood on the steps. He clutched his broom handle
+tightly and began to sweep again. He had one foot on the porch and
+another on the steps just below. He took another step down, still
+sweeping. The sweat stood on his forehead although the day was
+frosty and the air chill. The saloon door opened again and three or
+four men came out. A child went in with a pail, and came out a
+moment later with a quart of beer. The child went by on the sidewalk
+just below him, and the odor of the beer came up to him. He took
+another step down, still sweeping desperately. His fingers were
+purple as he clutched the handle of the broom.
+
+Then suddenly he pulled himself up one step and swept over the spot
+he had just cleaned. He then dragged himself by a tremendous effort
+back to the floor of the porch and went over into the corner of it
+farthest from the saloon and began to sweep there. "O God!" he
+cried, "if the Bishop would only come back!" The Bishop had gone out
+with Dr. Bruce somewhere, and there was no one about that he knew.
+He swept in the corner for two or three minutes. His face was drawn
+with the agony of his conflict. Gradually he edged out again towards
+the steps and began to go down them. He looked towards the sidewalk
+and saw that he had left one step unswept. The sight seemed to give
+him a reasonable excuse for going down there to finish his sweeping.
+
+He was on the sidewalk now, sweeping the last step, with his face
+towards the Settlement and his back turned partly on the saloon
+across the alley. He swept the step a dozen times. The sweat rolled
+over his face and dropped down at his feet. By degrees he felt that
+he was drawn over towards that end of the step nearest the saloon.
+He could smell the beer and rum now as the fumes rose around him. It
+was like the infernal sulphur of the lowest hell, and yet it dragged
+him as by a giant's hand nearer its source.
+
+He was down in the middle of the sidewalk now, still sweeping. He
+cleared the space in front of the Settlement and even went out into
+the gutter and swept that. He took off his hat and rubbed his sleeve
+over his face. His lips were pallid and his teeth chattered. He
+trembled all over like a palsied man and staggered back and forth as
+if he was already drunk. His soul shook within him.
+
+He had crossed over the little piece of stone flagging that measured
+the width of the alley, and now he stood in front of the saloon,
+looking at the sign, and staring into the window at the pile of
+whiskey and beer bottles arranged in a great pyramid inside. He
+moistened his lips with his tongue and took a step forward, looking
+around him stealthily. The door suddenly opened again and someone
+came out. Again the hot, penetrating smell of liquor swept out into
+the cold air, and he took another step towards the saloon door which
+had shut behind the customer. As he laid his fingers on the door
+handle, a tall figure came around the corner. It was the Bishop.
+
+He seized Burns by the arm and dragged him back upon the sidewalk.
+The frenzied man, now mad for a drink, shrieked out a curse and
+struck at his friend savagely. It is doubtful if he really knew at
+first who was snatching him away from his ruin. The blow fell upon
+the Bishop's face and cut a gash in his cheek. He never uttered a
+word. But over his face a look of majestic sorrow swept. He picked
+Burns up as if he had been a child and actually carried him up the
+steps and into the house. He put him down in the hall and then shut
+the door and put his back against it.
+
+Burns fell on his knees sobbing and praying. The Bishop stood there
+panting with his exertion, although Burns was a slightly-built man
+and had not been a great weight for a man of his strength to carry.
+He was moved with unspeakable pity.
+
+"Pray, Burns--pray as you never prayed before! Nothing else will
+save you!"
+
+"O God! Pray with me. Save me! Oh, save me from my hell!" cried
+Burns. And, the Bishop knelt by him in the hall and prayed as only
+he could pray.
+
+After that they rose and Burns went to his room. He came out of it
+that evening like a humble child. And the Bishop went his way older
+from that experience, bearing on his body the marks of the Lord
+Jesus. Truly he was learning something of what it means to walk in
+His steps.
+
+But the saloon! It stood there, and all the others lined the street
+like so many traps set for Burns. How long would the man be able to
+resist the smell of the damnable stuff? The Bishop went out on the
+porch. The air of the whole city seemed to be impregnated with the
+odor of beer. "How long, O Lord, how long?" he prayed. Dr. Bruce
+came out, and the two friends talked about Burns and his temptation.
+
+"Did you ever make any inquiries about the ownership of this
+property adjoining us?" the Bishop asked.
+
+"No, I haven't taken time for it. I will now if you think it would
+be worth while. But what can we do, Edward, against the saloon in
+this great city? It is as firmly established as the churches or
+politics. What power can ever remove it?"
+
+"God will do it in time, as He has removed slavery," was the grave
+reply. "Meanwhile I think we have a right to know who controls this
+saloon so near the Settlement."
+
+"I'll find out," said Dr. Bruce.
+
+Two days later he walked into the business office of one of the
+members of Nazareth Avenue Church and asked to see him a few
+moments. He was cordially received by his old parishioner, who
+welcomed him into his room and urged him to take all the time he
+wanted.
+
+"I called to see you about that property next the Settlement where
+the Bishop and myself now are, you know. I am going to speak
+plainly, because life is too short and too serious for us both to
+have any foolish hesitation about this matter. Clayton, do you think
+it is right to rent that property for a saloon?"
+
+Dr. Bruce's question was as direct and uncompromising as he had
+meant it to be. The effect of it on his old parishioner was
+instantaneous.
+
+The hot blood mounted to the face of the man who sat there beneath a
+picture of business activity in a great city. Then he grew pale,
+dropped his head on his hands, and when he raised it again Dr. Bruce
+was amazed to see a tear roll over his face.
+
+"Doctor, did you know that I took the pledge that morning with the
+others?"
+
+"Yes, I remember."
+
+"But you never knew how I have been tormented over my failure to
+keep it in this instance. That saloon property has been the
+temptation of the devil to me. It is the best paying investment at
+present that I have. And yet it was only a minute before you came in
+here that I was in an agony of remorse to think how I was letting a
+little earthly gain tempt me into a denial of the very Christ I had
+promised to follow. I knew well enough that He would never rent
+property for such a purpose. There is no need, Dr. Bruce, for you to
+say a word more."
+
+Clayton held out his hand and Dr. Bruce grasped it and shook it
+hard. After a little he went away. But it was a long time afterwards
+that he learned all the truth about the struggle that Clayton had
+known. It was only a part of the history that belonged to Nazareth
+Avenue Church since that memorable morning when the Holy Spirit
+sanctioned the Christ-like pledge. Not even the Bishop and Dr.
+Bruce, moving as they now did in the very presence itself of divine
+impulses, knew yet that over the whole sinful city the Spirit was
+brooding with mighty eagerness, waiting for the disciples to arise
+to the call of sacrifice and suffering, touching hearts long dull
+and cold, making business men and money-makers uneasy in their
+absorption by the one great struggle for more wealth, and stirring
+through the church as never in all the city's history the church had
+been moved. The Bishop and Dr. Bruce had already seen some wonderful
+things in their brief life at the Settlement. They were to see far
+greater soon, more astonishing revelations of the divine power than
+they had supposed possible in this age of the world.
+
+Within a month the saloon next the Settlement was closed. The
+saloon-keeper's lease had expired, and Clayton not only closed the
+property to the whiskey men, but offered the building to the Bishop
+and Dr. Bruce to use for the Settlement work, which had now grown so
+large that the building they had first rented was not sufficient for
+the different industries that were planned.
+
+One of the most important of these was the pure-food department
+suggested by Felicia. It was not a month after Clayton turned the
+saloon property over to the Settlement that Felicia found herself
+installed in the very room where souls had been lost, as head of the
+department not only of cooking but of a course of housekeeping for
+girls who wished to go out to service. She was now a resident of the
+Settlement, and found a home with Mrs. Bruce and the other young
+women from the city who were residents. Martha, the violinist,
+remained at the place where the Bishop had first discovered the two
+girls, and came over to the Settlement certain evenings to give
+lessons in music.
+
+"Felicia, tell us your plan in full now," said the Bishop one
+evening when, in a rare interval of rest from the great pressure of
+work, he was with Dr. Bruce, and Felicia had come in from the other
+building.
+
+"Well, I have long thought of the hired girl problem," said Felicia
+with an air of wisdom that made Mrs. Bruce smile as she looked at
+the enthusiastic, vital beauty of this young girl, transformed into
+a new creature by the promise she had made to live the Christ-like
+life. "And I have reached certain conclusions in regard to it that
+you men are not yet able to fathom, but Mrs. Bruce will understand
+me."
+
+"We acknowledge our infancy, Felicia. Go on," said the Bishop
+humbly.
+
+"Then this is what I propose to do. The old saloon building is large
+enough to arrange into a suite of rooms that will represent an
+ordinary house. My plan is to have it so arranged, and then teach
+housekeeping and cooking to girls who will afterwards go out to
+service. The course will be six months' long; in that time I will
+teach plain cooking, neatness, quickness, and a love of good work."
+
+"Hold on, Felicia!" the Bishop interrupted, "this is not an age of
+miracles!"
+
+"Then we will make it one," replied Felicia. "I know this seems like
+an impossibility, but I want to try it. I know a score of girls
+already who will take the course, and if we can once establish
+something like an esprit de corps among the girls themselves, I am
+sure it will be of great value to them. I know already that the pure
+food is working a revolution in many families."
+
+"Felicia, if you can accomplish half what you propose it will bless
+this community," said Mrs. Bruce. "I don't see how you can do it,
+but I say, God bless you, as you try."
+
+"So say we all!" cried Dr. Bruce and the Bishop, and Felicia plunged
+into the working out of her plan with the enthusiasm of her
+discipleship which every day grew more and more practical and
+serviceable.
+
+It must be said here that Felicia's plan succeeded beyond all
+expectations. She developed wonderful powers of persuasion, and
+taught her girls with astonishing rapidity to do all sorts of
+housework. In time, the graduates of Felicia's cooking school came
+to be prized by housekeepers all over the city. But that is
+anticipating our story. The history of the Settlement has never yet
+been written. When it is Felicia's part will be found of very great
+importance.
+
+The depth of winter found Chicago presenting, as every great city of
+the world presents to the eyes of Christendom the marked contrast
+between riches and poverty, between culture, refinement, luxury,
+ease, and ignorance, depravity, destitution and the bitter struggle
+for bread. It was a hard winter but a gay winter. Never had there
+been such a succession of parties, receptions, balls, dinners,
+banquets, fetes, gayeties. Never had the opera and the theatre been
+so crowded with fashionable audiences. Never had there been such a
+lavish display of jewels and fine dresses and equipages. And on the
+other hand, never had the deep want and suffering been so cruel, so
+sharp, so murderous. Never had the winds blown so chilling over the
+lake and through the thin shells of tenements in the neighborhood of
+the Settlement. Never had the pressure for food and fuel and clothes
+been so urgently thrust up against the people of the city in their
+most importunate and ghastly form. Night after night the Bishop and
+Dr. Bruce with their helpers went out and helped save men and women
+and children from the torture of physical privation. Vast quantities
+of food and clothing and large sums of money were donated by the
+churches, the charitable societies, the civic authorities and the
+benevolent associations. But the personal touch of the Christian
+disciple was very hard to secure for personal work. Where was the
+discipleship that was obeying the Master's command to go itself to
+the suffering and give itself with its gift in order to make the
+gift of value in time to come? The Bishop found his heart sing
+within him as he faced this fact more than any other. Men would give
+money who would not think of giving themselves. And the money they
+gave did not represent any real sacrifice because they did not miss
+it. They gave what was the easiest to give, what hurt them the
+least. Where did the sacrifice come in? Was this following Jesus?
+Was this going with Him all the way? He had been to members of his
+own aristocratic, splendidly wealthy congregations, and was appalled
+to find how few men and women of that luxurious class in the
+churches would really suffer any genuine inconvenience for the sake
+of suffering humanity. Is charity the giving of worn-out garments?
+Is it a ten-dollar bill given to a paid visitor or secretary of some
+benevolent organization in the church? Shall the man never go and
+give his gift himself? Shall the woman never deny herself her
+reception or her party or her musicale, and go and actually touch,
+herself, the foul, sinful sore of diseased humanity as it festers in
+the great metropolis? Shall charity be conveniently and easily done
+through some organization? Is it possible to organize the affections
+so that love shall work disagreeable things by proxy?
+
+All this the Bishop asked as he plunged deeper into the sin and
+sorrow of that bitter winter. He was bearing his cross with joy. But
+he burned and fought within over the shifting of personal love by
+the many upon the hearts of the few. And still, silently,
+powerfully, resistlessly, the Holy Spirit was moving through the
+churches, even the aristocratic, wealthy, ease-loving members who
+shunned the terrors of the social problem as they would shun a
+contagious disease.
+
+
+
+
+Chapter Twenty-nine
+
+
+THE breakfast hour at the settlement was the one hour in the day
+when the whole family found a little breathing space to fellowship
+together. It was an hour of relaxation. There was a great deal of
+good-natured repartee and much real wit and enjoyable fun at this
+hour. The Bishop told his best stories. Dr. Bruce was at his best in
+anecdote. This company of disciples was healthily humorous in spite
+of the atmosphere of sorrow that constantly surrounded them. In
+fact, the Bishop often said the faculty of humor was as God-given as
+any other and in his own case it was the only safety valve he had
+for the tremendous pressure put upon him.
+
+This particular morning he was reading extracts from a morning paper
+for the benefit of the others. Suddenly he paused and his face
+instantly grew stern and sad. The rest looked up and a hush fell
+over the table.
+
+"Shot and killed while taking a lump of coal from a car! His family
+was freezing and he had had no work for six months. Six children and
+a wife all packed into a cabin with three rooms, on the West Side.
+One child wrapped in rags in a closet!"
+
+These were headlines that he read slowly. He then went on and read
+the detailed account of the shooting and the visit of the reporter
+to the tenement where the family lived. He finished, and there was
+silence around the table. The humor of the hour was swept out of
+existence by this bit of human tragedy. The great city roared about
+the Settlement. The awful current of human life was flowing in a
+great stream past the Settlement House, and those who had work were
+hurrying to it in a vast throng. But thousands were going down in
+the midst of that current, clutching at last hopes, dying literally
+in a land of plenty because the boon of physical toil was denied
+them.
+
+There were various comments on the part of the residents. One of the
+new-comers, a young man preparing for the ministry, said: "Why don't
+the man apply to one of the charity organizations for help? Or to
+the city? It certainly is not true that even at its worst this city
+full of Christian people would knowingly allow any one to go without
+food or fuel."
+
+"No, I don't believe it would," replied Dr. Bruce. "But we don't
+know the history of this man's case. He may have asked for help so
+often before that, finally, in a moment of desperation he determined
+to help himself. I have known such cases this winter."
+
+"That is not the terrible fact in this case," said the Bishop. "The
+awful thing about it is the fact that the man had not had any work
+for six months."
+
+"Why don't such people go out into the country?" asked the divinity
+student.
+
+Some one at the table who had made a special study of the
+opportunities for work in the country answered the question.
+According to the investigator the places that were possible for work
+in the country were exceedingly few for steady employment, and in
+almost every case they were offered only to men without families.
+Suppose a man's wife or children were ill. How would he move or get
+into the country? How could he pay even the meager sum necessary to
+move his few goods? There were a thousand reasons probably why this
+particular man did not go elsewhere.
+
+"Meanwhile there are the wife and children," said Mrs. Bruce. "How
+awful! Where is the place, did you say?"
+
+"Why, it is only three blocks from here. This is the 'Penrose
+district.' I believe Penrose himself owns half of the houses in that
+block. They are among the worst houses in this part of the city. And
+Penrose is a church member."
+
+"Yes, he belongs to the Nazareth Avenue Church," replied Dr. Bruce
+in a low voice.
+
+The Bishop rose from the table the very figure of divine wrath. He
+had opened his lips to say what seldom came from him in the way of
+denunciation, when the bell rang and one of the residents went to
+the door.
+
+"Tell Dr. Bruce and the Bishop I want to see them. Penrose is the
+name--Clarence Penrose. Dr. Bruce knows me."
+
+The family at the breakfast table heard every word. The Bishop
+exchanged a significant look with Dr. Bruce and the two men
+instantly left the table and went out into the hall.
+
+"Come in here, Penrose," said Dr. Bruce, and they ushered the
+visitor into the reception room, closed the door and were alone.
+
+Clarence Penrose was one of the most elegant looking men in Chicago.
+He came from an aristocratic family of great wealth and social
+distinction. He was exceedingly wealthy and had large property
+holdings in different parts of the city. He had been a member of Dr.
+Bruce's church many years. He faced the two ministers with a look of
+agitation on his face that showed plainly the mark of some unusual
+experience. He was very pale and his lips trembled as he spoke. When
+had Clarence Penrose ever before yielded to such a strange emotion?
+
+"This affair of the shooting! You understand? You have read it? The
+family lived in one of my houses. It is a terrible event. But that
+is not the primary cause of my visit." He stammered and looked
+anxiously into the faces of the two men. The Bishop still looked
+stern. He could not help feeling that this elegant man of leisure
+could have done a great deal to alleviate the horrors in his
+tenements, possibly have prevented this tragedy if he had sacrificed
+some of his personal ease and luxury to better the conditions of the
+people in his district.
+
+Penrose turned toward Dr. Bruce. "Doctor!" he exclaimed, and there
+was almost a child's terror in his voice. "I came to say that I have
+had an experience so unusual that nothing but the supernatural can
+explain it. You remember I was one of those who took the pledge to
+do as Jesus would do. I thought at the time, poor fool that I was,
+that I had all along been doing the Christian thing. I gave
+liberally out of my abundance to the church and charity. I never
+gave myself to cost me any suffering. I have been living in a
+perfect hell of contradictions ever since I took that pledge. My
+little girl, Diana you remember, also took the pledge with me. She
+has been asking me a great many questions lately about the poor
+people and where they live. I was obliged to answer her. One of her
+questions last night touched my sore! 'Do you own any houses where
+these poor people live? Are they nice and warm like ours?' You know
+how a child will ask questions like these. I went to bed tormented
+with what I now know to be the divine arrows of conscience. I could
+not sleep. I seemed to see the judgment day. I was placed before the
+Judge. I was asked to give an account of my deeds done in the body.
+'How many sinful souls had I visited in prison? What had I done with
+my stewardship? How about those tenements where people froze in
+winter and stifled in summer? Did I give any thought to them except
+to receive the rentals from them? Where did my suffering come in?
+Would Jesus have done as I had done and was doing? Had I broken my
+pledge? How had I used the money and the culture and the social
+influence I possessed? Had I used it to bless humanity, to relieve
+the suffering, to bring joy to the distressed and hope to the
+desponding? I had received much. How much had I given?'
+
+"All this came to me in a waking vision as distinctly as I see you
+two men and myself now. I was unable to see the end of the vision. I
+had a confused picture in my mind of the suffering Christ pointing a
+condemning finger at me, and the rest was shut out by mist and
+darkness. I have not slept for twenty-four hours. The first thing I
+saw this morning was the account of the shooting at the coal yards.
+I read the account with a feeling of horror I have not been able to
+shake off. I am a guilty creature before God."
+
+Penrose paused suddenly. The two men looked at him solemnly. What
+power of the Holy Spirit moved the soul of this hitherto
+self-satisfied, elegant, cultured man who belonged to the social
+life that was accustomed to go its way placidly, unmindful of the
+great sorrows of a great city and practically ignorant of what it
+means to suffer for Jesus' sake? Into that room came a breath such
+as before swept over Henry Maxwell's church and through Nazareth
+avenue. The Bishop laid his hand on the shoulder of Penrose and
+said: "My brother, God has been very near to you. Let us thank Him."
+
+"Yes! yes!" sobbed Penrose. He sat down on a chair and covered his
+face. The Bishop prayed. Then Penrose quietly said: "Will you go
+with me to that house?"
+
+For answer the two men put on their overcoats and went with him to
+the home of the dead man's family.
+
+That was the beginning of a new and strange life for Clarence
+Penrose. From the moment he stepped into that wretched hovel of a
+home and faced for the first time in his life a despair and
+suffering such as he had read of but did not know by personal
+contact, he dated a new life. It would be another long story to tell
+how, in obedience to his pledge he began to do with his tenement
+property as he knew Jesus would do. What would Jesus do with
+tenement property if He owned it in Chicago or any other great city
+of the world? Any man who can imagine any true answers to this
+question can easily tell what Clarence Penrose began to do.
+
+Now before that winter reached its bitter climax many things
+occurred in the city which concerned the lives of all the characters
+in this history of the disciples who promised to walk in His steps.
+
+It chanced by one of those coincidences that seem to occur
+preternaturally that one afternoon just as Felicia came out of the
+Settlement with a basket of food which she was going to leave as a
+sample with a baker in the Penrose district, Stephen Clyde opened
+the door of the carpenter shop in the basement and came out in time
+to meet her as she reached the sidewalk.
+
+"Let me carry your basket, please," he said.
+
+"Why do you say 'please'?" asked Felicia, handing over the basket
+while they walked along.
+
+"I would like to say something else," replied Stephen, glancing at
+her shyly and yet with a boldness that frightened him, for he had
+been loving Felicia more every day since he first saw her and
+especially since she stepped into the shop that day with the Bishop,
+and for weeks now they had been thrown in each other's company.
+
+"What else?" asked Felicia, innocently falling into the trap.
+
+"Why--" said Stephen, turning his fair, noble face full toward her
+and eyeing her with the look of one who would have the best of all
+things in the universe, "I would like to say: 'Let me carry your
+basket, dear Felicia'."
+
+Felicia never looked so beautiful in her life. She walked on a
+little way without even turning her face toward him. It was no
+secret with her own heart that she had given it to Stephen some time
+ago. Finally she turned and said shyly, while her face grew rosy and
+her eyes tender: "Why don't you say it, then?"
+
+"May I?" cried Stephen, and he was so careless for a minute of the
+way he held the basket, that Felicia exclaimed:
+
+"Yes! But oh, don't drop my goodies!"
+
+"Why, I wouldn't drop anything so precious for all the world, dear
+Felicia," said Stephen, who now walked on air for several blocks,
+and what was said during that walk is private correspondence that we
+have no right to read. Only it is a matter of history that day that
+the basket never reached its destination, and that over in the other
+direction, late in the afternoon, the Bishop, walking along quietly
+from the Penrose district, in rather a secluded spot near the
+outlying part of the Settlement district, heard a familiar voice
+say:
+
+"But tell me, Felicia, when did you begin to love me?"
+
+"I fell in love with a little pine shaving just above your ear that
+day when I saw you in the shop!" said the other voice with a laugh
+so clear, so pure, so sweet that it did one good to hear it.
+
+"Where are you going with that basket?" he tried to say sternly.
+
+"We are taking it to--where are we taking it, Felicia?"
+
+"Dear Bishop, we are taking it home to begin--"
+
+"To begin housekeeping with," finished Stephen, coming to the
+rescue.
+
+"Are you?" said the Bishop. "I hope you will invite me to share. I
+know what Felicia's cooking is."
+
+"Bishop, dear Bishop!" said Felicia, and she did not pretend to hide
+her happiness; "indeed, you shall be the most honored guest. Are you
+glad?"
+
+"Yes, I am," he replied, interpreting Felicia's words as she wished.
+Then he paused a moment and said gently: "God bless you both!" and
+went his way with a tear in his eye and a prayer in his heart, and
+left them to their joy.
+
+Yes. Shall not the same divine power of love that belongs to earth
+be lived and sung by the disciples of the Man of Sorrows and the
+Burden-bearer of sins? Yea, verily! And this man and woman shall
+walk hand in hand through this great desert of human woe in this
+city, strengthening each other, growing more loving with the
+experience of the world's sorrows, walking in His steps even closer
+yet because of their love for each other, bringing added blessing to
+thousands of wretched creatures because they are to have a home of
+their own to share with the homeless. "For this cause," said our
+Lord Jesus Christ, "shall a man leave his father and mother and
+cleave unto his wife." And Felicia and Stephen, following the
+Master, love him with a deeper, truer service and devotion because
+of the earthly affection which Heaven itself sanctions with its
+solemn blessing.
+
+But it was a little after the love story of the Settlement became a
+part of its glory that Henry Maxwell of Raymond came to Chicago with
+Rachel Winslow and Virginia Page and Rollin and Alexander Powers and
+President Marsh, and the occasion was a remarkable gathering at the
+hall of the Settlement arranged by the Bishop and Dr. Bruce, who had
+finally persuaded Mr. Maxwell and his fellow disciples in Raymond to
+come on to be present at this meeting.
+
+There were invited into the Settlement Hall, meeting for that night
+men out of work, wretched creatures who had lost faith in God and
+man, anarchists and infidels, free-thinkers and no-thinkers. The
+representation of all the city's worst, most hopeless, most
+dangerous, depraved elements faced Henry Maxwell and the other
+disciples when the meeting began. And still the Holy Spirit moved
+over the great, selfish, pleasure-loving, sin-stained city, and it
+lay in God's hand, not knowing all that awaited it. Every man and
+woman at the meeting that night had seen the Settlement motto over
+the door blazing through the transparency set up by the divinity
+student: "What would Jesus do?"
+
+And Henry Maxwell, as for the first time he stepped under the
+doorway, was touched with a deeper emotion than he had felt in a
+long time as he thought of the first time that question had come to
+him in the piteous appeal of the shabby young man who had appeared
+in the First Church of Raymond at the morning service.
+
+
+
+
+Chapter Thirty
+
+
+"Now, when Jesus heard these things, He said unto him, Yet lackest
+thou one thing: sell all that thou hast, and distribute unto the
+poor, and thou shalt have treasure in heaven: and come, follow Me."
+
+
+WHEN Henry Maxwell began to speak to the souls crowded into the
+Settlement Hall that night it is doubtful if he ever faced such an
+audience in his life. It is quite certain that the city of Raymond
+did not contain such a variety of humanity. Not even the Rectangle
+at its worst could furnish so many men and women who had fallen
+entirely out of the reach of the church and of all religious and
+even Christian influences.
+
+What did he talk about? He had already decided that point. He told
+in the simplest language he could command some of the results of
+obedience to the pledge as it had been taken in Raymond. Every man
+and woman in that audience knew something about Jesus Christ. They
+all had some idea of His character, and however much they had grown
+bitter toward the forms of Christian ecclesiasticism or the social
+system, they preserved some standard of right and truth, and what
+little some of them still retained was taken from the person of the
+Peasant of Galilee.
+
+So they were interested in what Maxwell said. "What would Jesus do?"
+He began to apply the question to the social problem in general,
+after finishing the story of Raymond. The audience was respectfully
+attentive. It was more than that. It was genuinely interested. As
+Mr. Maxwell went on, faces all over the hall leaned forward in a way
+seldom seen in church audiences or anywhere except among workingmen
+or the people of the street when once they are thoroughly aroused.
+"What would Jesus do?" Suppose that were the motto not only of the
+churches but of the business men, the politicians, the newspapers,
+the workingmen, the society people--how long would it take under
+such a standard of conduct to revolutionize the world? What was the
+trouble with the world? It was suffering from selfishness. No one
+ever lived who had succeeded in overcoming selfishness like Jesus.
+If men followed Him regardless of results the world would at once
+begin to enjoy a new life.
+
+Maxwell never knew how much it meant to hold the respectful
+attention of that hall full of diseased and sinful humanity. The
+Bishop and Dr. Bruce, sitting there, looking on, seeing many faces
+that represented scorn of creeds, hatred of the social order,
+desperate narrowness and selfishness, marveled that even so soon
+under the influence of the Settlement life, the softening process
+had begun already to lessen the bitterness of hearts, many of which
+had grown bitter from neglect and indifference.
+
+And still, in spite of the outward show of respect to the speaker,
+no one, not even the Bishop, had any true conception of the feeling
+pent up in that room that night. Among those who had heard of the
+meeting and had responded to the invitation were twenty or thirty
+men out of work who had strolled past the Settlement that afternoon,
+read the notice of the meeting, and had come in out of curiosity and
+to escape the chill east wind. It was a bitter night and the saloons
+were full. But in that whole district of over thirty thousand souls,
+with the exception of the saloons, there was not a door open except
+the clean, pure Christian door of the Settlement. Where would a man
+without a home or without work or without friends naturally go
+unless to the saloon?
+
+It had been the custom at the Settlement for a free discussion to
+follow any open meeting of this kind, and when Mr. Maxwell finished
+and sat down, the Bishop, who presided that night, rose and made the
+announcement that any man in the hall was at liberty to ask
+questions, to speak out his feelings or declare his convictions,
+always with the understanding that whoever took part was to observe
+the simple rules that governed parliamentary bodies and obey the
+three-minute rule which, by common consent, would be enforced on
+account of the numbers present.
+
+Instantly a number of voices from men who had been at previous
+meetings of this kind exclaimed, "Consent! consent!"
+
+The Bishop sat down, and immediately a man near the middle of the
+hall rose and began to speak.
+
+"I want to say that what Mr. Maxwell has said tonight comes pretty
+close to me. I knew Jack Manning, the fellow he told about who died
+at his house. I worked on the next case to his in a printer's shop
+in Philadelphia for two years. Jack was a good fellow. He loaned me
+five dollars once when I was in a hole and I never got a chance to
+pay him back. He moved to New York, owing to a change in the
+management of the office that threw him out, and I never saw him
+again. When the linotype machines came in I was one of the men to go
+out, just as he did. I have been out most of the time since. They
+say inventions are a good thing. I don't always see it myself; but I
+suppose I'm prejudiced. A man naturally is when he loses a steady
+job because a machine takes his place. About this Christianity he
+tells about, it's all right. But I never expect to see any such
+sacrifices on the part of the church people. So far as my
+observation goes they're just as selfish and as greedy for money and
+worldly success as anybody. I except the Bishop and Dr. Bruce and a
+few others. But I never found much difference between men of the
+world, as they are called, and church members when it came to
+business and money making. One class is just as bad as another
+there."
+
+Cries of "That's so!" "You're right!" "Of course!" interrupted the
+speaker, and the minute he sat down two men who were on the floor
+for several seconds before the first speaker was through began to
+talk at once.
+
+The Bishop called them to order and indicated which was entitled to
+the floor. The man who remained standing began eagerly:
+
+"This is the first time I was ever in here, and may be it'll be the
+last. Fact is, I am about at the end of my string. I've tramped this
+city for work till I'm sick. I'm in plenty of company. Say! I'd like
+to ask a question of the minister, if it's fair. May I?"
+
+"That's for Mr. Maxwell to say," said the Bishop.
+
+"By all means," replied Mr. Maxwell quickly. "Of course, I will not
+promise to answer it to the gentleman's satisfaction."
+
+"This is my question." The man leaned forward and stretched out a
+long arm with a certain dramatic force that grew naturally enough
+out of his condition as a human being. "I want to know what Jesus
+would do in my case. I haven't had a stroke of work for two months.
+I've got a wife and three children, and I love them as much as if I
+was worth a million dollars. I've been living off a little earnings
+I saved up during the World's Fair jobs I got. I'm a carpenter by
+trade, and I've tried every way I know to get a job. You say we
+ought to take for our motto, 'What would Jesus do?' What would He do
+if He was out of work like me? I can't be somebody else and ask the
+question. I want to work. I'd give anything to grow tired of working
+ten hours a day the way I used to. Am I to blame because I can't
+manufacture a job for myself? I've got to live, and my wife and my
+children have got to live. But how? What would Jesus do? You say
+that's the question we ought to ask."
+
+Mr. Maxwell sat there staring at the great sea of faces all intent
+on his, and no answer to this man's question seemed for the time
+being to be possible. "O God!" his heart prayed; "this is a question
+that brings up the entire social problem in all its perplexing
+entanglement of human wrongs and its present condition contrary to
+every desire of God for a human being's welfare. Is there any
+condition more awful than for a man in good health, able and eager
+to work, with no means of honest livelihood unless he does work,
+actually unable to get anything to do, and driven to one of three
+things: begging or charity at the hands of friends or strangers,
+suicide or starvation? 'What would Jesus do?'" It was a fair
+question for the man to ask. It was the only question he could ask,
+supposing him to be a disciple of Jesus. But what a question for any
+man to be obliged to answer under such conditions?
+
+All this and more did Henry Maxwell ponder. All the others were
+thinking in the same way. The Bishop sat there with a look so stern
+and sad that it was not hard to tell how the question moved him. Dr.
+Bruce had his head bowed. The human problem had never seemed to him
+so tragical as since he had taken the pledge and left his church to
+enter the Settlement. What would Jesus do? It was a terrible
+question. And still the man stood there, tall and gaunt and almost
+terrible, with his arm stretched out in an appeal which grew every
+second in meaning. At length Mr. Maxwell spoke.
+
+"Is there any man in the room, who is a Christian disciple, who has
+been in this condition and has tried to do as Jesus would do? If so,
+such a man can answer this question better than I can."
+
+There was a moment's hush over the room and then a man near the
+front of the hall slowly rose. He was an old man, and the hand he
+laid on the back of the bench in front of him trembled as he spoke.
+
+"I think I can safely say that I have many times been in just such a
+condition, and I have always tried to be a Christian under all
+conditions. I don't know as I have always asked this question, 'What
+would Jesus do?' when I have been out of work, but I do know I have
+tried to be His disciple at all times. Yes," the man went on, with a
+sad smile that was more pathetic to the Bishop and Mr. Maxwell than
+the younger man's grim despair; "yes, I have begged, and I have been
+to charity institutions, and I have done everything when out of a
+job except steal and lie in order to get food and fuel. I don't know
+as Jesus would have done some of the things I have been obliged to
+do for a living, but I know I have never knowingly done wrong when
+out of work. Sometimes I think maybe He would have starved sooner
+than beg. I don't know."
+
+The old man's voice trembled and he looked around the room timidly.
+A silence followed, broken by a fierce voice from a large,
+black-haired, heavily-bearded man who sat three seats from the
+Bishop. The minute he spoke nearly every man in the hall leaned
+forward eagerly. The man who had asked the question, "What would
+Jesus do in my case?" slowly sat down and whispered to the man next
+to him: "Who's that?"
+
+"That's Carlsen, the Socialist leader. Now you'll hear something."
+
+"This is all bosh, to my mind," began Carlsen, while his great
+bristling beard shook with the deep inward anger of the man. "The
+whole of our system is at fault. What we call civilization is rotten
+to the core. There is no use trying to hide it or cover it up. We
+live in an age of trusts and combines and capitalistic greed that
+means simply death to thousands of innocent men, women and children.
+I thank God, if there is a God--which I very much doubt--that I, for
+one, have never dared to marry and make a home. Home! Talk of hell!
+Is there any bigger one than this man and his three children has on
+his hands right this minute? And he's only one out of thousands. And
+yet this city, and every other big city in this country, has its
+thousands of professed Christians who have all the luxuries and
+comforts, and who go to church Sundays and sing their hymns about
+giving all to Jesus and bearing the cross and following Him all the
+way and being saved! I don't say that there aren't good men and
+women among them, but let the minister who has spoken to us here
+tonight go into any one of a dozen aristocratic churches I could
+name and propose to the members to take any such pledge as the one
+he's mentioned here tonight, and see how quick the people would
+laugh at him for a fool or a crank or a fanatic. Oh, no! That's not
+the remedy. That can't ever amount to anything. We've got to have a
+new start in the way of government. The whole thing needs
+reconstructing. I don't look for any reform worth anything to come
+out of the churches. They are not with the people. They are with the
+aristocrats, with the men of money. The trusts and monopolies have
+their greatest men in the churches. The ministers as a class are
+their slaves. What we need is a system that shall start from the
+common basis of socialism, founded on the rights of the common
+people--"
+
+Carlsen had evidently forgotten all about the three-minutes rule and
+was launching himself into a regular oration that meant, in his
+usual surroundings before his usual audience, an hour at least, when
+the man just behind him pulled him down unceremoniously and arose.
+Carlsen was angry at first and threatened a little disturbance, but
+the Bishop reminded him of the rule, and he subsided with several
+mutterings in his beard, while the next speaker began with a very
+strong eulogy on the value of the single tax as a genuine remedy for
+all the social ills. He was followed by a man who made a bitter
+attack on the churches and ministers, and declared that the two
+great obstacles in the way of all true reform were the courts and
+the ecclesiastical machines.
+
+When he sat down a man who bore every mark of being a street laborer
+sprang to his feet and poured a perfect torrent of abuse against the
+corporations, especially the railroads. The minute his time was up a
+big, brawny fellow, who said he was a metal worker by trade, claimed
+the floor and declared that the remedy for the social wrongs was
+Trades Unionism. This, he said, would bring on the millennium for
+labor more surely than anything else. The next man endeavored to
+give some reasons why so many persons were out of employment, and
+condemned inventions as works of the devil. He was loudly applauded
+by the rest.
+
+Finally the Bishop called time on the "free for all," and asked
+Rachel to sing.
+
+Rachel Winslow had grown into a very strong, healthful, humble
+Christian during that wonderful year in Raymond dating from the
+Sunday when she first took the pledge to do as Jesus would do, and
+her great talent for song had been fully consecrated to the service
+of the Master. When she began to sing tonight at this Settlement
+meeting, she had never prayed more deeply for results to come from
+her voice, the voice which she now regarded as the Master's, to be
+used for Him.
+
+Certainly her prayer was being answered as she sang. She had chosen
+the words,
+
+"Hark! The voice of Jesus calling, Follow me, follow me!"
+
+Again Henry Maxwell, sitting there, was reminded of his first night
+at the Rectangle in the tent when Rachel sang the people into quiet.
+The effect was the same here. What wonderful power a good voice
+consecrated to the Master's service always is! Rachel's great
+natural ability would have made her one of the foremost opera
+singers of the age. Surely this audience had never heard such a
+melody. How could it? The men who had drifted in from the street sat
+entranced by a voice which "back in the world," as the Bishop said,
+never could be heard by the common people because the owner of it
+would charge two or three dollars for the privilege. The song poured
+out through the hall as free and glad as if it were a foretaste of
+salvation itself. Carlsen, with his great, black-bearded face
+uplifted, absorbed the music with the deep love of it peculiar to
+his nationality, and a tear ran over his cheek and glistened in his
+beard as his face softened and became almost noble in its aspect.
+The man out of work who had wanted to know what Jesus would do in
+his place sat with one grimy hand on the back of the bench in front
+of him, with his mouth partly open, his great tragedy for the moment
+forgotten. The song, while it lasted, was food and work and warmth
+and union with his wife and babies once more. The man who had spoken
+so fiercely against the churches and ministers sat with his head
+erect, at first with a look of stolid resistance, as if he
+stubbornly resisted the introduction into the exercises of anything
+that was even remotely connected with the church or its forms of
+worship. But gradually he yielded to the power that was swaying the
+hearts of all the persons in that room, and a look of sad
+thoughtfulness crept over his face.
+
+The Bishop said that night while Rachel was singing that if the
+world of sinful, diseased, depraved, lost humanity could only have
+the gospel preached to it by consecrated prima donnas and
+professional tenors and altos and bassos, he believed it would
+hasten the coming of the Kingdom quicker than any other one force.
+"Why, oh why," he cried in his heart as he listened, "has the
+world's great treasure of song been so often held far from the poor
+because the personal possessor of voice or fingers, capable of
+stirring divinest melody, has so often regarded the gift as
+something with which to make money? Shall there be no martyrs among
+the gifted ones of the earth? Shall there be no giving of this great
+gift as well as of others?"
+
+And Henry Maxwell, again as before, called up that other audience at
+the Rectangle with increasing longing for a larger spread of the new
+discipleship. What he had seen and heard at the Settlement burned
+into him deeper the belief that the problem of the city would be
+solved if the Christians in it should once follow Jesus as He gave
+commandment. But what of this great mass of humanity, neglected and
+sinful, the very kind of humanity the Savior came to save, with all
+its mistakes and narrowness, its wretchedness and loss of hope,
+above all its unqualified bitterness towards the church? That was
+what smote him deepest. Was the church then so far from the Master
+that the people no longer found Him in the church? Was it true that
+the church had lost its power over the very kind of humanity which
+in the early ages of Christianity it reached in the greatest
+numbers? How much was true in what the Socialist leader said about
+the uselessness of looking to the church for reform or redemption,
+because of the selfishness and seclusion and aristocracy of its
+members?
+
+He was more and more impressed with the appalling fact that the
+comparatively few men in that hall, now being held quiet for a while
+by Rachel's voice, represented thousands of others just like them,
+to whom a church and a minister stood for less than a saloon or a
+beer garden as a source of comfort or happiness. Ought it to be so?
+If the church members were all doing as Jesus would do, could it
+remain true that armies of men would walk the streets for jobs and
+hundreds of them curse the church and thousands of them find in the
+saloon their best friend? How far were the Christians responsible
+for this human problem that was personally illustrated right in this
+hall tonight? Was it true that the great city churches would as a
+rule refuse to walk in Jesus' steps so closely as to
+suffer--actually suffer--for His sake?
+
+
+
+
+Chapter Thirty-one
+
+
+HE had planned when he came to the city to return to Raymond and be
+in his own pulpit on Sunday. But Friday morning he had received at
+the Settlement a call from the pastor of one of the largest churches
+in Chicago, and had been invited to fill the pulpit for both morning
+and evening service.
+
+At first he hesitated, but finally accepted, seeing in it the hand
+of the Spirit's guiding power. He would test his own question. He
+would prove the truth or falsity of the charge made against the
+church at the Settlement meeting. How far would it go in its
+self-denial for Jesus' sake? How closely would it walk in His steps?
+Was the church willing to suffer for its Master?
+
+Saturday night he spent in prayer, nearly the whole night. There had
+never been so great a wrestling in his soul, not even during his
+strongest experiences in Raymond. He had in fact entered upon
+another new experience. The definition of his own discipleship was
+receiving an added test at this time, and he was being led into a
+larger truth of the Lord.
+
+Sunday morning the great church was filled to its utmost. Henry
+Maxwell, coming into the pulpit from that all-night vigil, felt the
+pressure of a great curiosity on the part of the people. They had
+heard of the Raymond movement, as all the churches had, and the
+recent action of Dr. Bruce had added to the general interest in the
+pledge. With this curiosity was something deeper, more serious. Mr.
+Maxwell felt that also. And in the knowledge that the Spirit's
+presence was his living strength, he brought his message and gave it
+to that church that day.
+
+He had never been what would be called a great preacher. He had not
+the force nor the quality that makes remarkable preachers. But ever
+since he had promised to do as Jesus would do, he had grown in a
+certain quality of persuasiveness that had all the essentials of
+true eloquence. This morning the people felt the complete sincerity
+and humility of a man who had gone deep into the heart of a great
+truth.
+
+After telling briefly of some results in his own church in Raymond
+since the pledge was taken, he went on to ask the question he had
+been asking since the Settlement meeting. He had taken for his theme
+the story of the young man who came to Jesus asking what he must do
+to obtain eternal life. Jesus had tested him. "Sell all that thou
+hast and give to the poor, and thou shalt have treasure in heaven;
+and come follow me." But the young man was not willing to suffer to
+that extent. If following Jesus meant suffering in that way, he was
+not willing. He would like to follow Jesus, but not if he had to
+give so much.
+
+"Is it true," continued Henry Maxwell, and his fine, thoughtful face
+glowed with a passion of appeal that stirred the people as they had
+seldom been stirred, "is it true that the church of today, the
+church that is called after Christ's own name, would refuse to
+follow Him at the expense of suffering, of physical loss, of
+temporary gain? The statement was made at a large gathering in the
+Settlement last week by a leader of workingmen that it was hopeless
+to look to the church for any reform or redemption of society. On
+what was that statement based? Plainly on the assumption that the
+church contains for the most part men and women who think more 'of
+their own ease and luxury' than of the sufferings and needs and sins
+of humanity. How far is that true? Are the Christians of America
+ready to have their discipleship tested? How about the men who
+possess large wealth? Are they ready to take that wealth and use it
+as Jesus would? How about the men and women of great talent? Are
+they ready to consecrate that talent to humanity as Jesus
+undoubtedly would do?
+
+"Is it not true that the call has come in this age for a new
+exhibition of Christian discipleship? You who live in this great
+sinful city must know that better than I do. Is it possible you can
+go your ways careless or thoughtless of the awful condition of men
+and women and children who are dying, body and soul, for need of
+Christian help? Is it not a matter of concern to you personally that
+the saloon kills its thousands more surely than war? Is it not a
+matter of personal suffering in some form for you that thousands of
+able-bodied, willing men tramp the streets of this city and all
+cities, crying for work and drifting into crime and suicide because
+they cannot find it? Can you say that this is none of your business?
+Let each man look after himself? Would it not be true, think you,
+that if every Christian in America did as Jesus would do, society
+itself, the business world, yes, the very political system under
+which our commercial and governmental activity is carried on, would
+be so changed that human suffering would be reduced to a minimum?
+
+"What would be the result if all the church members of this city
+tried to do as Jesus would do? It is not possible to say in detail
+what the effect would be. But it is easy to say, and it is true,
+that instantly the human problem would begin to find an adequate
+answer.
+
+"What is the test of Christian discipleship? Is it not the same as
+in Christ's own time? Have our surroundings modified or changed the
+test? If Jesus were here today would He not call some of the members
+of this very church to do just what He commanded the young man, and
+ask them to give up their wealth and literally follow Him? I believe
+He would do that if He felt certain that any church member thought
+more of his possessions than of the Savior. The test would be the
+same today as then. I believe Jesus would demand He does demand
+now--as close a following, as much suffering, as great self-denial
+as when He lived in person on the earth and said, 'Except a man
+renounce all that he hath he cannot be my disciple.' That is, unless
+he is willing to do it for my sake, he cannot be my disciple.
+
+"What would be the result if in this city every church member should
+begin to do as Jesus would do? It is not easy to go into details of
+the result. But we all know that certain things would be impossible
+that are now practiced by church members.
+
+"What would Jesus do in the matter of wealth? How would He spend it?
+What principle would regulate His use of money? Would He be likely
+to live in great luxury and spend ten times as much on personal
+adornment and entertainment as He spent to relieve the needs of
+suffering humanity? How would Jesus be governed in the making of
+money? Would He take rentals from saloons and other disreputable
+property, or even from tenement property that was so constructed
+that the inmates had no such things as a home and no such
+possibility as privacy or cleanliness?
+
+"What would Jesus do about the great army of unemployed and
+desperate who tramp the streets and curse the church, or are
+indifferent to it, lost in the bitter struggle for the bread that
+tastes bitter when it is earned on account of the desperate conflict
+to get it? Would Jesus care nothing for them? Would He go His way in
+comparative ease and comfort? Would He say that it was none of His
+business? Would He excuse Himself from all responsibility to remove
+the causes of such a condition?
+
+"What would Jesus do in the center of a civilization that hurries so
+fast after money that the very girls employed in great business
+houses are not paid enough to keep soul and body together without
+fearful temptations so great that scores of them fall and are swept
+over the great boiling abyss; where the demands of trade sacrifice
+hundreds of lads in a business that ignores all Christian duties
+toward them in the way of education and moral training and personal
+affection? Would Jesus, if He were here today as a part of our age
+and commercial industry, feel nothing, do nothing, say nothing, in
+the face of these facts which every business man knows?
+
+"What would Jesus do? Is not that what the disciple ought to do? Is
+he not commanded to follow in His steps? How much is the
+Christianity of the age suffering for Him? Is it denying itself at
+the cost of ease, comfort, luxury, elegance of living? What does the
+age need more than personal sacrifice? Does the church do its duty
+in following Jesus when it gives a little money to establish
+missions or relieve extreme cases of want? Is it any sacrifice for a
+man who is worth ten million dollars simply to give ten thousand
+dollars for some benevolent work? Is he not giving something that
+cost him practically nothing so far as any personal suffering goes?
+Is it true that the Christian disciples today in most of our
+churches are living soft, easy, selfish lives, very far from any
+sacrifice that can be called sacrifice? What would Jesus do?
+
+"It is the personal element that Christian discipleship needs to
+emphasize. 'The gift without the giver is bare.' The Christianity
+that attempts to suffer by proxy is not the Christianity of Christ.
+Each individual Christian business man, citizen, needs to follow in
+His steps along the path of personal sacrifice to Him. There is not
+a different path today from that of Jesus' own times. It is the same
+path. The call of this dying century and of the new one soon to be,
+is a call for a new discipleship, a new following of Jesus, more
+like the early, simple, apostolic Christianity, when the disciples
+left all and literally followed the Master. Nothing but a
+discipleship of this kind can face the destructive selfishness of
+the age with any hope of overcoming it. There is a great quantity of
+nominal Christianity today. There is need of more of the real kind.
+We need revival of the Christianity of Christ. We have,
+unconsciously, lazily, selfishly, formally grown into a discipleship
+that Jesus himself would not acknowledge. He would say to many of us
+when we cry, 'Lord, Lord,' 'I never knew you!' Are we ready to take
+up the cross? Is it possible for this church to sing with exact
+truth,
+
+ 'Jesus, I my cross have taken,
+ All to leave and follow Thee?'
+
+If we can sing that truly, then we may claim discipleship. But if
+our definition of being a Christian is simply to enjoy the
+privileges of worship, be generous at no expense to ourselves, have
+a good, easy time surrounded by pleasant friends and by comfortable
+things, live respectably and at the same time avoid the world's
+great stress of sin and trouble because it is too much pain to bear
+it--if this is our definition of Christianity, surely we are a long
+way from following the steps of Him who trod the way with groans and
+tears and sobs of anguish for a lost humanity; who sweat, as it
+were, great drops of blood, who cried out on the upreared cross, 'My
+God, my God, why hast thou forsaken me?'
+
+"Are we ready to make and live a new discipleship? Are we ready to
+reconsider our definition of a Christian? What is it to be a
+Christian? It is to imitate Jesus. It is to do as He would do. It is
+to walk in His steps."
+
+When Henry Maxwell finished his sermon, he paused and looked at the
+people with a look they never forgot and, at the moment, did not
+understand. Crowded into that fashionable church that day were
+hundreds of men and women who had for years lived the easy,
+satisfied life of a nominal Christianity. A great silence fell over
+the congregation. Through the silence there came to the
+consciousness of all the souls there present a knowledge, stranger
+to them now for years, of a Divine Power. Every one expected the
+preacher to call for volunteers who would do as Jesus would do. But
+Maxwell had been led by the Spirit to deliver his message this time
+and wait for results to come.
+
+He closed the service with a tender prayer that kept the Divine
+Presence lingering very near every hearer, and the people slowly
+rose to go out. Then followed a scene that would have been
+impossible if any mere man had been alone in his striving for
+results.
+
+Men and women in great numbers crowded around the platform to see
+Mr. Maxwell and to bring him the promise of their consecration to
+the pledge to do as Jesus would do. It was a voluntary, spontaneous
+movement that broke upon his soul with a result he could not
+measure. But had he not been praying for is very thing? It was an
+answer that more than met his desires.
+
+There followed this movement a prayer service that in its
+impressions repeated the Raymond experience. In the evening, to Mr.
+Maxwell's joy, the Endeavor Society almost to a member came forward,
+as so many of the church members had done in the morning, and
+seriously, solemnly, tenderly, took the pledge to do as Jesus would
+do. A deep wave of spiritual baptism broke over the meeting near its
+close that was indescribable in its tender, joyful, sympathetic
+results.
+
+That was a remarkable day in the history of that church, but even
+more so in the history of Henry Maxwell. He left the meeting very
+late. He went to his room at the Settlement where he was still
+stopping, and after an hour with the Bishop and Dr. Bruce, spent in
+a joyful rehearsal of the wonderful events of the day, he sat down
+to think over again by himself all the experience he was having as a
+Christian disciple.
+
+He had kneeled to pray, as he always did before going to sleep, and
+it was while he was on his knees that he had a waking vision of what
+might be in the world when once the new discipleship had made its
+way into the conscience and conscientiousness of Christendom. He was
+fully conscious of being awake, but no less certainly did it seem to
+him that he saw certain results with great distinctiveness, partly
+as realities of the future, partly great longings that they might be
+realities. And this is what Henry Maxwell saw in this waking vision:
+
+He saw himself, first, going back to the First Church in Raymond,
+living there in a simpler, more self-denying fashion than he had yet
+been willing to live, because he saw ways in which he could help
+others who were really dependent on him for help. He also saw, more
+dimly, that the time would come when his position as pastor of the
+church would cause him to suffer more on account of growing
+opposition to his interpretation of Jesus and His conduct. But this
+was vaguely outlined. Through it all he heard the words "My grace is
+sufficient for thee."
+
+He saw Rachel Winslow and Virginia Page going on with their work of
+service at the Rectangle, and reaching out loving hands of
+helpfulness far beyond the limits of Raymond. Rachel he saw married
+to Rollin Page, both fully consecrated to the Master's use, both
+following His steps with an eagerness intensified and purified by
+their love for each other. And Rachel's voice sang on, in slums and
+dark places of despair and sin, and drew lost souls back to God and
+heaven once more.
+
+He saw President Marsh of the college using his great learning and
+his great influence to purify the city, to ennoble its patriotism,
+to inspire the young men and women who loved as well as admired him
+to lives of Christian service, always teaching them that education
+means great responsibility for the weak and the ignorant.
+
+He saw Alexander Powers meeting with sore trials in his family life,
+with a constant sorrow in the estrangement of wife and friends, but
+still going his way in all honor, serving in all his strength the
+Master whom he had obeyed, even unto the loss of social distinction
+and wealth.
+
+He saw Milton Wright, the merchant, meeting with great reverses.
+Thrown upon the future by a combination of circumstances, with vast
+business interests involved in ruin through no fault of his own, but
+coming out of his reverses with clean Christian honor, to begin
+again and work up to a position where he could again be to hundreds
+of young men an example of what Jesus would do in business.
+
+He saw Edward Norman, editor of the NEWS, by means of the money
+given by Virginia, creating a force in journalism that in time came
+to be recognized as one of the real factors of the nation to mold
+its principles and actually shape its policy, a daily illustration
+of the might of a Christian press, and the first of a series of such
+papers begun and carried on by other disciples who had also taken
+the pledge.
+
+He saw Jasper Chase, who had denied his Master, growing into a cold,
+cynical, formal life, writing novels that were social successes, but
+each one with a sting in it, the reminder of his denial, the bitter
+remorse that, do what he would, no social success could remove.
+
+He saw Rose Sterling, dependent for some years upon her aunt and
+Felicia, finally married to a man far older than herself, accepting
+the burden of a relation that had no love in it on her part, because
+of her desire to be the wife of a rich man and enjoy the physical
+luxuries that were all of life to her. Over this life also the
+vision cast certain dark and awful shadows but they were not shown
+in detail.
+
+He saw Felicia and Stephen Clyde happily married, living a beautiful
+life together, enthusiastic, joyful in suffering, pouring out their
+great, strong, fragrant service into the dull, dark, terrible places
+of the great city, and redeeming souls through the personal touch of
+their home, dedicated to the Human Homesickness all about them.
+
+He saw Dr. Bruce and the Bishop going on with the Settlement work.
+He seemed to see the great blazing motto over the door enlarged,
+"What would Jesus do?" and by this motto every one who entered the
+Settlement walked in the steps of the Master.
+
+He saw Burns and his companion and a great company of men like them,
+redeemed and giving in turn to others, conquering their passions by
+the divine grace, and proving by their daily lives the reality of
+the new birth even in the lowest and most abandoned.
+
+And now the vision was troubled. It seemed to him that as he kneeled
+he began to pray, and the vision was more of a longing for a future
+than a reality in the future. The church of Jesus in the city and
+throughout the country! Would it follow Jesus? Was the movement
+begun in Raymond to spend itself in a few churches like Nazareth
+Avenue and the one where he had preached today, and then die away as
+a local movement, a stirring on the surface but not to extend deep
+and far? He felt with agony after the vision again. He thought he
+saw the church of Jesus in America open its heart to the moving of
+the Spirit and rise to the sacrifice of its ease and
+self-satisfaction in the name of Jesus. He thought he saw the motto,
+"What would Jesus do?" inscribed over every church door, and written
+on every church member's heart.
+
+The vision vanished. It came back clearer than before, and he saw
+the Endeavor Societies all over the world carrying in their great
+processions at some mighty convention a banner on which was written,
+"What would Jesus do?" And he thought in the faces of the young men
+and women he saw future joy of suffering, loss, self-denial,
+martyrdom. And when this part of the vision slowly faded, he saw the
+figure of the Son of God beckoning to him and to all the other
+actors in his life history. An Angel Choir somewhere was singing.
+There was a sound as of many voices and a shout as of a great
+victory. And the figure of Jesus grew more and more splendid. He
+stood at the end of a long flight of steps. "Yes! Yes! O my Master,
+has not the time come for this dawn of the millennium of Christian
+history? Oh, break upon the Christendom of this age with the light
+and the truth! Help us to follow Thee all the way!"
+
+He rose at last with the awe of one who has looked at heavenly
+things. He felt the human forces and the human sins of the world as
+never before. And with a hope that walks hand in hand with faith and
+love Henry Maxwell, disciple of Jesus, laid him down to sleep and
+dreamed of the regeneration of Christendom, and saw in his dream a
+church of Jesus without spot or wrinkle or any such thing, following
+him all the way, walking obediently in His steps.
+
+
+
+
+THE END
+
+
+
+
+
+
+
+
+
+
+End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of In His Steps, by Charles M. Sheldon
+
+*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK IN HIS STEPS ***
+
+***** This file should be named 4540.txt or 4540.zip *****
+This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
+ https://www.gutenberg.org/4/5/4/4540/
+
+Produced by Charles Aldarondo. HTML version by Al Haines.
+
+Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
+will be renamed.
+
+Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
+one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
+(and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
+permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
+set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
+copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
+protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project
+Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
+charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you
+do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
+rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
+such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
+research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
+practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
+subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
+redistribution.
+
+
+
+*** START: FULL LICENSE ***
+
+THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
+PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
+
+To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
+distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
+(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
+Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
+Gutenberg-tm License (available with this file or online at
+https://gutenberg.org/license).
+
+
+Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic works
+
+1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
+and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
+(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
+the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
+all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
+If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
+terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
+entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
+
+1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
+used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
+agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
+things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
+even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
+paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
+and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works. See paragraph 1.E below.
+
+1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation"
+or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the
+collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
+individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
+located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
+copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
+works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
+are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
+Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
+freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
+this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
+the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
+keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
+Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.
+
+1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
+what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
+a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
+the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
+before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
+creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
+Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
+the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
+States.
+
+1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
+
+1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
+access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
+whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
+phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project
+Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
+copied or distributed:
+
+This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
+almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
+re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
+with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
+
+1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
+from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
+posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
+and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
+or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
+with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the
+work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
+through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
+Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
+1.E.9.
+
+1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
+with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
+must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
+terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
+to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
+permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
+
+1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
+work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
+
+1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
+electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
+prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
+active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
+Gutenberg-tm License.
+
+1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
+compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
+word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
+distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
+"Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version
+posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org),
+you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
+copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
+request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other
+form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
+
+1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
+performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
+unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
+
+1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
+access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
+that
+
+- You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
+ the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
+ you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
+ owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
+ has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
+ Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
+ must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
+ prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
+ returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
+ sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
+ address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to
+ the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."
+
+- You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
+ you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
+ does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
+ License. You must require such a user to return or
+ destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
+ and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
+ Project Gutenberg-tm works.
+
+- You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
+ money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
+ electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
+ of receipt of the work.
+
+- You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
+ distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
+
+1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
+electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
+forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
+both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
+Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the
+Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
+
+1.F.
+
+1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
+effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
+public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
+collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
+"Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
+corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
+property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
+computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
+your equipment.
+
+1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
+of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
+Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
+Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
+Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
+liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
+fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
+LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
+PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH F3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
+TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
+LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
+INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
+DAMAGE.
+
+1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
+defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
+receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
+written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
+received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
+your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
+the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
+refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
+providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
+receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
+is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
+opportunities to fix the problem.
+
+1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
+in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS' WITH NO OTHER
+WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
+WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTIBILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
+
+1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
+warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
+If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
+law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
+interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
+the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
+provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
+
+1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
+trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
+providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
+with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
+promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
+harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
+that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
+or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
+work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
+Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
+
+
+Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
+electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
+including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
+because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
+people in all walks of life.
+
+Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
+assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
+goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
+remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
+Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
+and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
+To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
+and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
+and the Foundation web page at https://www.pglaf.org.
+
+
+Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
+Foundation
+
+The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
+501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
+state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
+Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
+number is 64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at
+https://pglaf.org/fundraising. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
+Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
+permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
+
+The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
+Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
+throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at
+809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email
+business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact
+information can be found at the Foundation's web site and official
+page at https://pglaf.org
+
+For additional contact information:
+ Dr. Gregory B. Newby
+ Chief Executive and Director
+ gbnewby@pglaf.org
+
+
+Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
+Literary Archive Foundation
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
+spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
+increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
+freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
+array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
+($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
+status with the IRS.
+
+The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
+charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
+States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
+considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
+with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
+where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To
+SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
+particular state visit https://pglaf.org
+
+While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
+have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
+against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
+approach us with offers to donate.
+
+International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
+any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
+outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
+
+Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
+methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
+ways including including checks, online payments and credit card
+donations. To donate, please visit: https://pglaf.org/donate
+
+
+Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
+works.
+
+Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
+concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
+with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project
+Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
+
+
+Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
+editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
+unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily
+keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
+
+
+Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
+
+ https://www.gutenberg.org
+
+This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
+including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
+Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
+subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
diff --git a/4540.zip b/4540.zip
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..f4ef118
--- /dev/null
+++ b/4540.zip
Binary files differ
diff --git a/LICENSE.txt b/LICENSE.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6312041
--- /dev/null
+++ b/LICENSE.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,11 @@
+This eBook, including all associated images, markup, improvements,
+metadata, and any other content or labor, has been confirmed to be
+in the PUBLIC DOMAIN IN THE UNITED STATES.
+
+Procedures for determining public domain status are described in
+the "Copyright How-To" at https://www.gutenberg.org.
+
+No investigation has been made concerning possible copyrights in
+jurisdictions other than the United States. Anyone seeking to utilize
+this eBook outside of the United States should confirm copyright
+status under the laws that apply to them.
diff --git a/README.md b/README.md
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..ff7992b
--- /dev/null
+++ b/README.md
@@ -0,0 +1,2 @@
+Project Gutenberg (https://www.gutenberg.org) public repository for
+eBook #4540 (https://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/4540)
diff --git a/old/nhstp10.txt b/old/nhstp10.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..4e33af3
--- /dev/null
+++ b/old/nhstp10.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,8987 @@
+The Project Gutenberg Etext of In His Steps, by Charles M. Sheldon
+
+Copyright laws are changing all over the world. Be sure to check the
+copyright laws for your country before distributing this or any other
+Project Gutenberg file.
+
+We encourage you to keep this file, exactly as it is, on your
+own disk, thereby keeping an electronic path open for future
+readers. Please do not remove this.
+
+This header should be the first thing seen when anyone starts to
+view the etext. Do not change or edit it without written permission.
+The words are carefully chosen to provide users with the
+information they need to understand what they may and may not
+do with the etext.
+
+
+**Welcome To The World of Free Plain Vanilla Electronic Texts**
+
+**Etexts Readable By Both Humans and By Computers, Since 1971**
+
+*****These Etexts Are Prepared By Thousands of Volunteers!*****
+
+Information on contacting Project Gutenberg to get etexts, and
+further information, is included below. We need your donations.
+
+The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a 501(c)(3)
+organization with EIN [Employee Identification Number] 64-6221541
+
+
+
+Title: In His Steps
+
+Author: Charles M. Sheldon
+
+Release Date: October, 2003 [Etext# 4540]
+[Yes, we are more than one year ahead of schedule]
+[This file was first posted on February 5, 2002]
+
+Edition: 10
+
+Language: English
+
+Character set encoding: ASCII
+
+The Project Gutenberg Etext of In His Steps, by Charles M. Sheldon
+*******This file should be named nhstp10.txt or nhstp10.zip*******
+
+Corrected EDITIONS of our etexts get a new NUMBER, nhstp11.txt
+VERSIONS based on separate sources get new LETTER, nhstp10a.txt
+
+Edited by Charles Aldarondo Aldarondo@yahoo.com
+
+
+Project Gutenberg Etexts are often created from several printed
+editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the US
+unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we usually do not
+keep etexts in compliance with any particular paper edition.
+
+We are now trying to release all our etexts one year in advance
+of the official release dates, leaving time for better editing.
+Please be encouraged to tell us about any error or corrections,
+even years after the official publication date.
+
+Please note neither this listing nor its contents are final til
+midnight of the last day of the month of any such announcement.
+The official release date of all Project Gutenberg Etexts is at
+Midnight, Central Time, of the last day of the stated month. A
+preliminary version may often be posted for suggestion, comment
+and editing by those who wish to do so.
+
+Most people start at our sites at:
+http://gutenberg.net or
+http://promo.net/pg
+
+These Web sites include award-winning information about Project
+Gutenberg, including how to donate, how to help produce our new
+etexts, and how to subscribe to our email newsletter (free!).
+
+
+Those of you who want to download any Etext before announcement
+can get to them as follows, and just download by date. This is
+also a good way to get them instantly upon announcement, as the
+indexes our cataloguers produce obviously take a while after an
+announcement goes out in the Project Gutenberg Newsletter.
+
+http://www.ibiblio.org/gutenberg/etext03 or
+ftp://ftp.ibiblio.org/pub/docs/books/gutenberg/etext03
+
+Or /etext02, 01, 00, 99, 98, 97, 96, 95, 94, 93, 92, 92, 91 or 90
+
+Just search by the first five letters of the filename you want,
+as it appears in our Newsletters.
+
+
+Information about Project Gutenberg (one page)
+
+We produce about two million dollars for each hour we work. The
+time it takes us, a rather conservative estimate, is fifty hours
+to get any etext selected, entered, proofread, edited, copyright
+searched and analyzed, the copyright letters written, etc. Our
+projected audience is one hundred million readers. If the value
+per text is nominally estimated at one dollar then we produce $2
+million dollars per hour in 2001 as we release over 50 new Etext
+files per month, or 500 more Etexts in 2000 for a total of 4000+
+If they reach just 1-2% of the world's population then the total
+should reach over 300 billion Etexts given away by year's end.
+
+The Goal of Project Gutenberg is to Give Away One Trillion Etext
+Files by December 31, 2001. [10,000 x 100,000,000 = 1 Trillion]
+This is ten thousand titles each to one hundred million readers,
+which is only about 4% of the present number of computer users.
+
+At our revised rates of production, we will reach only one-third
+of that goal by the end of 2001, or about 4,000 Etexts. We need
+funding, as well as continued efforts by volunteers, to maintain
+or increase our production and reach our goals.
+
+The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation has been created
+to secure a future for Project Gutenberg into the next millennium.
+
+We need your donations more than ever!
+
+As of January, 2002, contributions are being solicited from people
+and organizations in: Alabama, Alaska, Arkansas, Connecticut, Delaware,
+Florida, Georgia, Idaho, Illinois, Indiana, Iowa, Kansas, Kentucky,
+Louisiana, Maine, Michigan, Missouri, Montana, Nebraska, Nevada, New
+Jersey, New Mexico, New York, North Carolina, Oklahoma, Oregon,
+Pennsylvania, Rhode Island, South Carolina, South Dakota, Tennessee,
+Texas, Utah, Vermont, Virginia, Washington, West Virginia, Wisconsin,
+and Wyoming.
+
+*In Progress
+
+We have filed in about 45 states now, but these are the only ones
+that have responded.
+
+As the requirements for other states are met, additions to this list
+will be made and fund raising will begin in the additional states.
+Please feel free to ask to check the status of your state.
+
+In answer to various questions we have received on this:
+
+We are constantly working on finishing the paperwork to legally
+request donations in all 50 states. If your state is not listed and
+you would like to know if we have added it since the list you have,
+just ask.
+
+While we cannot solicit donations from people in states where we are
+not yet registered, we know of no prohibition against accepting
+donations from donors in these states who approach us with an offer to
+donate.
+
+International donations are accepted, but we don't know ANYTHING about
+how to make them tax-deductible, or even if they CAN be made
+deductible, and don't have the staff to handle it even if there are
+ways.
+
+All donations should be made to:
+
+Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
+PMB 113
+1739 University Ave.
+Oxford, MS 38655-4109
+
+Contact us if you want to arrange for a wire transfer or payment
+method other than by check or money order.
+
+
+The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation has been approved by
+the US Internal Revenue Service as a 501(c)(3) organization with EIN
+[Employee Identification Number] 64-622154. Donations are
+tax-deductible to the maximum extent permitted by law. As fundraising
+requirements for other states are met, additions to this list will be
+made and fundraising will begin in the additional states.
+
+We need your donations more than ever!
+
+You can get up to date donation information at:
+
+http://www.gutenberg.net/donation.html
+
+
+***
+
+If you can't reach Project Gutenberg,
+you can always email directly to:
+
+Michael S. Hart <hart@pobox.com>
+
+Prof. Hart will answer or forward your message.
+
+We would prefer to send you information by email.
+
+
+**The Legal Small Print**
+
+
+(Three Pages)
+
+***START**THE SMALL PRINT!**FOR PUBLIC DOMAIN ETEXTS**START***
+Why is this "Small Print!" statement here? You know: lawyers.
+They tell us you might sue us if there is something wrong with
+your copy of this etext, even if you got it for free from
+someone other than us, and even if what's wrong is not our
+fault. So, among other things, this "Small Print!" statement
+disclaims most of our liability to you. It also tells you how
+you may distribute copies of this etext if you want to.
+
+*BEFORE!* YOU USE OR READ THIS ETEXT
+By using or reading any part of this PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
+etext, you indicate that you understand, agree to and accept
+this "Small Print!" statement. If you do not, you can receive
+a refund of the money (if any) you paid for this etext by
+sending a request within 30 days of receiving it to the person
+you got it from. If you received this etext on a physical
+medium (such as a disk), you must return it with your request.
+
+ABOUT PROJECT GUTENBERG-TM ETEXTS
+This PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm etext, like most PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm etexts,
+is a "public domain" work distributed by Professor Michael S. Hart
+through the Project Gutenberg Association (the "Project").
+Among other things, this means that no one owns a United States copyright
+on or for this work, so the Project (and you!) can copy and
+distribute it in the United States without permission and
+without paying copyright royalties. Special rules, set forth
+below, apply if you wish to copy and distribute this etext
+under the "PROJECT GUTENBERG" trademark.
+
+Please do not use the "PROJECT GUTENBERG" trademark to market
+any commercial products without permission.
+
+To create these etexts, the Project expends considerable
+efforts to identify, transcribe and proofread public domain
+works. Despite these efforts, the Project's etexts and any
+medium they may be on may contain "Defects". Among other
+things, Defects may take the form of incomplete, inaccurate or
+corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
+intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged
+disk or other etext medium, a computer virus, or computer
+codes that damage or cannot be read by your equipment.
+
+LIMITED WARRANTY; DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES
+But for the "Right of Replacement or Refund" described below,
+[1] Michael Hart and the Foundation (and any other party you may
+receive this etext from as a PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm etext) disclaims
+all liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including
+legal fees, and [2] YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE OR
+UNDER STRICT LIABILITY, OR FOR BREACH OF WARRANTY OR CONTRACT,
+INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE
+OR INCIDENTAL DAMAGES, EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE
+POSSIBILITY OF SUCH DAMAGES.
+
+If you discover a Defect in this etext within 90 days of
+receiving it, you can receive a refund of the money (if any)
+you paid for it by sending an explanatory note within that
+time to the person you received it from. If you received it
+on a physical medium, you must return it with your note, and
+such person may choose to alternatively give you a replacement
+copy. If you received it electronically, such person may
+choose to alternatively give you a second opportunity to
+receive it electronically.
+
+THIS ETEXT IS OTHERWISE PROVIDED TO YOU "AS-IS". NO OTHER
+WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, ARE MADE TO YOU AS
+TO THE ETEXT OR ANY MEDIUM IT MAY BE ON, INCLUDING BUT NOT
+LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR A
+PARTICULAR PURPOSE.
+
+Some states do not allow disclaimers of implied warranties or
+the exclusion or limitation of consequential damages, so the
+above disclaimers and exclusions may not apply to you, and you
+may have other legal rights.
+
+INDEMNITY
+You will indemnify and hold Michael Hart, the Foundation,
+and its trustees and agents, and any volunteers associated
+with the production and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
+texts harmless, from all liability, cost and expense, including
+legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of the
+following that you do or cause: [1] distribution of this etext,
+[2] alteration, modification, or addition to the etext,
+or [3] any Defect.
+
+DISTRIBUTION UNDER "PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm"
+You may distribute copies of this etext electronically, or by
+disk, book or any other medium if you either delete this
+"Small Print!" and all other references to Project Gutenberg,
+or:
+
+[1] Only give exact copies of it. Among other things, this
+ requires that you do not remove, alter or modify the
+ etext or this "small print!" statement. You may however,
+ if you wish, distribute this etext in machine readable
+ binary, compressed, mark-up, or proprietary form,
+ including any form resulting from conversion by word
+ processing or hypertext software, but only so long as
+ *EITHER*:
+
+ [*] The etext, when displayed, is clearly readable, and
+ does *not* contain characters other than those
+ intended by the author of the work, although tilde
+ (~), asterisk (*) and underline (_) characters may
+ be used to convey punctuation intended by the
+ author, and additional characters may be used to
+ indicate hypertext links; OR
+
+ [*] The etext may be readily converted by the reader at
+ no expense into plain ASCII, EBCDIC or equivalent
+ form by the program that displays the etext (as is
+ the case, for instance, with most word processors);
+ OR
+
+ [*] You provide, or agree to also provide on request at
+ no additional cost, fee or expense, a copy of the
+ etext in its original plain ASCII form (or in EBCDIC
+ or other equivalent proprietary form).
+
+[2] Honor the etext refund and replacement provisions of this
+ "Small Print!" statement.
+
+[3] Pay a trademark license fee to the Foundation of 20% of the
+ gross profits you derive calculated using the method you
+ already use to calculate your applicable taxes. If you
+ don't derive profits, no royalty is due. Royalties are
+ payable to "Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation"
+ the 60 days following each date you prepare (or were
+ legally required to prepare) your annual (or equivalent
+ periodic) tax return. Please contact us beforehand to
+ let us know your plans and to work out the details.
+
+WHAT IF YOU *WANT* TO SEND MONEY EVEN IF YOU DON'T HAVE TO?
+Project Gutenberg is dedicated to increasing the number of
+public domain and licensed works that can be freely distributed
+in machine readable form.
+
+The Project gratefully accepts contributions of money, time,
+public domain materials, or royalty free copyright licenses.
+Money should be paid to the:
+"Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."
+
+If you are interested in contributing scanning equipment or
+software or other items, please contact Michael Hart at:
+hart@pobox.com
+
+[Portions of this header are copyright (C) 2001 by Michael S. Hart
+and may be reprinted only when these Etexts are free of all fees.]
+[Project Gutenberg is a TradeMark and may not be used in any sales
+of Project Gutenberg Etexts or other materials be they hardware or
+software or any other related product without express permission.]
+
+*END THE SMALL PRINT! FOR PUBLIC DOMAIN ETEXTS*Ver.10/04/01*END*
+
+
+
+
+
+
+Edited by Charles Aldarondo Aldarondo@yahoo.com
+
+
+
+
+In His Steps
+
+by
+
+Charles M. Sheldon
+
+
+
+
+
+
+Chapter One
+
+
+
+
+
+"For hereunto were ye called; because Christ also suffered for you,
+leaving you an example, that ye should follow in his steps."
+
+It was Friday morning and the Rev. Henry Maxwell was trying to
+finish his Sunday morning sermon. He had been interrupted several
+times and was growing nervous as the morning wore away, and the
+sermon grew very slowly toward a satisfactory finish.
+
+"Mary," he called to his wife, as he went upstairs after the last
+interruption, "if any one comes after this, I wish you would say I
+am very busy and cannot come down unless it is something very
+important."
+
+"Yes, Henry. But I am going over to visit the kindergarten and you
+will have the house all to yourself."
+
+The minister went up into his study and shut the door. In a few
+minutes he heard his wife go out, and then everything was quiet. He
+settled himself at his desk with a sigh of relief and began to
+write. His text was from 1 Peter 2:21: "For hereunto were ye called;
+because Christ also suffered for you, leaving you an example that ye
+should follow his steps."
+
+He had emphasized in the first part of the sermon the Atonement as a
+personal sacrifice, calling attention to the fact of Jesus'
+suffering in various ways, in His life as well as in His death. He
+had then gone on to emphasize the Atonement from the side of
+example, giving illustrations from the life and teachings of Jesus
+to show how faith in the Christ helped to save men because of the
+pattern or character He displayed for their imitation. He was now on
+the third and last point, the necessity of following Jesus in His
+sacrifice and example.
+
+He had put down "Three Steps. What are they?" and was about to
+enumerate them in logical order when the bell rang sharply. It was
+one of those clock-work bells, and always went off as a clock might
+go if it tried to strike twelve all at once.
+
+Henry Maxwell sat at his desk and frowned a little. He made no
+movement to answer the bell. Very soon it rang again; then he rose
+and walked over to one of his windows which commanded the view of
+the front door. A man was standing on the steps. He was a young man,
+very shabbily dressed.
+
+"Looks like a tramp," said the minister. "I suppose I'll have to go
+down and--"
+
+He did not finish his sentence but he went downstairs and opened the
+front door. There was a moment's pause as the two men stood facing
+each other, then the shabby-looking young man said:
+
+"I'm out of a job, sir, and thought maybe you might put me in the
+way of getting something."
+
+"I don't know of anything. Jobs are scarce--" replied the minister,
+beginning to shut the door slowly.
+
+"I didn't know but you might perhaps be able to give me a line to
+the city railway or the superintendent of the shops, or something,"
+continued the young man, shifting his faded hat from one hand to the
+other nervously.
+
+"It would be of no use. You will have to excuse me. I am very busy
+this morning. I hope you will find something. Sorry I can't give you
+something to do here. But I keep only a horse and a cow and do the
+work myself."
+
+The Rev. Henry Maxwell closed the door and heard the man walk down
+the steps. As he went up into his study he saw from his hall window
+that the man was going slowly down the street, still holding his hat
+between his hands. There was something in the figure so dejected,
+homeless and forsaken that the minister hesitated a moment as he
+stood looking at it. Then he turned to his desk and with a sigh
+began the writing where he had left off.
+
+He had no more interruptions, and when his wife came in two hours
+later the sermon was finished, the loose leaves gathered up and
+neatly tied together, and laid on his Bible all ready for the Sunday
+morning service.
+
+"A queer thing happened at the kindergarten this morning, Henry,"
+said his wife while they were eating dinner. "You know I went over
+with Mrs, Brown to visit the school, and just after the games, while
+the children were at the tables, the door opened and a young man
+came in holding a dirty hat in both hands. He sat down near the door
+and never said a word; only looked at the children. He was evidently
+a tramp, and Miss Wren and her assistant Miss Kyle were a little
+frightened at first, but he sat there very quietly and after a few
+minutes he went out."
+
+"Perhaps he was tired and wanted to rest somewhere. The same man
+called here, I think. Did you say he looked like a tramp?"
+
+"Yes, very dusty, shabby and generally tramp-like. Not more than
+thirty or thirty-three years old, I should say."
+
+"The same man," said the Rev. Henry Maxwell thoughtfully.
+
+"Did you finish your sermon, Henry?" his wife asked after a pause.
+
+"Yes, all done. It has been a very busy week with me. The two
+sermons have cost me a good deal of labor."
+
+"They will be appreciated by a large audience, Sunday, I hope,"
+replied his wife smiling. "What are you going to preach about in the
+morning?"
+
+"Following Christ. I take up the Atonement under the head of
+sacrifice and example, and then show the steps needed to follow His
+sacrifice and example."
+
+"I am sure it is a good sermon. I hope it won't rain Sunday. We have
+had so many stormy Sundays lately."
+
+"Yes, the audiences have been quite small for some time. People will
+not come out to church in a storm." The Rev. Henry Maxwell sighed as
+he said it. He was thinking of the careful, laborious effort he had
+made in preparing sermons for large audiences that failed to appear.
+
+But Sunday morning dawned on the town of Raymond one of the perfect
+days that sometimes come after long periods of wind and mud and
+rain. The air was clear and bracing, the sky was free from all
+threatening signs, and every one in Mr. Maxwell's parish prepared to
+go to church. When the service opened at eleven o'clock the large
+building was filled with an audience of the best-dressed, most
+comfortable looking people of Raymond.
+
+The First Church of Raymond believed in having the best music that
+money could buy, and its quartet choir this morning was a source of
+great pleasure to the congregation. The anthem was inspiring. All
+the music was in keeping with the subject of the sermon. And the
+anthem was an elaborate adaptation to the most modern music of the
+hymn,
+
+ "Jesus, I my cross have taken,
+ All to leave and follow Thee."
+
+Just before the sermon, the soprano sang a solo, the well-known
+hymn,
+
+ "Where He leads me I will follow,
+ I'll go with Him, with Him, all the way."
+
+Rachel Winslow looked very beautiful that morning as she stood up
+behind the screen of carved oak which was significantly marked with
+the emblems of the cross and the crown. Her voice was even more
+beautiful than her face, and that meant a great deal. There was a
+general rustle of expectation over the audience as she rose. Mr.
+Maxwell settled himself contentedly behind the pulpit. Rachel
+Winslow's singing always helped him. He generally arranged for a
+song before the sermon. It made possible a certain inspiration of
+feeling that made his delivery more impressive.
+
+People said to themselves they had never heard such singing even in
+the First Church. It is certain that if it had not been a church
+service, her solo would have been vigorously applauded. It even
+seemed to the minister when she sat down that something like an
+attempted clapping of hands or a striking of feet on the floor swept
+through the church. He was startled by it. As he rose, however, and
+laid his sermon on the Bible, he said to himself he had been
+deceived. Of course it could not occur. In a few moments he was
+absorbed in his sermon and everything else was forgotten in the
+pleasure of his delivery.
+
+No one had ever accused Henry Maxwell of being a dull preacher. On
+the contrary, he had often been charged with being sensational; not
+in what he had said so much as in his way of saying it. But the
+First Church people liked that. It gave their preacher and their
+parish a pleasant distinction that was agreeable.
+
+It was also true that the pastor of the First Church loved to
+preach. He seldom exchanged. He was eager to be in his own pulpit
+when Sunday came. There was an exhilarating half hour for him as he
+faced a church full of people and know that he had a hearing. He was
+peculiarly sensitive to variations in the attendance. He never
+preached well before a small audience. The weather also affected him
+decidedly. He was at his best before just such an audience as faced
+him now, on just such a morning. He felt a glow of satisfaction as
+he went on. The church was the first in the city. It had the best
+choir. It had a membership composed of the leading people,
+representatives of the wealth, society and intelligence of Raymond.
+He was going abroad on a three months vacation in the summer, and
+the circumstances of his pastorate, his influence and his position
+as pastor of the First Church in the city--
+
+It is not certain that the Rev. Henry Maxwell knew just how he could
+carry on that thought in connection with his sermon, but as he drew
+near the end of it he knew that he had at some point in his delivery
+had all those feelings. They had entered into the very substance of
+his thought; it might have been all in a few seconds of time, but he
+had been conscious of defining his position and his emotions as well
+as if he had held a soliloquy, and his delivery partook of the
+thrill of deep personal satisfaction.
+
+The sermon was interesting. It was full of striking sentences. They
+would have commanded attention printed. Spoken with the passion of a
+dramatic utterance that had the good taste never to offend with a
+suspicion of ranting or declamation, they were very effective. If
+the Rev. Henry Maxwell that morning felt satisfied with the
+conditions of his pastorate, the First Church also had a similar
+feeling as it congratulated itself on the presence in the pulpit of
+this scholarly, refined, somewhat striking face and figure,
+preaching with such animation and freedom from all vulgar, noisy or
+disagreeable mannerism.
+
+Suddenly, into the midst of this perfect accord and concord between
+preacher and audience, there came a very remarkable interruption. It
+would be difficult to indicate the extent of the shock which this
+interruption measured. It was so unexpected, so entirely contrary to
+any thought of any person present that it offered no room for
+argument or, for the time being, of resistance.
+
+The sermon had come to a close. Mr. Maxwell had just turned the half
+of the big Bible over upon his manuscript and was about to sit down
+as the quartet prepared to arise to sing the closing selection,
+
+ "All for Jesus, all for Jesus,
+ All my being's ransomed powers..."
+
+when the entire congregation was startled by the sound of a man's
+voice. It came from the rear of the church, from one of the seats
+under the gallery. The next moment the figure of a man came out of
+the shadow there and walked down the middle aisle.
+
+Before the startled congregation fairly realized what was going on
+the man had reached the open space in front of the pulpit and had
+turned about facing the people.
+
+"I've been wondering since I came in here"--they were the words he
+used under the gallery, and he repeated them--"if it would be just
+the thing to say a word at the close of the service. I'm not drunk
+and I'm not crazy, and I am perfectly harmless, but if I die, as
+there is every likelihood I shall in a few days, I want the
+satisfaction of thinking that I said my say in a place like this,
+and before this sort of a crowd."
+
+Henry Maxwell had not taken his seat, and he now remained standing,
+leaning on his pulpit, looking down at the stranger. It was the man
+who had come to his house the Friday before, the same dusty, worn,
+shabby-looking young man. He held his faded hat in his two hands. It
+seemed to be a favorite gesture. He had not been shaved and his hair
+was rough and tangled. It is doubtful if any one like this had ever
+confronted the First Church within the sanctuary. It was tolerably
+familiar with this sort of humanity out on the street, around the
+railroad shops, wandering up and down the avenue, but it had never
+dreamed of such an incident as this so near.
+
+There was nothing offensive in the man's manner or tone. He was not
+excited and he spoke in a low but distinct voice. Mr. Maxwell was
+conscious, even as he stood there smitten into dumb astonishment at
+the event, that somehow the man's action reminded him of a person he
+had once seen walking and talking in his sleep.
+
+No one in the house made any motion to stop the stranger or in any
+way interrupt him. Perhaps the first shock of his sudden appearance
+deepened into a genuine perplexity concerning what was best to do.
+However that may be, he went on as if he had no thought of
+interruption and no thought of the unusual element which he had
+introduced into the decorum of the First Church service. And all the
+while he was speaking, the minister leaded over the pulpit, his face
+growing more white and sad every moment. But he made no movement to
+stop him, and the people sat smitten into breathless silence. One
+other face, that of Rachel Winslow from the choir, stared white and
+intent down at the shabby figure with the faded hat. Her face was
+striking at any time. Under the pressure of the present unheard-of
+incident it was as personally distinct as if it had been framed in
+fire.
+
+"I'm not an ordinary tramp, though I don't know of any teaching of
+Jesus that makes one kind of a tramp less worth saving than another.
+Do you?" He put the question as naturally as if the whole
+congregation had been a small Bible class. He paused just a moment
+and coughed painfully. Then he went on.
+
+"I lost my job ten months ago. I am a printer by trade. The new
+linotype machines are beautiful specimens of invention, but I know
+six men who have killed themselves inside of the year just on
+account of those machines. Of course I don't blame the newspapers
+for getting the machines. Meanwhile, what can a man do? I know I
+never learned but the one trade, and that's all I can do. I've
+tramped all over the country trying to find something. There are a
+good many others like me. I'm not complaining, am I? Just stating
+facts. But I was wondering as I sat there under the gallery, if what
+you call following Jesus is the same thing as what He taught. What
+did He mean when He said: 'Follow Me!'? The minister said,"--here he
+turned about and looked up at the pulpit--"that it is necessary for
+the disciple of Jesus to follow His steps, and he said the steps are
+'obedience, faith, love and imitation.' But I did not hear him tell
+you just what he meant that to mean, especially the last step. What
+do you Christians mean by following the steps of Jesus?
+
+"I've tramped through this city for three days trying to find a job;
+and in all that time I've not had a word of sympathy or comfort
+except from your minister here, who said he was sorry for me and
+hoped I would find a job somewhere. I suppose it is because you get
+so imposed on by the professional tramp that you have lost your
+interest in any other sort. I'm not blaming anybody, am I? Just
+stating facts. Of course, I understand you can't all go out of your
+way to hunt up jobs for other people like me. I'm not asking you to;
+but what I feel puzzled about is, what is meant by following Jesus.
+What do you mean when you sing 'I'll go with Him, with Him, all the
+way?' Do you mean that you are suffering and denying yourselves and
+trying to save lost, suffering humanity just as I understand Jesus
+did? What do you mean by it? I see the ragged edge of things a good
+deal. I understand there are more than five hundred men in this city
+in my case. Most of them have families. My wife died four months
+ago. I'm glad she is out of trouble. My little girl is staying with
+a printer's family until I find a job. Somehow I get puzzled when I
+see so many Christians living in luxury and singing 'Jesus, I my
+cross have taken, all to leave and follow Thee,' and remember how my
+wife died in a tenement in New York City, gasping for air and asking
+God to take the little girl too. Of course I don't expect you people
+can prevent every one from dying of starvation, lack of proper
+nourishment and tenement air, but what does following Jesus mean? I
+understand that Christian people own a good many of the tenements. A
+member of a church was the owner of the one where my wife died, and
+I have wondered if following Jesus all the way was true in his case.
+I heard some people singing at a church prayer meeting the other
+night,
+
+ 'All for Jesus, all for Jesus,
+ All my being's ransomed powers,
+ All my thoughts, and all my doings,
+ All my days, and all my hours.'
+
+and I kept wondering as I sat on the steps outside just what they
+meant by it. It seems to me there's an awful lot of trouble in the
+world that somehow wouldn't exist if all the people who sing such
+songs went and lived them out. I suppose I don't understand. But
+what would Jesus do? Is that what you mean by following His steps?
+It seems to me sometimes as if the people in the big churches had
+good clothes and nice houses to live in, and money to spend for
+luxuries, and could go away on summer vacations and all that, while
+the people outside the churches, thousands of them, I mean, die in
+tenements, and walk the streets for jobs, and never have a piano or
+a picture in the house, and grow up in misery and drunkenness and
+sin."
+
+The man suddenly gave a queer lurch over in the direction of the
+communion table and laid one grimy hand on it. His hat fell upon the
+carpet at his feet. A stir went through the congregation. Dr. West
+half rose from his pew, but as yet the silence was unbroken by any
+voice or movement worth mentioning in the audience. The man passed
+his other hand across his eyes, and then, without any warning, fell
+heavily forward on his face, full length up the aisle. Henry Maxwell
+spoke:
+
+"We will consider the service closed."
+
+
+
+
+
+
+Chapter Two
+
+
+
+
+
+Henry Maxwell and a group of his church members remained some time
+in the study. The man lay on the couch there and breathed heavily.
+When the question of what to do with him came up, the minister
+insisted on taking the man to his own house; he lived near by and
+had an extra room. Rachel Winslow said:
+
+"Mother has no company at present. I am sure we would be glad to
+give him a place with us."
+
+She looked strongly agitated. No one noticed it particularly. They
+were all excited over the strange event, the strangest that First
+Church people could remember. But the minister insisted on taking
+charge of the man, and when a carriage came the unconscious but
+living form was carried to his house; and with the entrance of that
+humanity into the minister's spare room a new chapter in Henry
+Maxwell's life began, and yet no one, himself least of all, dreamed
+of the remarkable change it was destined to make in all his after
+definition of the Christian discipleship.
+
+The event created a great sensation in the First Church parish.
+People talked of nothing else for a week. It was the general
+impression that the man had wandered into the church in a condition
+of mental disturbance caused by his troubles, and that all the time
+he was talking he was in a strange delirium of fever and really
+ignorant of his surroundings. That was the most charitable
+construction to put upon his action. It was the general agreement
+also that there was a singular absence of anything bitter or
+complaining in what the man had said. He had, throughout, spoken in
+a mild, apologetic tone, almost as if he were one of the
+congregation seeking for light on a very difficult subject.
+
+The third day after his removal to the minister's house there was a
+marked change in his condition. The doctor spoke of it but offered
+no hope. Saturday morning he still lingered, although he had rapidly
+failed as the week drew near its close. Sunday morning, just before
+the clock struck one, he rallied and asked if his child had come.
+The minister had sent for her at once as soon as he had been able to
+secure her address from some letters found in the man's pocket. He
+had been conscious and able to talk coherently only a few moments
+since his attack.
+
+"The child is coming. She will be here," Mr. Maxwell said as he sat
+there, his face showing marks of the strain of the week's vigil; for
+he had insisted on sitting up nearly every night.
+
+"I shall never see her in this world," the man whispered. Then he
+uttered with great difficulty the words, "You have been good to me.
+Somehow I feel as if it was what Jesus would do."
+
+After a few minutes he turned his head slightly, and before Mr.
+Maxwell could realize the fact, the doctor said quietly, "He is
+gone."
+
+The Sunday morning that dawned on the city of Raymond was exactly
+like the Sunday of a week before. Mr. Maxwell entered his pulpit to
+face one of the largest congregations that had ever crowded the
+First Church. He was haggard and looked as if he had just risen from
+a long illness. His wife was at home with the little girl, who had
+come on the morning train an hour after her father had died. He lay
+in that spare room, his troubles over, and the minister could see
+the face as he opened the Bible and arranged his different notices
+on the side of the desk as he had been in the habit of doing for ten
+years.
+
+The service that morning contained a new element. No one could
+remember when Henry Maxwell had preached in the morning without
+notes. As a matter of fact he had done so occasionally when he first
+entered the ministry, but for a long time he had carefully written
+every word of his morning sermon, and nearly always his evening
+discourses as well. It cannot be said that his sermon this morning
+was striking or impressive. He talked with considerable hesitation.
+It was evident that some great idea struggled in his thought for
+utterance, but it was not expressed in the theme he had chosen for
+his preaching. It was near the close of his sermon that he began to
+gather a certain strength that had been painfully lacking at the
+beginning.
+
+He closed the Bible and, stepping out at the side of the desk, faced
+his people and began to talk to them about the remarkable scene of
+the week before.
+
+"Our brother," somehow the words sounded a little strange coming
+from his lips, "passed away this morning. I have not yet had time to
+learn all his history. He had one sister living in Chicago. I have
+written her and have not yet received an answer. His little girl is
+with us and will remain for the time."
+
+He paused and looked over the house. He thought he had never seen so
+many earnest faces during his entire pastorate. He was not able yet
+to tell his people his experiences, the crisis through which he was
+even now moving. But something of his feeling passed from him to
+them, and it did not seem to him that he was acting under a careless
+impulse at all to go on and break to them this morning something of
+the message he bore in his heart.
+
+So he went on: "The appearance and words of this stranger in the
+church last Sunday made a very powerful impression on me. I am not
+able to conceal from you or myself the fact that what he said,
+followed as it has been by his death in my house, has compelled me
+to ask as I never asked before 'What does following Jesus mean?' I
+am not in a position yet to utter any condemnation of this people
+or, to a certain extent, of myself, either in our Christ-like
+relations to this man or the numbers that he represents in the
+world. But all that does not prevent me from feeling that much that
+the man said was so vitally true that we must face it in an attempt
+to answer it or else stand condemned as Christian disciples. A good
+deal that was said here last Sunday was in the nature of a challenge
+to Christianity as it is seen and felt in our churches. I have felt
+this with increasing emphasis every day since.
+
+"And I do not know that any time is more appropriate than the
+present for me to propose a plan, or a purpose, which has been
+forming in my mind as a satisfactory reply to much that was said
+here last Sunday."
+
+Again Henry Maxwell paused and looked into the faces of his people.
+There were some strong, earnest men and women in the First Church.
+
+He could see Edward Norman, editor of the Raymond DAILY NEWS. He had
+been a member of the First Church for ten years.
+
+No man was more honored in the community. There was Alexander
+Powers, superintendent of the great railroad shops in Raymond, a
+typical railroad man, one who had been born into the business. There
+sat Donald Marsh, president of Lincoln College, situated in the
+suburbs of Raymond. There was Milton Wright, one of the great
+merchants of Raymond, having in his employ at least one hundred men
+in various shops. There was Dr. West who, although still
+comparatively young, was quoted as authority in special surgical
+cases. There was young Jasper Chase the author, who had written one
+successful book and was said to be at work on a new novel. There was
+Miss Virginia Page the heiress, who through the recent death of her
+father had inherited a million at least, and was gifted with unusual
+attractions of person and intellect. And not least of all, Rachel
+Winslow, from her seat in the choir, glowed with her peculiar beauty
+of light this morning because she was so intensely interested in the
+whole scene.
+
+There was some reason, perhaps, in view of such material in the
+First Church, for Henry Maxwell's feeling of satisfaction whenever
+he considered his parish as he had the previous Sunday. There was an
+unusually large number of strong, individual characters who claimed
+membership there. But as he noted their faces this morning he was
+simply wondering how many of them would respond to the strange
+proposition he was about to make. He continued slowly, taking time
+to choose his words carefully, and giving the people an impression
+they had never felt before, even when he was at his best with his
+most dramatic delivery.
+
+"What I am going to propose now is something which ought not to
+appear unusual or at all impossible of execution. Yet I am aware
+that it will be so regarded by a large number, perhaps, of the
+members of this church. But in order that we may have a thorough
+understanding of what we are considering, I will put my proposition
+very plainly, perhaps bluntly. I want volunteers from the First
+Church who will pledge themselves, earnestly and honestly for an
+entire year, not to do anything without first asking the question,
+'What would Jesus do?' And after asking that question, each one will
+follow Jesus as exactly as he knows how, no matter what the result
+may be. I will of course include myself in this company of
+volunteers, and shall take for granted that my church here will not
+be surprised at my future conduct, as based upon this standard of
+action, and will not oppose whatever is done if they think Christ
+would do it. Have I made my meaning clear? At the close of the
+service I want all those members who are willing to join such a
+company to remain and we will talk over the details of the plan. Our
+motto will be, 'What would Jesus do?' Our aim will be to act just as
+He would if He was in our places, regardless of immediate results.
+In other words, we propose to follow Jesus' steps as closely and as
+literally as we believe He taught His disciples to do. And those who
+volunteer to do this will pledge themselves for an entire year,
+beginning with today, so to act."
+
+Henry Maxwell paused again and looked out over his people. It is not
+easy to describe the sensation that such a simple proposition
+apparently made. Men glanced at one another in astonishment. It was
+not like Henry Maxwell to define Christian discipleship in this way.
+There was evident confusion of thought over his proposition. It was
+understood well enough, but there was, apparently, a great
+difference of opinion as to the application of Jesus' teaching and
+example.
+
+He calmly closed the service with a brief prayer. The organist began
+his postlude immediately after the benediction and the people began
+to go out. There was a great deal of conversation. Animated groups
+stood all over the church discussing the minister's proposition. It
+was evidently provoking great discussion. After several minutes he
+asked all who expected to remain to pass into the lecture-room which
+joined the large room on the side. He was himself detained at the
+front of the church talking with several persons there, and when he
+finally turned around, the church was empty. He walked over to the
+lecture-room entrance and went in. He was almost startled to see the
+people who were there. He had not made up his mind about any of his
+members, but he had hardly expected that so many were ready to enter
+into such a literal testing of their Christian discipleship as now
+awaited him. There were perhaps fifty present, among them Rachel
+Winslow and Virginia Page, Mr. Norman, President Marsh, Alexander
+Powers the railroad superintendent, Milton Wright, Dr. West and
+Jasper Chase.
+
+He closed the door of the lecture-room and went and stood before the
+little group. His face was pale and his lips trembled with genuine
+emotion. It was to him a genuine crisis in his own life and that of
+his parish. No man can tell until he is moved by the Divine Spirit
+what he may do, or how he may change the current of a lifetime of
+fixed habits of thought and speech and action. Henry Maxwell did
+not, as we have said, yet know himself all that he was passing
+through, but he was conscious of a great upheaval in his definition
+of Christian discipleship, and he was moved with a depth of feeling
+he could not measure as he looked into the faces of those men and
+women on this occasion.
+
+It seemed to him that the most fitting word to be spoken first was
+that of prayer. He asked them all to pray with him. And almost with
+the first syllable he uttered there was a distinct presence of the
+Spirit felt by them all. As the prayer went on, this presence grew
+in power. They all felt it. The room was filled with it as plainly
+as if it had been visible. When the prayer closed there was a
+silence that lasted several moments. All the heads were bowed. Henry
+Maxwell's face was wet with tears. If an audible voice from heaven
+had sanctioned their pledge to follow the Master's steps, not one
+person present could have felt more certain of the divine blessing.
+And so the most serious movement ever started in the First Church of
+Raymond was begun.
+
+"We all understand," said he, speaking very quietly, "what we have
+undertaken to do. We pledge ourselves to do everything in our daily
+lives after asking the question, 'What would Jesus do?' regardless
+of what may be the result to us. Some time I shall be able to tell
+you what a marvelous change has come over my life within a week's
+time. I cannot now. But the experience I have been through since
+last Sunday has left me so dissatisfied with my previous definition
+of Christian discipleship that I have been compelled to take this
+action. I did not dare begin it alone. I know that I am being led by
+the hand of divine love in all this. The same divine impulse must
+have led you also.
+
+"Do we understand fully what we have undertaken?"
+
+"I want to ask a question," said Rachel Winslow. Every one turned
+towards her. Her face glowed with a beauty that no physical
+loveliness could ever create.
+
+"I am a little in doubt as to the source of our knowledge concerning
+what Jesus would do. Who is to decide for me just what He would do
+in my case? It is a different age. There are many perplexing
+questions in our civilization that are not mentioned in the
+teachings of Jesus. How am I going to tell what He would do?"
+
+"There is no way that I know of," replied the pastor, "except as we
+study Jesus through the medium of the Holy Spirit. You remember what
+Christ said speaking to His disciples about the Holy Spirit:
+"Howbeit when he, the Spirit of truth, is come, he shall guide you
+into all the truth: for he shall not speak from himself; but what
+things soever he shall hear, these shall he speak: and he shall
+declare unto you the things that are to come. He shall glorify me;
+for he shall take of mine, and shall declare it unto you. All things
+whatsoever the Father hath are mine: therefore said I, that he
+taketh of mine, and shall declare it unto you.' There is no other
+test that I know of. We shall all have to decide what Jesus would do
+after going to that source of knowledge."
+
+"What if others say of us, when we do certain things, that Jesus
+would not do so?" asked the superintendent of railroads.
+
+"We cannot prevent that. But we must be absolutely honest with
+ourselves. The standard of Christian action cannot vary in most of
+our acts."
+
+"And yet what one church member thinks Jesus would do, another
+refuses to accept as His probable course of action. What is to
+render our conduct uniformly Christ-like? Will it be possible to
+reach the same conclusions always in all cases?" asked President
+Marsh.
+
+Mr. Maxwell was silent some time. Then he answered, "No; I don't
+know that we can expect that. But when it comes to a genuine,
+honest, enlightened following of Jesus' steps, I cannot believe
+there will be any confusion either in our own minds or in the
+judgment of others. We must be free from fanaticism on one hand and
+too much caution on the other. If Jesus' example is the example for
+the world to follow, it certainly must be feasible to follow it. But
+we need to remember this great fact. After we have asked the Spirit
+to tell us what Jesus would do and have received an answer to it, we
+are to act regardless of the results to ourselves. Is that
+understood?"
+
+All the faces in the room were raised towards the minister in solemn
+assent. There was no misunderstanding that proposition. Henry
+Maxwell's face quivered again as he noted the president of the
+Endeavor Society with several members seated back of the older men
+and women.
+
+
+
+
+
+
+Chapter Three
+
+
+
+
+
+"He that saith he abideth in Him ought himself also to walk even as
+He walked."
+
+EDWARD NORMAN, editor Of the Raymond DAILY NEWS, sat in his office
+room Monday morning and faced a new world of action. He had made his
+pledge in good faith to do everything after asking "What would Jesus
+do?" and, as he supposed, with his eyes open to all the possible
+results. But as the regular life of the paper started on another
+week's rush and whirl of activity, he confronted it with a degree of
+hesitation and a feeling nearly akin to fear.
+
+He had come down to the office very early, and for a few minutes was
+by himself. He sat at his desk in a growing thoughtfulness that
+finally became a desire which he knew was as great as it was
+unusual. He had yet to learn, with all the others in that little
+company pledged to do the Christlike thing, that the Spirit of Life
+was moving in power through his own life as never before. He rose
+and shut his door, and then did what he had not done for years. He
+kneeled down by his desk and prayed for the Divine Presence and
+wisdom to direct him.
+
+He rose with the day before him, and his promise distinct and clear
+in his mind. "Now for action," he seemed to say. But he would be led
+by events as fast as they came on.
+
+He opened his door and began the routine of the office work. The
+managing editor had just come in and was at his desk in the
+adjoining room. One of the reporters there was pounding out
+something on a typewriter. Edward Norman began to write an
+editorial. The DAILY NEWS was an evening paper, and Norman usually
+completed his leading editorial before nine o'clock.
+
+He had been writing for fifteen minutes when the managing editor
+called out: "Here's this press report of yesterday's prize fight at
+the Resort. It will make up three columns and a half. I suppose it
+all goes in?"
+
+Norman was one of those newspaper men who keep an eye on every
+detail of the paper. The managing editor always consulted his chief
+in matters of both small and large importance. Sometimes, as in this
+case, it was merely a nominal inquiry.
+
+"Yes--No. Let me see it."
+
+He took the type-written matter just as it came from the telegraph
+editor and ran over it carefully. Then he laid the sheets down on
+his desk and did some very hard thinking.
+
+"We won't run this today," he said finally.
+
+The managing editor was standing in the doorway between the two
+rooms. He was astounded at his chief's remark, and thought he had
+perhaps misunderstood him.
+
+"What did you say?"
+
+"Leave it out. We won't use it."
+
+"But" The managing editor was simply dumbfounded. He stared at
+Norman as if the man was out of his mind.
+
+"I don't think, Clark, that it ought to be printed, and that's the
+end of it," said Norman, looking up from his desk.
+
+Clark seldom had any words with the chief. His word had always been
+law in the office and he had seldom been known to change his mind.
+The circumstances now, however, seemed to be so extraordinary that
+Clark could not help expressing himself.
+
+"Do you mean that the paper is to go to press without a word of the
+prize fight in it?"
+
+"Yes. That's what I mean."
+
+"But it's unheard of. All the other papers will print it. What will
+our subscribers say? Why, it is simply--" Clark paused, unable to
+find words to say what he thought.
+
+Norman looked at Clark thoughtfully. The managing editor was a
+member of a church of a different denomination from that of
+Norman's. The two men had never talked together on religious matters
+although they had been associated on the paper for several years.
+
+"Come in here a minute, Clark, and shut the door," said Norman.
+
+Clark came in and the two men faced each other alone. Norman did not
+speak for a minute. Then he said abruptly: "Clark, if Christ was
+editor of a daily paper, do you honestly think He would print three
+columns and a half of prize fight in it?"
+
+"No, I don't suppose He would."
+
+"Well, that's my only reason for shutting this account out of the
+NEWS. I have decided not to do a thing in connection with the paper
+for a whole year that I honestly believe Jesus would not do."
+
+Clark could not have looked more amazed if the chief had suddenly
+gone crazy. In fact, he did think something was wrong, though Mr.
+Norman was one of the last men in the world, in his judgment, to
+lose his mind.
+
+"What effect will that have on the paper?" he finally managed to ask
+in a faint voice.
+
+"What do you think?" asked Norman with a keen glance.
+
+"I think it will simply ruin the paper," replied Clark promptly. He
+was gathering up his bewildered senses, and began to remonstrate,
+"Why, it isn't feasible to run a paper nowadays on any such basis.
+It's too ideal. The world isn't ready for it. You can't make it pay.
+Just as sure as you live, if you shut out this prize fight report
+you will lose hundreds of subscribers. It doesn't take a prophet to
+see that. The very best people in town are eager to read it. They
+know it has taken place, and when they get the paper this evening
+they will expect half a page at least. Surely, you can't afford to
+disregard the wishes of the public to such an extent. It will be a
+great mistake if you do, in my opinion."
+
+Norman sat silent a minute. Then he spoke gently but firmly.
+
+"Clark, what in your honest opinion is the right standard for
+determining conduct? Is the only right standard for every one, the
+probable action of Jesus Christ? Would you say that the highest,
+best law for a man to live by was contained in asking the question,
+What would Jesus do?' And then doing it regardless of results? In
+other words, do you think men everywhere ought to follow Jesus'
+example as closely as they can in their daily lives?" Clark turned
+red, and moved uneasily in his chair before he answered the editor's
+question.
+
+"Why--yes--I suppose if you put it on the ground of what men ought
+to do there is no other standard of conduct. But the question is,
+What is feasible? Is it possible to make it pay? To succeed in the
+newspaper business we have got to conform to custom and the
+recognized methods of society. We can't do as we would in an ideal
+world."
+
+"Do you mean that we can't run the paper strictly on Christian
+principles and make it succeed?"
+
+"Yes, that's just what I mean. It can't be done. We'll go bankrupt
+in thirty days."
+
+Norman did not reply at once. He was very thoughtful.
+
+"We shall have occasion to talk this over again, Clark. Meanwhile I
+think we ought to understand each other frankly. I have pledged
+myself for a year to do everything connected with the paper after
+answering the question, What would Jesus do?' as honestly as
+possible. I shall continue to do this in the belief that not only
+can we succeed but that we can succeed better than we ever did."
+
+Clark rose. "The report does not go in?"
+
+"It does not. There is plenty of good material to take its place,
+and you know what it is."
+
+Clark hesitated. "Are you going to say anything about the absence of
+the report?"
+
+"No, let the paper go to press as if there had been no such thing as
+a prize fight yesterday."
+
+Clark walked out of the room to his own desk feeling as if the
+bottom had dropped out of everything. He was astonished, bewildered,
+excited and considerably angered. His great respect for Norman
+checked his rising indignation and disgust, but with it all was a
+feeling of growing wonder at the sudden change of motive which had
+entered the office of the DAILY NEWS and threatened, as he firmly
+believed, to destroy it.
+
+Before noon every reporter, pressman and employee on the DAILY NEWS
+was informed of the remarkable fact that the paper was going to
+press without a word in it about the famous prize fight of Sunday.
+The reporters were simply astonished beyond measure at the
+announcement of the fact. Every one in the stereotyping and
+composing rooms had something to say about the unheard of omission.
+Two or three times during the day when Mr. Norman had occasion to
+visit the composing rooms the men stopped their work or glanced
+around their cases looking at him curiously. He knew that he was
+being observed, but said nothing and did not appear to note it.
+
+There had been several minor changes in the paper, suggested by the
+editor, but nothing marked. He was waiting and thinking deeply.
+
+He felt as if he needed time and considerable opportunity for the
+exercise of his best judgment in several matters before he answered
+his ever present question in the right way. It was not because there
+were not a great many things in the life of the paper that were
+contrary to the spirit of Christ that he did not act at once, but
+because he was yet honestly in doubt concerning what action Jesus
+would take.
+
+When the DAILY NEWS came out that evening it carried to its
+subscribers a distinct sensation.
+
+The presence of the report of the prize fight could not have
+produced anything equal to the effect of its omission. Hundreds of
+men in the hotels and stores down town, as well as regular
+subscribers, eagerly opened the paper and searched it through for
+the account of the great fight; not finding it, they rushed to the
+NEWS stands and bought other papers. Even the newsboys had not a
+understood the fact of omission. One of them was calling out "DAILY
+NEWS! Full 'count great prize fight 't Resort. NEWS, sir?"
+
+A man on the corner of the avenue close by the NEWS office bought
+the paper, looked over its front page hurriedly and then angrily
+called the boy back.
+
+"Here, boy! What's the matter with your paper? There's no prize
+fight here! What do you mean by selling old papers?"
+
+"Old papers nuthin'!" replied the boy indignantly. "Dat's today's
+paper. What's de matter wid you?"
+
+"But there is no account of the prize fight here! Look!"
+
+The man handed back the paper and the boy glanced at k hurriedly.
+Then he whistled, while a bewildered look crept over his face.
+Seeing another boy running by with papers he called out "Say, Sam,
+le'me see your pile." A hasty examination revealed the remarkable
+fact that all the copies of the NEWS were silent on the subject of
+the prize fight.
+
+"Here, give me another paper!" shouted the customer; "one with the
+prize fight account."
+
+He received it and walked off, while the two boys remained comparing
+notes and lost in wonder at the result. "Sump'n slipped a cog in the
+Newsy, sure," said the first boy. But he couldn't tell why, and ran
+over to the NEWS office to find out.
+
+There were several other boys at the delivery room and they were all
+excited and disgusted. The amount of slangy remonstrance hurled at
+the clerk back of the long counter would have driven any one else to
+despair.
+
+He was used to more or less of it all the time, and consequently
+hardened to it. Mr. Norman was just coming downstairs on his way
+home, and he paused as he went by the door of the delivery room and
+looked in.
+
+"What's the matter here, George?" he asked the clerk as he noted the
+unusual confusion.
+
+"The boys say they can't sell any copies of the NEWS tonight because
+the prize fight isn't in it," replied George, looking curiously at
+the editor as so many of the employees had done during the day. Mr.
+Norman hesitated a moment, then walked into the room and confronted
+the boys.
+
+"How many papers are there here? Boys, count them out, and I'll buy
+them tonight."
+
+There was a combined stare and a wild counting of papers on the part
+of the boys.
+
+"Give them their money, George, and if any of the other boys come in
+with the same complaint buy their unsold copies. Is that fair?" he
+asked the boys who were smitten into unusual silence by the unheard
+of action on the part of the editor.
+
+"Fair! Well, I should--But will you keep this up? Will dis be a
+continual performance for the benefit of de fraternity?"
+
+Mr. Norman smiled slightly but he did not think it was necessary to
+answer the question.
+
+He walked out of the office and went home. On the way he could not
+avoid that constant query, "Would Jesus have done it?" It was not so
+much with reference to this last transaction as to the entire motive
+that had urged him on since he had made the promise.
+
+The newsboys were necessarily sufferers through the action he had
+taken. Why should they lose money by it? They were not to blame. He
+was a rich man and could afford to put a little brightness into
+their lives if he chose to do it. He believed, as he went on his way
+home, that Jesus would have done either what he did or something
+similar in order to be free from any possible feeling of injustice.
+
+
+
+
+
+
+Chapter Four
+
+
+
+
+
+DURING the week he was in receipt of numerous letters commenting on
+the absence from the News of the account of the prize fight. Two or
+three of these letters may be of interest.
+
+Editor of the News:
+
+Dear Sir--I have been thinking for some time of changing my paper. I
+want a journal that is up to the times, progressive and
+enterprising, supplying the public demand at all points. The recent
+freak of your paper in refusing to print the account of the famous
+contest at the Resort has decided me finally to change my paper.
+
+Please discontinue it.
+
+Very truly yours,-------
+
+Here followed the name of a business man who had been a subscriber
+for many years.
+
+Edward Norman,
+
+Editor of the Daily News, Raymond:
+
+Dear Ed.--What is this sensation you have given the people of your
+burg? What new policy have you taken up? Hope you don't intend to
+try the "Reform Business" through the avenue of the press. It's
+dangerous to experiment much along that line. Take my advice and
+stick to the enterprising modern methods you have made so successful
+for the News. The public wants prize fights and such. Give it what
+it wants, and let some one else do the reforming business.
+
+Yours,-------
+
+Here followed the name of one of Norman's old friends, the editor of
+a daily in an adjoining town.
+
+My Dear Mr. Norman:
+
+I hasten to write you a note of appreciation for the evident
+carrying out of your promise. It is a splendid beginning and no one
+feels the value of it more than I do. I know something of what it
+will cost you, but not all. Your pastor,
+
+HENRY MAXWELL.
+
+One other letter which he opened immediately after reading this from
+Maxwell revealed to him something of the loss to his business that
+possibly awaited him.
+
+Mr. Edward Norman,
+
+Editor of the Daily News:
+
+Dear Sir--At the expiration of my advertising limit, you will do me
+the favor not to continue it as you have done heretofore. I enclose
+check for payment in full and shall consider my account with your
+paper closed after date.
+
+Very truly yours,-------
+
+Here followed the name of one of the largest dealers in tobacco in
+the city. He had been in the habit of inserting a column of
+conspicuous advertising and paying for it a very large price.
+
+Norman laid this letter down thoughtfully, and then after a moment
+he took up a copy of his paper and looked through the advertising
+columns. There was no connection implied in the tobacco merchant's
+letter between the omission of the prize fight and the withdrawal of
+the advertisement, but he could not avoid putting the two together.
+In point of fact, he afterward learned that the tobacco dealer
+withdrew his advertisement because he had heard that the editor of
+the NEWS was about to enter upon some queer reform policy that would
+be certain to reduce its subscription list.
+
+But the letter directed Norman's attention to the advertising phase
+of his paper. He had not considered this before.
+
+As he glanced over the columns he could not escape the conviction
+that his Master could not permit some of them in his paper.
+
+What would He do with that other long advertisement of choice
+liquors and cigars? As a member of a church and a respected citizen,
+he had incurred no special censure because the saloon men advertised
+in his columns. No one thought anything about it. It was all
+legitimate business. Why not? Raymond enjoyed a system of high
+license, and the saloon and the billiard hall and the beer garden
+were a part of the city's Christian civilization. He was simply
+doing what every other business man in Raymond did. And it was one
+of the best paying sources of revenue. What would the paper do if it
+cut these out? Could it live? That was the question. But was that
+the question after all? "What would Jesus do?" That was the question
+he was answering, or trying to answer, this week. Would Jesus
+advertise whiskey and tobacco in his paper?
+
+Edward Norman asked it honestly, and after a prayer for help and
+wisdom he asked Clark to come into the office.
+
+Clark came in, feeling that the paper was at a crisis, and prepared
+for almost anything after his Monday morning experience. This was
+Thursday.
+
+"Clark," said Norman, speaking slowly and carefully, "I have been
+looking at our advertising columns and have decided to dispense with
+some of the matter as soon as the contracts run out. I wish you
+would notify the advertising agent not to solicit or renew the ads
+that I have marked here."
+
+He handed the paper with the marked places over to Clark, who took
+it and looked over the columns with a very serious air.
+
+"This will mean a great loss to the NEWS. How long do you think you
+can keep this sort of thing up?" Clark was astounded at the editor's
+action and could not understand it.
+
+"Clark, do you think if Jesus was the editor and proprietor of a
+daily paper in Raymond He would permit advertisements of whiskey and
+tobacco in it?"
+
+"Well no--I--don't suppose He would. But what has that to do with
+us? We can't do as He would. Newspapers can't be run on any such
+basis."
+
+"Why not?" asked Norman quietly.
+
+"Why not? Because they will lose more money than they make, that's
+all!" Clark spoke out with an irritation that he really felt. "We
+shall certainly bankrupt the paper with this sort of business
+policy."
+
+"Do you think so?" Norman asked the question not as if he expected
+an answer, but simply as if he were talking with himself. After a
+pause he said:
+
+"You may direct Marks to do as I have said. I believe it is what
+Christ would do, and as I told you, Clark, that is what I have
+promised to try to do for a year, regardless of what the results may
+be to me. I cannot believe that by any kind of reasoning we could
+reach a conclusion justifying our Lord in the advertisement, in this
+age, of whiskey and tobacco in a newspaper. There are some other
+advertisements of a doubtful character I shall study into.
+Meanwhile, I feel a conviction in regard to these that cannot be
+silenced."
+
+Clark went back to his desk feeling as if he had been in the
+presence of a very peculiar person. He could not grasp the meaning
+of it all. He felt enraged and alarmed. He was sure any such policy
+would ruin the paper as soon as it became generally known that the
+editor was trying to do everything by such an absurd moral standard.
+What would become of business if this standard was adopted? It would
+upset every custom and introduce endless confusion. It was simply
+foolishness. It was downright idiocy. So Clark said to himself, and
+when Marks was informed of the action he seconded the managing
+editor with some very forcible ejaculations. What was the matter
+with the chief? Was he insane? Was he going to bankrupt the whole
+business?
+
+But Edward Norman had not yet faced his most serious problem. When
+he came down to the office Friday morning he was confronted with the
+usual program for the Sunday morning edition. The NEWS was one one
+of the few evening papers in Raymond to issue a Sunday edition, and
+it had always been remarkably successful financially. There was an
+average of one page of literary and religious items to thirty or
+forty pages of sport, theatre, gossip, fashion, society and
+political material. This made a very interesting magazine of all
+sorts of reading matter, and had always been welcomed by all the
+subscribers, church members and all, as a Sunday morning necessity.
+Edward Norman now faced this fact and put to himself the question:
+"What would Jesus do?" If He was editor of a paper, would he
+deliberately plan to put into the homes of all the church people and
+Christians of Raymond such a collection of reading matter on the one
+day in the week which ought to be given up to something better
+holier? He was of course familiar with the regular arguments of the
+Sunday paper, that the public needed something of the sort; and the
+working man especially, who would not go to church any way, ought to
+have something entertaining and instructive on Sunday, his only day
+of rest. But suppose the Sunday morning paper did not pay? Suppose
+there was no money in it? How eager would the editor or publisher be
+then to supply this crying need of the poor workman? Edward Norman
+communed honestly with himself over the subject.
+
+Taking everything into account, would Jesus probably edit a Sunday
+morning paper? No matter whether it paid. That was not the question.
+As a matter of fact, the Sunday NEWS paid so well that it would be a
+direct loss of thousands of dollars to discontinue it. Besides, the
+regular subscribers had paid for a seven-day paper. Had he any right
+now to give them less than they supposed they had paid for?
+
+He was honestly perplexed by the question. So much was involved in
+the discontinuance of the Sunday edition that for the first time he
+almost decided to refuse to be guided by the standard of Jesus'
+probable action. He was sole proprietor of the paper; it was his to
+shape as he chose. He had no board of directors to consult as to
+policy. But as he sat there surrounded by the usual quantity of
+material for the Sunday edition he reached some definite
+conclusions. And among them was a determination to call in the force
+of the paper and frankly state his motive and purpose. He sent word
+for Clark and the other men it the office, including the few
+reporters who were in the building and the foreman, with what men
+were in the composing room (it was early in the morning and they
+were not all in) to come into the mailing room. This was a large
+room, and the men came in curiously and perched around on the tables
+and counters. It was a very unusual proceeding, but they all agreed
+that the paper was being run on new principles anyhow, and they all
+watched Mr. Norman carefully as he spoke.
+
+"I called you in here to let you know my further plans for the NEWS.
+I propose certain changes which I believe are necessary. I
+understand very well that some things I have already done are
+regarded by the men as very strange. I wish to state my motive in
+doing what I have done."
+
+Here he told the men what he had already told Clark, and they stared
+as Clark had done, and looked as painfully conscious.
+
+"Now, in acting on this standard of conduct I have reached a
+conclusion which will, no doubt, cause some surprise.
+
+"I have decided that the Sunday morning edition of the NEWS shall be
+discontinued after next Sunday's issue. I shall state in that issue
+my reasons for discontinuing. In order to make up to the subscribers
+the amount of reading matter they may suppose themselves entitled
+to, we can issue a double number on Saturday, as is done by many
+evening papers that make no attempt at a Sunday edition. I am
+convinced that from a Christian point of view more harm than good
+has been done by our Sunday morning paper. I do not believe that
+Jesus would be responsible for it if He were in my place today. It
+will occasion some trouble to arrange the details caused by this
+change with the advertisers and subscribers. That is for me to look
+after. The change itself is one that will take place. So far as I
+can see, the loss will fall on myself. Neither the reporters nor the
+pressmen need make any particular changes in their plans."
+
+He looked around the room and no one spoke. He was struck for the
+first time in his life with the fact that in all the years of his
+newspaper life he had never had the force of the paper together in
+this way. Would Jesus do that? That is, would He probably run a
+newspaper on some loving family plan, where editors, reporters,
+pressmen and all meet to discuss and devise and plan for the making
+of a paper that should have in view--
+
+He caught himself drawing almost away from the facts of
+typographical unions and office rules and reporters' enterprise and
+all the cold, businesslike methods that make a great daily
+successful. But still the vague picture that came up in the mailing
+room would not fade away when he had gone into his office and the
+men had gone back to their places with wonder in their looks and
+questions of all sorts on their tongues as they talked over the
+editor's remarkable actions.
+
+Clark came in and had a long, serious talk with his chief. He was
+thoroughly roused, and his protest almost reached the point of
+resigning his place. Norman guarded himself carefully. Every minute
+of the interview was painful to him, but he felt more than ever the
+necessity of doing the Christ-like thing. Clark was a very valuable
+man. It would be difficult to fill his place. But he was not able to
+give any reasons for continuing the Sunday paper that answered the
+question, "What would Jesus do?" by letting Jesus print that
+edition.
+
+"It comes to this, then," said Clark frankly, "you will bankrupt the
+paper in thirty days. We might as well face that future fact."
+
+"I don't think we shall. Will you stay by the NEWS until it is
+bankrupt?" asked Norman with a strange smile.
+
+"Mr. Norman, I don't understand you. You are not the same man this
+week that I always knew before."
+
+"I don't know myself either, Clark. Something remarkable has caught
+me up and borne me on. But I was never more convinced of final
+success and power for the paper. You have not answered my question.
+Will you stay with me?"
+
+
+
+
+
+
+Chapter Five
+
+
+
+
+
+SUNDAY morning dawned again on Raymond, and Henry Maxwell's church
+was again crowded. Before the service began Edward Norman attracted
+great attention. He sat quietly in his usual place about three seats
+from the pulpit. The Sunday morning issue of the NEWS containing the
+statement of its discontinuance had been expressed in such
+remarkable language that every reader was struck by it. No such
+series of distinct sensations had ever disturbed the usual business
+custom of Raymond. The events connected with the NEWS were not all.
+People were eagerly talking about strange things done during the
+week by Alexander Powers at the railroad shops, and Milton Wright in
+his stores on the avenue. The service progressed upon a distinct
+wave of excitement in the pews. Henry Maxwell faced it all with a
+calmness which indicated a strength and purpose more than usual. His
+prayers were very helpful. His sermon was not so easy to describe.
+How would a minister be apt to preach to his people if he came
+before them after an entire week of eager asking, "How would Jesus
+preach? What would He probably say?" It is very certain that he did
+not preach as he had done two Sundays before. Tuesday of the past
+week he had stood by the grave of the dead stranger and said the
+words, "Earth to earth, ashes to ashes, dust to dust," and still he
+was moved by the spirit of a deeper impulse than he could measure as
+he thought of his people and yearned for the Christ message when he
+should be in his pulpit again.
+
+Now that Sunday had come and the people were there to hear, what
+would the Master tell them? He agonized over his preparation for
+them, and yet he knew he had not been able to fit his message into
+his ideal of the Christ. Nevertheless no one in the First Church
+could remember ever hearing such a sermon before. There was in it
+rebuke for sin, especially hypocrisy, there was definite rebuke of
+the greed of wealth and the selfishness of fashion, two things that
+First Church never heard rebuked this way before, and there was a
+love of his people that gathered new force as the sermon went on.
+When it was finished there were those who were saying in their
+hearts, "The Spirit moved that sermon." And they were right.
+
+Then Rachel Winslow rose to sing, this time after the sermon, by Mr.
+Maxwell's request. Rachel's singing did not provoke applause this
+time. What deeper feeling carried the people's hearts into a
+reverent silence and tenderness of thought? Rachel was beautiful.
+But her consciousness of her remarkable loveliness had always marred
+her singing with those who had the deepest spiritual feeling. It had
+also marred her rendering of certain kinds of music with herself.
+Today this was all gone. There was no lack of power in her grand
+voice. But there was an actual added element of humility and purity
+which the audience distinctly felt and bowed to.
+
+Before service closed Mr. Maxwell asked those who had remained the
+week before to stay again for a few moments of consultation, and any
+others who were willing to make the pledge taken at that time. When
+he was at liberty he went into the lecture-room. To his astonishment
+it was almost filled. This time a large proportion of young people
+had come, but among them were a few business men and officers of the
+church.
+
+As before, he, Maxwell, asked them to pray with him. And, as before,
+a distinct answer came from the presence of the divine Spirit. There
+was no doubt in the minds of any present that what they purposed to
+do was so clearly in line with the divine will, that a blessing
+rested upon it in a very special manner.
+
+They remained some time to ask questions and consult together. There
+was a feeling of fellowship such as they had never known in their
+church membership. Mr. Norman's action was well understood by them
+all, and he answered several questions.
+
+"What will be the probable result of your discontinuance of the
+Sunday paper?" asked Alexander Powers, who sat next to him.
+
+"I don't know yet. I presume it will result in the falling off of
+subscriptions and advertisements. I anticipate that."
+
+"Do you have any doubts about your action. I mean, do you regret it,
+or fear it is not what Jesus would do?" asked Mr. Maxwell.
+
+"Not in the least. But I would like to ask, for my own satisfaction,
+if any of you here think Jesus would issue a Sunday morning paper?"
+
+No one spoke for a minute. Then Jasper Chase said, "We seem to think
+alike on that, but I have been puzzled several times during the week
+to know just what He would do. It is not always an easy question to
+answer."
+
+"I find that trouble," said Virginia Page. She sat by Rachel
+Winslow. Every one who knew Virginia Page was wondering how she
+would succeed in keeping her promise. "I think perhaps I find it
+specially difficult to answer that question on account of my money.
+Our Lord never owned any property, and there is nothing in His
+example to guide me in the use of mine. I am studying and praying. I
+think I see clearly a part of what He would do, but not all. What
+would He do with a million dollars? is my question really. I confess
+I am not yet able to answer it to my satisfaction.
+
+"I could tell you what you could do with a part of it, said Rachel,
+turning her face toward Virginia. "That does not trouble me,"
+replied Virginia with a slight smile. "What I am trying to discover
+is a principle that will enable me to come to the nearest possible
+to His action as it ought to influence the entire course of my life
+so far as my wealth and its use are concerned."
+
+"That will take time," said the minister slowly. All the rest of the
+room were thinking hard of the same thing. Milton Wright told
+something of his experience. He was gradually working out a plan for
+his business relations with his employees, and it was opening up a
+new world to him and to them. A few of the young men told of special
+attempts to answer the question. There was almost general consent
+over the fact that the application of the Christ spirit and practice
+to the everyday life was the serious thing. It required a knowledge
+of Him and an insight into His motives that most of them did not yet
+possess.
+
+When they finally adjourned after a silent prayer that marked with
+growing power the Divine Presence, they went away discussing
+earnestly their difficulties and seeking light from one another.
+
+Rachel Winslow and Virginia Page went out together. Edward Norman
+and Milton Wright became so interested in their mutual conference
+that they walked on past Norman's house and came back together.
+Jasper Chase and the president of the Endeavor Society stood talking
+earnestly in one corner of the room. Alexander Powers and Henry
+Maxwell remained, even after the others had gone.
+
+"I want you to come down to the shops tomorrow and see my plan and
+talk to the men. Somehow I feel as if you could get nearer to them
+than any one else just now."
+
+"I don't know about that, but I will come," replied Mr. Maxwell a
+little sadly. How was he fitted to stand before two or three hundred
+working men and give them a message? Yet in the moment of his
+weakness, as he asked the question, he rebuked himself for it. What
+would Jesus do? That was an end to the discussion.
+
+He went down the next day and found Mr. Powers in his office. It
+lacked a few minutes of twelve and the superintendent said, "Come
+upstairs, and I'll show you what I've been trying to do."
+
+They went through the machine shop, climbed a long flight of stairs
+and entered a very large, empty room. It had once been used by the
+company for a store room.
+
+"Since making that promise a week ago I have had a good many things
+to think of," said the superintendent, "and among them is this: The
+company gives me the use of this room, and I am going to fit it up
+with tables and a coffee plant in the corner there where those steam
+pipes are. My plan is to provide a good place where the men can come
+up and eat their noon lunch, and give them, two or three times a
+week, the privilege of a fifteen minutes' talk on some subject that
+will be a real help to them in their lives."
+
+Maxwell looked surprised and asked if the men would come for any
+such purpose.
+
+"Yes, they'll come. After all, I know the men pretty well. They are
+among the most intelligent working men in the country today. But
+they are, as a whole, entirely removed from church influence. I
+asked, 'What would Jesus do?' and among other things it seemed to me
+He would begin to act in some way to add to the lives of these men
+more physical and spiritual comfort. It is a very little thing, this
+room and what it represents, but I acted on the first impulse, to do
+the first thing that appealed to my good sense, and I want to work
+out this idea. I want you to speak to the men when they come up at
+noon. I have asked them to come up and see the place and I'll tell
+them something about it."
+
+Maxwell was ashamed to say how uneasy he felt at being asked to
+speak a few words to a company of working men. How could he speak
+without notes, or to such a crowd? He was honestly in a condition of
+genuine fright over the prospect. He actually felt afraid of facing
+those men. He shrank from the ordeal of confronting such a crowd, so
+different from the Sunday audiences he was familiar with.
+
+There were a dozen rude benches and tables in the room, and when the
+noon whistle sounded the men poured upstairs from the machine shops
+below and, seating themselves at the tables, began to cat their
+lunch. There were present about three hundred of them. They had read
+the superintendent's notice which he had posted up in various
+places, and came largely out of curiosity.
+
+They were favorably impressed. The room was large and airy, free
+from smoke and dust, and well warmed from the steam pipes. At about
+twenty minutes to one Mr. Powers told the men what he had in mind.
+He spoke very simply, like one who understands thoroughly the
+character of his audience, and then introduced the Rev. Henry
+Maxwell of the First Church, his pastor, who had consented to speak
+a few minutes.
+
+Maxwell will never forget the feeling with which for the first time
+he stood before the grimy-faced audience of working men. Like
+hundreds of other ministers, he had never spoken to any gatherings
+except those made up of people of his own class in the sense that
+they were familiar in their dress and education and habits. This was
+a new world to him, and nothing but his new rule of conduct could
+have made possible his message and its effect. He spoke on the
+subject of satisfaction with life; what caused it, what its real
+sources were. He had the great good sense on this his first
+appearance not to recognize the men as a class distinct from
+himself. He did not use the term working man, and did not say a word
+to suggest any difference between their lives and his own.
+
+The men were pleased. A good many of them shook hands with him
+before going down to their work, and the minister telling it all to
+his wife when he reached home, said that never in all his life had
+he known the delight he then felt in having the handshake from a man
+of physical labor. The day marked an important one in his Christian
+experience, more important than he knew. It was the beginning of a
+fellowship between him and the working world. It was the first plank
+laid down to help bridge the chasm between the church and labor in
+Raymond.
+
+Alexander Powers went back to his desk that afternoon much pleased
+with his plan and seeing much help in it for the men. He knew where
+he could get some good tables from an abandoned eating house at one
+of the stations down the road, and he saw how the coffee arrangement
+could be made a very attractive feature. The men had responded even
+better than he anticipated, and the whole thing could not help being
+a great benefit to them.
+
+He took up the routine of his work with a glow of satisfaction.
+After all, he wanted to do as Jesus would, he said to himself.
+
+It was nearly four o'clock when he opened one of the company's long
+envelopes which he supposed contained orders for the purchasing of
+stores. He ran over the first page of typewritten matter in his
+usual quick, business-like manner, before he saw that what he was
+reading was not intended for his office but for the superintendent
+of the freight department.
+
+He turned over a page mechanically, not meaning to read what was not
+addressed to him, but before he knew it, he was in possession of
+evidence which conclusively proved that the company was engaged in a
+systematic violation of the Interstate Commerce Laws of the United
+States. It was as distinct and unequivocal a breaking of law as if a
+private citizen should enter a house and rob the inmates. The
+discrimination shown in rebates was in total contempt of all the
+statutes. Under the laws of the state it was also a distinct
+violation of certain provisions recently passed by the legislature
+to prevent railroad trusts. There was no question that he had in his
+hands evidence sufficient to convict the company of willful,
+intelligent violation of the law of the commission and the law of
+the state also.
+
+He dropped the papers on his desk as if they were poison, and
+instantly the question flashed across his mind, "What would Jesus
+do?" He tried to shut the question out. He tried to reason with
+himself by saying it was none of his business. He had known in a
+more or less definite way, as did nearly all the officers of the
+company, that this had been going on right along on nearly all the
+roads. He was not in a position, owing to his place in the shops, to
+prove anything direct, and he had regarded it as a matter which did
+not concern him at all. The papers now before him revealed the
+entire affair. They had through some carelessness been addressed to
+him. What business of his was it? If he saw a man entering his
+neighbor's house to steal, would it not be his duty to inform the
+officers of the law? Was a railroad company such a different thing?
+Was it under a different rule of conduct, so that it could rob the
+public and defy law and be undisturbed because it was such a great
+organization? What would Jesus do? Then there was his family. Of
+course, if he took any steps to inform the commission it would mean
+the loss of his position. His wife and daughter had always enjoyed
+luxury and a good place in society. If he came out against this
+lawlessness as a witness it would drag him into courts, his motives
+would be misunderstood, and the whole thing would end in his
+disgrace and the loss of his position. Surely it was none of his
+business. He could easily get the papers back to the freight
+department and no one be the wiser. Let the iniquity go on. Let the
+law be defied. What was it to him? He would work out his plans for
+bettering the condition just before him. What more could a man do in
+this railroad business when there was so much going on anyway that
+made it impossible to live by the Christian standard? But what would
+Jesus do if He knew the facts? That was the question that confronted
+Alexander Powers as the day wore into evening.
+
+The lights in the office had been turned on. The whirr of the great
+engine and the clash of the planers in the big shop continued until
+six o'clock. Then the whistle blew, the engine slowed up, the men
+dropped their tools and ran for the block house.
+
+Powers heard the familiar click, click, of the clocks as the men
+filed past the window of the block house just outside. He said to
+his clerks, "I'm not going just yet. I have something extra
+tonight." He waited until he heard the last man deposit his block.
+The men behind the block case went out. The engineer and his
+assistants had work for half an hour but they went out by another
+door.
+
+
+
+
+
+
+Chapter Six
+
+
+
+
+
+"If any man cometh unto me and hateth not his own father and mother
+and wife and children and brethren and sisters, yea, and his own
+life also, he cannot be my disciple."
+
+"And whosoever forsaketh not all that he hath, he cannot be my
+disciple."
+
+WHEN Rachel Winslow and Virginia Page separated after the meeting at
+the First Church on Sunday they agreed to continue their
+conversation the next day. Virginia asked Rachel to come and lunch
+with her at noon, and Rachel accordingly rang the bell at the Page
+mansion about half-past eleven. Virginia herself met her and the two
+were soon talking earnestly.
+
+"The fact is," Rachel was saying, after they had been talking a few
+moments, "I cannot reconcile it with my judgment of what Christ
+would do. I cannot tell another person what to do, but I feel that I
+ought not to accept this offer."
+
+"What will you do then?" asked Virginia with great interest.
+
+"I don't know yet, but I have decided to refuse this offer."
+
+Rachel picked up a letter that had been lying in her lap and ran
+over its contents again. It was a letter from the manager of a comic
+opera offering her a place with a large traveling company of the
+season. The salary was a very large figure, and the prospect held
+out by the manager was flattering. He had heard Rachel sing that
+Sunday morning when the stranger had interrupted the service. He had
+been much impressed. There was money in that voice and it ought to
+be used in comic opera, so said the letter, and the manager wanted a
+reply as soon as possible.
+
+"There's no great virtue in saying 'No' to this offer when I have
+the other one," Rachel went on thoughtfully. "That's harder to
+decide. But I've about made up my mind. To tell the, truth,
+Virginia, I'm completely convinced in the first case that Jesus
+would never use any talent like a good voice just to make money. But
+now, take this concert offer. Here is a reputable company, to travel
+with an impersonator and a violinist and a male quartet, all people
+of good reputation. I'm asked to go as one of the company and sing
+leading soprano. The salary--I mentioned it, didn't I?--is
+guaranteed to be $200 a month for the season. But I don't feel
+satisfied that Jesus would go. What do you think?"
+
+"You mustn't ask me to decide for you," replied Virginia with a sad
+smile. "I believe Mr. Maxwell was right when he said we must each
+one of us decide according to the judgment we feel for ourselves to
+be Christ-like. I am having a harder time than you are, dear, to
+decide what He would do."
+
+"Are you?" Rachel asked. She rose and walked over to the window and
+looked out. Virginia came and stood by her. The street was crowded
+with life and the two young women looked at it silently for a
+moment. Suddenly Virginia broke out as Rachel had never heard her
+before:
+
+"Rachel, what does all this contrast in conditions mean to you as
+you ask this question of what Jesus would do? It maddens me to think
+that the society in which I have been brought up, the same to which
+we are both said to belong, is satisfied year after year to go on
+dressing and eating and having a good time, giving and receiving
+entertainments, spending its money on houses and luxuries and,
+occasionally, to ease its conscience, donating, without any personal
+sacrifice, a little money to charity. I have been educated, as you
+have, in one of the most expensive schools in America; launched into
+society as an heiress; supposed to be in a very enviable position.
+I'm perfectly well; I can travel or stay at home. I can do as I
+please. I can gratify almost any want or desire; and yet when I
+honestly try to imagine Jesus living the life I have lived and am
+expected to live, and doing for the rest of my life what thousands
+of other rich people do, I am under condemnation for being one of
+the most wicked, selfish, useless creatures in all the world. I have
+not looked out of this window for weeks without a feeling of horror
+toward myself as I see the humanity that passes by this house."
+
+Virginia turned away and walked up and down the room. Rachel watched
+her and could not repress the rising tide of her own growing
+definition of discipleship. Of what Christian use was her own talent
+of song? Was the best she could do to sell her talent for so much a
+month, go on a concert company's tour, dress beautifully, enjoy the
+excitement of public applause and gain a reputation as a great
+singer? Was that what Jesus would do?
+
+She was not morbid. She was in sound health, was conscious of her
+great powers as a singer, and knew that if she went out into public
+life she could make a great deal of money and become well known. It
+is doubtful if she overestimated her ability to accomplish all she
+thought herself capable of. And Virginia--what she had just said
+smote Rachel with great force because of the similar position in
+which the two friends found themselves.
+
+Lunch was announced and they went out and were joined by Virginia's
+grandmother, Madam Page, a handsome, stately woman of sixty-five,
+and Virginia's brother Rollin, a young man who spent most of his
+time at one of the clubs and had no ambition for anything but a
+growing admiration for Rachel Winslow, and whenever she dined or
+lunched at the Page's, if he knew of it he always planned to be at
+home.
+
+These three made up the Page family. Virginia's father had been a
+banker and grain speculator. Her mother had died ten years before,
+her father within the past year. The grandmother, a Southern woman
+in birth and training, had all the traditions and feelings that
+accompany the possession of wealth and social standing that have
+never been disturbed. She was a shrewd, careful business woman of
+more than average ability. The family property and wealth were
+invested, in large measure, under her personal care. Virginia's
+portion was, without any restriction, her own. She had been trained
+by her father to understand the ways of the business world, and even
+the grandmother had been compelled to acknowledge the girl's
+capacity for taking care of her own money.
+
+Perhaps two persons could not be found anywhere less capable of
+understanding a girl like Virginia than Madam Page and Rollin.
+Rachel, who had known the family since she was a girl playmate of
+Virginia's, could not help thinking of what confronted Virginia in
+her own home when she once decided on the course which she honestly
+believed Jesus would take. Today at lunch, as she recalled
+Virginia's outbreak in the front room, she tried to picture the
+scene that would at some time occur between Madam Page and her
+granddaughter.
+
+"I understand that you are going on the stage, Miss Winslow. We
+shall all be delighted, I'm sure," said Rollin during the
+conversation, which had not been very animated.
+
+Rachel colored and felt annoyed. "Who told you?" she asked, while
+Virginia, who had been very silent and reserved, suddenly roused
+herself and appeared ready to join in the talk.
+
+"Oh! we hear a thing or two on the street. Besides, every one saw
+Crandall the manager at church two weeks ago. He doesn't go to
+church to hear the preaching. In fact, I know other people who don't
+either, not when there's something better to hear."
+
+Rachel did not color this time, but she answered quietly, "You're
+mistaken. I'm not going on the stage."
+
+"It's a great pity. You'd make a hit. Everybody is talking about
+your singing."
+
+This time Rachel flushed with genuine anger. Before she could say
+anything, Virginia broke in: "Whom do you mean by 'everybody?'"
+
+"Whom? I mean all the people who hear Miss Winslow on Sundays. What
+other time do they hear her? It's a great pity, I say, that the
+general public outside of Raymond cannot hear her voice."
+
+"Let us talk about something else," said Rachel a little sharply.
+Madam Page glanced at her and spoke with a gentle courtesy.
+
+"My dear, Rollin never could pay an indirect compliment. He is like
+his father in that. But we are all curious to know something of your
+plans. We claim the right from old acquaintance, you know; and
+Virginia has already told us of your concert company offer."
+
+"I supposed of course that was public property," said Virginia,
+smiling across the table. "I was in the NEWS office day before
+yesterday."
+
+"Yes, yes," replied Rachel hastily. "I understand that, Madam Page.
+Well, Virginia and I have been talking about it. I have decided not
+to accept, and that is as far as I have gone at present."
+
+Rachel was conscious of the fact that the conversation had, up to
+this point, been narrowing her hesitation concerning the concert
+company's offer down to a decision that would absolutely satisfy her
+own judgment of Jesus' probable action. It had been the last thing
+in the world, however, that she had desired, to have her decision
+made in any way so public as this. Somehow what Rollin Page had said
+and his manner in saying it had hastened her decision in the matter.
+
+"Would you mind telling us, Rachel, your reasons for refusing the
+offer? It looks like a great opportunity for a young girl like you.
+Don't you think the general public ought to hear you? I feel like
+Rollin about that. A voice like yours belongs to a larger audience
+than Raymond and the First Church."
+
+Rachel Winslow was naturally a girl of great reserve. She shrank
+from making her plans or her thoughts public. But with all her
+repression there was possible in her an occasional sudden breaking
+out that was simply an impulsive, thoroughly frank, truthful
+expression of her most inner personal feeling. She spoke now in
+reply to Madam Page in one of those rare moments of unreserve that
+added to the attractiveness of her whole character.
+
+"I have no other reason than a conviction that Jesus Christ would do
+the same thing," she said, looking into Madam Page's eyes with a
+clear, earnest gaze.
+
+Madam Page turned red and Rollin stared. Before her grandmother
+could say anything, Virginia spoke. Her rising color showed how she
+was stirred. Virginia's pale, clear complexion was that of health,
+but it was generally in marked contrast with Rachel's tropical type
+of beauty.
+
+"Grandmother, you know we promised to make that the standard of our
+conduct for a year. Mr. Maxwell's proposition was plain to all who
+heard it. We have not been able to arrive at our decisions very
+rapidly. The difficulty in knowing what Jesus would do has perplexed
+Rachel and me a good deal."
+
+Madam Page looked sharply at Virginia before she said anything.
+
+"Of course I understand Mr. Maxwell's statement. It is perfectly
+impracticable to put it into practice. I felt confident at the time
+that those who promised would find it out after a trial and abandon
+it as visionary and absurd. I have nothing to say about Miss
+Winslow's affairs, but," she paused and continued with a sharpness
+that was new to Rachel, "I hope you have no foolish notions in this
+matter, Virginia."
+
+"I have a great many notions," replied Virginia quietly. "Whether
+they are foolish or not depends upon my right understanding of what
+He would do. As soon as I find out I shall do it."
+
+"Excuse me, ladies," said Rollin, rising from the table. "The
+conversation is getting beyond my depth. I shall retire to the
+library for a cigar."
+
+He went out of the dining-room and there was silence for a moment.
+Madam Page waited until the servant had brought in something and
+then asked her to go out. She was angry and her anger was
+formidable, although checked I m some measure by the presence of
+Rachel.
+
+"I am older by several years than you, young ladies," she said, and
+her traditional type of bearing seemed to Rachel to rise up like a
+great frozen wall between her and every conception of Jesus as a
+sacrifice. "What you have promised, in a spirit of false emotion I
+presume, is impossible of performance."
+
+"Do you mean, grandmother, that we cannot possibly act as our Lord
+would? or do you mean that, if we try to, we shall offend the
+customs and prejudices of society?" asked Virginia.
+
+"It is not required! It is not necessary! Besides how can you act
+with any--" Madam Page paused, broke off her sentence, and then
+turned to Rachel. "What will your mother say to your decision? My
+dear, is it not foolish? What do you expect to do with your voice
+anyway?"
+
+"I don't know what mother will say yet," Rachel answered, with a
+great shrinking from trying to give her mother's probable answer. If
+there was a woman in all Raymond with great ambitions for her
+daughter's success as a singer, Mrs. Winslow was that woman.
+
+"Oh! you will see it in a different light after wiser thought of it.
+My dear," continued Madam Page rising from the table, "you will live
+to regret it if you do not accept the concert company's offer or
+something like it."
+
+
+
+
+
+
+Chapter Seven
+
+
+
+
+
+RACHEL was glad to escape and be by herself. A plan was slowly
+forming in her mind, and she wanted to be alone and think it out
+carefully. But before she had walked two blocks she was annoyed to
+find Rollin Page walking beside her.
+
+"Sorry to disturb your thoughts, Miss Winslow, but I happened to be
+going your way and had an idea you might not object. In fact, I've
+been walking here for a whole block and you haven't objected."
+
+"I did not see you," said Rachel briefly.
+
+"I wouldn't mind that if you only thought of me once in a while,"
+said Rollin suddenly. He took one last nervous puff on his cigar,
+tossed it into the street and walked along with a pale look on his
+face.
+
+Rachel was surprised, but not startled. She had known Rollin as a
+boy, and there had been a time when they had used each other's first
+name familiarly. Lately, however, something in Rachel's manner had
+put an end to that. She was used to his direct attempts at
+compliments and was sometimes amused by them. Today she honestly
+wished him anywhere else.
+
+"Do you ever think of me, Miss Winslow?" asked Rollin after a pause.
+
+"Oh, yes, quite often!" said Rachel with a smile.
+
+"Are you thinking of me now?"
+
+"Yes. That is--yes--I am."
+
+"What?"
+
+"Do you want me to be absolutely truthful?"
+
+"Of course."
+
+"Then I was thinking that I wished you were not here." Rollin bit
+his lip and looked gloomy.
+
+"Now look here, Rachel--oh, I know that's forbidden, but I've got to
+speak some time!--you know how I feel. What makes you treat me so?
+You used to like me a little, you know."
+
+"Did I? Of course we used to get on very well as boy and girl. But
+we are older now."
+
+Rachel still spoke in the light, easy way she had used since her
+first annoyance at seeing him. She was still somewhat preoccupied
+with her plan which had been disturbed by Rollin's sudden
+appearance.
+
+They walked along in silence a little way. The avenue was full of
+people. Among the persons passing was Jasper Chase. He saw Rachel
+and Rollin and bowed as they went by. Rollin was watching Rachel
+closely.
+
+"I wish I was Jasper Chase. Maybe I would stand some chance then,"
+he said moodily.
+
+Rachel colored in spite of herself. She did not say anything and
+quickened her pace a little. Rollin seemed determined to say
+something, and Rachel seemed helpless to prevent him. After all, she
+thought, he might as well know the truth one time as another.
+
+"You know well enough, Rachel, how I feel toward you. Isn't there
+any hope? I could make you happy. I've loved you a good many
+years--"
+
+"Why, how old do you think I am?" broke in Rachel with a nervous
+laugh. She was shaken out of her usual poise of manner.
+
+"You know what I mean," went on Rollin doggedly. "And you have no
+right to laugh at me just because I want you to marry me."
+
+"I'm not! But it is useless for you to speak, Rollin," said Rachel
+after a little hesitation, and then using his name in such a frank,
+simple way that he could attach no meaning to it beyond the
+familiarity of the old family acquaintance. "It is impossible." She
+was still a little agitated by the fact of receiving a proposal of
+marriage on the avenue. But the noise on the street and sidewalk
+made the conversation as private as if they were in the house.
+
+"Would that is--do you think--if you gave me time I would."
+
+"No!" said Rachel. She spoke firmly; perhaps, she thought afterward,
+although she did not mean to, she spoke harshly.
+
+They walked on for some time without a word. They were nearing
+Rachel's home and she was anxious to end the scene.
+
+As they turned off the avenue into one of the quieter streets Rollin
+spoke suddenly and with more manliness than he had yet shown. There
+was a distinct note of dignity in his voice that was new to Rachel.
+
+"Miss Winslow, I ask you to be my wife. Is there any hope for me
+that you will ever consent?"
+
+"None in the least." Rachel spoke decidedly.
+
+"Will you tell me why?" He asked the question as if he had a right
+to a truthful answer.
+
+"Because I do not feel toward you as a woman ought to feel toward
+the man she marries."
+
+"In other words, you do not love me?"
+
+"I do not and I cannot."
+
+"Why?" That was another question, and Rachel was a little surprised
+that he should ask it.
+
+"Because--" she hesitated for fear she might say too much in an
+attempt to speak the exact truth.
+
+"Tell me just why. You can't hurt me more than you have already."
+
+"Well, I do not and I cannot love you because you have no purpose in
+life. What do you ever do to make the world better? You spend your
+time in club life, in amusements, in travel, in luxury. What is
+there in such a life to attract a woman?"
+
+"Not much, I guess," said Rollin with a bitter laugh. "Still, I
+don't know that I'm any worse than the rest of the men around me.
+I'm not so bad as some. I'm glad to know your reasons."
+
+He suddenly stopped, took off his hat, bowed gravely and turned
+back. Rachel went on home and hurried into her room, disturbed in
+many ways by the event which had so unexpectedly thrust itself into
+her experience.
+
+When she had time to think it all over she found herself condemned
+by the very judgment she had passed on Rollin Page. What purpose had
+she in life? She had been abroad and studied music with one of the
+famous teachers of Europe. She had come home to Raymond and had been
+singing in the First Church choir now for a year. She was well paid.
+Up to that Sunday two weeks ago she had been quite satisfied with
+herself and with her position. She had shared her mother's ambition,
+and anticipated growing triumphs in the musical world. What possible
+career was before her except the regular career of every singer?
+
+She asked the question again and, in the light of her recent reply
+to Rollin, asked again, if she had any very great purpose in life
+herself. What would Jesus do? There was a fortune in her voice. She
+knew it, not necessarily as a matter of personal pride or
+professional egotism, but simply as a fact. And she was obliged to
+acknowledge that until two weeks ago she had purposed to use her
+voice to make money and win admiration and applause. Was that a much
+higher purpose, after all, than Rollin Page lived for?
+
+She sat in her room a long time and finally went downstairs,
+resolved to have a frank talk with her mother about the concert
+company's offer and the new plan which was gradually shaping in her
+mind. She had already had one talk with her mother and knew that she
+expected Rachel to accept the offer and enter on a successful career
+as a public singer.
+
+"Mother," Rachel said, coming at once to the point, much as she
+dreaded the interview, "I have decided not to go out with the
+company. I have a good reason for it."
+
+Mrs. Winslow was a large, handsome woman, fond of much company,
+ambitious for distinction in society and devoted, according to her
+definitions of success, to the success of her children. Her youngest
+boy, Louis, two years younger than Rachel, was ready to graduate
+from a military academy in the summer. Meanwhile she and Rachel were
+at home together. Rachel's father, like Virginia's, had died while
+the family was abroad. Like Virginia she found herself, under her
+present rule of conduct, in complete antagonism with her own
+immediate home circle. Mrs. Winslow waited for Rachel to go on.
+
+"You know the promise I made two weeks ago, mother?"
+
+"Mr. Maxwell's promise?"
+
+"No, mine. You know what it was, do you not, mother?"
+
+"I suppose I do. Of course all the church members mean to imitate
+Christ and follow Him, as far as is consistent with our present day
+surroundings. But what has that to do with your decision in the
+concert company matter?"
+
+"It has everything to do with it. After asking, 'What would Jesus
+do?' and going to the source of authority for wisdom, I have been
+obliged to say that I do not believe He would, in my case, make that
+use of my voice."
+
+"Why? Is there anything wrong about such a career?"
+
+"No, I don't know that I can say there is."
+
+"Do you presume to sit in judgment on other people who go out to
+sing in this way? Do you presume to say they are doing what Christ
+would not do?"
+
+"Mother, I wish you to understand me. I judge no one else; I condemn
+no other professional singer. I simply decide my own course. As I
+look at it, I have a conviction that Jesus would do something else."
+
+"What else?" Mrs. Winslow had not yet lost her temper. She did not
+understand the situation nor Rachel in the midst of it, but she was
+anxious that her daughter's course should be as distinguished as her
+natural gifts promised. And she felt confident that when the present
+unusual religious excitement in the First Church had passed away
+Rachel would go on with her public life according to the wishes of
+the family. She was totally unprepared for Rachel's next remark.
+
+"What? Something that will serve mankind where it most needs the
+service of song. Mother, I have made up my mind to use my voice in
+some way so as to satisfy my own soul that I am doing something
+better than pleasing fashionable audiences, or making money, or even
+gratifying my own love of singing. I am going to do something that
+will satisfy me when I ask: 'What would Jesus do?' I am not
+satisfied, and cannot be, when I think of myself as singing myself
+into the career of a concert company performer."
+
+Rachel spoke with a vigor and earnestness that surprised her mother.
+But Mrs. Winslow was angry now; and she never tried to conceal her
+feelings.
+
+"It is simply absurd! Rachel, you are a fanatic! What can you do?"
+
+"The world has been served by men and women who have given it other
+things that were gifts. Why should I, because I am blessed with a
+natural gift, at once proceed to put a market price on it and make
+all the money I can out of it? You know, mother, that you have
+taught me to think of a musical career always in the light of
+financial and social success. I have been unable, since I made my
+promise two weeks ago, to imagine Jesus joining a concert company to
+do what I should do and live the life I should have to live if I
+joined it."
+
+Mrs. Winslow rose and then sat down again. With a great effort she
+composed herself.
+
+"What do you intend to do then? You have not answered my question."
+
+"I shall continue to sing for the time being in the church. I am
+pledged to sing there through the spring. During the week I am going
+to sing at the White Cross meetings, down in the Rectangle."
+
+"What! Rachel Winslow! Do you know what you are saying? Do you know
+what sort of people those are down there?"
+
+Rachel almost quailed before her mother. For a moment she shrank
+back and was silent. Then she spoke firmly: "I know very well. That
+is the reason I am going. Mr. and Mrs. Gray have been working there
+several weeks. I learned only this morning that they want singers
+from the churches to help them in their meetings. They use a tent.
+It is in a part of the city where Christian work is most needed. I
+shall offer them my help. Mother!" Rachel cried out with the first
+passionate utterance she had yet used, "I want to do something that
+will cost me something in the way of sacrifice. I know you will not
+understand me. But I am hungry to suffer for something. What have we
+done all our lives for the suffering, sinning side of Raymond? How
+much have we denied ourselves or given of our personal ease and
+pleasure to bless the place in which we live or imitate the life of
+the Savior of the world? Are we always to go on doing as society
+selfishly dictates, moving on its little narrow round of pleasures
+and entertainments, and never knowing the pain of things that cost?"
+
+"Are you preaching at me?" asked Mrs. Winslow slowly. Rachel rose,
+and understood her mother's words.
+
+"No. I am preaching at myself," she replied gently. She paused a
+moment as if she thought her mother would say something more, and
+then went out of the room. When she reached her own room she felt
+that so far as her own mother was concerned she could expect no
+sympathy, nor even a fair understanding from her.
+
+She kneeled. It is safe to say that within the two weeks since Henry
+Maxwell's church had faced that shabby figure with the faded hat
+more members of his parish had been driven to their knees in prayer
+than during all the previous term of his pastorate.
+
+She rose, and her face was wet with tears. She sat thoughtfully a
+little while and then wrote a note to Virginia Page. She sent it to
+her by a messenger and then went downstairs and told her mother that
+she and Virginia were going down to the Rectangle that evening to
+see Mr. and Mrs. Gray, the evangelists.
+
+"Virginia's uncle, Dr. West, will go with us, if she goes. I have
+asked her to call him up by telephone and go with us. The Doctor is
+a friend of the Grays, and attended some of their meetings last
+winter."
+
+Mrs. Winslow did not say anything. Her manner showed her complete
+disapproval of Rachel's course, and Rachel felt her unspoken
+bitterness.
+
+About seven o'clock the Doctor and Virginia appeared, and together
+the three started for the scene of the White Cross meetings.
+
+The Rectangle was the most notorious district in Raymond. It was on
+the territory close by the railroad shops and the packing houses.
+The great slum and tenement district of Raymond congested its worst
+and most wretched elements about the Rectangle. This was a barren
+field used in the summer by circus companies and wandering showmen.
+It was shut in by rows of saloons, gambling hells and cheap, dirty
+boarding and lodging houses.
+
+The First Church of Raymond had never touched the Rectangle problem.
+It was too dirty, too coarse, too sinful, too awful for close
+contact. Let us be honest. There had been an attempt to cleanse this
+sore spot by sending down an occasional committee of singers or
+Sunday-school teachers or gospel visitors from various churches. But
+the First Church of Raymond, as an institution, had never really
+done anything to make the Rectangle any less a stronghold of the
+devil as the years went by.
+
+Into this heart of the coarse part of the sin of Raymond the
+traveling evangelist and his brave little wife had pitched a
+good-sized tent and begun meetings. It was the spring of the year
+and the evenings were beginning to be pleasant. The evangelists had
+asked for the help of Christian people, and had received more than
+the usual amount of encouragement. But they felt a great need of
+more and better music. During the meetings on the Sunday just gone
+the assistant at the organ had been taken ill. The volunteers from
+the city were few and the voices were of ordinary quality.
+
+"There will be a small meeting tonight, John," said his wife, as
+they entered the tent a little after seven o'clock and began to
+arrange the chairs and light up.
+
+"Yes, I fear so." Mr. Gray was a small, energetic man, with a
+pleasant voice and the courage of a high-born fighter. He had
+already made friends in the neighborhood and one of his converts, a
+heavy-faced man who had just come in, began to help in the arranging
+of seats.
+
+It was after eight o'clock when Alexander Powers opened the door of
+his office and started for home. He was going to take a car at the
+corner of the Rectangle. But he was roused by a voice coming from
+the tent.
+
+It was the voice of Rachel Winslow. It struck through his
+consciousness of struggle over his own question that had sent him
+into the Divine Presence for an answer. He had not yet reached a
+conclusion. He was tortured with uncertainty. His whole previous
+course of action as a railroad man was the poorest possible
+preparation for anything sacrificial. And he could not yet say what
+he would do in the matter.
+
+Hark! What was she singing? How did Rachel Winslow happen to be down
+here? Several windows near by went up. Some men quarreling near a
+saloon stopped and listened. Other figures were walking rapidly in
+the direction of the Rectangle and the tent. Surely Rachel Winslow
+had never sung like that in the First Church. It was a marvelous
+voice. What was it she was singing? Again Alexander Powers,
+Superintendent of the machine shops, paused and listened,
+
+ "Where He leads me I will follow,
+ Where He leads me I will follow,
+ Where He leads me I will follow,
+ I'll go with Him, with Him.
+ All the way!"
+
+The brutal, coarse, impure life of the Rectangle stirred itself into
+new life as the song, as pure as the surroundings were vile, floated
+out and into saloon and den and foul lodging. Some one stumbled
+hastily by Alexander Powers and said in answer to a question: "De
+tent's beginning to run over tonight. That's what the talent calls
+music, eh?"
+
+
+
+
+
+
+Chapter Eight
+
+
+
+
+
+"If any man would come after me, let him deny himself and take up
+his cross daily and follow me."
+
+HENRY MAXWELL paced his study back and forth. It was Wednesday and
+he had started to think out the subject of his evening service which
+fell upon that night. Out of one of his study windows he could see
+the tall chimney of the railroad shops. The top of the evangelist's
+tent just showed over the buildings around the Rectangle. He looked
+out of his window every time he turned in his walk. After a while he
+sat down at his desk and drew a large piece of paper toward him.
+After thinking several moments he wrote in large letters the
+following:
+
+A NUMBER OF THINGS THAT JESUS WOULD PROBABLY DO IN THIS PARISH
+
+Live in a simple, plain manner, without needless luxury on the one
+hand or undue asceticism on the other. Preach fearlessly to the
+hypocrites in the church, no matter what their social importance or
+wealth. Show in some practical form His sympathy and love for the
+common people as well as for the well-to-do, educated, refined
+people who make up the majority of the parish. Identify Himself with
+the great causes of humanity in some personal way that would call
+for self-denial and suffering. Preach against the saloon in Raymond.
+Become known as a friend and companion of the sinful people in the
+Rectangle. Give up the summer trip to Europe this year. (I have been
+abroad twice and cannot claim any special need of rest. I am well,
+and could forego this pleasure, using the money for some one who
+needs a vacation more than I do. There are probably plenty of such
+people in the city.)
+
+He was conscious, with a humility that was once a stranger to him,
+that his outline of Jesus' probable action was painfully lacking in
+depth and power, but he was seeking carefully for concrete shapes
+into which he might cast his thought of Jesus' conduct. Nearly every
+point he had put down, meant, for him, a complete overturning of the
+custom and habit of years in the ministry. In spite of that, he
+still searched deeper for sources of the Christ-like spirit. He did
+not attempt to write any more, but sat at his desk absorbed in his
+effort to catch more and more the spirit of Jesus in his own life.
+He had forgotten the particular subject for his prayer meeting with
+which he had begun his morning study.
+
+He was so absorbed over his thought that he did not hear the bell
+ring; he was roused by the servant who announced a caller. He had
+sent up his name, Mr. Gray.
+
+Maxwell stepped to the head of the stairs and asked Gray to come up.
+So Gray came up and stated the reason for his call.
+
+"I want your help, Mr. Maxwell. Of course you have heard what a
+wonderful meeting we had Monday night and last night. Miss Winslow
+has done more with her voice than I could do, and the tent won't
+hold the people."
+
+"I've heard of that. It is the first time the people there have
+heard her. It is no wonder they are attracted."
+
+"It has been a wonderful revelation to us, and a most encouraging
+event in our work. But I came to ask if you could not come down
+tonight and preach. I am suffering from a severe cold. I do not dare
+trust my voice again. I know it is asking a good deal from such a
+busy man. But, if you can't come, say so frankly, and I'll try
+somewhere else."
+
+"I'm sorry, but it's my regular prayer meeting night," began Henry
+Maxwell. Then he flushed and added, "I shall be able to arrange it
+in some way so as to come down. You can count on me."
+
+Gray thanked him earnestly and rose to go.
+
+"Won't you stay a minute, Gray, and let us have a prayer together?"
+
+"Yes," said Gray simply.
+
+So the two men kneeled together in the study. Henry Maxwell prayed
+like a child. Gray was touched to tears as he knelt there. There was
+something almost pitiful in the way this man who had lived his
+ministerial life in such a narrow limit of exercise now begged for
+wisdom and strength to speak a message to the people in the
+Rectangle.
+
+Gray rose and held out his hand. "God bless you, Mr. Maxwell. I'm
+sure the Spirit will give you power tonight."
+
+Henry Maxwell made no answer. He did not even trust himself to say
+that he hoped so. But he thought of his promise and it brought him a
+certain peace that was refreshing to his heart and mind alike.
+
+So that is how it came about that when the First Church audience
+came into the lecture room that evening it met with another
+surprise. There was an unusually large number present. The prayer
+meetings ever since that remarkable Sunday morning had been attended
+as never before in the history of the First Church. Mr. Maxwell came
+at once to the point.
+
+"I feel that I am called to go down to the Rectangle tonight, and I
+will leave it with you to say whether you will go on with this
+meeting here. I think perhaps the best plan would be for a few
+volunteers to go down to the Rectangle with me prepared to help in
+the after-meeting, if necessary, and the rest to remain here and
+pray that the Spirit power may go with us."
+
+So half a dozen of the men went with the pastor, and the rest of the
+audience stayed in the lecture room. Maxwell could not escape the
+thought as he left the room that probably in his entire church
+membership there might not be found a score of disciples who were
+capable of doing work that would successfully lead needy, sinful men
+into the knowledge of Christ. The thought did not linger in his mind
+to vex him as he went his way, but it was simply a part of his whole
+new conception of the meaning of Christian discipleship.
+
+When he and his little company of volunteers reached the Rectangle,
+the tent was already crowded. They had difficulty in getting to the
+platform. Rachel was there with Virginia and Jasper Chase who had
+come instead of the Doctor tonight.
+
+When the meeting began with a song in which Rachel sang the solo and
+the people were asked to join in the chorus, not a foot of standing
+room was left in the tent. The night was mild and the sides of the
+tent were up and a great border of faces stretched around, looking
+in and forming part of the audience. After the singing, and a prayer
+by one of the city pastors who was present, Gray stated the reason
+for his inability to speak, and in his simple manner turned the
+service over to "Brother Maxwell of the First Church."
+
+"Who's de bloke?" asked a hoarse voice near the outside of the tent.
+
+"De Fust Church parson. We've got de whole high-tone swell outfit
+tonight."
+
+"Did you say Fust Church? I know him. My landlord's got a front pew
+up there," said another voice, and there was a laugh, for the
+speaker was a saloon keeper.
+
+"Trow out de life line 'cross de dark wave!" began a drunken man
+near by, singing in such an unconscious imitation of a local
+traveling singer's nasal tone that roars of laughter and jeers of
+approval rose around him. The people in the tent turned in the
+direction of the disturbance. There were shouts of "Put him out!"
+"Give the Fust Church a chance!" "Song! Song! Give us another song!"
+
+Henry Maxwell stood up, and a great wave of actual terror went over
+him. This was not like preaching to the well-dressed, respectable,
+good-mannered people up on the boulevard. He began to speak, but the
+confusion increased. Gray went down into the crowd, but did not seem
+able to quiet it. Maxwell raised his arm and his voice. The crowd in
+the tent began to pay some attention, but the noise on the outside
+increased. In a few minutes the audience was beyond his control. He
+turned to Rachel with a sad smile.
+
+"Sing something, Miss Winslow. They will listen to you," he said,
+and then sat down and covered his face with his hands.
+
+It was Rachel's opportunity, and she was fully equal to it. Virginia
+was at the organ and Rachel asked her to play a few notes of the
+hymn.
+
+ "Savior, I follow on,
+ Guided by Thee,
+ Seeing not yet the hand
+ That leadeth me.
+ Hushed be my heart and still
+ Fear I no farther ill,
+ Only to meet Thy will,
+ My will shall be."
+
+Rachel had not sung the first line before the people in the tent
+were all turned toward her, hushed and reverent. Before she had
+finished the verse the Rectangle was subdued and tamed. It lay like
+some wild beast at her feet, and she sang it into harmlessness. Ah!
+What were the flippant, perfumed, critical audiences in concert
+halls compared with this dirty, drunken, impure, besotted mass of
+humanity that trembled and wept and grew strangely, sadly thoughtful
+under the touch of this divine ministry of this beautiful young
+woman! Mr. Maxwell, as he raised his head and saw the transformed
+mob, had a glimpse of something that Jesus would probably do with a
+voice like Rachel Winslow's. Jasper Chase sat with his eyes on the
+singer, and his greatest longing as an ambitious author was
+swallowed up in his thought of what Rachel Winslow's love might
+sometimes mean to him. And over in the shadow outside stood the last
+person any one might have expected to see at a gospel tent
+service--Rollin Page, who, jostled on every side by rough men and
+women who stared at the swell in fine clothes, seemed careless of
+his surroundings and at the same time evidently swayed by the power
+that Rachel possessed. He had just come over from the club. Neither
+Rachel nor Virginia saw him that night.
+
+The song was over. Maxwell rose again. This time he felt calmer.
+What would Jesus do? He spoke as he thought once he never could
+speak. Who were these people? They were immortal souls. What was
+Christianity? A calling of sinners, not the righteous, to
+repentance. How would Jesus speak? What would He say? He could not
+tell all that His message would include, but he felt sure of a part
+of it. And in that certainty he spoke on. Never before had he felt
+"compassion for the multitude." What had the multitude been to him
+during his ten years in the First Church but a vague, dangerous,
+dirty, troublesome factor in society, outside of the church and of
+his reach, an element that caused him occasionally an unpleasant
+twinge of conscience, a factor in Raymond that was talked about at
+associations as the "masses," in papers written by the brethren in
+attempts to show why the "masses" were not being reached. But
+tonight as he faced the masses he asked himself whether, after all,
+this was not just about such a multitude as Jesus faced oftenest,
+and he felt the genuine emotion of love for a crowd which is one of
+the best indications a preacher ever has that he is living close to
+the heart of the world's eternal Life. It is easy to love an
+individual sinner, especially if he is personally picturesque or
+interesting. To love a multitude of sinners is distinctively a
+Christ-like quality.
+
+When the meeting closed, there was no special interest shown. No one
+stayed to the after-meeting. The people rapidly melted away from the
+tent, and the saloons, which had been experiencing a dull season
+while the meetings progressed, again drove a thriving trade. The
+Rectangle, as if to make up for lost time, started in with vigor on
+its usual night debauch. Maxwell and his little party, including
+Virginia, Rachel and Jasper Chase, walked down past the row of
+saloons and dens until they reached the corner where the cars
+passed.
+
+"This is a terrible spot," said the minister as he stood waiting for
+their car. "I never realized that Raymond had such a festering sore.
+It does not seem possible that this is a city full of Christian
+disciples."
+
+"Do you think any one can ever remove this great curse of drink?"
+asked Jasper Chase.
+
+"I have thought lately as never before of what Christian people
+might do to remove the curse of the saloon. Why don't we all act
+together against it? Why don't the Christian pastors and the church
+members of Raymond move as one man against the traffic? What would
+Jesus do? Would He keep silent? Would He vote to license these
+causes of crime and death?"
+
+He was talking to himself more than to the others. He remembered
+that he had always voted for license, and so had nearly all his
+church members. What would Jesus do? Could he answer that question?
+Would the Master preach and act against the saloon if He lived
+today? How would He preach and act? Suppose it was not popular to
+preach against license? Suppose the Christian people thought it was
+all that could be done to license the evil and so get revenue from
+the necessary sin? Or suppose the church members themselves owned
+the property where the saloons stood--what then? He knew that those
+were the facts in Raymond. What would Jesus do?
+
+He went up into his study the next morning with that question only
+partly answered. He thought of it all day. He was still thinking of
+it and reaching certain real conclusions when the EVENING NEWS came.
+His wife brought it up and sat down a few minutes while he read to
+her.
+
+The EVENING NEWS was at present the most sensational paper in
+Raymond. That is to say, it was being edited in such a remarkable
+fashion that its subscribers had never been so excited over a
+newspaper before. First they had noticed the absence of the prize
+fight, and gradually it began to dawn upon them that the NEWS no
+longer printed accounts of crime with detailed descriptions, or
+scandals in private life. Then they noticed that the advertisements
+of liquor and tobacco were dropped, together with certain others of
+a questionable character. The discontinuance of the Sunday paper
+caused the greatest comment of all, and now the character of the
+editorials was creating the greatest excitement. A quotation from
+the Monday paper of this week will show what Edward Norman was doing
+to keep his promise. The editorial was headed:
+
+THE MORAL SIDE OF POLITICAL QUESTIONS
+
+The editor of the News has always advocated the principles of the
+great political party at present in power, and has heretofore
+discussed all political questions from the standpoint of expediency,
+or of belief in the party as opposed to other political
+organizations. Hereafter, to be perfectly honest with all our
+readers, the editor will present and discuss all political questions
+from the standpoint of right and wrong. In other words, the first
+question asked in this office about any political question will not
+be, "Is it in the interests of our party?" or, "Is it according to
+the principles laid down by our party in its platform?" but the
+question first asked will be, "Is this measure in accordance with
+the spirit and teachings of Jesus as the author of the greatest
+standard of life known to men?" That is, to be perfectly plain, the
+moral side of every political question will be considered its most
+important side, and the ground will be distinctly taken that nations
+as well as individuals are under the same law to do all things to
+the glory of God as the first rule of action.
+
+The same principle will be observed in this office toward candidates
+for places of responsibility and trust in the republic. Regardless
+of party politics the editor of the News will do all in his power to
+bring the best men into power, and will not knowingly help to
+support for office any candidate who is unworthy, no matter how much
+he may be endorsed by the party. The first question asked about the
+man and about the measures will be, "Is he the right man for the
+place?" "Is he a good man with ability?" "Is the measure right?"
+
+There had been more of this, but we have quoted enough to show the
+character of the editorial. Hundreds of men in Raymond had read it
+and rubbed their eyes in amazement. A good many of them had promptly
+written to the NEWS, telling the editor to stop their paper. The
+paper still came out, however, and was eagerly read all over the
+city. At the end of a week Edward Norman knew very well that he was
+fast losing a large number of subscribers. He faced the conditions
+calmly, although Clark, the managing editor, grimly anticipated
+ultimate bankruptcy, especially since Monday's editorial.
+
+Tonight, as Maxwell read to his wife, he could see in almost every
+column evidences of Norman's conscientious obedience to his promise.
+There was an absence of slangy, sensational scare heads. The reading
+matter under the head lines was in perfect keeping with them. He
+noticed in two columns that the reporters' name appeared signed at
+the bottom. And there was a distinct advance in the dignity and
+style of their contributions.
+
+"So Norman is beginning to get his reporters to sign their work. He
+has talked with me about that. It is a good thing. It fixes
+responsibility for items where it belongs and raises the standard of
+work done. A good thing all around for the public and the writers."
+
+Maxwell suddenly paused. His wife looked up from some work she was
+doing. He was reading something with the utmost interest. "Listen to
+this, Mary," he said, after a moment while his lip trembled:
+
+This morning Alexander Powers, Superintendent of the L. and T. R. R.
+shops in this city, handed in his resignation to the road, and gave
+as his reason the fact that certain proofs had fallen into his hands
+of the violation of the Interstate Commerce Law, and also of the
+state law which has recently been framed to prevent and punish
+railroad pooling for the benefit of certain favored shippers. Mr.
+Powers states in his resignation that he can no longer consistently
+withhold the information he possesses against the road. He will be a
+witness against it. He has placed his evidence against the company
+in the hands of the Commission and it is now for them to take action
+upon it.
+
+The News wishes to express itself on this action of Mr. Powers. In
+the first place he has nothing to gain by it. He has lost a very
+valuable place voluntarily, when by keeping silent he might have
+retained it. In the second place, we believe his action ought to
+receive the approval of all thoughtful, honest citizens who believe
+in seeing law obeyed and lawbreakers brought to justice. In a case
+like this, where evidence against a railroad company is generally
+understood to be almost impossible to obtain, it is the general
+belief that the officers of the road are often in possession of
+criminating facts but do not consider it to be any of their business
+to inform the authorities that the law is being defied. The entire
+result of this evasion of responsibility on the part of those who
+are responsible is demoralizing to every young man connected with
+the road. The editor of the News recalls the statement made by a
+prominent railroad official in this city a little while ago, that
+nearly every clerk in a certain department of the road understood
+that large sums of money were made by shrewd violations of the
+Interstate Commerce Law, was ready to admire the shrewdness with
+which it was done, and declared that they would all do the same
+thing if they were high enough in railroad circles to attempt it."
+
+
+
+
+
+
+Chapter Nine
+
+
+
+
+
+HENRY MAXWELL finished reading and dropped the paper.
+
+"I must go and see Powers. This is the result of his promise."
+
+He rose, and as he was going out, his wife said: "Do you think,
+Henry, that Jesus would have done that?"
+
+Maxwell paused a moment. Then he answered slowly, "Yes, I think He
+would. At any rate, Powers has decided so and each one of us who
+made the promise understands that he is not deciding Jesus' conduct
+for any one else, only for himself."
+
+"How about his family? How will Mrs. Powers and Celia be likely to
+take it?"
+
+"Very hard, I've no doubt. That will be Powers' cross in this
+matter. They will not understand his motive."
+
+Maxwell went out and walked over to the next block where
+Superintendent Powers lived. To his relief, Powers himself came to
+the door.
+
+The two men shook hands silently. They instantly understood each
+other without words. There had never before been such a bond of
+union between the minister and his parishioner.
+
+"What are you going to do?" Henry Maxwell asked after they had
+talked over the facts in the case.
+
+"You mean another position? I have no plans yet. I can go back to my
+old work as a telegraph operator. My family will not suffer, except
+in a social way."
+
+Powers spoke calmly and sadly. Henry Maxwell did not need to ask him
+how the wife and daughter felt. He knew well enough that the
+superintendent had suffered deepest at that point.
+
+"There is one matter I wish you would see to," said Powers after
+awhile, "and that is, the work begun at the shops. So far as I know,
+the company will not object to that going on. It is one of the
+contradictions of the railroad world that Y. M. C. A.'s and other
+Christian influences are encouraged by the roads, while all the time
+the most un-Christian and lawless acts may be committed in the
+official management of the roads themselves. Of course it is well
+understood that it pays a railroad to have in its employ men who are
+temperate, honest and Christian. So I have no doubt the master
+mechanic will have the same courtesy shown him in the use of the
+room. But what I want you to do, Mr. Maxwell, is to see that my plan
+is carried out. Will you? You understand what it was in general. You
+made a very favorable impression on the men. Go down there as often
+as you can. Get Milton Wright interested to provide something for
+the furnishing and expense of the coffee plant and reading tables.
+Will you do it?"
+
+"Yes," replied Henry Maxwell. He stayed a little longer. Before he
+went away, he and the superintendent had a prayer together, and they
+parted with that silent hand grasp that seemed to them like a new
+token of their Christian discipleship and fellowship.
+
+The pastor of the First Church went home stirred deeply by the
+events of the week. Gradually the truth was growing upon him that
+the pledge to do as Jesus would was working out a revolution in his
+parish and throughout the city. Every day added to the serious
+results of obedience to that pledge. Maxwell did not pretend to see
+the end. He was, in fact, only now at the very beginning of events
+that were destined to change the history of hundreds of families not
+only in Raymond but throughout the entire country. As he thought of
+Edward Norman and Rachel and Mr. Powers, and of the results that had
+already come from their actions, he could not help a feeling of
+intense interest in the probable effect if all the persons in the
+First Church who had made the pledge, faithfully kept it. Would they
+all keep it, or would some of them turn back when the cross became
+too heavy?
+
+He was asking this question the next morning as he sat in his study
+when the President of the Endeavor Society of his church called to
+see him.
+
+"I suppose I ought not to trouble you with my case," said young
+Morris coming at once to his errand, "but I thought, Mr. Maxwell,
+that you might advise me a little."
+
+"I'm glad you came. Go on, Fred." He had known the young man ever
+since his first year in the pastorate, and loved and honored him for
+his consistent, faithful service in the church.
+
+"Well, the fact is, I am out of a job. You know I've been doing
+reporter work on the morning SENTINEL since I graduated last year.
+Well, last Saturday Mr. Burr asked me to go down the road Sunday
+morning and get the details of that train robbery at the Junction,
+and write the thing up for the extra edition that came out Monday
+morning, just to get the start of the NEWS. I refused to go, and
+Burr gave me my dismissal. He was in a bad temper, or I think
+perhaps he would not have done it. He has always treated me well
+before. Now, do you think Jesus would have done as I did? I ask
+because the other fellows say I was a fool not to do the work. I
+want to feel that a Christian acts from motives that may seem
+strange to others sometimes, but not foolish. What do you think?"
+
+"I think you kept your promise, Fred. I cannot believe Jesus would
+do newspaper reporting on Sunday as you were asked to do it."
+
+"Thank you, Mr. Maxwell. I felt a little troubled over it, but the
+longer I think it over the better I feel."
+
+Morris rose to go, and his pastor rose and laid a loving hand on the
+young man's shoulder. "What are you going to do, Fred?"
+
+"I don't know yet. I have thought some of going to Chicago or some
+large city ."
+
+"Why don't you try the NEWS?"
+
+"They are all supplied. I have not thought of applying there."
+
+Maxwell thought a moment. "Come down to the NEWS office with me, and
+let us see Norman about it."
+
+So a few minutes later Edward Norman received into his room the
+minister and young Morris, and Maxwell briefly told the cause of the
+errand.
+
+"I can give you a place on the NEWS," said Norman with his keen look
+softened by a smile that made it winsome. "I want reporters who
+won't work Sundays. And what is more, I am making plans for a
+special kind of reporting which I believe you can develop because
+you are in sympathy with what Jesus would do."
+
+He assigned Morris a definite task, and Maxwell started back to his
+study, feeling that kind of satisfaction (and it is a very deep
+kind) which a man feels when he has been even partly instrumental in
+finding an unemployed person a remunerative position.
+
+He had intended to go right to his study, but on his way home he
+passed by one of Milton Wright's stores. He thought he would simply
+step in and shake hands with his parishioner and bid him God-speed
+in what he had heard he was doing to put Christ into his business.
+But when he went into the office, Wright insisted on detaining him
+to talk over some of his new plans. Maxwell asked himself if this
+was the Milton Wright he used to know, eminently practical,
+business-like, according to the regular code of the business world,
+and viewing every thing first and foremost from the standpoint of,
+"Will it pay?"
+
+"There is no use to disguise the fact, Mr. Maxwell, that I have been
+compelled to revolutionize the entire method of my business since I
+made that promise. I have been doing a great many things during the
+last twenty years in this store that I know Jesus would not do. But
+that is a small item compared with the number of things I begin to
+believe Jesus would do. My sins of commission have not been as many
+as those of omission in business relations."
+
+"What was the first change you made?" He felt as if his sermon could
+wait for him in his study. As the interview with Milton Wright
+continued, he was not so sure but that he had found material for a
+sermon without going back to his study.
+
+"I think the first change I had to make was in my thought of my
+employees. I came down here Monday morning after that Sunday and
+asked myself, 'What would Jesus do in His relation to these clerks,
+bookkeepers, office-boys, draymen, salesmen? Would He try to
+establish some sort of personal relation to them different from that
+which I have sustained all these years?' I soon answered this by
+saying, 'Yes.' Then came the question of what that relation would be
+and what it would lead me to do. I did not see how I could answer it
+to my satisfaction without getting all my employees together and
+having a talk with them. So I sent invitations to all of them, and
+we had a meeting out there in the warehouse Tuesday night. A good
+many things came out of that meeting. I can't tell you all. I tried
+to talk with the men as I imagined Jesus might. It was hard work,
+for I have not been in the habit of it, and must have made some
+mistakes. But I can hardly make you believe, Mr. Maxwell, the effect
+of that meeting on some of the men. Before it closed I saw more than
+a dozen of them with tears on their faces. I kept asking, 'What
+would Jesus do?' and the more I asked it the farther along it pushed
+me into the most intimate and loving relations with the men who have
+worked for me all these years. Every day something new is coming up
+and I am right now in the midst of a reconstruction of the entire
+business so far as its motive for being conducted is concerned. I am
+so practically ignorant of all plans for co-operation and its
+application to business that I am trying to get information from
+every possible source. I have lately made a special study of the
+life of Titus Salt, the great mill-owner of Bradford, England, who
+afterward built that model town on the banks of the Aire. There is a
+good deal in his plans that will help me. But I have not yet reached
+definite conclusions in regard to all the details. I am not enough
+used to Jesus' methods. But see here."
+
+Wright eagerly reached up into one of the pigeon holes of his desk
+and took out a paper.
+
+"I have sketched out what seems to me like a program such as Jesus
+might go by in a business like mine. I want you to tell me what you
+think of it:
+
+"WHAT JESUS WOULD PROBABLY DO IN MILTON WRIGHT'S PLACE AS A BUSINESS
+MAN"
+
+He would engage in the, business first of all for the purpose of
+glorifying God, and not for the primary purpose of making money. All
+money that might be made he would never regard as his own, but as
+trust funds to be used for the good of humanity. His relations with
+all the persons in his employ would be the most loving and helpful.
+He could not help thinking of all of them in the light of souls to
+be saved. This thought would always be greater than his thought of
+making money in the business. He would never do a single dishonest
+or questionable thing or try in any remotest way to get the
+advantage of any one else in the same business. The principle of
+unselfishness and helpfulness in the business would direct all its
+details. Upon this principle he would shape the entire plan of his
+relations to his employees, to the people who were his customers and
+to the general business world with which he was connected.
+
+Henry Maxwell read this over slowly. It reminded him of his own
+attempts the day before to put into a concrete form his thought of
+Jesus' probable action. He was very thoughtful as he looked up and
+met Wright's eager gaze.
+
+"Do you believe you can continue to make your business pay on these
+lines?"
+
+"I do. Intelligent unselfishness ought to be wiser than intelligent
+selfishness, don't you think? If the men who work as employees begin
+to feel a personal share in the profits of the business and, more
+than that, a personal love for themselves on the part of the firm,
+won't the result be more care, less waste, more diligence, more
+faithfulness?"
+
+"Yes, I think so. A good many other business men don't, do they? I
+mean as a general thing. How about your relations to the selfish
+world that is not trying to make money on Christian principles?"
+
+"That complicates my action, of course."
+
+"Does your plan contemplate what is coming to be known as
+co-operation?"
+
+"Yes, as far as I have gone, it does. As I told you, I am studying
+out my details carefully. I am absolutely convinced that Jesus in my
+place would be absolutely unselfish. He would love all these men in
+His employ. He would consider the main purpose of all the business
+to be a mutual helpfulness, and would conduct it all so that God's
+kingdom would be evidently the first object sought. On those general
+principles, as I say, I am working. I must have time to complete the
+details."
+
+When Maxwell finally left he was profoundly impressed with the
+revolution that was being wrought already in the business. As he
+passed out of the store he caught something of the new spirit of the
+place. There was no mistaking the fact that Milton Wright's new
+relations to his employees were beginning even so soon, after less
+than two weeks, to transform the entire business. This was apparent
+in the conduct and faces of the clerks.
+
+"If he keeps on he will be one of the most influential preachers in
+Raymond," said Maxwell to himself when he reached his study. The
+question rose as to his continuance in this course when he began to
+lose money by it, as was possible. He prayed that the Holy Spirit,
+who had shown Himself with growing power in the company of First
+Church disciples, might abide long with them all. And with that
+prayer on his lips and in his heart he began the preparation of a
+sermon in which he was going to present to his people on Sunday the
+subject of the saloon in Raymond, as he now believed Jesus would do.
+He had never preached against the saloon in this way before. He knew
+that the things he should say would lead to serious results.
+Nevertheless, he went on with his work, and every sentence he wrote
+or shaped was preceded with the question, "Would Jesus say that?"
+Once in the course of his study, he went down on his knees. No one
+except himself could know what that meant to him. When had he done
+that in his preparation of sermons, before the change that had come
+into his thought of discipleship? As he viewed his ministry now, he
+did not dare preach without praying long for wisdom. He no longer
+thought of his dramatic delivery and its effect on his audience. The
+great question with him now was, "What would Jesus do?"
+
+Saturday night at the Rectangle witnessed some of the most
+remarkable scenes that Mr. Gray and his wife had ever known. The
+meetings had intensified with each night of Rachel's singing. A
+stranger passing through the Rectangle in the day-time might have
+heard a good deal about the meetings in one way and another. It
+cannot be said that up to that Saturday night there was any
+appreciable lack of oaths and impurity and heavy drinking. The
+Rectangle would not have acknowledged that it was growing any better
+or that even the singing had softened its outward manner. It had too
+much local pride in being "tough." But in spite of itself there was
+a yielding to a power it had never measured and did not know we
+enough to resist beforehand.
+
+Gray had recovered his voice so that by Saturday he was able to
+speak. The fact that he was obliged to use his voice carefully made
+it necessary for the people to be very quiet if they wanted to hear.
+Gradually they had come to understand that this man was talking
+these many weeks and giving his time and strength to give them a
+knowledge of a Savior, all out of a perfectly unselfish love for
+them. Tonight the great crowd was as quiet as Henry Maxwell's
+decorous audience ever was. The fringe around the tent was deeper
+and the saloons were practically empty. The Holy Spirit had come at
+last, and Gray knew that one of the great prayers of his life was
+going to be answered.
+
+And Rachel her singing was the best, most wonderful, that Virginia
+or Jasper Chase had ever known. They came together again tonight,
+this time with Dr. West, who had spent all his spare time that week
+in the Rectangle with some charity cases. Virginia was at the organ,
+Jasper sat on a front seat looking up at Rachel, and the Rectangle
+swayed as one man towards the platform as she sang:
+
+ "Just as I am, without one plea,
+ But that Thy blood was shed for me,
+ And that Thou bidst me come to Thee,
+ O Lamb of God, I come, I come."
+
+Gray hardly said a word. He stretched out his hand with a gesture of
+invitation. And down the two aisles of the tent, broken, sinful
+creatures, men and women, stumbled towards the platform. One woman
+out of the street was near the organ. Virginia caught the look of
+her face, and for the first time in the life of the rich girl the
+thought of what Jesus was to the sinful woman came with a suddenness
+and power that was like nothing but a new birth. Virginia left the
+organ, went to her, looked into her face and caught her hands in her
+own. The other girl trembled, then fell on her knees sobbing, with
+her head down upon the back of the rude bench in front of her, still
+clinging to Virginia. And Virginia, after a moment's hesitation,
+kneeled down by her and the two heads were bowed close together.
+
+But when the people had crowded in a double row all about the
+platform, most of them kneeling and crying, a man in evening dress,
+different from the others, pushed through the seats and came and
+kneeled down by the side of the drunken man who had disturbed the
+meeting when Maxwell spoke. He kneeled within a few feet of Rachel
+Winslow, who was still singing softly. And as she turned for a
+moment and looked in his direction, she was amazed to see the face
+of Rollin Page! For a moment her voice faltered. Then she went on:
+
+ "Just as I am, thou wilt receive,
+ Wilt welcome, pardon, cleanse, relieve,
+ Because Thy promise I believe,
+ O Lamb of God, I come, I come."
+
+
+
+
+
+
+Chapter Ten
+
+
+
+
+
+"If any man serve me, let him follow me."
+
+IT was nearly midnight before the services at the Rectangle closed.
+Gray stayed up long into Sunday morning, praying and talking with a
+little group of converts who in the great experiences of their new
+life, clung to the evangelist with a personal helplessness that made
+it as impossible for him to leave them as if they had been depending
+upon him to save them from physical death. Among these converts was
+Rollin Page.
+
+Virginia and her uncle had gone home about eleven o'clock, and
+Rachel and Jasper Chase had gone with them as far as the avenue
+where Virginia lived. Dr. West had walked on a little way with them
+to his own home, and Rachel and Jasper had then gone on together to
+her mother's.
+
+That was a little after eleven. It was now striking midnight, and
+Jasper Chase sat in his room staring at the papers on his desk and
+going over the last half hour with painful persistence.
+
+He had told Rachel Winslow of his love for her, and she had not
+given him her love in return. It would be difficult to know what was
+most powerful in the impulse that had moved him to speak to her
+tonight. He had yielded to his feelings without any special thought
+of results to himself, because he had felt so certain that Rachel
+would respond to his love. He tried to recall the impression she
+made on him when he first spoke to her.
+
+Never had her beauty and her strength influenced him as tonight.
+While she was singing he saw and heard no one else. The tent swarmed
+with a confused crowd of faces and he knew he was sitting there
+hemmed in by a mob of people, but they had no meaning to him. He
+felt powerless to avoid speaking to her. He knew he should speak
+when they were alone.
+
+Now that he had spoken, he felt that he had misjudged either Rachel
+or the opportunity. He knew, or thought he knew, that she had begun
+to care something for him. It was no secret between them that the
+heroine of Jasper's first novel had been his own ideal of Rachel,
+and the hero in the story was himself and they had loved each other
+in the book, and Rachel had not objected. No one else knew. The
+names and characters had been drawn with a subtle skill that
+revealed to Rachel, when she received a copy of the book from
+Jasper, the fact of his love for her, and she had not been offended.
+That was nearly a year ago.
+
+Tonight he recalled the scene between them with every inflection and
+movement unerased from his memory. He even recalled the fact that he
+began to speak just at that point on the avenue where, a few days
+before, he had met Rachel walking with Rollin Page. He had wondered
+at the time what Rollin was saying.
+
+"Rachel," Jasper had said, and it was the first time he had ever
+spoken her first name, "I never knew till tonight how much I loved
+you. Why should I try to conceal any longer what you have seen me
+look? You know I love you as my life. I can no longer hide it from
+you if I would."
+
+The first intimation he had of a repulse was the trembling of
+Rachel's arm in his. She had allowed him to speak and had neither
+turned her face toward him nor away from him. She had looked
+straight on and her voice was sad but firm and quiet when she spoke.
+
+"Why do you speak to me now? I cannot bear it--after what we have
+seen tonight."
+
+"Why--what--" he had stammered and then was silent.
+
+Rachel withdrew her arm from his but still walked near him. Then he
+had cried out with the anguish of one who begins to see a great loss
+facing him where he expected a great joy.
+
+"Rachel! Do you not love me? Is not my love for you as sacred as
+anything in all of life itself?"
+
+She had walked silent for a few steps after that. They passed a
+street lamp. Her face was pale and beautiful. He had made a movement
+to clutch her arm and she had moved a little farther from him.
+
+"No," she had replied. "There was a time I--cannot answer for that
+you--should not have spoken to me--now."
+
+He had seen in these words his answer. He was extremely sensitive.
+Nothing short of a joyous response to his own love would ever have
+satisfied him. He could not think of pleading with her.
+
+"Some time--when I am more worthy?" he had asked in a low voice, but
+she did not seem to hear, and they had parted at her home, and he
+recalled vividly the fact that no good-night had been said.
+
+Now as he went over the brief but significant scene he lashed
+himself for his foolish precipitancy. He had not reckoned on
+Rachel's tense, passionate absorption of all her feeling in the
+scenes at the tent which were so new in her mind. But he did not
+know her well enough even yet to understand the meaning of her
+refusal. When the clock in the First Church struck one he was still
+sitting at his desk staring at the last page of manuscript of his
+unfinished novel.
+
+Rachel went up to her room and faced her evening's experience with
+conflicting emotions. Had she ever loved Jasper Chase? Yes. No. One
+moment she felt that her life's happiness was at stake over the
+result of her action. Another, she had a strange feeling of relief
+that she had spoken as she had. There was one great, overmastering
+feeling in her. The response of the wretched creatures in the tent
+to her singing, the swift, powerful, awesome presence of the Holy
+Spirit had affected her as never in all her life before. The moment
+Jasper had spoken her name and she realized that he was telling her
+of his love she had felt a sudden revulsion for him, as if he should
+have respected the supernatural events they had just witnessed. She
+felt as if it was not the time to be absorbed in anything less than
+the divine glory of those conversions. The thought that all the time
+she was singing, with the one passion of her soul to touch the
+conscience of that tent full of sin, Jasper Chase had been unmoved
+by it except to love her for herself, gave her a shock as of
+irreverence on her part as well as on his. She could not tell why
+she felt as she did, only she knew that if he had not told her
+tonight she would still have felt the same toward him as she always
+had. What was that feeling? What had he been to her? Had she made a
+mistake? She went to her book case and took out the novel which
+Jasper had given her. Her face deepened in color as she turned to
+certain passages which she had read often and which she knew Jasper
+had written for her. She read them again. Somehow they failed to
+touch her strongly. She closed the book and let it lie on the table.
+She gradually felt that her thought was busy with the sights she had
+witnessed in the tent. Those faces, men and women, touched for the
+first time with the Spirit's glory--what a wonderful thing life was
+after all! The complete regeneration revealed in the sight of
+drunken, vile, debauched humanity kneeling down to give itself to a
+life of purity and Christlikeness--oh, it was surely a witness to
+the superhuman in the world! And the face of Rollin Page by the side
+of that miserable wreck out of the gutter! She could recall as if
+she now saw it, Virginia crying with her arms about her brother just
+before she left the tent, and Mr. Gray kneeling close by, and the
+girl Virginia had taken into her heart while she whispered something
+to her before she went out. All these pictures drawn by the Holy
+Spirit in the human tragedies brought to a climax there in the most
+abandoned spot in all Raymond, stood out in Rachel's memory now, a
+memory so recent that her room seemed for the time being to contain
+all the actors and their movements.
+
+"No! No!" she said aloud. "He had no right to speak after all that!
+He should have respected the place where our thoughts should have
+been. I am sure I do not love him--not enough to give him my life!"
+
+And after she had thus spoken, the evening's experience at the tent
+came crowding in again, thrusting out all other things. It is
+perhaps the most striking evidence of the tremendous spiritual
+factor which had now entered the Rectangle that Rachel felt, even
+when the great love of a strong man had come very near to her, that
+the spiritual manifestation moved her with an agitation far greater
+than anything Jasper had felt for her personally or she for him.
+
+The people of Raymond awoke Sunday morning to a growing knowledge of
+events which were beginning to revolutionize many of the regular,
+customary habits of the town. Alexander Powers' action in the matter
+of the railroad frauds had created a sensation not only in Raymond
+but throughout the country. Edward Norman's daily changes of policy
+in the conduct of his paper had startled the community and caused
+more comment than any recent political event. Rachel Winslow's
+singing at the Rectangle meetings had made a stir in society and
+excited the wonder of all her friends.
+
+Virginia's conduct, her presence every night with Rachel, her
+absence from the usual circle of her wealthy, fashionable
+acquaintances, had furnished a great deal of material for gossip and
+question. In addition to these events which centered about these
+persons who were so well known, there had been all through the city
+in very many homes and in business and social circles strange
+happenings. Nearly one hundred persons in Henry Maxwell's church had
+made the pledge to do everything after asking: "What would Jesus
+do?" and the result had been, in many cases, unheard-of actions. The
+city was stirred as it had never been before. As a climax to the
+week's events had come the spiritual manifestation at the Rectangle,
+and the announcement which came to most people before church time of
+the actual conversion at the tent of nearly fifty of the worst
+characters in that neighborhood, together with the con version of
+Rollin Page, the well-known society and club man.
+
+It is no wonder that under the pressure of all this the First Church
+of Raymond came to the morning service in a condition that made it
+quickly sensitive to any large truth. Perhaps nothing had astonished
+the people more than the great change that had come over the
+minister, since he had proposed to them the imitation of Jesus in
+conduct. The dramatic delivery of his sermons no longer impressed
+them. The self-satisfied, contented, easy attitude of the fine
+figure and refined face in the pulpit had been displaced by a manner
+that could not be compared with the old style of his delivery. The
+sermon had become a message. It was no longer delivered. It was
+brought to them with a love, an earnestness, a passion, a desire, a
+humility that poured its enthusiasm about the truth and made the
+speaker no more prominent than he had to be as the living voice of
+God. His prayers were unlike any the people had heard before. They
+were often broken, even once or twice they had been actually
+ungrammatical in a phrase or two. When had Henry Maxwell so far
+forgotten himself in a prayer as to make a mistake of that sort? He
+knew that he had often taken as much pride in the diction and
+delivery of his prayers as of his sermons. Was it possible he now so
+abhorred the elegant refinement of a formal public petition that he
+purposely chose to rebuke himself for his previous precise manner of
+prayer? It is more likely that he had no thought of all that. His
+great longing to voice the needs and wants of his people made him
+unmindful of an occasional mistake. It is certain that he had never
+prayed so effectively as he did now.
+
+There are times when a sermon has a value and power due to
+conditions in the audience rather than to anything new or startling
+or eloquent in the words said or arguments presented. Such
+conditions faced Henry Maxwell this morning as he preached against
+the saloon, according to his purpose determined on the week before.
+He had no new statements to make about the evil influence of the
+saloon in Raymond. What new facts were there? He had no startling
+illustrations of the power of the saloon in business or politics.
+What could he say that had not been said by temperance orators a
+great many times? The effect of his message this morning owed its
+power to the unusual fact of his preaching about the saloon at all,
+together with the events that had stirred the people. He had never
+in the course of his ten years' pastorate mentioned the saloon as
+something to be regarded in the light of an enemy, not only to the
+poor and tempted, but to the business life of the place and the
+church itself. He spoke now with a freedom that seemed to measure
+his complete sense of conviction that Jesus would speak so. At the
+close he pleaded with the people to remember the new life that had
+begun at the Rectangle. The regular election of city officers was
+near at hand. The question of license would be an issue in the
+election. What of the poor creatures surrounded by the hell of drink
+while just beginning to feel the joy of deliverance from sin? Who
+could tell what depended on their environment? Was there one word to
+be said by the Christian disciple, business man, citizen, in favor
+of continuing the license to crime and shame-producing institutions?
+Was not the most Christian thing they could do to act as citizens in
+the matter, fight the saloon at the polls, elect good men to the
+city offices, and clean the municipality? How much had prayers
+helped to make Raymond better while votes and actions had really
+been on the side of the enemies of Jesus? Would not Jesus do this?
+What disciple could imagine Him refusing to suffer or to take up His
+cross in this matter? How much had the members of the First Church
+ever suffered in an attempt to imitate Jesus? Was Christian
+discipleship a thing of conscience simply, of custom, of tradition?
+Where did the suffering come in? Was it necessary in order to follow
+Jesus' steps to go up Calvary as well as the Mount of
+Transfiguration?
+
+His appeal was stronger at this point than he knew. It is not too
+much to say that the spiritual tension of the people reached its
+highest point right there. The imitation of Jesus which had begun
+with the volunteers in the church was working like leaven in the
+organization, and Henry Maxwell would even thus early in his life
+have been amazed if he could have measured the extent of desire on
+the part of his people to take up the cross. While he was speaking
+this morning, before he closed with a loving appeal to the
+discipleship of two thousand years' knowledge of the Master, many a
+man and woman in the church was saying as Rachel had said so
+passionately to her mother: "I want to do something that will cost
+me something in the way of sacrifice." "I am hungry to suffer
+something." Truly, Mazzini was right when he said that no appeal is
+quite so powerful in the end as the call: "Come and suffer."
+
+The service was over, the great audience had gone, and Maxwell again
+faced the company gathered in the lecture room as on the two
+previous Sundays. He had asked all to remain who had made the pledge
+of discipleship, and any others who wished to be included. The after
+service seemed now to be a necessity. As he went in and faced the
+people there his heart trembled. There were at least one hundred
+present. The Holy Spirit was never before so manifest. He missed
+Jasper Chase. But all the others were present. He asked Milton
+Wright to pray. The very air was charged with divine possibilities.
+What could resist such a baptism of power? How had they lived all
+these years without it?
+
+
+
+
+
+
+Chapter Eleven
+
+
+
+
+
+DONALD MARSH, President of Lincoln College, walked home with Mr.
+Maxwell.
+
+"I have reached one conclusion, Maxwell," said Marsh, speaking
+slowly. "I have found my cross and it is a heavy one, but I shall
+never be satisfied until I take it up and carry it." Maxwell was
+silent and the President went on.
+
+"Your sermon today made clear to me what I have long been feeling I
+ought to do. 'What would Jesus do in my place?' I have asked the
+question repeatedly since I made my promise. I have tried to satisfy
+myself that He would simply go on as I have done, attending to the
+duties of my college work, teaching the classes in Ethics and
+Philosophy. But I have not been able to avoid the feeling that He
+would do something more. That something is what I do not want to do.
+It will cause me genuine suffering to do it. I dread it with all my
+soul. You may be able to guess what it is."
+
+"Yes, I think I know. It is my cross too. I would almost rather do
+any thing else."
+
+Donald Marsh looked surprised, then relieved. Then he spoke sadly
+but with great conviction: "Maxwell, you and I belong to a class of
+professional men who have always avoided the duties of citizenship.
+We have lived in a little world of literature and scholarly
+seclusion, doing work we have enjoyed and shrinking from the
+disagreeable duties that belong to the life of the citizen. I
+confess with shame that I have purposely avoided the responsibility
+that I owe to this city personally. I understand that our city
+officials are a corrupt, unprincipled set of men, controlled in
+large part by the whiskey element and thoroughly selfish so far as
+the affairs of city government are concerned. Yet all these years I,
+with nearly every teacher in the college, have been satisfied to let
+other men run the municipality and have lived in a little world of
+my own, out of touch and sympathy with the real world of the people.
+'What would Jesus do?' I have even tried to avoid an honest answer.
+I can no longer do so. My plain duty is to take a personal part in
+this coming election, go to the primaries, throw the weight of my
+influence, whatever it is, toward the nomination and election of
+good men, and plunge into the very depths of the entire horrible
+whirlpool of deceit, bribery, political trickery and saloonism as it
+exists in Raymond today. I would sooner walk up to the mouth of a
+cannon any time than do this. I dread it because I hate the touch of
+the whole matter. I would give almost any thing to be able to say,
+'I do not believe Jesus would do anything of the sort.' But I am
+more and more persuaded that He would. This is where the suffering
+comes for me. It would not hurt me half so much to lose my position
+or my home. I loathe the contact with this municipal problem. I
+would so much prefer to remain quietly in my scholastic life with my
+classes in Ethics and Philosophy. But the call has come to me so
+plainly that I cannot escape. 'Donald Marsh, follow me. Do your duty
+as a citizen of Raymond at the point where your citizenship will
+cost you something. Help to cleanse this municipal stable, even if
+you do have to soil your aristocratic feelings a little.' Maxwell,
+this is my cross, I must take it up or deny my Lord."
+
+"You have spoken for me also," replied Maxwell with a sad smile.
+"Why should I, simply because I am a minister, shelter myself behind
+my refined, sensitive feelings, and like a coward refuse to touch,
+except in a sermon possibly, the duty of citizenship? I am unused to
+the ways of the political life of the city. I have never taken an
+active part in any nomination of good men. There are hundreds of
+ministers like me. As a class we do not practice in the municipal
+life the duties and privileges we preach from the pulpit. 'What
+would Jesus do?' I am now at a point where, like you, I am driven to
+answer the question one way. My duty is plain. I must suffer. All my
+parish work, all my little trials or self-sacrifices are as nothing
+to me compared with the breaking into my scholarly, intellectual,
+self-contained habits, of this open, coarse, public fight for a
+clean city life. I could go and live at the Rectangle the rest of my
+life and work in the slums for a bare living, and I could enjoy it
+more than the thought of plunging into a fight for the reform of
+this whiskey-ridden city. It would cost me less. But, like you, I
+have been unable to shake off my responsibility. The answer to the
+question 'What would Jesus do?' in this case leaves me no peace
+except when I say, Jesus would have me act the part of a Christian
+citizen. Marsh, as you say, we professional men, ministers,
+professors, artists, literary men, scholars, have almost invariably
+been political cowards. We have avoided the sacred duties of
+citizenship either ignorantly or selfishly. Certainly Jesus in our
+age would not do that. We can do no less than take up this cross,
+and follow Him."
+
+The two men walked on in silence for a while. Finally President
+Marsh said: "We do not need to act alone in this matter. With all
+the men who have made the promise we certainly can have
+companionship, and strength even, of numbers. Let us organize the
+Christian forces of Raymond for the battle against rum and
+corruption. We certainly ought to enter the primaries with a force
+that will be able to do more than enter a protest. It is a fact that
+the saloon element is cowardly and easily frightened in spite of its
+lawlessness and corruption. Let us plan a campaign that will mean
+something because it is organized righteousness. Jesus would use
+great wisdom in this matter. He would employ means. He would make
+large plans. Let us do so. If we bear this cross let us do it
+bravely, like men."
+
+They talked over the matter a long time and met again the next day
+in Maxwell's study to develop plans. The city primaries were called
+for Friday. Rumors of strange and unknown events to the average
+citizen were current that week in political circles throughout
+Raymond. The Crawford system of balloting for nominations was not in
+use in the state, and the primary was called for a public meeting at
+the court house.
+
+The citizens of Raymond will never forget that meeting. It was so
+unlike any political meeting ever held in Raymond before, that there
+was no attempt at comparison. The special officers to be nominated
+were mayor, city council, chief of police, city clerk and city
+treasurer.
+
+The evening NEWS in its Saturday edition gave a full account of the
+primaries, and in the editorial columns Edward Norman spoke with a
+directness and conviction that the Christian people of Raymond were
+learning to respect deeply, because it was so evidently sincere and
+unselfish. A part of that editorial is also a part of this history.
+We quote the following:
+
+"It is safe to say that never before in the history of Raymond was
+there a primary like the one in the court house last night. It was,
+first of all, a complete surprise to the city politicians who have
+been in the habit of carrying on the affairs of the city as if they
+owned them, and every one else was simply a tool or a cipher. The
+overwhelming surprise of the wire pullers last night consisted in
+the fact that a large number of the citizens of Raymond who have
+heretofore taken no part in the city's affairs, entered the primary
+and controlled it, nominating some of the best men for all the
+offices to be filled at the coming election.
+
+"It was a tremendous lesson in good citizenship. President Marsh of
+Lincoln College, who never before entered a city primary, and whose
+face was not even known to the ward politicians, made one of the
+best speeches ever made in Raymond. It was almost ludicrous to see
+the faces of the men who for years have done as they pleased, when
+President Marsh rose to speak. Many of them asked, 'Who is he?' The
+consternation deepened as the primary proceeded and it became
+evident that the oldtime ring of city rulers was outnumbered. Rev.
+Henry Maxwell of the First Church, Milton Wright, Alexander Powers,
+Professors Brown, Willard and Park of Lincoln College, Dr. West,
+Rev. George Main of the Pilgrim Church, Dean Ward of the Holy
+Trinity, and scores of well-known business men and professional men,
+most of them church members, were present, and it did not take long
+to see that they had all come with the one direct and definite
+purpose of nominating the best men possible. Most of those men had
+never before been seen in a primary. They were complete strangers to
+the politicians. But they had evidently profited by the politician's
+methods and were able by organized and united effort to nominate the
+entire ticket.
+
+"As soon as it became plain that the primary was out of their
+control the regular ring withdrew in disgust and nominated another
+ticket. The NEWS simply calls the attention of all decent citizens
+to the fact that this last ticket contains the names of whiskey men,
+and the line is sharply and distinctly drawn between the saloon and
+corrupt management such as we have known for years, and a clean,
+honest, capable, business-like city administration, such as every
+good citizen ought to want. It is not necessary to remind the people
+of Raymond that the question of local option comes up at the
+election. That will be the most important question on the ticket.
+The crisis of our city affairs has been reached. The issue is
+squarely before us. Shall we continue the rule of rum and boodle and
+shameless incompetency, or shall we, as President Marsh said in his
+noble speech, rise as good citizens and begin a new order of things,
+cleansing our city of the worst enemy known to municipal honesty,
+and doing what lies in our power to do with the ballot to purify our
+civic life?
+
+"The NEWS is positively and without reservation on the side of the
+new movement. We shall henceforth do all in our power to drive out
+the saloon and destroy its political strength. We shall advocate the
+election of the men nominated by the majority of citizens met in the
+first primary and we call upon all Christians, church members,
+lovers of right, purity, temperance, and the home, to stand by
+President Marsh and the rest of the citizens who have thus begun a
+long-needed reform in our city."
+
+President Marsh read this editorial and thanked God for Edward
+Norman. At the same time he understood well enough that every other
+paper in Raymond was on the other side. He did not underestimate the
+importance and seriousness of the fight which was only just begun.
+It was no secret that the NEWS had lost enormously since it had been
+governed by the standard of "What would Jesus do?" And the question
+was, Would the Christian people of Raymond stand by it? Would they
+make it possible for Norman to conduct a daily Christian paper? Or
+would the desire for what is called news in the way of crime,
+scandal, political partisanship of the regular sort, and a dislike
+to champion so remarkable a reform in journalism, influence them to
+drop the paper and refuse to give it their financial support? That
+was, in fact, the question Edward Norman was asking even while he
+wrote that Saturday editorial. He knew well enough that his actions
+expressed in that editorial would cost him very heavily from the
+hands of many business men in Raymond. And still, as he drove his
+pen over the paper, he asked another question, "What would Jesus
+do?" That question had become a part of this whole life now. It was
+greater than any other.
+
+But for the first time in its history Raymond had seen the
+professional men, the teachers, the college professors, the doctors,
+the ministers, take political action and put themselves definitely
+and sharply in public antagonism to the evil forces that had so long
+controlled the machine of municipal government. The fact itself was
+astounding. President Marsh acknowledged to himself with a feeling
+of humiliation, that never before had he known what civic
+righteousness could accomplish. From that Friday night's work he
+dated for himself and his college a new definition of the worn
+phrase "the scholar in politics." Education for him and those who
+were under his influence ever after meant some element of suffering.
+Sacrifice must now enter into the factor of development.
+
+At the Rectangle that week the tide of spiritual life rose high, and
+as yet showed no signs of flowing back. Rachel and Virginia went
+every night. Virginia was rapidly reaching a conclusion with respect
+to a large part of her money. She had talked it over with Rachel and
+they had been able to agree that if Jesus had a vast amount of money
+at His disposal He might do with some of it as Virginia planned. At
+any rate they felt that whatever He might do in such case would have
+as large an element of variety in it as the differences in persons
+and circumstances. There could be no one fixed Christian way of
+using money. The rule that regulated its use was unselfish utility.
+
+But meanwhile the glory of the Spirit's power possessed all their
+best thought. Night after night that week witnessed miracles as
+great as walking on the sea or feeding the multitude with a few
+loaves and fishes. For what greater miracle is there than a
+regenerate humanity? The transformation of these coarse, brutal,
+sottish lives into praying, rapturous lovers of Christ, struck
+Rachel and Virginia every time with the feeling that people may have
+had when they saw Lazarus walk out of the tomb. It was an experience
+full of profound excitement for them.
+
+Rollin Page came to all the meetings. There was no doubt of the
+change that had come over him. Rachel had not yet spoken much with
+him. He was wonderfully quiet. It seemed as if he was thinking all
+the time. Certainly he was not the same person. He talked more with
+Gray than with any one else. He did not avoid Rachel, but he seemed
+to shrink from any appearance of seeming to renew the acquaintance
+with her. Rachel found it even difficult to express to him her
+pleasure at the new life he had begun to know. He seemed to be
+waiting to adjust himself to his previous relations before this new
+life began. He had not forgotten those relations. But he was not yet
+able to fit his consciousness into new ones.
+
+The end of the week found the Rectangle struggling hard between two
+mighty opposing forces. The Holy Spirit was battling with all His
+supernatural strength against the saloon devil which had so long
+held a jealous grasp on its slaves. If the Christian people of
+Raymond once could realize what the contest meant to the souls newly
+awakened to a purer life it did not seem possible that the election
+could result in the old system of license. But that remained yet to
+be seen. The horror of the daily surroundings of many of the
+converts was slowly burning its way into the knowledge of Virginia
+and Rachel, and every night as they went uptown to their luxurious
+homes they carried heavy hearts.
+
+"A good many of these poor creatures will go back again," Gray would
+say with sadness too deep for tears. "The environment does have a
+good deal to do with the character. It does not stand to reason that
+these people can always resist the sight and smell of the devilish
+drink about them. O Lord, how long shall Christian people continue
+to support by their silence and their ballots the greatest form of
+slavery known in America?"
+
+He asked the question, and did not have much hope of an immediate
+answer. There was a ray of hope in the action of Friday night's
+primary, but what the result would be he did not dare to anticipate.
+The whiskey forces were organized, alert, aggressive, roused into
+unusual hatred by the events of the last week at the tent and in the
+city. Would the Christian forces act as a unit against the saloon?
+Or would they be divided on account of their business interests or
+because they were not in the habit of acting all together as the
+whiskey power always did? That remained to be seen. Meanwhile the
+saloon reared itself about the Rectangle like some deadly viper
+hissing and coiling, ready to strike its poison into any unguarded
+part.
+
+Saturday afternoon as Virginia was just stepping out of her house to
+go and see Rachel to talk over her new plans, a carriage drove up
+containing three of her fashionable friends. Virginia went out to
+the drive-way and stood there talking with them. They had not come
+to make a formal call but wanted Virginia to go driving with them up
+on the boulevard. There was a band concert in the park. The day was
+too pleasant to be spent indoors.
+
+"Where have you been all this time, Virginia?" asked one of the
+girls, tapping her playfully on the shoulder with a red silk
+parasol. "We hear that you have gone into the show business. Tell us
+about it."
+
+Virginia colored, but after a moment's hesitation she frankly told
+something of her experience at the Rectangle. The girls in the
+carriage began to be really interested.
+
+"I tell you, girls, let's go 'slumming' with Virginia this afternoon
+instead of going to the band concert. I've never been down to the
+Rectangle. I've heard it's an awful wicked place and lots to see.
+Virginia will act as guide, and it would be"--"real fun" she was
+going to say, but Virginia's look made her substitute the word
+"interesting."
+
+Virginia was angry. At first thought she said to herself she would
+never go under such circumstances. The other girls seemed to be of
+the same mind with the speaker. They chimed in with earnestness and
+asked Virginia to take them down there.
+
+Suddenly she saw in the idle curiosity of the girls an opportunity.
+They had never seen the sin and misery of Raymond. Why should they
+not see it, even if their motive in going down there was simply to
+pass away an afternoon.
+
+
+
+
+
+
+Chapter Twelve
+
+
+
+
+
+"For I come to set a man at variance against his father, and the
+daughter against her mother, and the daughter-in-law against her
+mother-in-law; and a man's foes shall be they of his own household."
+
+"Be ye therefore imitators of God, as beloved children; and walk in
+love, even as Christ also loved you."
+
+"HADN'T we better take a policeman along?" said one of the girls
+with a nervous laugh. "It really isn't safe down there, you know."
+
+"There's no danger," said Virginia briefly.
+
+"Is it true that your brother Rollin has been converted?" asked the
+first speaker, looking at Virginia curiously. It impressed her
+during the drive to the Rectangle that all three of her friends were
+regarding her with close attention as if she were peculiar.
+
+"Yes, he certainly is."
+
+"I understand he is going around to the clubs talking with his old
+friends there, trying to preach to them. Doesn't that seem funny?"
+said the girl with the red silk parasol.
+
+Virginia did not answer, and the other girls were beginning to feel
+sober as the carriage turned into a street leading to the Rectangle.
+As they neared the district they grew more and more nervous. The
+sights and smells and sounds which had become familiar to Virginia
+struck the senses of these refined, delicate society girls as
+something horrible. As they entered farther into the district, the
+Rectangle seemed to stare as with one great, bleary, beer-soaked
+countenance at this fine carriage with its load of fashionably
+dressed young women. "Slumming" had never been a fad with Raymond
+society, and this was perhaps the first time that the two had come
+together in this way. The girls felt that instead of seeing the
+Rectangle they were being made the objects of curiosity. They were
+frightened and disgusted.
+
+"Let's go back. I've seen enough," said the girl who was sitting
+with Virginia.
+
+They were at that moment just opposite a notorious saloon and
+gambling house. The street was narrow and the sidewalk crowded.
+Suddenly, out of the door of this saloon a young woman reeled. She
+was singing in a broken, drunken sob that seemed to indicate that
+she partly realized her awful condition, "Just as I am, without one
+plea"--and as the carriage rolled past she leered at it, raising her
+face so that Virginia saw it very close to her own. It was the face
+of the girl who had kneeled sobbing, that night with Virginia
+kneeling beside her and praying for her.
+
+"Stop!" cried Virginia, motioning to the driver who was looking
+around. The carriage stopped, and in a moment she was out and had
+gone up to the girl and taken her by the arm. "Loreen!" she said,
+and that was all. The girl looked into her face, and her own changed
+into a look of utter horror. The girls in the carriage were smitten
+into helpless astonishment. The saloon-keeper had come to the door
+of the saloon and was standing there looking on with his hands on
+his hips. And the Rectangle from its windows, its saloon steps, its
+filthy sidewalk, gutter and roadway, paused, and with undisguised
+wonder stared at the two girls. Over the scene the warm sun of
+spring poured its mellow light. A faint breath of music from the
+band-stand in the park floated into the Rectangle. The concert had
+begun, and the fashion and wealth of Raymond were displaying
+themselves up town on the boulevard.
+
+When Virginia left the carriage and went up to Loreen she had no
+definite idea as to what she would do or what the result of her
+action would be. She simply saw a soul that had tasted of the joy of
+a better life slipping back again into its old hell of shame and
+death. And before she had touched the drunken girl's arm she had
+asked only one question, "What would Jesus do?" That question was
+becoming with her, as with many others, a habit of life.
+
+She looked around now as she stood close by Loreen, and the whole
+scene was cruelly vivid to her. She thought first of the girls in
+the carriage.
+
+"Drive on; don't wait for me. I am going to see my friend home," she
+said calmly enough.
+
+The girl with the red parasol seemed to gasp at the word "friend,"
+when Virginia spoke it. She did not say anything.
+
+The other girls seemed speechless.
+
+"Go on. I cannot go back with you," said Virginia. The driver
+started the horses slowly. One of the girls leaned a little out of
+the carriage.
+
+"Can't we--that is--do you want our help? Couldn't you--"
+
+"No, no!" exclaimed Virginia. "You cannot be of any help to me."
+
+The carriage moved on and Virginia was alone with her charge. She
+looked up and around. Many faces in the crowd were sympathetic. They
+were not all cruel or brutal. The Holy Spirit had softened a good
+deal of the Rectangle.
+
+"Where does she live?" asked Virginia.
+
+No one answered. It occurred to Virginia afterward when she had time
+to think it over, that the Rectangle showed a delicacy in its sad
+silence that would have done credit to the boulevard. For the first
+time it flashed across her that the immortal being who was flung
+like wreckage upon the shore of this early hell called the saloon,
+had no place that could be called home. The girl suddenly wrenched
+her arm from Virginia's grasp. In doing so she nearly threw Virginia
+down.
+
+"You shall not touch me! Leave me! Let me go to hell! That's where I
+belong! The devil is waiting for me. See him!" she exclaimed
+hoarsely. She turned and pointed with a shaking finger at the
+saloon-keeper. The crowd laughed. Virginia stepped up to her and put
+her arm about her.
+
+"Loreen," she said firmly, "come with me. You do not belong to hell.
+You belong to Jesus and He will save you. Come."
+
+The girl suddenly burst into tears. She was only partly sobered by
+the shock of meeting Virginia.
+
+Virginia looked around again. "Where does Mr. Gray live?" she asked.
+She knew that the evangelist boarded somewhere near the tent. A
+number of voices gave the direction.
+
+"Come, Loreen, I want you to go with me to Mr. Gray's," she said,
+still keeping her hold of the swaying, trembling creature who moaned
+and sobbed and now clung to her as firmly as before she had repulsed
+her.
+
+So the two moved on through the Rectangle toward the evangelist's
+lodging place. The sight seemed to impress the Rectangle seriously.
+It never took itself seriously when it was drunk, but this was
+different. The fact that one of the richest, most
+beautifully-dressed girls in all Raymond was taking care of one of
+the Rectangle's most noted characters, who reeled along under the
+influence of liquor, was a fact astounding enough to throw more or
+less dignity and importance about Loreen herself. The event of
+Loreen's stumbling through the gutter dead-drunk always made the
+Rectangle laugh and jest. But Loreen staggering along with a young
+lady from the society circles uptown supporting her, was another
+thing. The Rectangle viewed it with soberness and more or less
+wondering admiration.
+
+When they finally reached Mr. Gray's lodging place the woman who
+answered Virginia's knock said that both Mr. and Mrs. Gray were out
+somewhere and would not be back until six o'clock.
+
+Virginia had not planned anything farther than a possible appeal to
+the Grays, either to take charge of Loreen for a while or find some
+safe place for her until she was sober. She stood now at the door
+after the woman had spoken, and she was really at a loss to know
+what to do. Loreen sank down stupidly on the steps and buried her
+face in her arms. Virginia eyed the miserable figure of the girl
+with a feeling that she was afraid would grow into disgust.
+
+Finally a thought possessed her that she could not escape. What was
+to hinder her from taking Loreen home with her? Why should not this
+homeless, wretched creature, reeking with the fumes of liquor, be
+cared for in Virginia's own home instead of being consigned to
+strangers in some hospital or house of charity? Virginia really knew
+very little about any such places of refuge. As a matter of fact,
+there were two or three such institutions in Raymond, but it is
+doubtful if any of them would have taken a person like Loreen in her
+present condition. But that was not the question with Virginia just
+now. "What would Jesus do with Loreen?" That was what Virginia
+faced, and she finally answered it by touching the girl again.
+
+"Loreen, come. You are going home with me. We will take the car here
+at the corner."
+
+Loreen staggered to her feet and, to Virginia's surprise, made no
+trouble. She had expected resistance or a stubborn refusal to move.
+When they reached the corner and took the car it was nearly full of
+people going uptown. Virginia was painfully conscious of the stare
+that greeted her and her companion as they entered. But her thought
+was directed more and more to the approaching scene with her
+grandmother. What would Madam Page say?
+
+Loreen was nearly sober now. But she was lapsing into a state of
+stupor. Virginia was obliged to hold fast to her arm. Several times
+the girl lurched heavily against her, and as the two went up the
+avenue a curious crowd of so-called civilized people turned and
+gazed at them. When she mounted the steps of her handsome house
+Virginia breathed a sigh of relief, even in the face of the
+interview with the grandmother, and when the door shut and she was
+in the wide hall with her homeless outcast, she felt equal to
+anything that might now come.
+
+Madam Page was in the library. Hearing Virginia come in, she came
+into the hall. Virginia stood there supporting Loreen, who stared
+stupidly at the rich magnificence of the furnishings around her.
+
+"Grandmother," Virginia spoke without hesitation and very clearly,
+"I have brought one of my friends from the Rectangle. She is in
+trouble and has no home. I am going to care for her here a little
+while."
+
+Madam Page glanced from her granddaughter to Loreen in astonishment.
+
+"Did you say she is one of your friends?" she asked in a cold,
+sneering voice that hurt Virginia more than anything she had yet
+felt.
+
+"Yes, I said so." Virginia's face flushed, but she seemed to recall
+a verse that Mr. Gray had used for one of his recent sermons, "A
+friend of publicans and sinners." Surely, Jesus would do this that
+she was doing.
+
+"Do you know what this girl is?" asked Madam Page, in an angry
+whisper, stepping near Virginia.
+
+"I know very well. She is an outcast. You need not tell me,
+grandmother. I know it even better than you do. She is drunk at this
+minute. But she is also a child of God. I have seen her on her
+knees, repentant. And I have seen hell reach out its horrible
+fingers after her again. And by the grace of Christ I feel that the
+least that I can do is to rescue her from such peril. Grandmother,
+we call ourselves Christians. Here is a poor, lost human creature
+without a home, slipping back into a life of misery and possibly
+eternal loss, and we have more than enough. I have brought her here,
+and I shall keep her."
+
+Madam Page glared at Virginia and clenched her hands. All this was
+contrary to her social code of conduct. How could society excuse
+familiarity with the scum of the streets? What would Virginia's
+action cost the family in the way of criticism and loss of standing,
+and all that long list of necessary relations which people of wealth
+and position must sustain to the leaders of society? To Madam Page
+society represented more than the church or any other institution.
+It was a power to be feared and obeyed. The loss of its good-will
+was a loss more to be dreaded than anything except the loss of
+wealth itself.
+
+She stood erect and stern and confronted Virginia, fully roused and
+determined. Virginia placed her arm about Loreen and calmly looked
+her grandmother in the face.
+
+"You shall not do this, Virginia! You can send her to the asylum for
+helpless women. We can pay all the expenses. We cannot afford for
+the sake of our reputations to shelter such a person."
+
+"Grandmother, I do not wish to do anything that is displeasing to
+you, but I must keep Loreen here tonight, and longer if it seems
+best."
+
+"Then you can answer for the consequences! I do not stay in the same
+house with a miserable--" Madam Page lost her self-control. Virginia
+stopped her before she could speak the next word.
+
+"Grandmother, this house is mine. It is your home with me as long as
+you choose to remain. But in this matter I must act as I fully
+believe Jesus would in my place. I am willing to bear all that
+society may say or do. Society is not my God. By the side of this
+poor soul I do not count the verdict of society as of any value."
+
+"I shall not stay here, then!" said Madam Page. She turned suddenly
+and walked to the end of the hall. She then came back, and going up
+to Virginia said, with an emphasis that revealed her intensive
+excitement of passion: "You can always remember that you have driven
+your grandmother out of your house in favor of a drunken woman;"
+then, without waiting for Virginia to reply, she turned again and
+went upstairs. Virginia called a servant and soon had Loreen cared
+for. She was fast lapsing into a wretched condition. During the
+brief scene in the hall she had clung to Virginia so hard that her
+arm was sore from the clutch of the girl's fingers.
+
+
+
+
+
+
+Chapter Thirteen
+
+
+
+
+
+WHEN the bell rang for tea she went down and her grandmother did not
+appear. She sent a servant to her room who brought back word that
+Madam Page was not there. A few minutes later Rollin came in. He
+brought word that his grandmother had taken the evening train for
+the South. He had been at the station to see some friends off, and
+had by chance met his grandmother as he was coming out. She had told
+him her reason for going.
+
+Virginia and Rollin comforted each other at the tea table, looking
+at each other with earnest, sad faces.
+
+"Rollin," said Virginia, and for the first time, almost, since his
+conversion she realized what a wonderful thing her brother's changed
+life meant to her, "do you blame me? Am I wrong?"
+
+"No, dear, I cannot believe you are. This is very painful for us.
+But if you think this poor creature owes her safety and salvation to
+your personal care, it was the only thing for you to do. O Virginia,
+to think that we have all these years enjoyed our beautiful home and
+all these luxuries selfishly, forgetful of the multitudes like this
+woman! Surely Jesus in our places would do what you have done."
+
+And so Rollin comforted Virginia and counseled with her that
+evening. And of all the wonderful changes that she henceforth was to
+know on account of her great pledge, nothing affected her so
+powerfully as the thought of Rollin's change of life. Truly, this
+man in Christ was a new creature. Old things were passed away.
+Behold, all things in him had become new.
+
+Dr. West came that evening at Virginia's summons and did everything
+necessary for the outcast. She had drunk herself almost into
+delirium. The best that could be done for her now was quiet nursing
+and careful watching and personal love. So, in a beautiful room,
+with a picture of Christ walking by the sea hanging on the wall,
+where her bewildered eyes caught daily something more of its hidden
+meaning, Loreen lay, tossed she hardly knew how into this haven, and
+Virginia crept nearer the Master than she had ever been, as her
+heart went out towards this wreck which had thus been flung torn and
+beaten at her feet.
+
+Meanwhile the Rectangle awaited the issue of the election with more
+than usual interest; and Mr. Gray and his wife wept over the poor,
+pitiful creatures who, after a struggle with surroundings that daily
+tempted them, too often wearied of the struggle and, like Loreen,
+threw up their arms and went whirling over the cataract into the
+boiling abyss of their previous condition.
+
+The after-meeting at the First Church was now eagerly established.
+Henry Maxwell went into the lecture-room on the Sunday succeeding
+the week of the primary, and was greeted with an enthusiasm that
+made him tremble at first for its reality. He noted again the
+absence of Jasper Chase, but all the others were present, and they
+seemed drawn very close together by a bond of common fellowship that
+demanded and enjoyed mutual confidences. It was the general feeling
+that the spirit of Jesus was the spirit of very open, frank
+confession of experience. It seemed the most natural thing in the
+world, therefore, for Edward Norman to be telling all the rest of
+the company about the details of his newspaper.
+
+"The fact is, I have lost a great deal of money during the last
+three weeks. I cannot tell just how much. I am losing a great many
+subscribers every day."
+
+"What do the subscribers give as their reason for dropping the
+paper?" asked Mr. Maxwell. All the rest were listening eagerly.
+
+"There are a good many different reasons. Some say they want a paper
+that prints all the news; meaning, by that, the crime details,
+sensations like prize fights, scandals and horrors of various kinds.
+Others object to the discontinuance of the Sunday edition. I have
+lost hundreds of subscribers by that action, although I have made
+satisfactory arrangements with many of the old subscribers by giving
+them even more in the extra Saturday edition than they formerly had
+in the Sunday issue. My greatest loss has come from a falling off in
+advertisements, and from the attitude I have felt obliged to take on
+political questions. The last action has really cost me more than
+any other. The bulk of my subscribers are intensely partisan. I may
+as well tell you all frankly that if I continue to pursue the plan
+which I honestly believe Jesus would pursue in the matter of
+political issues and their treatment from a non-partisan and moral
+standpoint, the NEWS will not be able to pay its operating expenses
+unless one factor in Raymond can be depended on."
+
+He paused a moment and the room was very quiet. Virginia seemed
+specially interested. Her face glowed with interest. It was like the
+interest of a person who had been thinking hard of the same thing
+which Norman went on to mention.
+
+"That one factor is the Christian element in Raymond. Say the NEWS
+has lost heavily from the dropping off of people who do not care for
+a Christian daily, and from others who simply look upon a newspaper
+as a purveyor of all sorts of material to amuse or interest them,
+are there enough genuine Christian people in Raymond who will rally
+to the support of a paper such as Jesus would probably edit? or are
+the habits of the church people so firmly established in their
+demand for the regular type of journalism that they will not take a
+paper unless it is stripped largely of the Christian and moral
+purpose? I may say in this fellowship gathering that owing to recent
+complications in my business affairs outside of my paper I have been
+obliged to lose a large part of my fortune. I had to apply the same
+rule of Jesus' probable conduct to certain transactions with other
+men who did not apply it to their conduct, and the result has been
+the loss of a great deal of money. As I understand the promise we
+made, we were not to ask any question about 'Will it pay?' but all
+our action was to be based on the one question, 'What would Jesus
+do?' Acting on that rule of conduct, I have been obliged to lose
+nearly all the money I have accumulated in my paper. It is not
+necessary for me to go into details. There is no question with me
+now, after the three weeks' experience I have had, that a great many
+men would lose vast sums of money under the present system of
+business if this rule of Jesus was honestly applied. I mention my
+loss here because I have the fullest faith in the final success of a
+daily paper conducted on the lines I have recently laid down, and I
+had planned to put into it my entire fortune in order to win final
+success. As it is now, unless, as I said, the Christian people of
+Raymond, the church members and professing disciples, will support
+the paper with subscriptions and advertisements, I cannot continue
+its publication on the present basis."
+
+Virginia asked a question. She had followed Mr. Norman's confession
+with the most intense eagerness.
+
+"Do you mean that a Christian daily ought to be endowed with a large
+sum like a Christian college in order to make it pay?"
+
+"That is exactly what I mean. I had laid out plans for putting into
+the NEWS such a variety of material in such a strong and truly
+interesting way that it would more than make up for whatever was
+absent from its columns in the way of un-Christian matter. But my
+plans called for a very large output of money. I am very confident
+that a Christian daily such as Jesus would approve, containing only
+what He would print, can be made to succeed financially if it is
+planned on the right lines. But it will take a large sum of money to
+work out the plans."
+
+"How much, do you think?" asked Virginia quietly.
+
+Edward Norman looked at her keenly, and his face flushed a moment as
+an idea of her purpose crossed his mind. He had known her when she
+was a little girl in the Sunday-school, and he had been on intimate
+business relations with her father.
+
+"I should say half a million dollars in a town like Raymond could be
+well spent in the establishment of a paper such as we have in mind,"
+he answered. His voice trembled a little. The keen look on his
+grizzled face flashed out with a stern but thoroughly Christian
+anticipation of great achievements in the world of newspaper life,
+as it had opened up to him within the last few seconds.
+
+"Then," said Virginia, speaking as if the thought was fully
+considered, "I am ready to put that amount of money into the paper
+on the one condition, of course, that it be carried on as it has
+been begun."
+
+"Thank God!" exclaimed Mr. Maxwell softly. Norman was pale. The rest
+were looking at Virginia. She had more to say.
+
+"Dear friends," she went on, and there was a sadness in her voice
+that made an impression on the rest that deepened when they thought
+it over afterwards, "I do not want any of you to credit me with an
+act of great generosity. I have come to know lately that the money
+which I have called my own is not mine, but God's. If I, as steward
+of His, see some wise way to invest His money, it is not an occasion
+for vainglory or thanks from any one simply because I have proved in
+my administration of the funds He has asked me to use for His glory.
+I have been thinking of this very plan for some time. The fact is,
+dear friends, that in our coming fight with the whiskey power in
+Raymond--and it has only just begun--we shall need the NEWS to
+champion the Christian side. You all know that all the other papers
+are for the saloon. As long as the saloon exists, the work of
+rescuing dying souls at the Rectangle is carried on at a terrible
+disadvantage. What can Mr. Gray do with his gospel meetings when
+half his converts are drinking people, daily tempted and enticed by
+the saloon on every corner? It would be giving up to the enemy to
+allow the NEWS to fail. I have great confidence in Mr. Norman's
+ability. I have not seen his plans, but I have the same confidence
+that he has in making the paper succeed if it is carried forward on
+a large enough scale. I cannot believe that Christian intelligence
+in journalism will be inferior to un-Christian intelligence, even
+when it comes to making the paper pay financially. So that is my
+reason for putting this money--God's, not mine--into this powerful
+agent for doing as Jesus would do. If we can keep such a paper going
+for one year, I shall be willing to see that amount of money used in
+that experiment. Do not thank me. Do not consider my doing it a
+wonderful thing. What have I done with God's money all these years
+but gratify my own selfish personal desires? What can I do with the
+rest of it but try to make some reparation for what I have stolen
+from God? That is the way I look at it now. I believe it is what
+Jesus would do."
+
+Over the lecture-room swept that unseen yet distinctly felt wave of
+Divine Presence. No one spoke for a while. Mr. Maxwell standing
+there, where the faces lifted their intense gaze into his, felt what
+he had already felt--a strange setting back out of the nineteenth
+century into the first, when the disciples had all things in common,
+and a spirit of fellowship must have flowed freely between them such
+as the First Church of Raymond had never before known. How much had
+his church membership known of this fellowship in daily interests
+before this little company had begun to do as they believed Jesus
+would do? It was with difficulty that he thought of his present age
+and surroundings. The same thought was present with all the rest,
+also. There was an unspoken comradeship such as they had never
+known. It was present with them while Virginia was speaking, and
+during the silence that followed. If it had been defined by any of
+them it would perhaps have taken some such shape as this: "If I
+shall, in the course of my obedience to my promise, meet with loss
+or trouble in the world, I can depend upon the genuine, practical
+sympathy and fellowship of any other Christian in this room who has,
+with me, made the pledge to do all things by the rule, 'What would
+Jesus do?'"
+
+All this, the distinct wave of spiritual power emphasized. It had
+the effect that a physical miracle may have had on the early
+disciples in giving them a feeling of confidence in the Lord that
+helped them to face loss and martyrdom with courage and even joy.
+
+Before they went away this time there were several confidences like
+those of Edward Norman's. Some of the young men told of loss of
+places owing to their honest obedience to their promise. Alexander
+Powers spoke briefly of the fact that the Commission had promised to
+take action on his evidence at the earliest date possible.
+
+
+
+
+
+
+Chapter Fourteen
+
+
+
+
+
+BUT more than any other feeling at this meeting rose the tide of
+fellowship for one another. Maxwell watched it, trembling for its
+climax which he knew was not yet reached. When it was, where would
+it lead them? He did not know, but he was not unduly alarmed about
+it. Only he watched with growing wonder the results of that simple
+promise as it was being obeyed in these various lives. Those results
+were already being felt all over the city. Who could measure their
+influence at the end of a year?
+
+One practical form of this fellowship showed itself in the
+assurances which Edward Norman received of support for his paper.
+There was a general flocking toward him when the meeting closed, and
+the response to his appeal for help from the Christian disciples in
+Raymond was fully understood by this little company. The value of
+such a paper in the homes and in behalf of good citizenship,
+especially at the present crisis in the city, could not be measured.
+It remained to be seen what could be done now that the paper was
+endowed so liberally. But it still was true, as Norman insisted,
+that money alone could not make the paper a power. It must receive
+the support and sympathy of the Christians in Raymond before it
+could be counted as one of the great forces of the city.
+
+The week that followed this Sunday meeting was one of great
+excitement in Raymond. It was the week of the election. President
+Marsh, true to his promise, took up his cross and bore it manfully,
+but with shuddering, with groans and even tears, for his deepest
+conviction was touched, and he tore himself out of the scholarly
+seclusion of years with a pain and anguish that cost him more than
+anything he had ever done as a follower of Christ. With him were a
+few of the college professors who had made the pledge in the First
+Church. Their experience and suffering were the same as his; for
+their isolation from all the duties of citizenship had been the
+same. The same was also true of Henry Maxwell, who plunged into the
+horror of this fight against whiskey and its allies with a sickening
+dread of each day's new encounter with it. For never before had he
+borne such a cross. He staggered under it, and in the brief
+intervals when he came in from the work and sought the quiet of his
+study for rest, the sweat broke out on his forehead, and he felt the
+actual terror of one who marches into unseen, unknown horrors.
+Looking back on it afterwards he was amazed at his experience. He
+was not a coward, but he felt the dread that any man of his habits
+feels when confronted suddenly with a duty which carries with it the
+doing of certain things so unfamiliar that the actual details
+connected with it betray his ignorance and fill him with the shame
+of humiliation.
+
+When Saturday, the election day, came, the excitement rose to its
+height. An attempt was made to close all the saloons. It was only
+partly successful. There was a great deal of drinking going on all
+day. The Rectangle boiled and heaved and cursed and turned its worst
+side out to the gaze of the city. Gray had continued his meetings
+during the week, and the results had been even greater than he had
+dared to hope. When Saturday came, it seemed to him that the crisis
+in his work had been reached. The Holy Spirit and the Satan of rum
+seemed to rouse up to a desperate conflict. The more interest in the
+meetings, the more ferocity and vileness outside. The saloon men no
+longer concealed their feelings. Open threats of violence were made.
+Once during the week Gray and his little company of helpers were
+assailed with missiles of various kinds as they left the tent late
+at night. The police sent down a special force, and Virginia and
+Rachel were always under the protection of either Rollin or Dr.
+West. Rachel's power in song had not diminished. Rather, with each
+night, it seemed to add to the intensity and reality of the Spirit's
+presence.
+
+Gray had at first hesitated about having a meeting that night. But
+he had a simple rule of action, and was always guided by it. The
+Spirit seemed to lead him to continue the meeting, and so Saturday
+night he went on as usual.
+
+The excitement all over the city had reached its climax when the
+polls closed at six o'clock. Never before had there been such a
+contest in Raymond. The issue of license or no-license had never
+been an issue under such circumstances. Never before had such
+elements in the city been arrayed against each other. It was an
+unheard-of thing that the President of Lincoln College, the pastor
+of the First Church, the Dean of the Cathedral, the professional men
+living in fine houses on the boulevard, should come personally into
+the wards, and by their presence and their example represent the
+Christian conscience of the place. The ward politicians were
+astonished at the sight. However, their astonishment did not prevent
+their activity. The fight grew hotter every hour, and when six
+o'clock came neither side could have guessed at the result with any
+certainty. Every one agreed that never before had there been such an
+election in Raymond, and both sides awaited the announcement of the
+result with the greatest interest.
+
+It was after ten o'clock when the meeting at the tent was closed. It
+had been a strange and, in some respects, a remarkable meeting.
+Maxwell had come down again at Gray's request. He was completely
+worn out by the day's work, but the appeal from Gray came to him in
+such a form that he did not feel able to resist it. President Marsh
+was also present. He had never been to the Rectangle, and his
+curiosity was aroused from what he had noticed of the influence of
+the evangelist in the worst part of the city. Dr. West and Rollin
+had come with Rachel and Virginia; and Loreen, who still stayed with
+Virginia, was present near the organ, in her right mind, sober, with
+a humility and dread of herself that kept her as close to Virginia
+as a faithful dog. All through the service she sat with bowed head,
+weeping a part of the time, sobbing when Rachel sang the song, "I
+was a wandering sheep," clinging with almost visible, tangible
+yearning to the one hope she had found, listening to prayer and
+appeal and confession all about her like one who was a part of a new
+creation, yet fearful of her right to share in it fully.
+
+The tent had been crowded. As on some other occasions, there was
+more or less disturbance on the outside. This had increased as the
+night advanced, and Gray thought it wise not to prolong the service.
+
+Once in a while a shout as from a large crowd swept into the tent.
+The returns from the election were beginning to come in, and the
+Rectangle had emptied every lodging house, den and hovel into the
+streets.
+
+In spite of these distractions Rachel's singing kept the crowd in
+the tent from dissolving. There were a dozen or more conversions.
+Finally the people became restless and Gray closed the service,
+remaining a little while with the converts.
+
+Rachel, Virginia, Loreen, Rollin and the Doctor, President Marsh,
+Mr. Maxwell and Dr. West went out together, intending to go down to
+the usual waiting place for their car. As they came out of the tent
+they were at once aware that the Rectangle was trembling on the
+verge of a drunken riot, and as they pushed through the gathering
+mobs in the narrow streets they began to realize that they
+themselves were objects of great attention.
+
+"There he is--the bloke in the tall hat! He's the leader! shouted a
+rough voice. President Marsh, with his erect, commanding figure, was
+conspicuous in the little company.
+
+"How has the election gone? It is too early to know the result yet,
+isn't it?" He asked the question aloud, and a man answered:
+
+"They say second and third wards have gone almost solid for
+no-license. If that is so, the whiskey men have been beaten."
+
+"Thank God! I hope it is true!" exclaimed Maxwell. "Marsh, we are in
+danger here. Do you realize our situation? We ought to get the
+ladies to a place of safety."
+
+"That is true," said Marsh gravely. At that moment a shower of
+stones and other missiles fell over them. The narrow street and
+sidewalk in front of them was completely choked with the worst
+elements of the Rectangle.
+
+"This looks serious," said Maxwell. With Marsh and Rollin and Dr.
+West he started to go forward through a small opening, Virginia,
+Rachel, and Loreen following close and sheltered by the men, who now
+realized something of their danger. The Rectangle was drunk and
+enraged. It saw in Marsh and Maxwell two of the leaders in the
+election contest which had perhaps robbed them of their beloved
+saloon.
+
+"Down with the aristocrats!" shouted a shrill voice, more like a
+woman's than a man's. A shower of mud and stones followed. Rachel
+remembered afterwards that Rollin jumped directly in front of her
+and received on his head and chest a number of blows that would
+probably have struck her if he had not shielded her from them.
+
+And just then, before the police reached them, Loreen darted forward
+in front of Virginia and pushed her aside, looking up and screaming.
+It was so sudden that no one had time to catch the face of the one
+who did it. But out of the upper window of a room, over the very
+saloon where Loreen had come out a week before, someone had thrown a
+heavy bottle. It struck Loreen on the head and she fell to the
+ground. Virginia turned and instantly kneeled down by her. The
+police officers by that time had reached the little company.
+
+President Marsh raised his arm and shouted over the howl that was
+beginning to rise from the wild beast in the mob.
+
+"Stop! You've killed a woman!" The announcement partly sobered the
+crowd.
+
+"Is it true?" Maxwell asked it, as Dr. West kneeled on the other
+side of Loreen, supporting her.
+
+"She's dying!" said Dr. West briefly.
+
+Loreen opened her eyes and smiled at Virginia, who wiped the blood
+from her face and then bent over and kissed her. Loreen smiled
+again, and the next minute her soul was in Paradise.
+
+
+
+
+
+
+Chapter Fifteen
+
+
+
+
+
+"He that followeth me shall not walk in darkness."
+
+THE body of Loreen lay in state at the Page mansion on the avenue.
+It was Sunday morning and the clear sweet spring air, just beginning
+to breathe over the city the perfume of early blossoms in the woods
+and fields, swept over the casket from one of the open windows at
+the end of the grand hall. The church bells were ringing and people
+on the avenue going by to service turned curious, inquiring looks up
+at the great house and then went on, talking of the recent events
+which had so strangely entered into and made history in the city.
+
+At the First Church, Mr. Maxwell, bearing on his face marks of the
+scene he had been through, confronted an immense congregation, and
+spoke to it with a passion and a power that came so naturally out of
+the profound experiences of the day before that his people felt for
+him something of the old feeling of pride they once had in his
+dramatic delivery. Only this was with a different attitude. And all
+through his impassioned appeal this morning, there was a note of
+sadness and rebuke and stern condemnation that made many of the
+members pale with self-accusation or with inward anger.
+
+For Raymond had awakened that morning to the fact that the city had
+gone for license after all. The rumor at the Rectangle that the
+second and third wards had gone no-license proved to be false. It
+was true that the victory was won by a very meager majority. But the
+result was the same as if it had been overwhelming. Raymond had
+voted to continue for another year the saloon. The Christians of
+Raymond stood condemned by the result. More than a hundred
+professing Christian disciples had failed to go to the polls, and
+many more than that number had voted with the whiskey men. If all
+the church members of Raymond had voted against the saloon, it would
+today be outlawed instead of crowned king of the municipality. For
+that had been the fact in Raymond for years. The saloon ruled. No
+one denied that. What would Jesus do? And this woman who had been
+brutally struck down by the very hand that had assisted so eagerly
+to work her earthly ruin what of her? Was it anything more than the
+logical sequence of the whole horrible system of license, that for
+another year the very saloon that received her so often and
+compassed her degradation, from whose very spot the weapon had been
+hurled that struck her dead, would, by the law which the Christian
+people of Raymond voted to support, perhaps open its doors tomorrow
+and damn a hundred Loreens before the year had drawn to its bloody
+close?
+
+All this, with a voice that rang and trembled and broke in sobs of
+anguish for the result, did Henry Maxwell pour out upon his people
+that Sunday morning. And men and women wept as he spoke. President
+Marsh sat there, his usual erect, handsome, firm, bright
+self-confident bearing all gone; his head bowed upon his breast, the
+great tears rolling down his cheeks, unmindful of the fact that
+never before had he shown outward emotion in a public service.
+Edward Norman near by sat with his clear-cut, keen face erect, but
+his lip trembled and he clutched the end of the pew with a feeling
+of emotion that struck deep into his knowledge of the truth as
+Maxwell spoke it. No man had given or suffered more to influence
+public opinion that week than Norman. The thought that the Christian
+conscience had been aroused too late or too feebly, lay with a
+weight of accusation upon the heart of the editor. What if he had
+begun to do as Jesus would have done, long ago? Who could tell what
+might have been accomplished by this time! And up in the choir,
+Rachel Winslow, with her face bowed on the railing of the oak
+screen, gave way to a feeling which she had not allowed yet to
+master her, but it so unfitted her for her part that when Mr.
+Maxwell finished and she tried to sing the closing solo after the
+prayer, her voice broke, and for the first time in her life she was
+obliged to sit down, sobbing, and unable to go on.
+
+Over the church, in the silence that followed this strange scene,
+sobs and the noise of weeping arose. When had the First Church
+yielded to such a baptism of tears? What had become of its regular,
+precise, conventional order of service, undisturbed by any vulgar
+emotion and unmoved by any foolish excitement? But the people had
+lately had their deepest convictions touched. They had been living
+so long on their surface feelings that they had almost forgotten the
+deeper wells of life. Now that they had broken the surface, the
+people were convicted of the meaning of their discipleship.
+
+Mr. Maxwell did not ask, this morning, for volunteers to join those
+who had already pledged to do as Jesus would. But when the
+congregation had finally gone, and he had entered the lecture-room,
+it needed but a glance to show him that the original company of
+followers had been largely increased. The meeting was tender; it
+glowed with the Spirit's presence; it was alive with strong and
+lasting resolve to begin a war on the whiskey power in Raymond that
+would break its reign forever. Since the first Sunday when the first
+company of volunteers had pledged themselves to do as Jesus would
+do, the different meetings had been characterized by distinct
+impulses or impressions. Today, the entire force of the gathering
+seemed to be directed to this one large purpose. It was a meeting
+full of broken prayers of contrition, of confession, of strong
+yearning for a new and better city life. And all through it ran one
+general cry for deliverance from the saloon and its awful curse.
+
+But if the First Church was deeply stirred by the events of the last
+week, the Rectangle also felt moved strangely in its own way. The
+death of Loreen was not in itself so remarkable a fact. It was her
+recent acquaintance with the people from the city that lifted her
+into special prominence and surrounded her death with more than
+ordinary importance. Every one in the Rectangle knew that Loreen was
+at this moment lying in the Page mansion up on the avenue.
+Exaggerated reports of the magnificence of the casket had already
+furnished material for eager gossip. The Rectangle was excited to
+know the details of the funeral. Would it be public? What did Miss
+Page intend to do? The Rectangle had never before mingled even in
+this distant personal manner with the aristocracy on the boulevard.
+The opportunities for doing so were not frequent. Gray and his wife
+were besieged by inquirers who wanted to know what Loreen's friends
+and acquaintances were expected to do in paying their last respects
+to her. For her acquaintance was large and many of the recent
+converts were among her friends.
+
+So that is how it happened that Monday afternoon, at the tent, the
+funeral service of Loreen was held before an immense audience that
+choked the tent and overflowed beyond all previous bounds. Gray had
+gone up to Virginia's and, after talking it over with her and
+Maxwell, the arrangement had been made.
+
+"I am and always have been opposed to large public funerals," said
+Gray, whose complete wholesome simplicity of character was one of
+its great sources of strength; "but the cry of the poor creatures
+who knew Loreen is so earnest that I do not know how to refuse this
+desire to see her and pay her poor body some last little honor. What
+do you think, Mr. Maxwell? I will be guided by your judgment in the
+matter. I am sure that whatever you and Miss Page think best, will
+be right."
+
+"I feel as you do," replied Mr. Maxwell. "Under the circumstances I
+have a great distaste for what seems like display at such times. But
+this seems different. The people at the Rectangle will not come here
+to service. I think the most Christian thing will be to let them
+have the service at the tent. Do you think so, Miss Virginia?"
+
+"Yes," said Virginia. "Poor soul! I do not know but that some time I
+shall know she gave her life for mine. We certainly cannot and will
+not use the occasion for vulgar display. Let her friends be allowed
+the gratification of their wishes. I see no harm in it."
+
+So the arrangements were made, with some difficulty, for the service
+at the tent; and Virginia with her uncle and Rollin, accompanied by
+Maxwell, Rachel and President Marsh, and the quartet from the First
+Church, went down and witnessed one of the strange things of their
+lives.
+
+It happened that that afternoon a somewhat noted newspaper
+correspondent was passing through Raymond on his way to an editorial
+convention in a neighboring city. He heard of the contemplated
+service at the tent and went down. His description of it was written
+in a graphic style that caught the attention of very many readers
+the next day. A fragment of his account belongs to this part of the
+history of Raymond:
+
+"There was a very unique and unusual funeral service held here this
+afternoon at the tent of an evangelist, Rev. John Gray, down in the
+slum district known as the Rectangle. The occasion was caused by the
+killing of a woman during an election riot last Saturday night. It
+seems she had been recently converted during the evangelist's
+meetings, and was killed while returning from one of the meetings in
+company with other converts and some of her friends. She was a
+common street drunkard, and yet the services at the tent were as
+impressive as any I ever witnessed in a metropolitan church over the
+most distinguished citizen.
+
+"In the first place, a most exquisite anthem was sung by a trained
+choir. It struck me, of course--being a stranger in the place--with
+considerable astonishment to hear voices like those one naturally
+expects to hear only in great churches or concerts, at such a
+meeting as this. But the most remarkable part of the music was a
+solo sung by a strikingly beautiful young woman, a Miss Winslow who,
+if I remember right, is the young singer who was sought for by
+Crandall the manager of National Opera, and who for some reason
+refused to accept his offer to go on the stage. She had a most
+wonderful manner in singing, and everybody was weeping before she
+had sung a dozen words. That, of course, is not so strange an effect
+to be produced at a funeral service, but the voice itself was one of
+thousands. I understand Miss Winslow sings in the First Church of
+Raymond and could probably command almost any salary as a public
+singer. She will probably be heard from soon. Such a voice could win
+its way anywhere.
+
+"The service aside from the singing was peculiar. The evangelist, a
+man of apparently very simple, unassuming style, spoke a few words,
+and he was followed by a fine-looking man, the Rev. Henry Maxwell,
+pastor of the First Church of Raymond. Mr. Maxwell spoke of the fact
+that the dead woman had been fully prepared to go, but he spoke in a
+peculiarly sensitive manner of the effect of the liquor business on
+the lives of men and women like this one. Raymond, of course, being
+a railroad town and the centre of the great packing interests for
+this region, is full of saloons. I caught from the minister's
+remarks that he had only recently changed his views in regard to
+license. He certainly made a very striking address, and yet it was
+in no sense inappropriate for a funeral.
+
+"Then followed what was perhaps the queer part of this strange
+service. The women in the tent, at least a large part of them up
+near the coffin, began to sing in a soft, tearful way, 'I was a
+wandering sheep.' Then while the singing was going on, one row of
+women stood up and walked slowly past the casket, and as they went
+by, each one placed a flower of some kind upon it. Then they sat
+down and another row filed past, leaving their flowers. All the time
+the singing continued softly like rain on a tent cover when the wind
+is gentle. It was one of the simplest and at the same time one of
+the most impressive sights I ever witnessed. The sides of the tent
+were up, and hundreds of people who could not get in, stood outside,
+all as still as death itself, with wonderful sadness and solemnity
+for such rough looking people. There must have been a hundred of
+these women, and I was told many of them had been converted at the
+meetings just recently. I cannot describe the effect of that
+singing. Not a man sang a note. All women's voices, and so soft, and
+yet so distinct, that the effect was startling.
+
+"The service closed with another solo by Miss Winslow, who sang,
+'There were ninety and nine.' And then the evangelist asked them all
+to bow their heads while he prayed. I was obliged in order to catch
+my train to leave during the prayer, and the last view I caught of
+the service as the train went by the shops was a sight of the great
+crowd pouring out of the tent and forming in open ranks while the
+coffin was borne out by six of the women. It is a long time since I
+have seen such a picture in this unpoetic Republic."
+
+If Loreen's funeral impressed a passing stranger like this, it is
+not difficult to imagine the profound feelings of those who had been
+so intimately connected with her life and death. Nothing had ever
+entered the Rectangle that had moved it so deeply as Loreen's body
+in that coffin. And the Holy Spirit seemed to bless with special
+power the use of this senseless clay. For that night He swept more
+than a score of lost souls, mostly women, into the fold of the Good
+Shepherd.
+
+
+
+
+
+
+Chapter Sixteen
+
+
+
+
+
+No one in all Raymond, including the Rectangle, felt Loreen's death
+more keenly than Virginia. It came like a distinct personal loss to
+her. That short week while the girl had been in her home had opened
+Virginia's heart to a new life. She was talking it over with Rachel
+the day after the funeral. Thee were sitting in the hall of the Page
+mansion.
+
+"I am going to do something with my money to help those women to a
+better life." Virginia looked over to the end of the hall where, the
+day before, Loreen's body had lain. "I have decided on a good plan,
+as it seems to me. I have talked it over with Rollin. He will devote
+a large part of his money also to the same plan."
+
+"How much money have you, Virginia, to give in this way?" asked
+Rachel. Once, she would never have asked such a personal question.
+Now, it seemed as natural to talk frankly about money as about
+anything else that belonged to God.
+
+"I have available for use at least four hundred and fifty-thousand
+dollars. Rollin has as much more. It is one of his bitter regrets
+now that his extravagant habits of life before his conversion
+practically threw away half that father left him. We are both eager
+to make all the reparation in our power. 'What would Jesus do with
+this money?' We want to answer that question honestly and wisely.
+The money I shall put into the NEWS is, I am confident, in a line
+with His probable action. It is as necessary that we have a
+Christian daily paper in Raymond, especially now that we have the
+saloon influence to meet, as it is to have a church or a college. So
+I am satisfied that the five hundred thousand dollars that Mr.
+Norman will know how to use so well will be a powerful factor in
+Raymond to do as Jesus would.
+
+"About my other plan, Rachel, I want you to work with me. Rollin and
+I are going to buy up a large part of the property in the Rectangle.
+The field where the tent now is, has been in litigation for years.
+We mean to secure the entire tract as soon as the courts have
+settled the title. For some time I have been making a special study
+of the various forms of college settlements and residence methods of
+Christian work and Institutional church work in the heart of great
+city slums. I do not know that I have yet been able to tell just
+what is the wisest and most effective kind of work that can be done
+in Raymond. But I do know this much. My money--I mean God's, which
+he wants me to use--can build wholesome lodging-houses, refuges for
+poor women, asylums for shop girls, safety for many and many a lost
+girl like Loreen. And I do not want to be simply a dispenser of this
+money. God help me! I do want to put myself into the problem. But
+you know, Rachel, I have a feeling all the time that all that
+limitless money and limitless personal sacrifice can possibly do,
+will not really lessen very much the awful condition at the
+Rectangle as long as the saloon is legally established there. I
+think that is true of any Christian work now being carried on in any
+great city. The saloon furnishes material to be saved faster than
+the settlement or residence or rescue mission work can save it."
+
+Virginia suddenly rose and paced the hall. Rachel answered sadly,
+and yet with a note of hope in her voice:
+
+"It is true. But, Virginia, what a wonderful amount of good can be
+done with this money! And the saloon cannot always remain here. The
+time must come when the Christian forces in the city will triumph."
+
+Virginia paused near Rachel, and her pale, earnest face lighted up.
+
+"I believe that too. The number of those who have promised to do as
+Jesus would is increasing. If we once have, say, five hundred such
+disciples in Raymond, the saloon is doomed. But now, dear, I want
+you to look at your part in this plan for capturing and saving the
+Rectangle. Your voice is a power. I have had many ideas lately. Here
+is one of them. You could organize among the girls a Musical
+Institute; give them the benefit of your training. There are some
+splendid voices in the rough there. Did any one ever hear such
+singing as that yesterday by those women? Rachel, what a beautiful
+opportunity! You shall have the best of material in the way of
+organs and orchestras that money can provide, and what cannot be
+done with music to win souls there into higher and purer and better
+living?"
+
+Before Virginia had ceased speaking Rachel's face was perfectly
+transformed with the thought of her life work. It flowed into her
+heart and mind like a flood, and the torrent of her feeling
+overflowed in tears that could not be restrained. It was what she
+had dreamed of doing herself. It represented to her something that
+she felt was in keeping with a right use of her talent.
+
+"Yes," she said, as she rose and put her arm about Virginia, while
+both girls in the excitement of their enthusiasm paced the hall.
+"Yes, I will gladly put my life into that kind of service. I do
+believe that Jesus would have me use my life in this way. Virginia,
+what miracles can we not accomplish in humanity if we have such a
+lever as consecrated money to move things with!"
+
+"Add to it consecrated personal enthusiasm like yours, and it
+certainly can accomplish great things," said Virginia smiling. And
+before Rachel could reply, Rollin came in.
+
+He hesitated a moment, and then was passing out of the hall into the
+library when Virginia called him back and asked some questions about
+his work.
+
+Rollin came back and sat down, and together the three discussed
+their future plans. Rollin was apparently entirely free from
+embarrassment in Rachel's presence while Virginia was with them,
+only his manner with her was almost precise, if not cold. The past
+seemed to have been entirely absorbed in his wonderful conversion.
+He had not forgotten it, but he seemed to be completely caught up
+for this present time in the purpose of his new life. After a while
+Rollin was called out, and Rachel and Virginia began to talk of
+other things.
+
+"By the way, what has become of Jasper Chase?" Virginia asked the
+question innocently, but Rachel flushed and Virginia added with a
+smile, "I suppose he is writing another book. Is he going to put you
+into this one, Rachel? You know I always suspected Jasper Chase of
+doing that very thing in his first story."
+
+"Virginia," Rachel spoke with the frankness that had always existed
+between the two friends, "Jasper Chase told me the other night that
+he--in fact--he proposed to me--or he would, if--"
+
+Rachel stopped and sat with her hands clasped on her lap, and there
+were tears in her eyes.
+
+"Virginia, I thought a little while ago I loved him, as he said he
+loved me. But when he spoke, my heart felt repelled, and I said what
+I ought to say. I told him no. I have not seen him since. That was
+the night of the first conversions at the Rectangle."
+
+"I am glad for you," said Virginia quietly.
+
+"Why?" asked Rachel a little startled.
+
+"Because, I have never really liked Jasper Chase. He is too cold
+and--I do not like to judge him, but I have always distrusted his
+sincerity in taking the pledge at the church with the rest."
+
+Rachel looked at Virginia thoughtfully.
+
+"I have never given my heart to him I am sure. He touched my
+emotions, and I admired his skill as a writer. I have thought at
+times that I cared a good deal for him. I think perhaps if he had
+spoken to me at any other time than the one he chose, I could easily
+have persuaded myself that I loved him. But not now."
+
+Again Rachel paused suddenly, and when she looked up at Virginia
+again there were tears on her face. Virginia came to her and put her
+arm about her tenderly.
+
+When Rachel had left the house, Virginia sat in the hall thinking
+over the confidence her friend had just shown her. There was
+something still to be told, Virginia felt sure from Rachel's manner,
+but she did not feel hurt that Rachel had kept back something. She
+was simply conscious of more on Rachel's mind than she had revealed.
+
+Very soon Rollin came back, and he and Virginia, arm in arm as they
+had lately been in the habit of doing, walked up and down the long
+hall. It was easy for their talk to settle finally upon Rachel
+because of the place she was to occupy in the plans which were being
+made for the purchase of property at the Rectangle.
+
+"Did you ever know of a girl of such really gifted powers in vocal
+music who was willing to give her life to the people as Rachel is
+going to do? She is going to give music lessons in the city, have
+private pupils to make her living, and then give the people in the
+Rectangle the benefit of her culture and her voice."
+
+"It is certainly a very good example of self-sacrifice," replied
+Rollin a little stiffly.
+
+Virginia looked at him a little sharply. "But don't you think it is
+a very unusual example? Can you imagine--" here Virginia named half
+a dozen famous opera singers--"doing anything of this sort?"
+
+"No, I cannot," Rollin answered briefly. "Neither can I imagine
+Miss--" he spoke the name of the girl with the red parasol who had
+begged Virginia to take the girls to the Rectangle--" doing what you
+are doing, Virginia."
+
+"Any more than I can imagine Mr.--" Virginia spoke the name of a
+young society leader "going about to the clubs doing your work,
+Rollin." The two walked on in silence for the length of the hall.
+
+"Coming back to Rachel," began Virginia, "Rollin, why do you treat
+her with such a distinct, precise manner? I think, Rollin--pardon me
+if I hurt you--that she is annoyed by it. You need to be on easy
+terms. I don't think Rachel likes this change."
+
+Rollin suddenly stopped. He seemed deeply agitated. He took his arm
+from Virginia's and walked alone to the end of the hall. Then he
+returned, with his hands behind him, and stopped near his sister and
+said, "Virginia, have you not learned my secret?"
+
+Virginia looked bewildered, then over her face the unusual color
+crept, showing that she understood.
+
+"I have never loved any one but Rachel Winslow." Rollin spoke calmly
+enough now. "That day she was here when you talked about her refusal
+to join the concert company, I asked her to be my wife; out there on
+the avenue. She refused me, as I knew she would. And she gave as her
+reason the fact that I had no purpose in life, which was true
+enough. Now that I have a purpose, now that I am a new man, don't
+you see, Virginia, how impossible it is for me to say anything? I
+owe my very conversion to Rachel's singing. And yet that night while
+she sang I can honestly say that, for the time being, I never
+thought of her voice except as God's message. I believe that all my
+personal love for her was for the time merged into a personal love
+to my God and my Saviour." Rollin was silent, then he went on with
+more emotion. "I still love her, Virginia. But I do not think she
+ever could love me." He stopped and looked his sister in the face
+with a sad smile.
+
+"I don't know about that," said Virginia to herself. She was noting
+Rollin's handsome face, his marks of dissipation nearly all gone
+now, the firm lips showing manhood and courage, the clear eyes
+looking into hers frankly, the form strong and graceful. Rollin was
+a man now. Why should not Rachel come to love him in time? Surely
+the two were well fitted for each other, especially now that their
+purpose in life was moved by the same Christian force.
+
+
+
+
+
+
+Chapter Seventeen
+
+
+
+
+
+THE next day she went down to the NEWS office to see Edward Norman
+and arrange the details of her part in the establishment of the
+paper on its new foundation. Mr. Maxwell was present at this
+conference, and the three agreed that whatever Jesus would do in
+detail as editor of a daily paper, He would be guided by the same
+general principles that directed His conduct as the Saviour of the
+world.
+
+"I have tried to put down here in concrete form some of the things
+that it has seemed to me Jesus would do," said Edward Norman. He
+read from a paper lying on his desk, and Maxwell was reminded again
+of his own effort to put into written form his own conception of
+Jesus' probable action, and also of Milton Wright's same attempt in
+his business.
+
+"I have headed this, 'What would Jesus do as Edward Norman, editor
+of a daily newspaper in Raymond?'
+
+"1. He would never allow a sentence or a picture in his paper that
+could be called bad or coarse or impure in any way.
+
+"2. He would probably conduct the political part of the paper from
+the standpoint of non-partisan patriotism, always looking upon all
+political questions in the light of their relation to the Kingdom of
+God, and advocating measures from the standpoint of their relation
+to the welfare of the people, always on the basis of 'What is
+right?' never on the basis of 'What is for the best interests of
+this or that party?' In other words, He would treat all political
+questions as he would treat every other subject, from the standpoint
+of the advancement of the Kingdom of God on earth."
+
+Edward Norman looked up from the reading a moment. "You understand
+that is my opinion of Jesus' probable action on political matters in
+a daily paper. I am not passing judgment on other newspaper men who
+may have a different conception of Jesus' probable action from mine.
+I am simply trying to answer honestly, 'What would Jesus do as
+Edward Norman?' And the answer I find is what I have put down.'
+
+"3. The end and aim of a daily paper conducted by Jesus would be to
+do the will of God. That is, His main purpose in carrying on a
+newspaper would not be to make money, or gain political influence;
+but His first and ruling purpose would be to so conduct his paper
+that it would be evident to all his subscribers that He was trying
+to seek first the Kingdom of God by means of His paper. This purpose
+would be as distinct and unquestioned as the purpose of a minister
+or a missionary or any unselfish martyr in Christian work anywhere.
+
+"4. All questionable advertisements would be impossible.
+
+"5. The relations of Jesus to the employees on the paper would be of
+the most loving character."
+
+"So far as I have gone," said Norman again looking up, "I am of
+opinion that Jesus would employ practically some form of
+co-operation that would represent the idea of a mutual interest in a
+business where all were to move together for the same great end. I
+am working out such a plan, and I am confident it will be
+successful. At any rate, once introduce the element of personal love
+into a business like this, take out the selfish principle of doing
+it for personal profits to a man or company, and I do not see any
+way except the most loving personal interest between editors,
+reporters, pressmen, and all who contribute anything to the life of
+the paper. And that interest would be expressed not only in the
+personal love and sympathy but in a sharing with the profits of the
+business."
+
+"6. As editor of a daily paper today, Jesus would give large space
+to the work of the Christian world. He would devote a page possibly
+to the facts of Reform, of sociological problems, of institutional
+church work and similar movements.
+
+"7. He would do all in His power in His paper to fight the saloon as
+an enemy of the human race and an unnecessary part of our
+civilization. He would do this regardless of public sentiment in the
+matter and, of course, always regardless of its effect upon His
+subscription list."
+
+Again Edward Norman looked up. "I state my honest conviction on this
+point. Of course, I do not pass judgment on the Christian men who
+are editing other kinds of papers today. But as I interpret Jesus, I
+believe He would use the influence of His paper to remove the saloon
+entirely from the political and social life of the nation."
+
+"8. Jesus would not issue a Sunday edition.
+
+"9. He would print the news of the world that people ought to know.
+Among the things they do not need to know, and which would not be
+published, would be accounts of brutal prize-fights, long accounts
+of crimes, scandals in private families, or any other human events
+which in any way would conflict with the first point mentioned in
+this outline.
+
+"10. If Jesus had the amount of money to use on a paper which we
+have, He would probably secure the best and strongest Christian men
+and women to co-operate with him in the matter of contributions.
+That will be my purpose, as I shall be able to show you in a few
+days.
+
+"11. Whatever the details of the paper might demand as the paper
+developed along its definite plan, the main principle that guided it
+would always be the establishment of the Kingdom of God in the
+world. This large general principle would necessarily shape all the
+detail."
+
+Edward Norman finished reading the plan. He was very thoughtful.
+
+"I have merely sketched a faint outline. I have a hundred ideas for
+making the paper powerful that I have not thought out fully as yet.
+This is simply suggestive. I have talked it over with other
+newspaper men. Some of them say I will have a weak, namby-pamby
+Sunday-school sheet. If I get out something as good as a
+Sunday-school it will be pretty good. Why do men, when they want to
+characterize something as particularly feeble, always use a
+Sunday-school as a comparison, when they ought to know that the
+Sunday-school is one of the strongest, most powerful influences in
+our civilization in this country today? But the paper will not
+necessarily be weak because it is good. Good things are more
+powerful than bad. The question with me is largely one of support
+from the Christian people of Raymond. There are over twenty thousand
+church members here in this city. If half of them will stand by the
+NEWS its life is assured. What do you think, Maxwell, of the
+probability of such support?"
+
+"I don't know enough about it to give an intelligent answer. I
+believe in the paper with all my heart. If it lives a year, as Miss
+Virginia said, there is no telling what it can do. The great thing
+will be to issue such a paper, as near as we can judge, as Jesus
+probably would, and put into it all the elements of Christian
+brains, strength, intelligence and sense; and command respect for
+freedom from bigotry, fanaticism, narrowness and anything else that
+is contrary to the spirit of Jesus. Such a paper will call for the
+best that human thought and action is capable of giving. The
+greatest minds in the world would have their powers taxed to the
+utmost to issue a Christian daily."
+
+"Yes," Edward Norman spoke humbly. "I shall make a great many
+mistakes, no doubt. I need a great deal of wisdom. But I want to do
+as Jesus would. 'What would He do?' I have asked it, and shall
+continue to do so, and abide by the results."
+
+"I think we are beginning to understand," said Virginia, "the
+meaning of that command, 'Grow in the grace and knowledge of our
+Lord and Saviour Jesus Christ.' I am sure I do not know all that He
+would do in detail until I know Him better."
+
+"That is very true," said Henry Maxwell. "I am beginning to
+understand that I cannot interpret the probable action of Jesus
+until I know better what His spirit is. The greatest question in all
+of human life is summed up when we ask, 'What would Jesus do?' if,
+as we ask it, we also try to answer it from a growth in knowledge of
+Jesus himself. We must know Jesus before we can imitate Him."
+
+When the arrangement had been made between Virginia an Edward
+Norman, he found himself in possession of the sum of five hundred
+thousand dollars to use for the establishment of a Christian daily
+paper. When Virginia and Maxwell had gone, Norman closed his door
+and, alone with the Divine Presence, asked like a child for help
+from his all-powerful Father. All through his prayer as he kneeled
+before his desk ran the promise, "If any man lack wisdom, let him
+ask of God who giveth to all men liberally and upbraideth not, and
+it shall be given him." Surely his prayer would be answered, and the
+kingdom advanced through this instrument of God's power, this mighty
+press, which had become so largely degraded to the base uses of
+man's avarice and ambition.
+
+Two months went by. They were full of action and of results in the
+city of Raymond and especially in the First Church. In spite of the
+approaching heat of the summer season, the after-meeting of the
+disciples who had made the pledge to do as Jesus would do, continued
+with enthusiasm and power. Gray had finished his work at the
+Rectangle, and an outward observer going through the place could not
+have seen any difference in the old conditions, although there was
+an actual change in hundreds of lives. But the saloons, dens,
+hovels, gambling houses, still ran, overflowing their vileness into
+the lives of fresh victims to take the place of those rescued by the
+evangelist. And the devil recruited his ranks very fast.
+
+Henry Maxwell did not go abroad. Instead of that, he took the money
+he had been saving for the trip and quietly arranged for a summer
+vacation for a whole family living down in the Rectangle, who had
+never gone outside of the foul district of the tenements. The pastor
+of the First Church will never forget the week he spent with this
+family making the arrangements. He went down into the Rectangle one
+hot day when something of the terrible heat in the horrible
+tenements was beginning to be felt, and helped the family to the
+station, and then went with them to a beautiful spot on the coast
+where, in the home of a Christian woman, the bewildered city tenants
+breathed for the first time in years the cool salt air, and felt
+blow about them the pine-scented fragrance of a new lease of life.
+
+There was a sickly babe with the mother, and three other children,
+one a cripple. The father, who had been out of work until he had
+been, as he afterwards confessed to Maxwell, several times on the
+edge of suicide, sat with the baby in his arms during the journey,
+and when Maxwell started back to Raymond, after seeing the family
+settled, the man held his hand at parting, and choked with his
+utterance, and finally broke down, to Maxwell's great confusion. The
+mother, a wearied, worn-out woman who had lost three children the
+year before from a fever scourge in the Rectangle, sat by the car
+window all the way and drank in the delights of sea and sky and
+field. It all seemed a miracle to her. And Maxwell, coming back into
+Raymond at the end of that week, feeling the scorching, sickening
+heat all the more because of his little taste of the ocean breezes,
+thanked God for the joy he had witnessed, and entered upon his
+discipleship with a humble heart, knowing for almost the first time
+in his life this special kind of sacrifice. For never before had he
+denied himself his regular summer trip away from the heat of
+Raymond, whether he felt in any great need of rest or not.
+
+"It is a fact," he said in reply to several inquiries on the part of
+his church, "I do not feel in need of a vacation this year. I am
+very well and prefer to stay here." It was with a feeling of relief
+that he succeeded in concealing from every one but his wife what he
+had done with this other family. He felt the need of doing anything
+of that sort without display or approval from others.
+
+So the summer came on, and Maxwell grew into a large knowledge of
+his Lord. The First Church was still swayed by the power of the
+Spirit. Maxwell marveled at the continuance of His stay. He knew
+very well that from the beginning nothing but the Spirit's presence
+had kept the church from being torn asunder by the remarkable
+testing it had received of its discipleship. Even now there were
+many of the members among those who had not taken the pledge, who
+regarded the whole movement as Mrs. Winslow did, in the nature of a
+fanatical interpretation of Christian duty, and looked for the
+return of the old normal condition. Meanwhile the whole body of
+disciples was under the influence of the Spirit, and the pastor went
+his way that summer, doing his parish work in great joy, keeping up
+his meetings with the railroad men as he had promised Alexander
+Powers, and daily growing into a better knowledge of the Master.
+
+Early one afternoon in August, after a day of refreshing coolness
+following a long period of heat, Jasper Chase walked to his window
+in the apartment house on the avenue and looked out.
+
+On his desk lay a pile of manuscript. Since that evening when he had
+spoken to Rachel Winslow he had not met her. His singularly
+sensitive nature--sensitive to the point of extreme irritability
+when he was thwarted--served to thrust him into an isolation that
+was intensified by his habits as an author.
+
+All through the heat of summer he had been writing. His book was
+nearly done now. He had thrown himself into its construction with a
+feverish strength that threatened at any moment to desert him and
+leave him helpless. He had not forgotten his pledge made with the
+other church members at the First Church. It had forced itself upon
+his notice all through his writing, and ever since Rachel had said
+no to him, he had asked a thousand times, "Would Jesus do this?
+Would He write this story?" It was a social novel, written in a
+style that had proved popular. It had no purpose except to amuse.
+Its moral teaching was not bad, but neither was it Christian in any
+positive way. Jasper Chase knew that such a story would probably
+sell. He was conscious of powers in this way that the social world
+petted and admired. "What would Jesus do?" He felt that Jesus would
+never write such a book. The question obtruded on him at the most
+inopportune times. He became irascible over it. The standard of
+Jesus for an author was too ideal. Of course, Jesus would use His
+powers to produce something useful or helpful, or with a purpose.
+What was he, Jasper Chase, writing this novel for? Why, what nearly
+every writer wrote for--money, money, and fame as a writer. There
+was no secret with him that he was writing this new story with that
+object. He was not poor, and so had no great temptation to write for
+money. But he was urged on by his desire for fame as much as
+anything. He must write this kind of matter. But what would Jesus
+do? The question plagued him even more than Rachel's refusal. Was he
+going to break his promise? "Did the promise mean much after all?"
+he asked.
+
+As he stood at the window, Rollin Page came out of the club house
+just opposite. Jasper noted his handsome face and noble figure as he
+started down the street. He went back to his desk and turned over
+some papers there. Then he came back to the window. Rollin was
+walking down past the block and Rachel Winslow was walking beside
+him. Rollin must have overtaken her as she was coming from
+Virginia's that afternoon.
+
+Jasper watched the two figures until they disappeared in the crowd
+on the walk. Then he turned to his desk and began to write. When he
+had finished the last page of the last chapter of his book it was
+nearly dark. "What would Jesus do?" He had finally answered the
+question by denying his Lord. It grew darker in his room. He had
+deliberately chosen his course, urged on by his disappointment and
+loss.
+
+
+
+
+
+
+Chapter Eighteen
+
+
+
+
+
+"What is that to thee? Follow thou me."
+
+WHEN Rollin started down the street the afternoon that Jasper stood
+looking out of his window he was not thinking of Rachel Winslow and
+did not expect to see her anywhere. He had come suddenly upon her as
+he turned into the avenue and his heart had leaped up at the sight
+of her. He walked along by her now, rejoicing after all in a little
+moment of this earthly love he could not drive out of his life.
+
+"I have just been over to see Virginia," said Rachel. "She tells me
+the arrangements are nearly completed for the transfer of the
+Rectangle property."
+
+"Yes. It has been a tedious case in the courts. Did Virginia show
+you all the plans and specifications for building?"
+
+"We looked over a good many. It is astonishing to me where Virginia
+has managed to get all her ideas about this work."
+
+"Virginia knows more now about Arnold Toynbee and East End London
+and Institutional Church work in America than a good many
+professional slum workers. She has been spending nearly all summer
+in getting information." Rollin was beginning to feel more at ease
+as they talked over this coming work of humanity. It was safe,
+common ground.
+
+"What have you been doing all summer? I have not seen much of you,"
+Rachel suddenly asked, and then her face warmed with its quick flush
+of tropical color as if she might have implied too much interest in
+Rollin or too much regret at not seeing him oftener.
+
+"I have been busy," replied Rollin briefly.
+
+"Tell me something about it," persisted Rachel. "You say so little.
+Have I a right to ask?"
+
+She put the question very frankly, turning toward Rollin in real
+earnest.
+
+"Yes, certainly," he replied, with a graceful smile. "I am not so
+certain that I can tell you much. I have been trying to find some
+way to reach the men I once knew and win them into more useful
+lives."
+
+He stopped suddenly as if he were almost afraid to go on. Rachel did
+not venture to suggest anything.
+
+"I have been a member of the same company to which you and Virginia
+belong," continued Rollin, beginning again. "I have made the pledge
+to do as I believe Jesus would do, and it is in trying to answer
+this question that I have been doing my work."
+
+"That is what I do not understand. Virginia told me about the other.
+It seems wonderful to think that you are trying to keep that pledge
+with us. But what can you do with the club men?"
+
+"You have asked me a direct question and I shall have to answer it
+now," replied Rollin, smiling again. "You see, I asked myself after
+that night at the tent, you remember" (he spoke hurriedly and his
+voice trembled a little), "what purpose I could now have in my life
+to redeem it, to satisfy my thought of Christian discipleship? And
+the more I thought of it, the more I was driven to a place where I
+knew I must take up the cross. Did you ever think that of all the
+neglected beings in our social system none are quite so completely
+left alone as the fast young men who fill the clubs and waste their
+time and money as I used to? The churches look after the poor,
+miserable creatures like those in the Rectangle; they make some
+effort to reach the working man, they have a large constituency
+among the average salary-earning people, they send money and
+missionaries to the foreign heathen, but the fashionable, dissipated
+young men around town, the club men, are left out of all plans for
+reaching and Christianizing. And yet no class of people need it
+more. I said to myself: 'I know these men, their good and their bad
+qualities. I have been one of them. I am not fitted to reach the
+Rectangle people. I do not know how. But I think I could possibly
+reach some of the young men and boys who have money and time to
+spend.' So that is what I have been trying to do. When I asked as
+you did, What would Jesus do?' that was my answer. It has been also
+my cross."
+
+Rollin's voice was so low on this last sentence that Rachel had
+difficulty in hearing him above the noise around them, But she knew
+what he had said. She wanted to ask what his methods were. But she
+did not know how to ask him. Her interest in his plan was larger
+than mere curiosity. Rollin Page was so different now from the
+fashionable young man who had asked her to be his wife that she
+could not help thinking of him and talking with him as if he were an
+entirely new acquaintance.
+
+They had turned off the avenue and were going up the street to
+Rachel's home. It was the same street where Rollin had asked Rachel
+why she could not love him. They were both stricken with a sudden
+shyness as they went on. Rachel had not forgotten that day and
+Rollin could not. She finally broke a long silence by asking what
+she had not found words for before.
+
+"In your work with the club men, with your old acquaintances, what
+sort of reception do they give you? How do you approach them? What
+do they say?"
+
+Rollin was relieved when Rachel spoke. He answered quickly: "Oh, it
+depends on the man. A good many of them think I am a crank. I have
+kept my membership up and am in good standing in that way. I try to
+be wise and not provoke any unnecessary criticism. But you would be
+surprised to know how many of the men have responded to my appeal. I
+could hardly make you believe that only a few nights ago a dozen men
+became honestly and earnestly engaged in a conversation over
+religious matters. I have had the great joy of seeing some of the
+men give up bad habits and begin a new life. 'What would Jesus do?'
+I keep asking it. The answer comes slowly, for I am feeling my way
+slowly. One thing I have found out. The men are not fighting shy of
+me. I think that is a good sign. Another thing: I have actually
+interested some of them in the Rectangle work, and when it is
+started up they will give something to help make it more powerful.
+And in addition to all the rest, I have found a way to save several
+of the young fellows from going to the bad in gambling."
+
+Rollin spoke with enthusiasm. His face was transformed by his
+interest in the subject which had now become a part of his real
+life. Rachel again noted the strong, manly tone of his speech. With
+it all she knew there was a deep, underlying seriousness which felt
+the burden of the cross even while carrying it with joy. The next
+time she spoke it was with a swift feeling of justice due to Rollin
+and his new life.
+
+"Do you remember I reproached you once for not having any purpose
+worth living for?" she asked, while her beautiful face seemed to
+Rollin more beautiful than ever when he had won sufficient
+self-control to look up. "I want to say, I feel the need of saying,
+in justice to you now, that I honor you for your courage and your
+obedience to the promise you have made as you interpret the promise.
+The life you are living is a noble one."
+
+Rollin trembled. His agitation was greater than he could control.
+Rachel could not help seeing it. They walked along in silence. At
+last Rollin said: "I thank you. It has been worth more to me than I
+can tell you to hear you say that." He looked into her face for one
+moment. She read his love for her in that look, but he did not
+speak.
+
+When they separated Rachel went into the house and, sitting down in
+her room, she put her face in her hands and said to herself: "I am
+beginning to know what it means to be loved by a noble man. I shall
+love Rollin Page after all. What am I saying! Rachel Winslow, have
+you forgotten--"
+
+She rose and walked back and forth. She was deeply moved.
+Nevertheless, it was evident to herself that her emotion was not
+that of regret or sorrow. Somehow a glad new joy had come to her.
+She had entered another circle of experience, and later in the day
+she rejoiced with a very strong and sincere gladness that her
+Christian discipleship found room in this crisis for her feeling. It
+was indeed a part of it, for if she was beginning to love Rollin
+Page it was the Christian man she had begun to love; the other never
+would have moved her to this great change.
+
+And Rollin, as he went back, treasured a hope that had been a
+stranger to him since Rachel had said no that day. In that hope he
+went on with his work as the days sped on, and at no time was he
+more successful in reaching and saving his old acquaintances than in
+the time that followed that chance meeting with Rachel Winslow.
+
+The summer had gone and Raymond was once more facing the rigor of
+her winter season. Virginia had been able to accomplish a part of
+her plan for "capturing the Rectangle," as she called it. But the
+building of houses in the field, the transforming of its bleak, bare
+aspect into an attractive park, all of which was included in her
+plan, was a work too large to be completed that fall after she had
+secured the property. But a million dollars in the hands of a person
+who truly wants to do with it as Jesus would, ought to accomplish
+wonders for humanity in a short time, and Henry Maxwell, going over
+to the scene of the new work one day after a noon hour with the shop
+men, was amazed to see how much had been done outwardly.
+
+Yet he walked home thoughtfully, and on his way he could not avoid
+the question of the continual problem thrust upon his notice by the
+saloon. How much had been done for the Rectangle after all? Even
+counting Virginia's and Rachel's work and Mr. Gray's, where had it
+actually counted in any visible quantity? Of course, he said to
+himself, the redemptive work begun and carried on by the Holy Spirit
+in His wonderful displays of power in the First Church and in the
+tent meetings had had its effect upon the life of Raymond. But as he
+walked past saloon after saloon and noted the crowds going in and
+coming out of them, as he saw the wretched dens, as many as ever
+apparently, as he caught the brutality and squalor and open misery
+and degradation on countless faces of men and women and children, he
+sickened at the sight. He found himself asking how much cleansing
+could a million dollars poured into this cesspool accomplish? Was
+not the living source of nearly all the human misery they sought to
+relieve untouched as long as the saloons did their deadly but
+legitimate work? What could even such unselfish Christian
+discipleship as Virginia's and Rachel's do to lessen the stream of
+vice and crime so long as the great spring of vice and crime flowed
+as deep and strong as ever? Was it not a practical waste of
+beautiful lives for these young women to throw themselves into this
+earthly hell, when for every soul rescued by their sacrifice the
+saloon made two more that needed rescue?
+
+He could not escape the question. It was the same that Virginia had
+put to Rachel in her statement that, in her opinion, nothing really
+permanent would ever be done until the saloon was taken out of the
+Rectangle. Henry Maxwell went back to his parish work that afternoon
+with added convictions on the license business.
+
+But if the saloon was a factor in the problem of the life of
+Raymond, no less was the First Church and its little company of
+disciples who had pledged to do as Jesus would do. Henry Maxwell,
+standing at the very centre of the movement, was not in a position
+to judge of its power as some one from the outside might have done.
+But Raymond itself felt the touch in very many ways, not knowing all
+the reasons for the change.
+
+The winter was gone and the year was ended, the year which Henry
+Maxwell had fixed as the time during which the pledge should be kept
+to do as Jesus would do. Sunday, the anniversary of that one a year
+ago, was in many ways the most remarkable day that the First Church
+ever knew. It was more important than the disciples in the First
+Church realized. The year had made history so fast and so serious
+that the people were not yet able to grasp its significance. And the
+day itself which marked the completion of a whole year of such
+discipleship was characterized by such revelations and confessions
+that the immediate actors in the events themselves could not
+understand the value of what had been done, or the relation of their
+trial to the rest of the churches and cities of the country.
+
+
+
+
+
+
+Chapter Nineteen
+
+
+
+
+
+[Letter from Rev. Calvin Bruce, D.D., of the Nazareth Avenue Church,
+Chicago, to Rev. Philip A. Caxton, D.D., New York City.]
+
+"My Dear Caxton:
+
+"It is late Sunday night, but I am so intensely awake and so
+overflowing with what I have seen and heard that I feel driven to
+write you now some account of the situation in Raymond as I have
+been studying it, and as it has apparently come to a climax today.
+So this is my only excuse for writing so extended a letter at this
+time.
+
+"You remember Henry Maxwell in the Seminary. I think you said the
+last time I visited you in New York that you had not seen him since
+we graduated. He was a refined, scholarly fellow, you remember, and
+when he was called to the First Church of Raymond within a year
+after leaving the Seminary, I said to my wife, 'Raymond has made a
+good choice. Maxwell will satisfy them as a sermonizer.' He has been
+here eleven years, and I understand that up to a year ago he had
+gone on in the regular course of the ministry, giving good
+satisfaction and drawing good congregations. His church was counted
+the largest and wealthiest church in Raymond. All the best people
+attended it, and most of them belonged. The quartet choir was famous
+for its music, especially for its soprano, Miss Winslow, of whom I
+shall have more to say; and, on the whole, as I understand the
+facts, Maxwell was in a comfortable berth, with a very good salary,
+pleasant surroundings, a not very exacting parish of refined, rich,
+respectable people--such a church and parish as nearly all the young
+men of the seminary in our time looked forward to as very desirable.
+
+"But a year ago today Maxwell came into his church on Sunday
+morning, and at the close of the service made the astounding
+proposition that the members of his church volunteer for a year not
+to do anything without first asking the question, 'What would Jesus
+do?' and, after answering it, to do what in their honest judgment He
+would do, regardless of what the result might be to them.
+
+"The effect of this proposition, as it has been met and obeyed by a
+number of members of the church, has been so remarkable that, as you
+know, the attention of the whole country has been directed to the
+movement. I call it a 'movement' because from the action taken
+today, it seems probable that what has been tried here will reach
+out into the other churches and cause a revolution in methods, but
+more especially in a new definition of Christian discipleship.
+
+"In the first place, Maxwell tells me he was astonished at the
+response to his proposition. Some of the most prominent members in
+the church made the promise to do as Jesus would. Among them were
+Edward Norman, editor of the DAILY NEWS, which has made such a
+sensation in the newspaper world; Milton Wright, one of the leading
+merchants in Raymond; Alexander Powers, whose action in the matter
+of the railroads against the interstate commerce laws made such a
+stir about a year ago; Miss Page, one of Raymond's leading society
+heiresses, who has lately dedicated her entire fortune, as I
+understand, to the Christian daily paper and the work of reform in
+the slum district known as the Rectangle; and Miss Winslow, whose
+reputation as a singer is now national, but who in obedience to what
+she has decided to be Jesus' probable action, has devoted her talent
+to volunteer work among the girls and women who make up a large part
+of the city's worst and most abandoned population.
+
+"In addition to these well-known people has been a gradually
+increasing number of Christians from the First Church and lately
+from other churches of Raymond. A large proportion of these
+volunteers who pledged themselves to do as Jesus would do comes from
+the Endeavor societies. The young people say that they have already
+embodied in their society pledge the same principle in the words, 'I
+promise Him that I will strive to do whatever He would have me do.'
+This is not exactly what is included in Maxwell's proposition, which
+is that the disciple shall try to do what Jesus would probably do in
+the disciple's place. But the result of an honest obedience to
+either pledge, he claims, will be practically the same, and he is
+not surprised that the largest numbers have joined the new
+discipleship from the Endeavor Society.
+
+"I am sure the first question you will ask is, 'What has been the
+result of this attempt? What has it accomplished or how has it
+changed in any way the regular life of the church or the community?'
+
+"You already know something, from reports of Raymond that have gone
+over the country, what the events have been. But one needs to come
+here and learn something of the changes in individual lives, and
+especially the change in the church life, to realize all that is
+meant by this following of Jesus' steps so literally. To tell all
+that would be to write a long story or series of stories. I am not
+in a position to do that, but I can give you some idea perhaps of
+what has been done as told me by friends here and by Maxwell
+himself.
+
+"The result of the pledge upon the First Church has been two-fold.
+It has brought upon a spirit of Christian fellowship which Maxwell
+tells me never before existed, and which now impresses him as being
+very nearly what the Christian fellowship of the apostolic churches
+must have been; and it has divided the church into two distinct
+groups of members. Those who have not taken the pledge regard the
+others as foolishly literal in their attempt to imitate the example
+of Jesus. Some of them have drawn out of the church and no longer
+attend, or they have removed their membership entirely to other
+churches. Some are an element of internal strife, and I heard rumors
+of an attempt on their part to force Maxwell's resignation. I do not
+know that this element is very strong in the church. It has been
+held in check by a wonderful continuance of spiritual power, which
+dates from the first Sunday the pledge was taken a year ago, and
+also by the fact that so many of the most prominent members have
+been identified with the movement.
+
+"The effect on Maxwell is very marked. I heard him preach in our
+State Association four years ago. He impressed me at the time as
+having considerable power in dramatic delivery, of which he himself
+was somewhat conscious. His sermon was well written and abounded in
+what the Seminary students used to call 'fine passages.' The effect
+of it was what an average congregation would call 'pleasing.' This
+morning I heard Maxwell preach again, for the first time since then.
+I shall speak of that farther on. He is not the same man. He gives
+me the impression of one who has passed through a crisis of
+revolution. He tells me this revolution is simply a new definition
+of Christian discipleship. He certainly has changed many of his old
+habits and many of his old views. His attitude on the saloon
+question is radically opposite to the one he entertained a year ago.
+And in his entire thought of the ministry, his pulpit and parish
+work, I find he has made a complete change. So far as I can
+understand, the idea that is moving him on now is the idea that the
+Christianity of our times must represent a more literal imitation of
+Jesus, and especially in the element of suffering. He quoted to me
+in the course of our conversation several times the verses in Peter:
+'For even hereunto were ye called, because Christ also suffered for
+you, leaving you an example, that ye would follow His steps'; and he
+seems filled with the conviction that what our churches need today
+more than anything else is this factor of joyful suffering for Jesus
+in some form. I do not know as I agree with him, altogether; but, my
+dear Caxton, it is certainly astonishing to note the results of this
+idea as they have impressed themselves upon this city and this
+church.
+
+"You ask how about the results on the individuals who have made this
+pledge and honestly tried to be true to it. Those results are, as I
+have said, a part of individual history and cannot be told in
+detail. Some of them I can give you so that you may see that this
+form of discipleship is not merely sentiment or fine posing for
+effect.
+
+"For instance, take the case of Mr. Powers, who was superintendent
+of the machine shops of the L. and T. R. R. here. When he acted upon
+the evidence which incriminated the road he lost his position, and
+more than that, I learn from my friends here, his family and social
+relations have become so changed that he and his family no longer
+appear in public. They have dropped out of the social circle where
+once they were so prominent. By the way, Caxton, I understand in
+this connection that the Commission, for one reason or another,
+postponed action on this case, and it is now rumored that the L. and
+T. R. R. will pass into a receiver's hands very soon. The president
+of the road who, according to the evidence submitted by Powers, was
+the principal offender, has resigned, and complications which have
+risen since point to the receivership. Meanwhile, the superintendent
+has gone back to his old work as a telegraph operator. I met him at
+the church yesterday. He impressed me as a man who had, like
+Maxwell, gone through a crisis in character. I could not help
+thinking of him as being good material for the church of the first
+century when the disciples had all things in common.
+
+"Or take the case of Mr. Norman, editor of the DAILY NEWS. He risked
+his entire fortune in obedience to what he believed was Jesus'
+action, and revolutionized his entire conduct of the paper at the
+risk of a failure. I send you a copy of yesterday's paper. I want
+you to read it carefully. To my mind it is one of the most
+interesting and remarkable papers ever printed in the United States.
+It is open to criticism, but what could any mere man attempt in this
+line that would be free from criticism. Take it all in all, it is so
+far above the ordinary conception of a daily paper that I am amazed
+at the result. He tells me that the paper is beginning to be read
+more and more by the Christian people of the city. He was very
+confident of its final success. Read his editorial on the money
+questions, also the one on the coming election in Raymond when the
+question of license will again be an issue. Both articles are of the
+best from his point of view. He says he never begins an editorial
+or, in fact, any part of his newspaper work, without first asking,
+'What would Jesus do?' The result is certainly apparent.
+
+"Then there is Milton Wright, the merchant. He has, I am told, so
+revolutionized his business that no man is more beloved today in
+Raymond. His own clerks and employees have an affection for him that
+is very touching. During the winter, while he was lying dangerously
+ill at his home, scores of clerks volunteered to watch and help in
+any way possible, and his return to his store was greeted with
+marked demonstrations. All this has been brought about by the
+element of personal love introduced into the business. This love is
+not mere words, but the business itself is carried on under a system
+of co-operation that is not a patronizing recognition of inferiors,
+but a real sharing in the whole business. Other men on the street
+look upon Milton Wright as odd. It is a fact, however, that while he
+has lost heavily in some directions, he has increased his business,
+and is today respected and honored as one of the best and most
+successful merchants in Raymond.
+
+"And there is Miss Winslow. She has chosen to give her great talent
+to the poor of the city. Her plans include a Musical Institute where
+choruses and classes in vocal music shall be a feature. She is
+enthusiastic over her life work. In connection with her friend Miss
+Page she has planned a course in music which, if carried out, will
+certainly do much to lift up the lives of the people down there. I
+am not too old, dear Caxton, to be interested in the romantic side
+of much that has also been tragic here in Raymond, and I must tell
+you that it is well understood here that Miss Winslow expects to be
+married this spring to a brother of Miss Page who was once a society
+leader and club man, and who was converted in a tent where his
+wife-that-is-to-be took an active part in the service. I don't know
+all the details of this little romance, but I imagine there is a
+story wrapped up in it, and it would make interesting reading if we
+only knew it all.
+
+"These are only a few illustrations of results in individual lives
+owing to obedience to the pledge. I meant to have spoken of
+President Marsh of Lincoln College. He is a graduate of my alma
+mater and I knew him slightly when I was in the senior year. He has
+taken an active part in the recent municipal campaign, and his
+influence in the city is regarded as a very large factor in the
+coming election. He impressed me, as did all the other disciples in
+this movement, as having fought out some hard questions, and as
+having taken up some real burdens that have caused and still do
+cause that suffering of which Henry Maxwell speaks, a suffering that
+does not eliminate, but does appear to intensify, a positive and
+practical joy."
+
+
+
+
+
+
+Chapter Twenty
+
+
+
+
+
+"BUT I am prolonging this letter, possibly to your weariness. I am
+unable to avoid the feeling of fascination which my entire stay here
+has increased. I want to tell you something of the meeting in the
+First Church today.
+
+"As I said, I heard Maxwell preach. At his earnest request I had
+preached for him the Sunday before, and this was the first time I
+had heard him since the Association meeting four years ago. His
+sermon this morning was as different from his sermon then as if it
+had been thought out and preached by some one living on another
+planet. I was profoundly touched. I believe I actually shed tears
+once. Others in the congregation were moved like myself. His text
+was: 'What is that to thee? Follow thou Me.' It was a most unusually
+impressive appeal to the Christians of Raymond to obey Jesus'
+teachings and follow in His steps regardless of what others might
+do. I cannot give you even the plan of the sermon. It would take too
+long. At the close of the service there was the usual after meeting
+that has become a regular feature of the First Church. Into this
+meeting have come all those who made the pledge to do as Jesus would
+do, and the time is spent in mutual fellowship, confession, question
+as to what Jesus would do in special cases, and prayer that the one
+great guide of every disciple's conduct may be the Holy Spirit.
+
+"Maxwell asked me to come into this meeting. Nothing in all my
+ministerial life, Caxton, has so moved me as that meeting. I never
+felt the Spirit's presence so powerfully. It was a meeting of
+reminiscences and of the most loving fellowship. I was irresistibly
+driven in thought back to the first years of Christianity. There was
+something about all this that was apostolic in its simplicity and
+Christ imitation.
+
+"I asked questions. One that seemed to arouse more interest than any
+other was in regard to the extent of the Christian disciple's
+sacrifice of personal property. Maxwell tells me that so far no one
+has interpreted the spirit of Jesus in such a way as to abandon his
+earthly possessions, give away of his wealth, or in any literal way
+imitate the Christians of the order, for example, of St. Francis of
+Assisi. It was the unanimous consent, however, that if any disciple
+should feel that Jesus in his own particular case would do that,
+there could be only one answer to the question. Maxwell admitted
+that he was still to a certain degree uncertain as to Jesus'
+probable action when it came to the details of household living, the
+possession of wealth, the holding of certain luxuries. It is,
+however, very evident that many of these disciples have repeatedly
+carried their obedience to Jesus to the extreme limit, regardless of
+financial loss. There is no lack of courage or consistency at this
+point.
+
+"It is also true that some of the business men who took the pledge
+have lost great sums of money in this imitation of Jesus, and many
+have, like Alexander Powers, lost valuable positions owing to the
+impossibility of doing what they had been accustomed to do and at
+the same time what they felt Jesus would do in the same place. In
+connection with these cases it is pleasant to record the fact that
+many who have suffered in this way have been at once helped
+financially by those who still have means. In this respect I think
+it is true that these disciples have all things in common. Certainly
+such scenes as I witnessed at the First Church at that after service
+this morning I never saw in my church or in any other. I never
+dreamed that such Christian fellowship could exist in this age of
+the world. I was almost incredulous as to the witness of my own
+senses. I still seem to be asking myself if this is the close of the
+nineteenth century in America.
+
+"But now, dear friend, I come to the real cause of this letter, the
+real heart of the whole question as the First Church of Raymond has
+forced it upon me. Before the meeting closed today steps were taken
+to secure the co-operation of all other Christian disciples in this
+country. I think Maxwell took this step after long deliberation. He
+said as much to me one day when we were discussing the effect of
+this movement upon the church in general.
+
+"'Why,' he said, 'suppose that the church membership generally in
+this country made this pledge and lived up to it! What a revolution
+it would cause in Christendom! But why not? Is it any more than the
+disciple ought to do? Has he followed Jesus, unless he is willing to
+do this? Is the test of discipleship any less today than it was in
+Jesus' time?'
+
+"I do not know all that preceded or followed his thought of what
+ought to be done outside of Raymond, but the idea crystallized today
+in a plan to secure the fellowship of all the Christians in America.
+The churches, through their pastors, will be asked to form disciple
+gatherings like the one in the First Church. Volunteers will be
+called for in the great body of church members in the United States,
+who will promise to do as Jesus would do. Maxwell spoke particularly
+of the result of such general action on the saloon question. He is
+terribly in earnest over this. He told me that there was no question
+in his mind that the saloon would be beaten in Raymond at the
+election now near at hand. If so, they could go on with some courage
+to do the redemptive work begun by the evangelist and now taken up
+by the disciples in his own church. If the saloon triumphs again
+there will be a terrible and, as he thinks, unnecessary waste of
+Christian sacrifice. But, however we differ on that point, he
+convinced his church that the time had come for a fellowship with
+other Christians. Surely, if the First Church could work such
+changes in society and its surroundings, the church in general if
+combining such a fellowship, not of creed but of conduct, ought to
+stir the entire nation to a higher life and a new conception of
+Christian following.
+
+"This is a grand idea, Caxton, but right here is where I find my
+self hesitating. I do not deny that the Christian disciple ought to
+follow Christ's steps as closely as these here in Raymond have tried
+to do. But I cannot avoid asking what the result would be if I ask
+my church in Chicago to do it. I am writing this after feeling the
+solemn, profound touch of the Spirit's presence, and I confess to
+you, old friend, that I cannot call up in my church a dozen
+prominent business or professional men who would make this trial at
+the risk of all they hold dear. Can you do any better in your
+church? What are we to say? That the churches would not respond to
+the call: 'Come and suffer?' Is our standard of Christian
+discipleship a wrong one? Or are we possibly deceiving ourselves,
+and would we be agreeably disappointed if we once asked our people
+to take such a pledge faithfully? The actual results of the pledge
+as obeyed here in Raymond are enough to make any pastor tremble, and
+at the same time long with yearning that they might occur in his own
+parish. Certainly never have I seen a church so signally blessed by
+the Spirit as this one. But--am I myself ready to take this pledge?
+I ask the question honestly, and I dread to face an honest answer. I
+know well enough that I should have to change very much in my life
+if I undertook to follow His steps so closely. I have called myself
+a Christian for many years. For the past ten years I have enjoyed a
+life that has had comparatively little suffering in it. I am,
+honestly I say it, living at a long distance from municipal problems
+and the life of the poor, the degraded and the abandoned. What would
+the obedience to this pledge demand of me? I hesitate to answer. My
+church is wealthy, full of well-to-do, satisfied people. The
+standard of their discipleship is, I am aware, not of a nature to
+respond to the call of suffering or personal loss. I say: 'I am
+aware.' I may be mistaken. I may have erred in not stirring their
+deeper life. Caxton, my friend, I have spoken my inmost thought to
+you. Shall I go back to my people next Sunday and stand up before
+them in my large city church and say: 'Let us follow Jesus closer;
+let us walk in His steps where it will cost us something more than
+it is costing us now; let us pledge not to do anything without first
+asking: 'What would Jesus do?' If I should go before them with that
+message, it would be a strange and startling one to them. But why?
+Are we not ready to follow Him all the way? What is it to be a
+follower of Jesus? What does it mean to imitate Him? What does it
+mean to walk in His steps?"
+
+The Rev. Calvin Bruce, D. D., of the Nazareth Avenue Church,
+Chicago, let his pen fall on the table. He had come to the parting
+of the ways, and his question, he felt sure, was the question of
+many and many a man in the ministry and in the church. He went to
+his window and opened it. He was oppressed with the weight of his
+convictions and he felt almost suffocated with the air in the room.
+He wanted to see the stars and feel the breath of the world.
+
+The night was very still. The clock in the First Church was just
+striking midnight. As it finished a clear, strong voice down in the
+direction of the Rectangle came floating up to him as if borne on
+radiant pinions.
+
+It was a voice of one of Gray's old converts, a night watchman at
+the packing houses, who sometimes solaced his lonesome hours by a
+verse or two of some familiar hymn:
+
+ "Must Jesus bear the cross alone
+ And all the world go free?
+ No, there's a cross for every one,
+ And there's a cross for me."
+
+The Rev. Calvin Bruce turned away from the window and, after a
+little hesitation, he kneeled. "What would Jesus do?" That was the
+burden of his prayer. Never had he yielded himself so completely to
+the Spirit's searching revealing of Jesus. He was on his knees a
+long time. He retired and slept fitfully with many awakenings. He
+rose before it was clear dawn, and threw open his window again. As
+the light in the east grew stronger he repeated to himself: "What
+would Jesus do? Shall I follow His steps?"
+
+The sun rose and flooded the city with its power. When shall the
+dawn of a new discipleship usher in the conquering triumph of a
+closer walk with Jesus? When shall Christendom tread more closely
+the path he made?
+
+"It is the way the Master trod; Shall not the servant tread it
+still?"
+
+
+
+
+
+
+Chapter Twenty-one
+
+
+
+
+
+"Master, I will follow Thee whithersoever Thou goest."
+
+THE Saturday afternoon matinee at the Auditorium in Chicago was just
+over and the usual crowd was struggling to get to its carriage
+before any one else. The Auditorium attendant was shouting out the
+numbers of different carriages and the carriage doors were slamming
+as the horses were driven rapidly up to the curb, held there
+impatiently by the drivers who had shivered long in the raw east
+wind, and then let go to plunge for a few minutes into the river of
+vehicles that tossed under the elevated railway and finally went
+whirling off up the avenue.
+
+"Now then, 624," shouted the Auditorium attendant; "624!" he
+repeated, and there dashed up to the curb a splendid span of black
+horses attached to a carriage having the monogram, "C. R. S." in
+gilt letters on the panel of the door.
+
+Two girls stepped out of the crowd towards the carriage. The older
+one had entered and taken her seat and the attendant was still
+holding the door open for the younger, who stood hesitating on the
+curb.
+
+"Come, Felicia! What are you waiting for! I shall freeze to death!"
+called the voice from the carriage.
+
+The girl outside of the carriage hastily unpinned a bunch of English
+violets from her dress and handed them to a small boy who was
+standing shivering on the edge of the sidewalk almost under the
+horses' feet. He took them, with a look of astonishment and a "Thank
+ye, lady!" and instantly buried a very grimy face in the bunch of
+perfume. The girl stepped into the carriage, the door shut with the
+incisive bang peculiar to well-made carriages of this sort, and in a
+few moments the coachman was speeding the horses rapidly up one of
+the boulevards.
+
+"You are always doing some queer thing or other, Felicia," said the
+older girl as the carriage whirled on past the great residences
+already brilliantly lighted.
+
+"Am I? What have I done that is queer now, Rose?" asked the other,
+looking up suddenly and turning her head towards her sister.
+
+"Oh, giving those violets to that boy! He looked as if he needed a
+good hot supper more than a bunch of violets. It's a wonder you
+didn't invite him home with us. I shouldn't have been surprised if
+you had. You are always doing such queer things."
+
+"Would it be queer to invite a boy like that to come to the house
+and get a hot supper?" Felicia asked the question softly and almost
+as if she were alone.
+
+"'Queer' isn't just the word, of course," replied Rose
+indifferently. "It would be what Madam Blanc calls 'outre.'
+Decidedly. Therefore you will please not invite him or others like
+him to hot suppers because I suggested it. Oh, dear! I'm awfully
+tired."
+
+She yawned, and Felicia silently looked out of the window in the
+door.
+
+"The concert was stupid and the violinist was simply a bore. I don't
+see how you could sit so still through it all," Rose exclaimed a
+little impatiently.
+
+"I liked the music," answered Felicia quietly.
+
+"You like anything. I never saw a girl with so little critical
+taste."
+
+Felicia colored slightly, but would not answer. Rose yawned again,
+and then hummed a fragment of a popular song. Then she exclaimed
+abruptly: "I'm sick of 'most everything. I hope the 'Shadows of
+London' will be exciting tonight."
+
+"The 'Shadows of Chicago,'" murmured Felicia. "The 'Shadows of
+Chicago!' The 'Shadows of London,' the play, the great drama with
+its wonderful scenery, the sensation of New York for two months. You
+know we have a box with the Delanos tonight."
+
+Felicia turned her face towards her sister. Her great brown eyes
+were very expressive and not altogether free from a sparkle of
+luminous heat.
+
+"And yet we never weep over the real thing on the actual stage of
+life. What are the 'Shadows of London' on the stage to the shadows
+of London or Chicago as they really exist? Why don't we get excited
+over the facts as they are?"
+
+"Because the actual people are dirty and disagreeable and it's too
+much bother, I suppose," replied Rose carelessly. "Felicia, you can
+never reform the world. What's the use? We're not to blame for the
+poverty and misery. There have always been rich and poor; and there
+always will be. We ought to be thankful we're rich."
+
+"Suppose Christ had gone on that principle," replied Felicia, with
+unusual persistence. "Do you remember Dr. Bruce's sermon on that
+verse a few Sundays ago: 'For ye know the grace of our Lord Jesus
+Christ, that though he was rich yet for our sakes he became poor,
+that ye through his poverty might become rich'?"
+
+"I remember it well enough," said Rose with some petulance, "and
+didn't Dr. Bruce go on to say that there is no blame attached to
+people who have wealth if they are kind and give to the needs of the
+poor? And I am sure that he himself is pretty comfortably settled.
+He never gives up his luxuries just because some people go hungry.
+What good would it do if he did? I tell you, Felicia, there will
+always be poor and rich in spite of all we can do. Ever since Rachel
+Winslow has written about those queer doings in Raymond you have
+upset the whole family. People can't live at that concert pitch all
+the time. You see if Rachel doesn't give it up soon. It's a great
+pity she doesn't come to Chicago and sing in the Auditorium
+concerts. She has received an offer. I'm going to write and urge her
+to come. I'm just dying to hear her sing."
+
+Felicia looked out of the window and was silent. The carriage rolled
+on past two blocks of magnificent private residences and turned into
+a wide driveway under a covered passage, and the sisters hurried
+into the house. It was an elegant mansion of gray stone furnished
+like a palace, every corner of it warm with the luxury of paintings,
+sculpture, art and modern refinement.
+
+The owner of it all, Mr. Charles R. Sterling, stood before an open
+grate fire smoking a cigar. He had made his money in grain
+speculation and railroad ventures, and was reputed to be worth
+something over two millions. His wife was a sister of Mrs. Winslow
+of Raymond. She had been an invalid for several years. The two
+girls, Rose and Felicia, were the only children. Rose was twenty-one
+years old, fair, vivacious, educated in a fashionable college, just
+entering society and already somewhat cynical and indifferent. A
+very hard young lady to please, her father said, sometimes
+playfully, sometimes sternly. Felicia was nineteen, with a tropical
+beauty somewhat like her cousin, Rachel Winslow, with warm, generous
+impulses just waking into Christian feeling, capable of all sorts of
+expression, a puzzle to her father, a source of irritation to her
+mother and with a great unsurveyed territory of thought and action
+in herself, of which she was more than dimly conscious. There was
+that in Felicia that would easily endure any condition in life if
+only the liberty to act fully on her conscientious convictions were
+granted her.
+
+"Here's a letter for you, Felicia," said Mr. Sterling, handing it to
+her.
+
+Felicia sat down and instantly opened the letter, saying as she did
+so: "It's from Rachel."
+
+"Well, what's the latest news from Raymond?" asked Mr. Sterling,
+taking his cigar out of his mouth and looking at Felicia with
+half-shut eyes, as if he were studying her.
+
+"Rachel says Dr. Bruce has been staying in Raymond for two Sundays
+and has seemed very much interested in Mr. Maxwell's pledge in the
+First Church."
+
+"What does Rachel say about herself?" asked Rose, who was lying on a
+couch almost buried under elegant cushions.
+
+"She is still singing at the Rectangle. Since the tent meetings
+closed she sings in an old hall until the new buildings which her
+friend, Virginia Page, is putting up are completed.
+
+"I must write Rachel to come to Chicago and visit us. She ought not
+to throw away her voice in that railroad town upon all those people
+who don't appreciate her."
+
+Mr. Sterling lighted a new cigar and Rose exclaimed: "Rachel is so
+queer. She might set Chicago wild with her voice if she sang in the
+Auditorium. And there she goes on throwing it away on people who
+don't know what they are hearing."
+
+"Rachel won't come here unless she can do it and keep her pledge at
+the same time," said Felicia, after a pause.
+
+"What pledge?" Mr. Sterling asked the question and then added
+hastily: "Oh, I know, yes! A very peculiar thing that. Alexander
+Powers used to be a friend of mine. We learned telegraphy in the
+same office. Made a great sensation when he resigned and handed over
+that evidence to the Interstate Commerce Commission. And he's back
+at his telegraph again. There have been queer doings in Raymond
+during the past year. I wonder what Dr. Bruce thinks of it on the
+whole. I must have a talk with him about it."
+
+"He is at home and will preach tomorrow," said Felicia. "Perhaps he
+will tell us something about it."
+
+There was silence for a minute. Then Felicia said abruptly, as if
+she had gone on with a spoken thought to some invisible hearer: "And
+what if he should propose the same pledge to the Nazareth Avenue
+Church?"
+
+"Who? What are you talking about?" asked her father a little
+sharply.
+
+"About Dr. Bruce. I say, what if he should propose to our church
+what Mr. Maxwell proposed to his, and ask for volunteers who would
+pledge themselves to do everything after asking the question, 'What
+would Jesus do?'"
+
+"There's no danger of it," said Rose, rising suddenly from the couch
+as the tea-bell rang.
+
+"It's a very impracticable movement, to my mind," said Mr. Sterling
+shortly.
+
+"I understand from Rachel's letter that the Raymond church is going
+to make an attempt to extend the idea of the pledge to other
+churches. If it succeeds it will certainly make great changes in the
+churches and in people's lives," said Felicia.
+
+"Oh, well, let's have some tea first!" said Rose, walking into the
+dining-room. Her father and Felicia followed, and the meal proceeded
+in silence. Mrs. Sterling had her meals served in her room. Mr.
+Sterling was preoccupied. He ate very little and excused himself
+early, and although it was Saturday night, he remarked as he went
+out that he should be down town on some special business.
+
+"Don't you think father looks very much disturbed lately?" asked
+Felicia a little while after he had gone out.
+
+"Oh, I don't know! I hadn't noticed anything unusual," replied Rose.
+After a silence she said: "Are you going to the play tonight,
+Felicia? Mrs. Delano will be here at half past seven. I think you
+ought to go. She will feel hurt if you refuse."
+
+"I'll go. I don't care about it. I can see shadows enough without
+going to the play."
+
+"That's a doleful remark for a girl nineteen years old to make,"
+replied Rose. "But then you're queer in your ideas anyhow, Felicia.
+If you are going up to see mother, tell her I'll run in after the
+play if she is still awake."
+
+
+
+
+
+
+Chapter Twenty-two
+
+
+
+
+
+FELICIA started off to the play not very happy, but she was familiar
+with that feeling, only sometimes she was more unhappy than at
+others. Her feeling expressed itself tonight by a withdrawal into
+herself. When the company was seated in the box and the curtain had
+gone up Felicia was back of the others and remained for the evening
+by herself. Mrs. Delano, as chaperon for half a dozen young ladies,
+understood Felicia well enough to know that she was "queer," as Rose
+so often said, and she made no attempt to draw her out of her
+corner. And so the girl really experienced that night by herself one
+of the feelings that added to the momentum that was increasing the
+coming on of her great crisis.
+
+The play was an English melodrama, full of startling situations,
+realistic scenery and unexpected climaxes. There was one scene in
+the third act that impressed even Rose Sterling.
+
+It was midnight on Blackfriars Bridge. The Thames flowed dark and
+forbidden below. St. Paul's rose through the dim light imposing, its
+dome seeming to float above the buildings surrounding it. The figure
+of a child came upon the bridge and stood there for a moment peering
+about as if looking for some one. Several persons were crossing the
+bridge, but in one of the recesses about midway of the river a woman
+stood, leaning out over the parapet, with a strained agony of face
+and figure that told plainly of her intention. Just as she was
+stealthily mounting the parapet to throw herself into the river, the
+child caught sight of her, ran forward with a shrill cry more animal
+than human, and seizing the woman's dress dragged back upon it with
+all her little strength. Then there came suddenly upon the scene two
+other characters who had already figured in the play, a tall,
+handsome, athletic gentleman dressed in the fashion, attended by a
+slim-figured lad who was as refined in dress and appearance as the
+little girl clinging to her mother, who was mournfully hideous in
+her rags and repulsive poverty. These two, the gentleman and the
+lad, prevented the attempted suicide, and after a tableau on the
+bridge where the audience learned that the man and woman were
+brother and sister, the scene was transferred to the interior of one
+of the slum tenements in the East Side of London. Here the scene
+painter and carpenter had done their utmost to produce an exact copy
+of a famous court and alley well known to the poor creatures who
+make up a part of the outcast London humanity. The rags, the
+crowding, the vileness, the broken furniture, the horrible animal
+existence forced upon creatures made in God's image were so
+skilfully shown in this scene that more than one elegant woman in
+the theatre, seated like Rose Sterling in a sumptuous box surrounded
+with silk hangings and velvet covered railing, caught herself
+shrinking back a little as if contamination were possible from the
+nearness of this piece of scenery. It was almost too realistic, and
+yet it had a horrible fascination for Felicia as she sat there
+alone, buried back in a cushioned seat and absorbed in thoughts that
+went far beyond the dialogue on the stage.
+
+From the tenement scene the play shifted to the interior of a
+nobleman's palace, and almost a sigh of relief went up all over the
+house at the sight of the accustomed luxury of the upper classes.
+The contrast was startling. It was brought about by a clever piece
+of staging that allowed only a few moments to elapse between the
+slum and the palace scene. The dialogue went on, the actors came and
+went in their various roles, but upon Felicia the play made but one
+distinct impression. In realty the scenes on the bridge and in the
+slums were only incidents in the story of the play, but Felicia
+found herself living those scenes over and over. She had never
+philosophized about the causes of human misery, she was not old
+enough she had not the temperament that philosophizes. But she felt
+intensely, and this was not the first time she had felt the contrast
+thrust into her feeling between the upper and the lower conditions
+of human life. It had been growing upon her until it had made her
+what Rose called "queer," and other people in her circle of wealthy
+acquaintances called very unusual. It was simply the human problem
+in its extreme of riches and poverty, its refinement and its
+vileness, that was, in spite of her unconscious attempts to struggle
+against the facts, burning into her life the impression that would
+in the end either transform her into a woman of rare love and
+self-sacrifice for the world, or a miserable enigma to herself and
+all who knew her.
+
+"Come, Felicia, aren't you going home?" said Rose. The play was
+over, the curtain down, and people were going noisily out, laughing
+and gossiping as if "The Shadows of London" were simply good
+diversion, as they were, put on the stage so effectively.
+
+Felicia rose and went out with the rest quietly, and with the
+absorbed feeling that had actually left her in her seat oblivious of
+the play's ending. She was never absent-minded, but often thought
+herself into a condition that left her alone in the midst of a
+crowd.
+
+"Well, what did you think of it?" asked Rose when the sisters had
+reached home and were in the drawing-room. Rose really had
+considerable respect for Felicia's judgment of a play.
+
+"I thought it was a pretty fair picture of real life."
+
+"I mean the acting," said Rose, annoyed.
+
+"The bridge scene was well acted, especially the woman's part. I
+thought the man overdid the sentiment a little."
+
+"Did you? I enjoyed that. And wasn't the scene between the two
+cousins funny when they first learned they were related? But the
+slum scene was horrible. I think they ought not to show such things
+in a play. They are too painful."
+
+"They must be painful in real life, too," replied Felicia.
+
+"Yes, but we don't have to look at the real thing. It's bad enough
+at the theatre where we pay for it."
+
+Rose went into the dining-room and began to eat from a plate of
+fruit and cakes on the sideboard.
+
+"Are you going up to see mother?" asked Felicia after a while. She
+had remained in front of the drawing-room fireplace.
+
+"No," replied Rose from the other room. "I won't trouble her
+tonight. If you go in tell her I am too tired to be agreeable."
+
+So Felicia turned into her mother's room, as she went up the great
+staircase and down the upper hall. The light was burning there, and
+the servant who always waited on Mrs. Sterling was beckoning Felicia
+to come in.
+
+"Tell Clara to go out," exclaimed Mrs. Sterling as Felicia came up
+to the bed.
+
+Felicia was surprised, but she did as her mother bade her, and then
+inquired how she was feeling.
+
+"Felicia," said her mother, "can you pray?"
+
+The question was so unlike any her mother had ever asked before that
+she was startled. But she answered: "Why, yes, mother. Why do you
+ask such a question?"
+
+"Felicia, I am frightened. Your father--I have had such strange
+fears about him all day. Something is wrong with him. I want you to
+pray--."
+
+"Now, here, mother?"
+
+"Yes. Pray, Felicia."
+
+Felicia reached out her hand and took her mother's. It was
+trembling. Mrs. Sterling had never shown such tenderness for her
+younger daughter, and her strange demand now was the first real sign
+of any confidence in Felicia's character.
+
+The girl kneeled, still holding her mother's trembling hand, and
+prayed. It is doubtful if she had ever prayed aloud before. She must
+have said in her prayer the words that her mother needed, for when
+it was silent in the room the invalid was weeping softly and her
+nervous tension was over.
+
+Felicia stayed some time. When she was assured that her mother would
+not need her any longer she rose to go.
+
+"Good night, mother. You must let Clara call me if you feel badly in
+the night."
+
+"I feel better now." Then as Felicia was moving away, Mrs. Sterling
+said: "Won't you kiss me, Felicia?"
+
+Felicia went back and bent over her mother. The kiss was almost as
+strange to her as the prayer had been. When Felicia went out of the
+room her cheeks were wet with tears. She had not often cried since
+she was a little child.
+
+Sunday morning at the Sterling mansion was generally very quiet. The
+girls usually went to church at eleven o'clock service. Mr. Sterling
+was not a member but a heavy contributor, and he generally went to
+church in the morning. This time he did not come down to breakfast,
+and finally sent word by a servant that he did not feel well enough
+to go out. So Rose and Felicia drove up to the door of the Nazareth
+Avenue Church and entered the family pew alone.
+
+When Dr. Bruce walked out of the room at the rear of the platform
+and went up to the pulpit to open the Bible as his custom was, those
+who knew him best did not detect anything unusual in his manner or
+his expression. He proceeded with the service as usual. He was calm
+and his voice was steady and firm. His prayer was the first
+intimation the people had of anything new or strange in the service.
+It is safe to say that the Nazareth Avenue Church had not heard Dr.
+Bruce offer such a prayer before during the twelve years he had been
+pastor there. How would a minister be likely to pray who had come
+out of a revolution in Christian feeling that had completely changed
+his definition of what was meant by following Jesus? No one in
+Nazareth Avenue Church had any idea that the Rev. Calvin Bruce, D.
+D., the dignified, cultured, refined Doctor of Divinity, had within
+a few days been crying like a little child on his knees, asking for
+strength and courage and Christlikeness to speak his Sunday message;
+and yet the prayer was an unconscious involuntary disclosure of his
+soul's experience such as the Nazareth Avenue people had seldom
+heard, and never before from that pulpit.
+
+
+
+
+
+
+Chapter Twenty-three
+
+
+
+
+
+"I AM just back from a visit to Raymond," Dr. Bruce began, "and I
+want to tell you something of my impressions of the movement there."
+
+He paused and his look went out over his people with yearning for
+them and at the same time with a great uncertainty at his heart. How
+many of his rich, fashionable, refined, luxury-loving members would
+understand the nature of the appeal he was soon to make to them? He
+was altogether in the dark as to that. Nevertheless he had been
+through his desert, and had come out of it ready to suffer. He went
+on now after that brief pause and told them the story of his stay in
+Raymond. The people already knew something of that experiment in the
+First Church. The whole country had watched the progress of the
+pledge as it had become history in so many lives. Mr. Maxwell had at
+last decided that the time had come to seek the fellowship of other
+churches throughout the country. The new discipleship in Raymond had
+proved to be so valuable in its results that he wished the churches
+in general to share with the disciples in Raymond. Already there had
+begun a volunteer movement in many churches throughout the country,
+acting on their own desire to walk closer in the steps of Jesus. The
+Christian Endeavor Society had, with enthusiasm, in many churches
+taken the pledge to do as Jesus would do, and the result was already
+marked in a deeper spiritual life and a power in church influence
+that was like a new birth for the members.
+
+All this Dr. Bruce told his people simply and with a personal
+interest that evidently led the way to the announcement which now
+followed. Felicia had listened to every word with strained
+attention. She sat there by the side of Rose, in contrast like fire
+beside snow, although even Rose was alert and as excited as she
+could be.
+
+"Dear friends," he said, and for the first time since his prayer the
+emotion of the occasion was revealed in his voice and gesture, "I am
+going to ask that Nazareth Avenue Church take the same pledge that
+Raymond Church has taken. I know what this will mean to you and me.
+It will mean the complete change of very many habits. It will mean,
+possibly, social loss. It will mean very probably, in many cases,
+loss of money. It will mean suffering. It will mean what following
+Jesus meant in the first century, and then it meant suffering, loss,
+hardship, separation from everything un-Christian. But what does
+following Jesus mean? The test of discipleship is the same now as
+then. Those of us who volunteer in this church to do as Jesus would
+do, simply promise to walk in His steps as He gave us commandment."
+
+Again he paused, and now the result of his announcement was plainly
+visible in the stir that went up over the, congregation. He added in
+a quiet voice that all who volunteered to make the pledge to do as
+Jesus would do, were asked to remain after the morning service.
+
+Instantly he proceeded with his sermon. His text was, "Master, I
+will follow Thee whithersoever Thou goest." It was a sermon that
+touched the deep springs of conduct; it was a revelation to the
+people of the definition their pastor had been learning; it took
+them back to the first century of Christianity; above all, it
+stirred them below the conventional thought of years as to the
+meaning and purpose of church membership. It was such a sermon as a
+man can preach once in a lifetime, and with enough in it for people
+to live on all through the rest of their lifetime.
+
+The service closed in a hush that was slowly broken. People rose
+here and there, a few at a time. There was a reluctance in the
+movements of some that was very striking. Rose, however, walked
+straight out of the pew, and as she reached the aisle she turned her
+head and beckoned to Felicia. By that time the congregation was
+rising all over the church. "I am going to stay," she said, and Rose
+had heard her speak in the same manner on other occasions, and knew
+that her resolve could not be changed. Nevertheless she went back
+into the pew two or three steps and faced her.
+
+"Felicia," she whispered, and there was a flush of anger on her
+cheeks, "this is folly. What can you do? You will bring some
+disgrace on the family. What will father say? Come!"
+
+Felicia looked at her but did not answer at once. Her lips were
+moving with a petition that came from the depth of feeling that
+measured a new life for her. She shocked her head.
+
+"No, I am going to stay. I shall take the pledge. I am ready to obey
+it. You do not know why I am doing this."
+
+Rose gave her one look and then turned and went out of the pew, and
+down the aisle. She did not even stop to talk with her
+acquaintances. Mrs. Delano was going out of the church just as Rose
+stepped into the vestibule.
+
+"So you are not going to join Dr. Bruce's volunteer company?" Mrs.
+Delano asked, in a queer tone that made Rose redden.
+
+"No, are you? It is simply absurd. I have always regarded that
+Raymond movement as fanatical. You know cousin Rachel keeps us
+posted about it."
+
+"Yes, I understand it is resulting in a great deal of hardship in
+many cases. For my part, I believe Dr. Bruce has simply provoked
+disturbance here. It will result in splitting our church. You see if
+it isn't so. There are scores of people in the church who are so
+situated that they can't take such a pledge and keep it. I am one of
+them," added Mrs. Delano as she went out with Rose.
+
+When Rose reached home, her father was standing in his usual
+attitude before the open fireplace, smoking a cigar.
+
+"Where is Felicia?" he asked as Rose came in.
+
+"She stayed to an after-meeting," replied Rose shortly. She threw
+off her wraps and was going upstairs when Mr. Sterling called after
+her.
+
+"An after-meeting? What do you mean?"
+
+"Dr. Bruce asked the church to take the Raymond pledge."
+
+Mr. Sterling took his cigar out of his mouth and twirled it
+nervously between his fingers.
+
+"I didn't expect that of Dr. Bruce. Did many of the members stay?"
+
+"I don't know. I didn't," replied Rose, and she went upstairs
+leaving her father standing in the drawing-room.
+
+After a few moments he went to the window and stood there looking
+out at the people driving on the boulevard. His cigar had gone out,
+but he still fingered it nervously. Then he turned from the window
+and walked up and down the room. A servant stepped across the hall
+and announced dinner and he told her to wait for Felicia. Rose came
+downstairs and went into the library. And still Mr. Sterling paced
+the drawing-room restlessly.
+
+He had finally wearied of the walking apparently, and throwing
+himself into a chair was brooding over something deeply when Felicia
+came in.
+
+He rose and faced her. Felicia was evidently very much moved by the
+meeting from which she had just come. At the same time she did not
+wish to talk too much about it. Just as she entered the
+drawing-room, Rose came in from the library.
+
+"How many stayed?" she asked. Rose was curious. At the same time she
+was skeptical of the whole movement in Raymond.
+
+"About a hundred," replied Felicia gravely. Mr. Sterling looked
+surprised. Felicia was going out of the room, but he called to her:
+"Do you really mean to keep the pledge?" he asked.
+
+Felicia colored. Over her face and neck the warm blood flowed and
+she answered, "You would not ask such a question, father, if you had
+been at the meeting." She lingered a moment in the room, then asked
+to be excused from dinner for a while and went up to see her mother.
+
+No one but they two ever knew what that interview between Felicia
+and her mother was. It is certain that she must have told her mother
+something of the spiritual power that had awed every person present
+in the company of disciples who faced Dr. Bruce in that meeting
+after the morning service. It is also certain that Felicia had never
+before known such an experience, and would never have thought of
+sharing it with her mother if it had not been for the prayer the
+evening before. Another fact is also known of Felicia's experience
+at this time. When she finally joined her father and Rose at the
+table she seemed unable to tell them much about the meeting. There
+was a reluctance to speak of it as one might hesitate to attempt a
+description of a wonderful sunset to a person who never talked about
+anything but the weather.
+
+When that Sunday in the Sterling mansion was drawing to a close and
+the soft, warm lights throughout the dwelling were glowing through
+the great windows, in a corner of her room, where the light was
+obscure, Felicia kneeled, and when she raised her face and turned it
+towards the light, it was the face of a woman who had already
+defined for herself the greatest issues of earthly life.
+
+That same evening, after the Sunday evening service, Dr. Bruce was
+talking over the events of the day with his wife. They were of one
+heart and mind in the matter, and faced their new future with all
+the faith and courage of new disciples. Neither was deceived as to
+the probable results of the pledge to themselves or to the church.
+
+They had been talking but a little while when the bell rang and Dr.
+Bruce going to the door exclaimed, as he opened it: "It is you,
+Edward! Come in."
+
+There came into the hall a commanding figure. The Bishop was of
+extraordinary height and breadth of shoulder, but of such good
+proportions that there was no thought of ungainly or even of unusual
+size. The impression the Bishop made on strangers was, first, that
+of great health, and then of great affection.
+
+He came into the parlor and greeted Mrs. Bruce, who after a few
+moments was called out of the room, leaving the two men together.
+The Bishop sat in a deep, easy chair before the open fire. There was
+just enough dampness in the early spring of the year to make an open
+fire pleasant.
+
+"Calvin, you have taken a very serious step today," he finally said,
+lifting his large dark eyes to his old college classmate's face. "I
+heard of it this afternoon. I could not resist the desire to see you
+about it tonight."
+
+"I'm glad you came." Dr. Bruce laid a hand on the Bishop's shoulder.
+"You understand what this means, Edward?"
+
+"I think I do. Yes, I am sure." The Bishop spoke very slowly and
+thoughtfully. He sat with his hands clasped together. Over his face,
+marked with lines of consecration and service and the love of men, a
+shadow crept, a shadow not caused by the firelight. Once more he
+lifted his eyes toward his old friend.
+
+"Calvin, we have always understood each other. Ever since our paths
+led us in different ways in church life we have walked together in
+Christian fellowship--."
+
+"It is true," replied Dr. Bruce with an emotion he made no attempt
+to conceal or subdue. "Thank God for it. I prize your fellowship
+more than any other man's. I have always known what it meant, though
+it has always been more than I deserve."
+
+The Bishop looked affectionately at his friend. But the shadow still
+rested on his face. After a pause he spoke again: "The new
+discipleship means a crisis for you in your work. If you keep this
+pledge to do all things as Jesus would do--as I know you will--it
+requires no prophet to predict some remarkable changes in your
+parish." The Bishop looked wistfully at his friend and then
+continued: "In fact, I do not see how a perfect upheaval of
+Christianity, as we now know it, can be prevented if the ministers
+and churches generally take the Raymond pledge and live it out." He
+paused as if he were waiting for his friend to say something, to ask
+some question. But Bruce did not know of the fire that was burning
+in the Bishop's heart over the very question that Maxwell and
+himself had fought out.
+
+"Now, in my church, for instance," continued the Bishop, "it would
+be rather a difficult matter, I fear, to find very many people who
+would take a pledge like that and live up to it. Martyrdom is a lost
+art with us. Our Christianity loves its ease and comfort too well to
+take up anything so rough and heavy as a cross. And yet what does
+following Jesus mean? What is it to walk in His steps?"
+
+The Bishop was soliloquizing now and it is doubtful if he thought,
+for the moment, of his friend's presence. For the first time there
+flashed into Dr. Bruce's mind a suspicion of the truth. What if the
+Bishop would throw the weight of his great influence on the side of
+the Raymond movement? He had the following of the most aristocratic,
+wealthy, fashionable people, not only in Chicago, but in several
+large cities. What if the Bishop should join this new discipleship!
+
+The thought was about to be followed by the word. Dr. Bruce had
+reached out his hand and with the familiarity of lifelong friendship
+had placed it on the Bishop's shoulder and was about to ask a very
+important question, when they were both startled by the violent
+ringing of the bell. Mrs. Bruce had gone to the door and was talking
+with some one in the hall. There was a loud exclamation and then, as
+the Bishop rose and Bruce was stepping toward the curtain that hung
+before the entrance to the parlor, Mrs. Bruce pushed it aside. Her
+face was white and she was trembling.
+
+"O Calvin! Such terrible news! Mr. Sterling--oh, I cannot tell it!
+What a blow to those girls!" "What is it?" Mr. Bruce advanced with
+the Bishop into the hall and confronted the messenger, a servant
+from the Sterlings. The man was without his hat and had evidently
+run over with the news, as Dr. Bruce lived nearest of any intimate
+friends of the family.
+
+"Mr. Sterling shot himself, sir, a few minutes ago. He killed
+himself in his bed-room. Mrs. Sterling--"
+
+"I will go right over, Edward. Will you go with me? The Sterlings
+are old friends of yours."'
+
+The Bishop was very pale, but calm as always. He looked his friend
+in the face and answered: "Aye, Calvin, I will go with you not only
+to this house of death, but also the whole way of human sin and
+sorrow, please God."
+
+
+
+
+
+
+Chapter Twenty-four
+
+
+
+
+
+These are they which follow the Lamb whithersoever He goeth.
+
+WHEN Dr. Bruce and the Bishop entered the Sterling mansion
+everything in the usually well appointed household was in the
+greatest confusion and terror. The great rooms downstairs were
+empty, but overhead were hurried footsteps and confused noises. One
+of the servants ran down the grand staircase with a look of horror
+on her face just as the Bishop and Dr. Bruce were starting to go up.
+
+"Miss Felicia is with Mrs. Sterling," the servant stammered in
+answer to a question, and then burst into a hysterical cry and ran
+through the drawing-room and out of doors.
+
+At the top of the staircase the two men were met by Felicia. She
+walked up to Dr. Bruce at once and put both hands in his. The Bishop
+then laid his hand on her head and the three stood there a moment in
+perfect silence. The Bishop had known Felicia since she was a little
+child. He was the first to break the silence.
+
+"The God of all mercy be with you, Felicia, in this dark hour. Your
+mother--"
+
+The Bishop hesitated. Out of the buried past he had, during his
+hurried passage from his friend's to this house of death,
+irresistibly drawn the one tender romance of his young manhood. Not
+even Bruce knew that. But there had been a time when the Bishop had
+offered the incense of a singularly undivided affection upon the
+altar of his youth to the beautiful Camilla Rolfe, and she had
+chosen between him and the millionaire. The Bishop carried no
+bitterness with his memory; but it was still a memory.
+
+For answer to the Bishop's unfinished query, Felicia turned and went
+back into her mother's room. She had not said a word yet, but both
+men were struck with her wonderful calm. She returned to the hall
+door and beckoned to them, and the two ministers, with a feeling
+that they were about to behold something very unusual, entered.
+
+Rose lay with her arms outstretched upon the bed. Clara, the nurse,
+sat with her head covered, sobbing in spasms of terror. And Mrs.
+Sterling with "the light that never was on sea or land" luminous on
+her face, lay there so still that even the Bishop was deceived at
+first. Then, as the great truth broke upon him and Dr. Bruce, he
+staggered, and the sharp agony of the old wound shot through him. It
+passed, and left him standing there in that chamber of death with
+the eternal calmness and strength that the children of God have a
+right to possess. And right well he used that calmness and strength
+in the days that followed.
+
+The next moment the house below was in a tumult. Almost at the same
+time the doctor who had been sent for at once, but lived some
+distance away, came in, together with police officers, who had been
+summoned by frightened servants. With them were four or five
+newspaper correspondents and several neighbors. Dr. Bruce and the
+Bishop met this miscellaneous crowd at the head of the stairs and
+succeeded in excluding all except those whose presence was
+necessary. With these the two friends learned all the facts ever
+known about the "Sterling tragedy," as the papers in their
+sensational accounts next day called it.
+
+Mr. Sterling had gone into his room that evening about nine o'clock
+and that was the last seen of him until, in half an hour, a shot was
+heard in the room, and a servant who was in the hall ran into the
+room and found him dead on the floor, killed by his own hand.
+Felicia at the time was sitting by her mother. Rose was reading in
+the library. She ran upstairs, saw her father as he was being lifted
+upon the couch by the servants, and then ran screaming into her
+mother's room, where she flung herself down at the foot of the bed
+in a swoon. Mrs. Sterling had at first fainted at the shock, then
+rallied with a wonderful swiftness and sent for Dr. Bruce. She had
+then insisted on seeing her husband. In spite of Felicia's efforts,
+she had compelled Clara to support her while she crossed the hall
+and entered the room where her husband lay. She had looked upon him
+with a tearless face, had gone back to her own room, was laid on her
+bed, and as Dr. Bruce and the Bishop entered the house she, with a
+prayer of forgiveness for herself and for her husband on her
+quivering lips, had died, with Felicia bending over her and Rose
+still lying senseless at her feet.
+
+So great and swift had been the entrance of grim Death into that
+palace of luxury that Sunday night! But the full cause of his coming
+was not learned until the facts in regard to Mr. Sterling's business
+affairs were finally disclosed.
+
+Then it was learned that for some time he had been facing financial
+ruin owing to certain speculations that had in a month's time swept
+his supposed wealth into complete destruction. With the cunning and
+desperation of a man who battles for his very life when he saw his
+money, which was all the life he ever valued, slipping from him, he
+had put off the evil day to the last moment. Sunday afternoon,
+however, he had received news that proved to him beyond a doubt the
+fact of his utter ruin. The very house that he called his, the
+chairs in which he sat, his carriage, the dishes from which he ate,
+had all been bought with money for which he himself had never really
+done an honest stroke of pure labor.
+
+It had all rested on a tissue of deceit and speculation that had no
+foundation in real values. He knew that fact better than any one
+else, but he had hoped, with the hope such men always have, that the
+same methods that brought him the money would also prevent the loss.
+He had been deceived in this as many others have been. As soon as
+the truth that he was practically a beggar had dawned upon him, he
+saw no escape from suicide. It was the irresistible result of such a
+life as he had lived. He had made money his god. As soon as that god
+was gone out of his little world there was nothing more to worship;
+and when a man's object of worship is gone he has no more to live
+for. Thus died the great millionaire, Charles R. Sterling. And,
+verily, he died as the fool dieth, for what is the gain or the loss
+of money compared with the unsearchable riches of eternal life which
+are beyond the reach of speculation, loss or change?
+
+Mrs. Sterling's death was the result of the shock. She had not been
+taken into her husband's confidence for years, but she knew that the
+source of his wealth was precarious. Her life for several years had
+been a death in life. The Rolfes always gave an impression that they
+could endure more disaster unmoved than any one else. Mrs. Sterling
+illustrated the old family tradition when she was carried into the
+room where her husband lay. But the feeble tenement could not hold
+the spirit and it gave up the ghost, torn and weakened by long years
+of suffering and disappointment.
+
+The effect of this triple blow, the death of father and mother, and
+the loss of property, was instantly apparent in the sisters. The
+horror of events stupefied Rose for weeks. She lay unmoved by
+sympathy or any effort to rally. She did not seem yet to realize
+that the money which had been so large a part of her very existence
+was gone. Even when she was told that she and Felicia must leave the
+house and be dependent on relatives and friends, she did not seem to
+understand what it meant.
+
+Felicia, however, was fully conscious of the facts. She knew just
+what had happened and why. She was talking over her future plans
+with her cousin Rachel a few days after the funerals. Mrs. Winslow
+and Rachel had left Raymond and come to Chicago at once as soon as
+the terrible news had reached them, and with other friends of the
+family were planning for the future of Rose and Felicia.
+
+"Felicia, you and Rose must come to Raymond with us. That is
+settled. Mother will not hear to any other plan at present," Rachel
+had said, while her beautiful face glowed with love for her cousin,
+a love that had deepened day by day, and was intensified by the
+knowledge that they both belonged to the new discipleship.
+
+"Unless I can find something to do here," answered Felicia. She
+looked wistfully at Rachel, and Rachel said gently:
+
+"What could you do, dear?"
+
+"Nothing. I was never taught to do anything except a little music,
+and I do not know enough about it to teach it or earn my living at
+it. I have learned to cook a little," Felicia added with a slight
+smile.
+
+"Then you can cook for us. Mother is always having trouble with her
+kitchen," said Rachel, understanding well enough she was now
+dependent for her very food and shelter upon the kindness of family
+friends. It is true the girls received a little something out of the
+wreck of their father's fortune, but with a speculator's mad folly
+he had managed to involve both his wife's and his children's portion
+in the common ruin.
+
+"Can I? Can I?" Felicia responded to Rachel's proposition as if it
+were to be considered seriously. "I am ready to do anything
+honorable to make my living and that of Rose. Poor Rose! She will
+never be able to get over the shock of our trouble."
+
+"We will arrange the details when we get to Raymond," Rachel said,
+smiling through her tears at Felicia's eager willingness to care for
+herself.
+
+So in a few weeks Rose and Felicia found themselves a part of the
+Winslow family in Raymond. It was a bitter experience for Rose, but
+there was nothing else for her to do and she accepted the
+inevitable, brooding over the great change in her life and in many
+ways adding to the burden of Felicia and her cousin Rachel.
+
+Felicia at once found herself in an atmosphere of discipleship that
+was like heaven to her in its revelation of companionship. It is
+true that Mrs. Winslow was not in sympathy with the course that
+Rachel was taking, but the remarkable events in Raymond since the
+pledge was taken were too powerful in their results not to impress
+even such a woman as Mrs. Winslow. With Rachel, Felicia found a
+perfect fellowship. She at once found a part to take in the new work
+at the Rectangle. In the spirit of her new life she insisted upon
+helping in the housework at her aunt's, and in a short time
+demonstrated her ability as a cook so clearly that Virginia
+suggested that she take charge of the cooking at the Rectangle.
+
+Felicia entered upon this work with the keenest pleasure. For the
+first time in her life she had the delight of doing something of
+value for the happiness of others. Her resolve to do everything
+after asking, "What would Jesus do?" touched her deepest nature. She
+began to develop and strengthen wonderfully. Even Mrs. Winslow was
+obliged to acknowledge the great usefulness and beauty of Felicia's
+character. The aunt looked with astonishment upon her niece, this
+city-bred girl, reared in the greatest luxury, the daughter of a
+millionaire, now walking around in her kitchen, her arms covered
+with flour and occasionally a streak of it on her nose, for Felicia
+at first had a habit of rubbing her nose forgetfully when she was
+trying to remember some recipe, mixing various dishes with the
+greatest interest in their results, washing up pans and kettles and
+doing the ordinary work of a servant in the Winslow kitchen and at
+the rooms at the Rectangle Settlement. At first Mrs. Winslow
+remonstrated.
+
+"Felicia, it is not your place to be out here doing this common
+work. I cannot allow it."
+
+"Why, Aunt? Don't you like the muffins I made this morning?" Felicia
+would ask meekly, but with a hidden smile, knowing her aunt's
+weakness for that kind of muffin.
+
+"They were beautiful, Felicia. But it does not seem right for you to
+be doing such work for us."
+
+"Why not? What else can I do?"
+
+Her aunt looked at her thoughtfully, noting her remarkable beauty of
+face and expression.
+
+"You do not always intend to do this kind of work, Felicia?"
+
+"Maybe I shall. I have had a dream of opening an ideal cook shop in
+Chicago or some large city and going around to the poor families in
+some slum district like the Rectangle, teaching the mothers how to
+prepare food properly. I remember hearing Dr. Bruce say once that he
+believed one of the great miseries of comparative poverty consisted
+in poor food. He even went so far as to say that he thought some
+kinds of crime could be traced to soggy biscuit and tough beefsteak.
+I'm sure I would be able to make a living for Rose and myself and at
+the same time help others."
+
+
+
+
+
+
+Chapter Twenty-five
+
+
+
+
+
+THREE months had gone by since the Sunday morning when Dr. Bruce
+came into his pulpit with the message of the new discipleship. They
+were three months of great excitement in Nazareth Avenue Church.
+Never before had Rev. Calvin Bruce realized how deep the feeling of
+his members flowed. He humbly confessed that the appeal he had made
+met with an unexpected response from men and women who, like
+Felicia, were hungry for something in their lives that the
+conventional type of church membership and fellowship had failed to
+give them.
+
+But Dr. Bruce was not yet satisfied for himself. He cannot tell what
+his feeling was or what led to the movement he finally made, to the
+great astonishment of all who knew him, better than by relating a
+conversation between him and the Bishop at this time in the history
+of the pledge in Nazareth Avenue Church. The two friends were as
+before in Dr. Bruce's house, seated in his study.
+
+"You know what I have come in this evening for?" the Bishop was
+saying after the friends had been talking some time about the
+results of the pledge with the Nazareth Avenue people.
+
+Dr. Bruce looked over at the Bishop and shook his head.
+
+"I have come to confess that I have not yet kept my promise to walk
+in His steps in the way that I believe I shall be obliged to if I
+satisfy my thought of what it means to walk in His steps."
+
+Dr. Bruce had risen and was pacing his study. The Bishop remained in
+the deep easy chair with his hands clasped, but his eye burned with
+the blow that belonged to him before he made some great resolve.
+
+"Edward," Dr. Bruce spoke abruptly, "I have not yet been able to
+satisfy myself, either, in obeying my promise. But I have at last
+decided on my course. In order to follow it I shall be obliged to
+resign from Nazareth Avenue Church."
+
+"I knew you would," replied the Bishop quietly. "And I came in this
+evening to say that I shall be obliged to do the same thing with my
+charge."
+
+Dr. Bruce turned and walked up to his friend. They were both
+laboring under a repressed excitement.
+
+"Is it necessary in your case?" asked Bruce.
+
+"Yes. Let me state my reasons. Probably they are the same as yours.
+In fact, I am sure they are." The Bishop paused a moment, then went
+on with increasing feeling:
+
+"Calvin, you know how many years I have been doing the work of my
+position, and you know something of the responsibility and care of
+it. I do not mean to say that my life has been free from
+burden-bearing or sorrow. But I have certainly led what the poor and
+desperate of this sinful city would call a very comfortable, yes, a
+very luxurious life. I have had a beautiful house to live in, the
+most expensive food, clothing and physical pleasures. I have been
+able to go abroad at least a dozen times, and have enjoyed for years
+the beautiful companionship of art and letters and music and all the
+rest, of the very best. I have never known what it meant to be
+without money or its equivalent. And I have been unable to silence
+the question of late: 'What have I suffered for the sake of Christ?'
+Paul was told what great things he must suffer for the sake of his
+Lord. Maxwell's position at Raymond is well taken when he insists
+that to walk in the steps of Christ means to suffer. Where has my
+suffering come in? The petty trials and annoyances of my clerical
+life are not worth mentioning as sorrows or sufferings. Compared
+with Paul or any of the Christian martyrs or early disciples I have
+lived a luxurious, sinful life, full of ease and pleasure. I cannot
+endure this any longer. I have that within me which of late rises in
+overwhelming condemnation of such a following of Jesus. I have not
+been walking in His steps. Under the present system of church and
+social life I see no escape from this condemnation except to give
+the most of my life personally to the actual physical and soul needs
+of the wretched people in the worst part of this city."
+
+The Bishop had risen now and walked over to the window. The street
+in front of the house was as light as day, and he looked out at the
+crowds passing, then turned and with a passionate utterance that
+showed how deep the volcanic fire in him burned, he exclaimed:
+
+"Calvin, this is a terrible city in which we live! Its misery, its
+sin, its selfishness, appall my heart. And I have struggled for
+years with the sickening dread of the time when I should be forced
+to leave the pleasant luxury of my official position to put my life
+into contact with the modern paganism of this century. The awful
+condition of the girls in some great business places, the brutal
+selfishness of the insolent society fashion and wealth that ignores
+all the sorrow of the city, the fearful curse of the drink and
+gambling hell, the wail of the unemployed, the hatred of the church
+by countless men who see in it only great piles of costly stone and
+upholstered furniture and the minister as a luxurious idler, all the
+vast tumult of this vast torrent of humanity with its false and its
+true ideas, its exaggeration of evils in the church and its
+bitterness and shame that are the result of many complex causes, all
+this as a total fact in its contrast with the easy, comfortable life
+I have lived, fills me more and more with a sense of mingled terror
+and self accusation. I have heard the words of Jesus many times
+lately: 'Inasmuch as ye did it not unto one of these least My
+brethren, ye did it not unto Me.' And when have I personally visited
+the prisoner or the desperate or the sinful in any way that has
+actually caused me suffering? Rather, I have followed the
+conventional soft habits of my position and have lived in the
+society of the rich, refined, aristocratic members of my
+congregations. Where has the suffering come in? What have I suffered
+for Jesus' sake? Do you know, Calvin," he turned abruptly toward his
+friend, "I have been tempted of late to lash myself with a scourge.
+If I had lived in Martin Luther's time I should have bared my back
+to a self-inflicted torture."
+
+Dr. Bruce was very pale. Never had he seen the Bishop or heard him
+when under the influence of such a passion. There was a sudden
+silence in the room. The Bishop sat down again and bowed his head.
+
+Dr. Bruce spoke at last: "Edward, I do not need to say that you have
+expressed my feelings also. I have been in a similar position for
+years. My life has been one of comparative luxury. I do not, of
+course, mean to say that I have not had trials and discouragements
+and burdens in my church ministry. But I cannot say that I have
+suffered any for Jesus. That verse in Peter constantly haunts me:
+'Christ also suffered for you, leaving you an example that ye should
+follow His steps.' I have lived in luxury. I do not know what it
+means to want. I also have had my leisure for travel and beautiful
+companionship. I have been surrounded by the soft, easy comforts of
+civilization. The sin and misery of this great city have beaten like
+waves against the stone walls of my church and of this house in
+which I live, and I have hardly heeded them, the walls have been so
+thick. I have reached a point where I cannot endure this any longer.
+I am not condemning the Church. I love her. I am not forsaking the
+Church. I believe in her mission and have no desire to destroy.
+Least of all, in the step I am about to take do I desire to be
+charged with abandoning the Christian fellowship. But I feel that I
+must resign my place as pastor of Nazareth Church in order to
+satisfy myself that I am walking as I ought to walk in His steps. In
+this action I judge no other minister and pass no criticism on
+others' discipleship. But I feel as you do. Into a close contact
+with the sin and shame and degradation of this great city I must
+come personally. And I know that to do that I must sever my
+immediate connection with Nazareth Avenue Church. I do not see any
+other way for myself to suffer for His sake as I feel that I ought
+to suffer."
+
+Again that sudden silence fell over those two men. It was no
+ordinary action they were deciding. They had both reached the same
+conclusion by the same reasoning, and they were too thoughtful, too
+well accustomed to the measuring of conduct, to underestimate the
+seriousness of their position.
+
+"What is your plan?" The Bishop at last spoke gently, looking with
+the smile that always beautified his face. The Bishop's face grew in
+glory now every day.
+
+"My plan," replied Dr. Bruce slowly, "is, in brief, the putting of
+myself into the centre of the greatest human need I can find in this
+city and living there. My wife is fully in accord with me. We have
+already decided to find a residence in that part of the city where
+we can make our personal lives count for the most."
+
+"Let me suggest a place." The Bishop was on fire now. His fine face
+actually glowed with the enthusiasm of the movement in which he and
+his friend were inevitably embarked. He went on and unfolded a plan
+of such far-reaching power and possibility that Dr. Bruce, capable
+and experienced as he was, felt amazed at the vision of a greater
+soul than his own.
+
+They sat up late, and were as eager and even glad as if they were
+planning for a trip together to some rare land of unexplored travel.
+Indeed, the Bishop said many times afterward that the moment his
+decision was reached to live the life of personal sacrifice he had
+chosen he suddenly felt an uplifting as if a great burden were taken
+from him. He was exultant. So was Dr. Bruce from the same cause.
+
+Their plan as it finally grew into a workable fact was in reality
+nothing more than the renting of a large building formerly used as a
+warehouse for a brewery, reconstructing it and living in it
+themselves in the very heart of a territory where the saloon ruled
+with power, where the tenement was its filthiest, where vice and
+ignorance and shame and poverty were congested into hideous forms.
+It was not a new idea. It was an idea started by Jesus Christ when
+He left His Father's House and forsook the riches that were His in
+order to get nearer humanity and, by becoming a part of its sin,
+helping to draw humanity apart from its sin. The University
+Settlement idea is not modern. It is as old as Bethlehem and
+Nazareth. And in this particular case it was the nearest approach to
+anything that would satisfy the hunger of these two men to suffer
+for Christ.
+
+There had sprung up in them at the same time a longing that amounted
+to a passion, to get nearer the great physical poverty and spiritual
+destitution of the mighty city that throbbed around them. How could
+they do this except as they became a part of it as nearly as one man
+can become a part of another's misery? Where was the suffering to
+come in unless there was an actual self-denial of some sort? And
+what was to make that self-denial apparent to themselves or any one
+else, unless it took this concrete, actual, personal form of trying
+to share the deepest suffering and sin of the city?
+
+So they reasoned for themselves, not judging others. They were
+simply keeping their own pledge to do as Jesus would do, as they
+honestly judged He would do. That was what they had promised. How
+could they quarrel with the result if they were irresistibly
+compelled to do what they were planning to do?
+
+
+
+
+
+
+Chapter Twenty-six
+
+
+
+
+
+MEANWHILE, Nazareth Avenue Church was experiencing something never
+known before in all its history. The simple appeal on the part of
+its pastor to his members to do as Jesus would do had created a
+sensation that still continued. The result of that appeal was very
+much the same as in Henry Maxwell's church in Raymond, only this
+church was far more aristocratic, wealthy and conventional.
+Nevertheless when, one Sunday morning in early summer, Dr. Bruce
+came into his pulpit and announced his resignation, the sensation
+deepened all over the city, although he had advised with his board
+of trustees, and the movement he intended was not a matter of
+surprise to them. But when it become publicly known that the Bishop
+had also announced his resignation and retirement from the position
+he had held so long, in order to go and live himself in the centre
+of the worst part of Chicago, the public astonishment reached its
+height.
+
+"But why?" the Bishop replied to one valued friend who had almost
+with tears tried to dissuade him from his purpose. "Why should what
+Dr. Bruce and I propose to do seem so remarkable a thing, as if it
+were unheard of that a Doctor of Divinity and a Bishop should want
+to save lost souls in this particular manner? If we were to resign
+our charge for the purpose of going to Bombay or Hong Kong or any
+place in Africa, the churches and the people would exclaim at the
+heroism of missions. Why should it seem so great a thing if we have
+been led to give our lives to help rescue the heathen and the lost
+of our own city in the way we are going to try it? Is it then such a
+tremendous event that two Christian ministers should be not only
+willing but eager to live close to the misery of the world in order
+to know it and realize it? Is it such a rare thing that love of
+humanity should find this particular form of expression in the
+rescue of souls?"
+
+And however the Bishop may have satisfied himself that there ought
+to be nothing so remarkable about it at all, the public continued to
+talk and the churches to record their astonishment that two such
+men, so prominent in the ministry, should leave their comfortable
+homes, voluntarily resign their pleasant social positions and enter
+upon a life of hardship, of self-denial and actual suffering.
+Christian America! Is it a reproach on the form of our discipleship
+that the exhibition of actual suffering for Jesus on the part of
+those who walk in His steps always provokes astonishment as at the
+sight of something very unusual?
+
+Nazareth Avenue Church parted from its pastor with regret for the
+most part, although the regret was modified with a feeling of relief
+on the part of those who had refused to take the pledge. Dr. Bruce
+carried with him the respect of men who, entangled in business in
+such a way that obedience to the pledge would have ruined them,
+still held in their deeper, better natures a genuine admiration for
+courage and consistency. They had known Dr. Bruce many years as a
+kindly, conservative, safe man, but the thought of him in the light
+of sacrifice of this sort was not familiar to them. As fast as they
+understood it, they gave their pastor the credit of being absolutely
+true to his recent convictions as to what following Jesus meant.
+Nazareth Avenue Church never lost the impulse of that movement
+started by Dr. Bruce. Those who went with him in making the promise
+breathed into the church the very breath of divine life, and are
+continuing that life-giving work at this present time.
+
+* * * * * *
+
+It was fall again, and the city faced another hard winter. The
+Bishop one afternoon came out of the Settlement and walked around
+the block, intending to go on a visit to one of his new friends in
+the district. He had walked about four blocks when he was attracted
+by a shop that looked different from the others. The neighborhood
+was still quite new to him, and every day he discovered some strange
+spot or stumbled upon some unexpected humanity.
+
+The place that attracted his notice was a small house close by a
+Chinese laundry. There were two windows in the front, very clean,
+and that was remarkable to begin with. Then, inside the window, was
+a tempting display of cookery, with prices attached to the various
+articles that made him wonder somewhat, for he was familiar by this
+time with many facts in the life of the people once unknown to him.
+As he stood looking at the windows, the door between them opened and
+Felicia Sterling came out.
+
+"Felicia!" exclaimed the Bishop. "When did you move into my parish
+without my knowledge?"
+
+"How did you find me so soon?" inquired Felicia.
+
+"Why, don't you know? These are the only clean windows in the
+block."
+
+"I believe they are," replied Felicia with a laugh that did the
+Bishop good to hear.
+
+"But why have you dared to come to Chicago without telling me, and
+how have you entered my diocese without my knowledge?" asked the
+Bishop. And Felicia looked so like that beautiful, clean, educated,
+refined world he once knew, that he might be pardoned for seeing in
+her something of the old Paradise. Although, to speak truth for him,
+he had no desire to go back to it.
+
+"Well, dear Bishop," said Felicia, who had always called him so, "I
+knew how overwhelmed you were with your work. I did not want to
+burden you with my plans. And besides, I am going to offer you my
+services. Indeed, I was just on my way to see you and ask your
+advice. I am settled here for the present with Mrs. Bascom, a
+saleswoman who rents our three rooms, and with one of Rachel's music
+pupils who is being helped to a course in violin by Virginia Page.
+She is from the people," continued Felicia, using the words "from
+the people" so gravely and unconsciously that her hearer smiled,
+"and I am keeping house for her and at the same time beginning an
+experiment in pure food for the masses. I am an expert and I have a
+plan I want you to admire and develop. Will you, dear Bishop?"
+
+"Indeed I will," he replied. The sight of Felicia and her remarkable
+vitality, enthusiasm and evident purpose almost bewildered him.
+
+"Martha can help at the Settlement with her violin and I will help
+with my messes. You see, I thought I would get settled first and
+work out something, and then come with some real thing to offer. I'm
+able to earn my own living now."
+
+"You are?" the Bishop said a little incredulously. "How? Making
+those things?"
+
+"Those things!" said Felicia with a show of indignation. "I would
+have you know, sir, that 'those things' are the best-cooked, purest
+food products in this whole city."
+
+"I don't doubt it," he replied hastily, while his eyes twinkled,
+"Still, 'the proof of the pudding'--you know the rest."
+
+"Come in and try some!" she exclaimed. "You poor Bishop! You look as
+if you hadn't had a good meal for a month."
+
+She insisted on his entering the little front room where Martha, a
+wide-awake girl with short, curly hair, and an unmistakable air of
+music about her, was busy with practice.
+
+"Go right on, Martha. This is the Bishop. You have heard me speak of
+him so often. Sit down there and let me give you a taste of the
+fleshpots of Egypt, for I believe you have been actually fasting."
+
+So they had an improvised lunch, and the Bishop who, to tell the
+truth, had not taken time for weeks to enjoy his meals, feasted on
+the delight of his unexpected discovery and was able to express his
+astonishment and gratification at the quality of the cookery.
+
+"I thought you would at least say it is as good as the meals you
+used to get at the Auditorium at the big banquets," said Felicia
+slyly.
+
+"As good as! The Auditorium banquets were simply husks compared with
+this one, Felicia. But you must come to the Settlement. I want you
+to see what we are doing. And I am simply astonished to find you
+here earning your living this way. I begin to see what your plan is.
+You can be of infinite help to us. You don't really mean that you
+will live here and help these people to know the value of good
+food?"
+
+"Indeed I do," she answered gravely. "That is my gospel. Shall I not
+follow it?"
+
+"Aye, Aye! You're right. Bless God for sense like yours! When I left
+the world," the Bishop smiled at the phrase, "they were talking a
+good deal about the 'new woman.' If you are one of them, I am a
+convert right now and here."
+
+"Flattery! Still is there no escape from it, even in the slums of
+Chicago?" Felicia laughed again. And the man's heart, heavy though
+it had grown during several months of vast sin-bearing, rejoiced to
+hear it! It sounded good. It was good. It belonged to God.
+
+Felicia wanted to visit the Settlement, and went back with him. She
+was amazed at the results of what considerable money an a good deal
+of consecrated brains had done. As they walked through the building
+they talked incessantly. She was the incarnation of vital
+enthusiasm, and he wondered at the exhibition of it as it bubbled up
+and sparkled over.
+
+They went down into the basement and the Bishop pushed open a door
+from behind which came the sound of a carpenter's plane. It was a
+small but well equipped carpenter's shop. A young man with a paper
+cap on his head and clad in blouse and overalls was whistling and
+driving the plane as he whistled. He looked up as the two entered,
+and took off his cap. As he did so, his little finger carried a
+small curling shaving up to his hair and it caught there.
+
+"Miss Sterling, Mr. Stephen Clyde," said the Bishop. "Clyde is one
+of our helpers here two afternoons in the week."
+
+Just then the bishop was called upstairs and he excused himself a
+moment, leaving Felicia and the young carpenter together.
+
+"We have met before," said Felicia looking at Clyde frankly.
+
+"Yes, 'back in the world,' as the Bishop says," replied the young
+man, and his fingers trembled a little as they lay on the board he
+had been planing.
+
+"Yes." Felicia hesitated. "I am very glad to see you."
+
+"Are you?" The flush of pleasure mounted to the young carpenter's
+forehead. "You have had a great deal of trouble since--since--then,"
+he said, and then he was afraid he had wounded her, or called up
+painful memories. But she had lived over all that.
+
+"Yes, and you also. How is it that you're working here?"
+
+"It is a long story, Miss Sterling. My father lost his money and I
+was obliged to go to work. A very good thing for me. The Bishop says
+I ought to be very grateful. I am. I am very happy now. I learned
+the trade, hoping some time to be of use, I am night clerk at one of
+the hotels. That Sunday morning when you took the pledge at Nazareth
+Avenue Church, I took it with the others."
+
+"Did you?" said Felicia slowly. "I am glad."
+
+Just then the Bishop came back, and very soon he and Felicia went
+away leaving the young carpenter at his work. Some one noticed that
+he whistled louder than ever as he planed.
+
+"Felicia," said the Bishop, "did you know Stephen Clyde before?"
+
+"Yes, 'back in the world,' dear Bishop. He was one of my
+acquaintances in Nazareth Avenue Church."
+
+"Ah!" said the Bishop.
+
+"We were very good friends," added Felicia.
+
+"But nothing more?" the Bishop ventured to ask.
+
+Felicia's face glowed for an instant. Then she looked her companion
+in the eyes frankly and answered: "Truly and truly, nothing more."
+
+"It would be just the way of the world for these two people to come
+to like each other, though," thought the man to himself, and somehow
+the thought made him grave. It was almost like the old pang over
+Camilla. But it passed, leaving him afterwards, when Felicia had
+gone back, with tears in his eyes and a feeling that was almost hope
+that Felicia and Stephen would like each other. "After all," he
+said, like the sensible, good man that he was, "is not romance a
+part of humanity? Love is older than I am, and wiser."
+
+The week following, the Bishop had an experience that belongs to
+this part of the Settlement history. He was coming back to the
+Settlement very late from some gathering of the striking tailors,
+and was walking along with his hands behind him, when two men jumped
+out from behind an old fence that shut off an abandoned factory from
+the street, and faced him. One of the men thrust a pistol in his
+face, and the other threatened him with a ragged stake that had
+evidently been torn from the fence.
+
+"Hold up your hands, and be quick about it!" said the man with the
+pistol.
+
+
+
+
+
+
+Chapter Twenty-seven
+
+
+
+
+
+"Righteousness shall go before him and shall set us in the way of
+his steps."
+
+THE Bishop was not in the habit of carrying much money with him, and
+the man with the stake who was searching him uttered an oath at the
+small amount of change he found. As he uttered it, the man with the
+pistol savagely said, "Jerk out his watch! We might as well get all
+we can out of the job!"
+
+The man with the stake was on the point of laying hold of the chain
+where there was a sound of footsteps coming towards him.
+
+"Get behind the fence! We haven't half searched him yet! Mind you
+keep shut now, if you don't want--"
+
+The man with the pistol made a significant gesture with it and, with
+his companion, pulled and pushed the Bishop down the alley and
+through a ragged, broken opening in the fence. The three stood still
+there in the shadow until the footsteps passed.
+
+"Now, then, have you got the watch?" asked the man with the pistol.
+
+"No, the chain is caught somewhere!" and the other man swore again.
+
+"Break it then!"
+
+"No, don't break it," the Bishop said, and it was the first time he
+had spoken. "The chain is the gift of a very dear friend. I should
+be sorry to have it broken."
+
+At the sound of the Bishop's voice the man with the pistol started
+as if he had been suddenly shot by his own weapon. With a quick
+movement of his other hand he turned the Bishop's head toward's what
+little light was shining from the alleyway, at the same time taking
+a step nearer. Then, to the amazement of his companion, he said
+roughly: "Leave the watch alone! We've got the money. That's
+enough!"
+
+"Enough! Fifty cents! You don't reckon--"
+
+Before the man with the stake could say another word he was
+confronted with the muzzle of the pistol turned from the Bishop's
+head towards his own.
+
+"Leave that watch be! And put back the money too. This is the Bishop
+we've held up--the Bishop--do you hear?"
+
+"And what of it! The President of the United States wouldn't be too
+good to hold up, if--"
+
+"I say, you put the money back, or in five seconds I'll blow a hole
+through your head that'll let in more sense than you have to spare
+now!" said the other.
+
+For a second the man with the stake seemed to hesitate at this
+strange turn in events, as if measuring his companion's intention.
+Then he hastily dropped the money back into the rifled pocket.
+
+"You can take your hands down, sir." The man lowered his weapon
+slowly, still keeping an eye on the other man, and speaking with
+rough respect. The Bishop slowly brought his arms to his side, and
+looked earnestly at the two men. In the dim light it was difficult
+to distinguish features. He was evidently free to go his way now,
+but he stood there making no movement.
+
+"You can go on. You needn't stay any longer on our account." The man
+who had acted as spokesman turned and sat down on a stone. The other
+man stood viciously digging his stake into the ground.
+
+"That's just what I am staying for," replied the Bishop. He sat down
+on a board that projected from the broken fence.
+
+"You must like our company. It is hard sometimes for people to tear
+themselves away from us," and the man standing up laughed coarsely.
+
+"Shut up!" exclaimed the other. "We're on the road to hell, though,
+that's sure enough. We need better company than ourselves and the
+devil."
+
+"If you would only allow me to be of any help," the Bishop spoke
+gently, even lovingly. The man on the stone stared at the Bishop
+through the darkness. After a moment of silence he spoke slowly like
+one who had finally decided upon a course he had at first rejected.
+
+"Do you remember ever seeing me before?"
+
+"No," said the Bishop. "The light is not very good and I have really
+not had a good look at you."
+
+"Do you know me now?" The man suddenly took off his hat and getting
+up from the stone walked over to the Bishop until they were near
+enough to touch each other.
+
+The man's hair was coal black except one spot on the top of his head
+about as large as the palm of the hand, which was white.
+
+The minute the Bishop saw that, he started. The memory of fifteen
+years ago began to stir in him. The man helped him.
+
+"Don't you remember one day back in '81 or '82 a man came to your
+house and told a story about his wife and child having been burned
+to death in a tenement fire in New York?"
+
+"Yes, I begin to remember now." The other man seemed to be
+interested. He ceased digging his stake in the ground and stood
+still listening.
+
+"Do you remember how you took me into your own house that night and
+spent all next day trying to find me a job? And how when you
+succeeded in getting me a place in a warehouse as foreman, I
+promised to quit drinking because you asked me to?"
+
+"I remember it now. I hope you have kept your promise."
+
+The man laughed savagely. Then he struck his hand against the fence
+with such sudden passion that he drew blood.
+
+"Kept it! I was drunk inside of a week! I've been drinking ever
+since. But I've never forgotten you nor your prayer. Do you remember
+the morning after I came to your house, after breakfast you had
+prayers and asked me to come in and sit with the rest? That got me!
+But my mother used to pray! I can see her now kneeling down by my
+bed when I was a lad. Father came in one night and kicked her while
+she was kneeling there by me. But I never forgot that prayer of
+yours that morning. You prayed for me just as mother used to, and
+you didn't seem to take 'count of the fact that I was ragged and
+tough-looking and more than half drunk when I rang your door bell.
+Oh, what a life I've lived! The saloon has housed me and homed me
+and made hell on earth for me. But that prayer stuck to me all the
+time. My promise not to drink was broken into a thousand pieces
+inside of two Sundays, and I lost the job you found for me and
+landed in a police station two days later, but I never forgot you
+nor your prayer. I don't know what good it has done me, but I never
+forgot it. And I won't do any harm to you nor let any one else. So
+you're free to go. That's why."
+
+The Bishop did not stir. Somewhere a church clock struck one. The
+man had put on his hat and gone back to his seat on the stone. The
+Bishop was thinking hard.
+
+"How long is it since you had work?" he asked, and the man standing
+up answered for the other.
+
+"More'n six months since either of us did anything to tell of;
+unless you count 'holding up' work. I call it pretty wearing kind of
+a job myself, especially when we put in a night like this and don't
+make nothin'."
+
+"Suppose I found good jobs for both of you? Would you quit this and
+begin all over?"
+
+"What's the use?" the man on the stone spoke sullenly. "I've
+reformed a hundred times. Every time I go down deeper. The devil's
+begun to foreclose on me already. It's too late."
+
+"No!" said the Bishop. And never before the most entranced audience
+had he felt the desire for souls burn up in him so strongly. All the
+time he sat there during the remarkable scene he prayed, "O Lord
+Jesus, give me the souls of these two for Thee! I am hungry for
+them. Give them to me!"
+
+"No!" the Bishop repeated. "What does God want of you two men? It
+doesn't so much matter what I want. But He wants just what I do in
+this case. You two men are of infinite value to Him." And then his
+wonderful memory came to his aid in an appeal such as no one on
+earth among men could make under such circumstances. He had
+remembered the man's name in spite of the wonderfully busy years
+that lay between his coming to the house and the present moment.
+
+"Burns," he said, and he yearned over the men with an unspeakable
+longing for them both, "if you and your friend here will go home
+with me tonight I will find you both places of honorable employment.
+I will believe in you and trust you. You are both comparatively
+young men. Why should God lose you? It is a great thing to win the
+love of the Great Father. It is a small thing that I should love
+you. But if you need to feel again that there is love in the world,
+you will believe me when I say, my brothers, that I love you, and in
+the name of Him who was crucified for our sins I cannot bear to see
+you miss the glory of the human life. Come, be men! Make another try
+for it, God helping you. No one but God and you and myself need ever
+know anything of this tonight. He has forgiven it the minute you ask
+Him to. You will find that true. Come! We'll fight it out together,
+you two and I. It's worth fighting for, everlasting life is. It was
+the sinner that Christ came to help. I'll do what I can for you. O
+God, give me the souls of these two men!" and he broke into a prayer
+to God that was a continuation of his appeal to the men. His pent-up
+feeling had no other outlet. Before he had prayed many moments Burns
+was sitting with his face buried in his hands, sobbing. Where were
+his mother's prayers now? They were adding to the power of the
+Bishop's. And the other man, harder, less moved, without a previous
+knowledge of the Bishop, leaned back against the fence, stolid at
+first. But as the prayer went on, he was moved by it. What force of
+the Holy Spirit swept over his dulled, brutal, coarsened life,
+nothing but the eternal records of the recording angel can ever
+disclose. But the same supernatural Presence that smote Paul on the
+road to Damascus, and poured through Henry Maxwell's church the
+morning he asked disciples to follow in Jesus' steps, and had again
+broken irresistibly over the Nazareth Avenue congregation, now
+manifested Himself in this foul corner of the mighty city and over
+the natures of these two sinful sunken men, apparently lost to all
+the pleadings of conscience and memory and God. The prayer seemed to
+red open the crust that for years had surrounded them and shut them
+off from divine communication. And they themselves were thoroughly
+startled by it.
+
+The Bishop ceased, and at first he himself did not realize what had
+happened. Neither did they. Burns still sat with his head bowed
+between his knees. The man leaning against the fence looked at the
+Bishop with a face in which new emotions of awe, repentance,
+astonishment and a broken gleam of joy struggled for expression. The
+Bishop rose.
+
+"Come, my brothers. God is good. You shall stay at the Settlement
+tonight, and I will make good my promise as to the work."
+
+The two men followed him in silence. When they reached the
+Settlement it was after two o'clock. He let them in and led them to
+a room. At the door he paused a moment. His tall, commanding figure
+stood in the doorway and his pale face was illuminated with the
+divine glory.
+
+"God bless you, my brothers!" he said, and leaving them his
+benediction he went away.
+
+
+
+
+
+
+Chapter Twenty-eight
+
+
+
+
+
+IT WAS the afternoon of that morning when Burns was installed in his
+new position as assistant janitor that he was cleaning off the front
+steps of the Settlement, when he paused a moment and stood up to
+look about him. The first thing he noticed was a beer sign just
+across the alley. He could almost touch it with his broom from where
+he stood. Over the street immediately opposite were two large
+saloons, and a little farther down were three more.
+
+Suddenly the door of the nearest saloon opened and a man came out.
+At the same time two more went in. A strong odor of beer floated up
+to Burns as he stood on the steps. He clutched his broom handle
+tightly and began to sweep again. He had one foot on the porch and
+another on the steps just below. He took another step down, still
+sweeping. The sweat stood on his forehead although the day was
+frosty and the air chill. The saloon door opened again and three or
+four men came out. A child went in with a pail, and came out a
+moment later with a quart of beer. The child went by on the sidewalk
+just below him, and the odor of the beer came up to him. He took
+another step down, still sweeping desperately. His fingers were
+purple as he clutched the handle of the broom.
+
+Then suddenly he pulled himself up one step and swept over the spot
+he had just cleaned. He then dragged himself by a tremendous effort
+back to the floor of the porch and went over into the corner of it
+farthest from the saloon and began to sweep there. "O God!" he
+cried, "if the Bishop would only come back!" The Bishop had gone out
+with Dr. Bruce somewhere, and there was no one about that he knew.
+He swept in the corner for two or three minutes. His face was drawn
+with the agony of his conflict. Gradually he edged out again towards
+the steps and began to go down them. He looked towards the sidewalk
+and saw that he had left one step unswept. The sight seemed to give
+him a reasonable excuse for going down there to finish his sweeping.
+
+He was on the sidewalk now, sweeping the last step, with his face
+towards the Settlement and his back turned partly on the saloon
+across the alley. He swept the step a dozen times. The sweat rolled
+over his face and dropped down at his feet. By degrees he felt that
+he was drawn over towards that end of the step nearest the saloon.
+He could smell the beer and rum now as the fumes rose around him. It
+was like the infernal sulphur of the lowest hell, and yet it dragged
+him as by a giant's hand nearer its source.
+
+He was down in the middle of the sidewalk now, still sweeping. He
+cleared the space in front of the Settlement and even went out into
+the gutter and swept that. He took off his hat and rubbed his sleeve
+over his face. His lips were pallid and his teeth chattered. He
+trembled all over like a palsied man and staggered back and forth as
+if he was already drunk. His soul shook within him.
+
+He had crossed over the little piece of stone flagging that measured
+the width of the alley, and now he stood in front of the saloon,
+looking at the sign, and staring into the window at the pile of
+whiskey and beer bottles arranged in a great pyramid inside. He
+moistened his lips with his tongue and took a step forward, looking
+around him stealthily. The door suddenly opened again and someone
+came out. Again the hot, penetrating smell of liquor swept out into
+the cold air, and he took another step towards the saloon door which
+had shut behind the customer. As he laid his fingers on the door
+handle, a tall figure came around the corner. It was the Bishop.
+
+He seized Burns by the arm and dragged him back upon the sidewalk.
+The frenzied man, now mad for a drink, shrieked out a curse and
+struck at his friend savagely. It is doubtful if he really knew at
+first who was snatching him away from his ruin. The blow fell upon
+the Bishop's face and cut a gash in his cheek. He never uttered a
+word. But over his face a look of majestic sorrow swept. He picked
+Burns up as if he had been a child and actually carried him up the
+steps and into the house. He put him down in the hall and then shut
+the door and put his back against it.
+
+Burns fell on his knees sobbing and praying. The Bishop stood there
+panting with his exertion, although Burns was a slightly-built man
+and had not been a great weight for a man of his strength to carry.
+He was moved with unspeakable pity.
+
+"Pray, Burns--pray as you never prayed before! Nothing else will
+save you!"
+
+"O God! Pray with me. Save me! Oh, save me from my hell!" cried
+Burns. And, the Bishop knelt by him in the hall and prayed as only
+he could pray.
+
+After that they rose and Burns went to his room. He came out of it
+that evening like a humble child. And the Bishop went his way older
+from that experience, bearing on his body the marks of the Lord
+Jesus. Truly he was learning something of what it means to walk in
+His steps.
+
+But the saloon! It stood there, and all the others lined the street
+like so many traps set for Burns. How long would the man be able to
+resist the smell of the damnable stuff? The Bishop went out on the
+porch. The air of the whole city seemed to be impregnated with the
+odor of beer. "How long, O Lord, how long?" he prayed. Dr. Bruce
+came out, and the two friends talked about Burns and his temptation.
+
+"Did you ever make any inquiries about the ownership of this
+property adjoining us?" the Bishop asked.
+
+"No, I haven't taken time for it. I will now if you think it would
+be worth while. But what can we do, Edward, against the saloon in
+this great city? It is as firmly established as the churches or
+politics. What power can ever remove it?"
+
+"God will do it in time, as He has removed slavery," was the grave
+reply. "Meanwhile I think we have a right to know who controls this
+saloon so near the Settlement."
+
+"I'll find out," said Dr. Bruce.
+
+Two days later he walked into the business office of one of the
+members of Nazareth Avenue Church and asked to see him a few
+moments. He was cordially received by his old parishioner, who
+welcomed him into his room and urged him to take all the time he
+wanted.
+
+"I called to see you about that property next the Settlement where
+the Bishop and myself now are, you know. I am going to speak
+plainly, because life is too short and too serious for us both to
+have any foolish hesitation about this matter. Clayton, do you think
+it is right to rent that property for a saloon?"
+
+Dr. Bruce's question was as direct and uncompromising as he had
+meant it to be. The effect of it on his old parishioner was
+instantaneous.
+
+The hot blood mounted to the face of the man who sat there beneath a
+picture of business activity in a great city. Then he grew pale,
+dropped his head on his hands, and when he raised it again Dr. Bruce
+was amazed to see a tear roll over his face.
+
+"Doctor, did you know that I took the pledge that morning with the
+others?"
+
+"Yes, I remember."
+
+"But you never knew how I have been tormented over my failure to
+keep it in this instance. That saloon property has been the
+temptation of the devil to me. It is the best paying investment at
+present that I have. And yet it was only a minute before you came in
+here that I was in an agony of remorse to think how I was letting a
+little earthly gain tempt me into a denial of the very Christ I had
+promised to follow. I knew well enough that He would never rent
+property for such a purpose. There is no need, Dr. Bruce, for you to
+say a word more."
+
+Clayton held out his hand and Dr. Bruce grasped it and shook it
+hard. After a little he went away. But it was a long time afterwards
+that he learned all the truth about the struggle that Clayton had
+known. It was only a part of the history that belonged to Nazareth
+Avenue Church since that memorable morning when the Holy Spirit
+sanctioned the Christ-like pledge. Not even the Bishop and Dr.
+Bruce, moving as they now did in the very presence itself of divine
+impulses, knew yet that over the whole sinful city the Spirit was
+brooding with mighty eagerness, waiting for the disciples to arise
+to the call of sacrifice and suffering, touching hearts long dull
+and cold, making business men and money-makers uneasy in their
+absorption by the one great struggle for more wealth, and stirring
+through the church as never in all the city's history the church had
+been moved. The Bishop and Dr. Bruce had already seen some wonderful
+things in their brief life at the Settlement. They were to see far
+greater soon, more astonishing revelations of the divine power than
+they had supposed possible in this age of the world.
+
+Within a month the saloon next the Settlement was closed. The
+saloon-keeper's lease had expired, and Clayton not only closed the
+property to the whiskey men, but offered the building to the Bishop
+and Dr. Bruce to use for the Settlement work, which had now grown so
+large that the building they had first rented was not sufficient for
+the different industries that were planned.
+
+One of the most important of these was the pure-food department
+suggested by Felicia. It was not a month after Clayton turned the
+saloon property over to the Settlement that Felicia found herself
+installed in the very room where souls had been lost, as head of the
+department not only of cooking but of a course of housekeeping for
+girls who wished to go out to service. She was now a resident of the
+Settlement, and found a home with Mrs. Bruce and the other young
+women from the city who were residents. Martha, the violinist,
+remained at the place where the Bishop had first discovered the two
+girls, and came over to the Settlement certain evenings to give
+lessons in music.
+
+"Felicia, tell us your plan in full now," said the Bishop one
+evening when, in a rare interval of rest from the great pressure of
+work, he was with Dr. Bruce, and Felicia had come in from the other
+building.
+
+"Well, I have long thought of the hired girl problem," said Felicia
+with an air of wisdom that made Mrs. Bruce smile as she looked at
+the enthusiastic, vital beauty of this young girl, transformed into
+a new creature by the promise she had made to live the Christ-like
+life. "And I have reached certain conclusions in regard to it that
+you men are not yet able to fathom, but Mrs. Bruce will understand
+me."
+
+"We acknowledge our infancy, Felicia. Go on," said the Bishop
+humbly.
+
+"Then this is what I propose to do. The old saloon building is large
+enough to arrange into a suite of rooms that will represent an
+ordinary house. My plan is to have it so arranged, and then teach
+housekeeping and cooking to girls who will afterwards go out to
+service. The course will be six months' long; in that time I will
+teach plain cooking, neatness, quickness, and a love of good work."
+
+"Hold on, Felicia!" the Bishop interrupted, "this is not an age of
+miracles!"
+
+"Then we will make it one," replied Felicia. "I know this seems like
+an impossibility, but I want to try it. I know a score of girls
+already who will take the course, and if we can once establish
+something like an esprit de corps among the girls themselves, I am
+sure it will be of great value to them. I know already that the pure
+food is working a revolution in many families."
+
+"Felicia, if you can accomplish half what you propose it will bless
+this community," said Mrs. Bruce. "I don't see how you can do it,
+but I say, God bless you, as you try."
+
+"So say we all!" cried Dr. Bruce and the Bishop, and Felicia plunged
+into the working out of her plan with the enthusiasm of her
+discipleship which every day grew more and more practical and
+serviceable.
+
+It must be said here that Felicia's plan succeeded beyond all
+expectations. She developed wonderful powers of persuasion, and
+taught her girls with astonishing rapidity to do all sorts of
+housework. In time, the graduates of Felicia's cooking school came
+to be prized by housekeepers all over the city. But that is
+anticipating our story. The history of the Settlement has never yet
+been written. When it is Felicia's part will be found of very great
+importance.
+
+The depth of winter found Chicago presenting, as every great city of
+the world presents to the eyes of Christendom the marked contrast
+between riches and poverty, between culture, refinement, luxury,
+ease, and ignorance, depravity, destitution and the bitter struggle
+for bread. It was a hard winter but a gay winter. Never had there
+been such a succession of parties, receptions, balls, dinners,
+banquets, fetes, gayeties. Never had the opera and the theatre been
+so crowded with fashionable audiences. Never had there been such a
+lavish display of jewels and fine dresses and equipages. And on the
+other hand, never had the deep want and suffering been so cruel, so
+sharp, so murderous. Never had the winds blown so chilling over the
+lake and through the thin shells of tenements in the neighborhood of
+the Settlement. Never had the pressure for food and fuel and clothes
+been so urgently thrust up against the people of the city in their
+most importunate and ghastly form. Night after night the Bishop and
+Dr. Bruce with their helpers went out and helped save men and women
+and children from the torture of physical privation. Vast quantities
+of food and clothing and large sums of money were donated by the
+churches, the charitable societies, the civic authorities and the
+benevolent associations. But the personal touch of the Christian
+disciple was very hard to secure for personal work. Where was the
+discipleship that was obeying the Master's command to go itself to
+the suffering and give itself with its gift in order to make the
+gift of value in time to come? The Bishop found his heart sing
+within him as he faced this fact more than any other. Men would give
+money who would not think of giving themselves. And the money they
+gave did not represent any real sacrifice because they did not miss
+it. They gave what was the easiest to give, what hurt them the
+least. Where did the sacrifice come in? Was this following Jesus?
+Was this going with Him all the way? He had been to members of his
+own aristocratic, splendidly wealthy congregations, and was appalled
+to find how few men and women of that luxurious class in the
+churches would really suffer any genuine inconvenience for the sake
+of suffering humanity. Is charity the giving of worn-out garments?
+Is it a ten-dollar bill given to a paid visitor or secretary of some
+benevolent organization in the church? Shall the man never go and
+give his gift himself? Shall the woman never deny herself her
+reception or her party or her musicale, and go and actually touch,
+herself, the foul, sinful sore of diseased humanity as it festers in
+the great metropolis? Shall charity be conveniently and easily done
+through some organization? Is it possible to organize the affections
+so that love shall work disagreeable things by proxy?
+
+All this the Bishop asked as he plunged deeper into the sin and
+sorrow of that bitter winter. He was bearing his cross with joy. But
+he burned and fought within over the shifting of personal love by
+the many upon the hearts of the few. And still, silently,
+powerfully, resistlessly, the Holy Spirit was moving through the
+churches, even the aristocratic, wealthy, ease-loving members who
+shunned the terrors of the social problem as they would shun a
+contagious disease.
+
+
+
+
+
+
+Chapter Twenty-nine
+
+
+
+
+
+THE breakfast hour at the settlement was the one hour in the day
+when the whole family found a little breathing space to fellowship
+together. It was an hour of relaxation. There was a great deal of
+good-natured repartee and much real wit and enjoyable fun at this
+hour. The Bishop told his best stories. Dr. Bruce was at his best in
+anecdote. This company of disciples was healthily humorous in spite
+of the atmosphere of sorrow that constantly surrounded them. In
+fact, the Bishop often said the faculty of humor was as God-given as
+any other and in his own case it was the only safety valve he had
+for the tremendous pressure put upon him.
+
+This particular morning he was reading extracts from a morning paper
+for the benefit of the others. Suddenly he paused and his face
+instantly grew stern and sad. The rest looked up and a hush fell
+over the table.
+
+"Shot and killed while taking a lump of coal from a car! His family
+was freezing and he had had no work for six months. Six children and
+a wife all packed into a cabin with three rooms, on the West Side.
+One child wrapped in rags in a closet!"
+
+These were headlines that he read slowly. He then went on and read
+the detailed account of the shooting and the visit of the reporter
+to the tenement where the family lived. He finished, and there was
+silence around the table. The humor of the hour was swept out of
+existence by this bit of human tragedy. The great city roared about
+the Settlement. The awful current of human life was flowing in a
+great stream past the Settlement House, and those who had work were
+hurrying to it in a vast throng. But thousands were going down in
+the midst of that current, clutching at last hopes, dying literally
+in a land of plenty because the boon of physical toil was denied
+them.
+
+There were various comments on the part of the residents. One of the
+new-comers, a young man preparing for the ministry, said: "Why don't
+the man apply to one of the charity organizations for help? Or to
+the city? It certainly is not true that even at its worst this city
+full of Christian people would knowingly allow any one to go without
+food or fuel."
+
+"No, I don't believe it would," replied Dr. Bruce. "But we don't
+know the history of this man's case. He may have asked for help so
+often before that, finally, in a moment of desperation he determined
+to help himself. I have known such cases this winter."
+
+"That is not the terrible fact in this case," said the Bishop. "The
+awful thing about it is the fact that the man had not had any work
+for six months."
+
+"Why don't such people go out into the country?" asked the divinity
+student.
+
+Some one at the table who had made a special study of the
+opportunities for work in the country answered the question.
+According to the investigator the places that were possible for work
+in the country were exceedingly few for steady employment, and in
+almost every case they were offered only to men without families.
+Suppose a man's wife or children were ill. How would he move or get
+into the country? How could he pay even the meager sum necessary to
+move his few goods? There were a thousand reasons probably why this
+particular man did not go elsewhere.
+
+"Meanwhile there are the wife and children," said Mrs. Bruce. "How
+awful! Where is the place, did you say?"
+
+"Why, it is only three blocks from here. This is the 'Penrose
+district.' I believe Penrose himself owns half of the houses in that
+block. They are among the worst houses in this part of the city. And
+Penrose is a church member."
+
+"Yes, he belongs to the Nazareth Avenue Church," replied Dr. Bruce
+in a low voice.
+
+The Bishop rose from the table the very figure of divine wrath. He
+had opened his lips to say what seldom came from him in the way of
+denunciation, when the bell rang and one of the residents went to
+the door.
+
+"Tell Dr. Bruce and the Bishop I want to see them. Penrose is the
+name--Clarence Penrose. Dr. Bruce knows me."
+
+The family at the breakfast table heard every word. The Bishop
+exchanged a significant look with Dr. Bruce and the two men
+instantly left the table and went out into the hall.
+
+"Come in here, Penrose," said Dr. Bruce, and they ushered the
+visitor into the reception room, closed the door and were alone.
+
+Clarence Penrose was one of the most elegant looking men in Chicago.
+He came from an aristocratic family of great wealth and social
+distinction. He was exceedingly wealthy and had large property
+holdings in different parts of the city. He had been a member of Dr.
+Bruce's church many years. He faced the two ministers with a look of
+agitation on his face that showed plainly the mark of some unusual
+experience. He was very pale and his lips trembled as he spoke. When
+had Clarence Penrose ever before yielded to such a strange emotion?
+
+"This affair of the shooting! You understand? You have read it? The
+family lived in one of my houses. It is a terrible event. But that
+is not the primary cause of my visit." He stammered and looked
+anxiously into the faces of the two men. The Bishop still looked
+stern. He could not help feeling that this elegant man of leisure
+could have done a great deal to alleviate the horrors in his
+tenements, possibly have prevented this tragedy if he had sacrificed
+some of his personal ease and luxury to better the conditions of the
+people in his district.
+
+Penrose turned toward Dr. Bruce. "Doctor!" he exclaimed, and there
+was almost a child's terror in his voice. "I came to say that I have
+had an experience so unusual that nothing but the supernatural can
+explain it. You remember I was one of those who took the pledge to
+do as Jesus would do. I thought at the time, poor fool that I was,
+that I had all along been doing the Christian thing. I gave
+liberally out of my abundance to the church and charity. I never
+gave myself to cost me any suffering. I have been living in a
+perfect hell of contradictions ever since I took that pledge. My
+little girl, Diana you remember, also took the pledge with me. She
+has been asking me a great many questions lately about the poor
+people and where they live. I was obliged to answer her. One of her
+questions last night touched my sore! 'Do you own any houses where
+these poor people live? Are they nice and warm like ours?' You know
+how a child will ask questions like these. I went to bed tormented
+with what I now know to be the divine arrows of conscience. I could
+not sleep. I seemed to see the judgment day. I was placed before the
+Judge. I was asked to give an account of my deeds done in the body.
+'How many sinful souls had I visited in prison? What had I done with
+my stewardship? How about those tenements where people froze in
+winter and stifled in summer? Did I give any thought to them except
+to receive the rentals from them? Where did my suffering come in?
+Would Jesus have done as I had done and was doing? Had I broken my
+pledge? How had I used the money and the culture and the social
+influence I possessed? Had I used it to bless humanity, to relieve
+the suffering, to bring joy to the distressed and hope to the
+desponding? I had received much. How much had I given?'
+
+"All this came to me in a waking vision as distinctly as I see you
+two men and myself now. I was unable to see the end of the vision. I
+had a confused picture in my mind of the suffering Christ pointing a
+condemning finger at me, and the rest was shut out by mist and
+darkness. I have not slept for twenty-four hours. The first thing I
+saw this morning was the account of the shooting at the coal yards.
+I read the account with a feeling of horror I have not been able to
+shake off. I am a guilty creature before God."
+
+Penrose paused suddenly. The two men looked at him solemnly. What
+power of the Holy Spirit moved the soul of this hitherto
+self-satisfied, elegant, cultured man who belonged to the social
+life that was accustomed to go its way placidly, unmindful of the
+great sorrows of a great city and practically ignorant of what it
+means to suffer for Jesus' sake? Into that room came a breath such
+as before swept over Henry Maxwell's church and through Nazareth
+avenue. The Bishop laid his hand on the shoulder of Penrose and
+said: "My brother, God has been very near to you. Let us thank Him."
+
+"Yes! yes!" sobbed Penrose. He sat down on a chair and covered his
+face. The Bishop prayed. Then Penrose quietly said: "Will you go
+with me to that house?"
+
+For answer the two men put on their overcoats and went with him to
+the home of the dead man's family.
+
+That was the beginning of a new and strange life for Clarence
+Penrose. From the moment he stepped into that wretched hovel of a
+home and faced for the first time in his life a despair and
+suffering such as he had read of but did not know by personal
+contact, he dated a new life. It would be another long story to tell
+how, in obedience to his pledge he began to do with his tenement
+property as he knew Jesus would do. What would Jesus do with
+tenement property if He owned it in Chicago or any other great city
+of the world? Any man who can imagine any true answers to this
+question can easily tell what Clarence Penrose began to do.
+
+Now before that winter reached its bitter climax many things
+occurred in the city which concerned the lives of all the characters
+in this history of the disciples who promised to walk in His steps.
+
+It chanced by one of those coincidences that seem to occur
+preternaturally that one afternoon just as Felicia came out of the
+Settlement with a basket of food which she was going to leave as a
+sample with a baker in the Penrose district, Stephen Clyde opened
+the door of the carpenter shop in the basement and came out in time
+to meet her as she reached the sidewalk.
+
+"Let me carry your basket, please," he said.
+
+"Why do you say 'please'?" asked Felicia, handing over the basket
+while they walked along.
+
+"I would like to say something else," replied Stephen, glancing at
+her shyly and yet with a boldness that frightened him, for he had
+been loving Felicia more every day since he first saw her and
+especially since she stepped into the shop that day with the Bishop,
+and for weeks now they had been thrown in each other's company.
+
+"What else?" asked Felicia, innocently falling into the trap.
+
+"Why--" said Stephen, turning his fair, noble face full toward her
+and eyeing her with the look of one who would have the best of all
+things in the universe, "I would like to say: 'Let me carry your
+basket, dear Felicia'."
+
+Felicia never looked so beautiful in her life. She walked on a
+little way without even turning her face toward him. It was no
+secret with her own heart that she had given it to Stephen some time
+ago. Finally she turned and said shyly, while her face grew rosy and
+her eyes tender: "Why don't you say it, then?"
+
+"May I?" cried Stephen, and he was so careless for a minute of the
+way he held the basket, that Felicia exclaimed:
+
+"Yes! But oh, don't drop my goodies!"
+
+"Why, I wouldn't drop anything so precious for all the world, dear
+Felicia," said Stephen, who now walked on air for several blocks,
+and what was said during that walk is private correspondence that we
+have no right to read. Only it is a matter of history that day that
+the basket never reached its destination, and that over in the other
+direction, late in the afternoon, the Bishop, walking along quietly
+from the Penrose district, in rather a secluded spot near the
+outlying part of the Settlement district, heard a familiar voice
+say:
+
+"But tell me, Felicia, when did you begin to love me?"
+
+"I fell in love with a little pine shaving just above your ear that
+day when I saw you in the shop!" said the other voice with a laugh
+so clear, so pure, so sweet that it did one good to hear it.
+
+"Where are you going with that basket?" he tried to say sternly.
+
+"We are taking it to--where are we taking it, Felicia?"
+
+"Dear Bishop, we are taking it home to begin--"
+
+"To begin housekeeping with," finished Stephen, coming to the
+rescue.
+
+"Are you?" said the Bishop. "I hope you will invite me to share. I
+know what Felicia's cooking is."
+
+"Bishop, dear Bishop!" said Felicia, and she did not pretend to hide
+her happiness; "indeed, you shall be the most honored guest. Are you
+glad?"
+
+"Yes, I am," he replied, interpreting Felicia's words as she wished.
+Then he paused a moment and said gently: "God bless you both!" and
+went his way with a tear in his eye and a prayer in his heart, and
+left them to their joy.
+
+Yes. Shall not the same divine power of love that belongs to earth
+be lived and sung by the disciples of the Man of Sorrows and the
+Burden-bearer of sins? Yea, verily! And this man and woman shall
+walk hand in hand through this great desert of human woe in this
+city, strengthening each other, growing more loving with the
+experience of the world's sorrows, walking in His steps even closer
+yet because of their love for each other, bringing added blessing to
+thousands of wretched creatures because they are to have a home of
+their own to share with the homeless. "For this cause," said our
+Lord Jesus Christ, "shall a man leave his father and mother and
+cleave unto his wife." And Felicia and Stephen, following the
+Master, love him with a deeper, truer service and devotion because
+of the earthly affection which Heaven itself sanctions with its
+solemn blessing.
+
+But it was a little after the love story of the Settlement became a
+part of its glory that Henry Maxwell of Raymond came to Chicago with
+Rachel Winslow and Virginia Page and Rollin and Alexander Powers and
+President Marsh, and the occasion was a remarkable gathering at the
+hall of the Settlement arranged by the Bishop and Dr. Bruce, who had
+finally persuaded Mr. Maxwell and his fellow disciples in Raymond to
+come on to be present at this meeting.
+
+There were invited into the Settlement Hall, meeting for that night
+men out of work, wretched creatures who had lost faith in God and
+man, anarchists and infidels, free-thinkers and no-thinkers. The
+representation of all the city's worst, most hopeless, most
+dangerous, depraved elements faced Henry Maxwell and the other
+disciples when the meeting began. And still the Holy Spirit moved
+over the great, selfish, pleasure-loving, sin-stained city, and it
+lay in God's hand, not knowing all that awaited it. Every man and
+woman at the meeting that night had seen the Settlement motto over
+the door blazing through the transparency set up by the divinity
+student: "What would Jesus do?"
+
+And Henry Maxwell, as for the first time he stepped under the
+doorway, was touched with a deeper emotion than he had felt in a
+long time as he thought of the first time that question had come to
+him in the piteous appeal of the shabby young man who had appeared
+in the First Church of Raymond at the morning service.
+
+
+
+
+
+
+Chapter Thirty
+
+
+
+
+
+"Now, when Jesus heard these things, He said unto him, Yet lackest
+thou one thing: sell all that thou hast, and distribute unto the
+poor, and thou shalt have treasure in heaven: and come, follow Me."
+
+WHEN Henry Maxwell began to speak to the souls crowded into the
+Settlement Hall that night it is doubtful if he ever faced such an
+audience in his life. It is quite certain that the city of Raymond
+did not contain such a variety of humanity. Not even the Rectangle
+at its worst could furnish so many men and women who had fallen
+entirely out of the reach of the church and of all religious and
+even Christian influences.
+
+What did he talk about? He had already decided that point. He told
+in the simplest language he could command some of the results of
+obedience to the pledge as it had been taken in Raymond. Every man
+and woman in that audience knew something about Jesus Christ. They
+all had some idea of His character, and however much they had grown
+bitter toward the forms of Christian ecclesiasticism or the social
+system, they preserved some standard of right and truth, and what
+little some of them still retained was taken from the person of the
+Peasant of Galilee.
+
+So they were interested in what Maxwell said. "What would Jesus do?"
+He began to apply the question to the social problem in general,
+after finishing the story of Raymond. The audience was respectfully
+attentive. It was more than that. It was genuinely interested. As
+Mr. Maxwell went on, faces all over the hall leaned forward in a way
+seldom seen in church audiences or anywhere except among workingmen
+or the people of the street when once they are thoroughly aroused.
+"What would Jesus do?" Suppose that were the motto not only of the
+churches but of the business men, the politicians, the newspapers,
+the workingmen, the society people--how long would it take under
+such a standard of conduct to revolutionize the world? What was the
+trouble with the world? It was suffering from selfishness. No one
+ever lived who had succeeded in overcoming selfishness like Jesus.
+If men followed Him regardless of results the world would at once
+begin to enjoy a new life.
+
+Maxwell never knew how much it meant to hold the respectful
+attention of that hall full of diseased and sinful humanity. The
+Bishop and Dr. Bruce, sitting there, looking on, seeing many faces
+that represented scorn of creeds, hatred of the social order,
+desperate narrowness and selfishness, marveled that even so soon
+under the influence of the Settlement life, the softening process
+had begun already to lessen the bitterness of hearts, many of which
+had grown bitter from neglect and indifference.
+
+And still, in spite of the outward show of respect to the speaker,
+no one, not even the Bishop, had any true conception of the feeling
+pent up in that room that night. Among those who had heard of the
+meeting and had responded to the invitation were twenty or thirty
+men out of work who had strolled past the Settlement that afternoon,
+read the notice of the meeting, and had come in out of curiosity and
+to escape the chill east wind. It was a bitter night and the saloons
+were full. But in that whole district of over thirty thousand souls,
+with the exception of the saloons, there was not a door open except
+the clean, pure Christian door of the Settlement. Where would a man
+without a home or without work or without friends naturally go
+unless to the saloon?
+
+It had been the custom at the Settlement for a free discussion to
+follow any open meeting of this kind, and when Mr. Maxwell finished
+and sat down, the Bishop, who presided that night, rose and made the
+announcement that any man in the hall was at liberty to ask
+questions, to speak out his feelings or declare his convictions,
+always with the understanding that whoever took part was to observe
+the simple rules that governed parliamentary bodies and obey the
+three-minute rule which, by common consent, would be enforced on
+account of the numbers present.
+
+Instantly a number of voices from men who had been at previous
+meetings of this kind exclaimed, "Consent! consent!"
+
+The Bishop sat down, and immediately a man near the middle of the
+hall rose and began to speak.
+
+"I want to say that what Mr. Maxwell has said tonight comes pretty
+close to me. I knew Jack Manning, the fellow he told about who died
+at his house. I worked on the next case to his in a printer's shop
+in Philadelphia for two years. Jack was a good fellow. He loaned me
+five dollars once when I was in a hole and I never got a chance to
+pay him back. He moved to New York, owing to a change in the
+management of the office that threw him out, and I never saw him
+again. When the linotype machines came in I was one of the men to go
+out, just as he did. I have been out most of the time since. They
+say inventions are a good thing. I don't always see it myself; but I
+suppose I'm prejudiced. A man naturally is when he loses a steady
+job because a machine takes his place. About this Christianity he
+tells about, it's all right. But I never expect to see any such
+sacrifices on the part of the church people. So far as my
+observation goes they're just as selfish and as greedy for money and
+worldly success as anybody. I except the Bishop and Dr. Bruce and a
+few others. But I never found much difference between men of the
+world, as they are called, and church members when it came to
+business and money making. One class is just as bad as another
+there."
+
+Cries of "That's so!" "You're right!" "Of course!" interrupted the
+speaker, and the minute he sat down two men who were on the floor
+for several seconds before the first speaker was through began to
+talk at once.
+
+The Bishop called them to order and indicated which was entitled to
+the floor. The man who remained standing began eagerly:
+
+"This is the first time I was ever in here, and may be it'll be the
+last. Fact is, I am about at the end of my string. I've tramped this
+city for work till I'm sick. I'm in plenty of company. Say! I'd like
+to ask a question of the minister, if it's fair. May I?"
+
+"That's for Mr. Maxwell to say," said the Bishop.
+
+"By all means," replied Mr. Maxwell quickly. "Of course, I will not
+promise to answer it to the gentleman's satisfaction."
+
+"This is my question." The man leaned forward and stretched out a
+long arm with a certain dramatic force that grew naturally enough
+out of his condition as a human being. "I want to know what Jesus
+would do in my case. I haven't had a stroke of work for two months.
+I've got a wife and three children, and I love them as much as if I
+was worth a million dollars. I've been living off a little earnings
+I saved up during the World's Fair jobs I got. I'm a carpenter by
+trade, and I've tried every way I know to get a job. You say we
+ought to take for our motto, 'What would Jesus do?' What would He do
+if He was out of work like me? I can't be somebody else and ask the
+question. I want to work. I'd give anything to grow tired of working
+ten hours a day the way I used to. Am I to blame because I can't
+manufacture a job for myself? I've got to live, and my wife and my
+children have got to live. But how? What would Jesus do? You say
+that's the question we ought to ask."
+
+Mr. Maxwell sat there staring at the great sea of faces all intent
+on his, and no answer to this man's question seemed for the time
+being to be possible. "O God!" his heart prayed; "this is a question
+that brings up the entire social problem in all its perplexing
+entanglement of human wrongs and its present condition contrary to
+every desire of God for a human being's welfare. Is there any
+condition more awful than for a man in good health, able and eager
+to work, with no means of honest livelihood unless he does work,
+actually unable to get anything to do, and driven to one of three
+things: begging or charity at the hands of friends or strangers,
+suicide or starvation? 'What would Jesus do?'" It was a fair
+question for the man to ask. It was the only question he could ask,
+supposing him to be a disciple of Jesus. But what a question for any
+man to be obliged to answer under such conditions?
+
+All this and more did Henry Maxwell ponder. All the others were
+thinking in the same way. The Bishop sat there with a look so stern
+and sad that it was not hard to tell how the question moved him. Dr.
+Bruce had his head bowed. The human problem had never seemed to him
+so tragical as since he had taken the pledge and left his church to
+enter the Settlement. What would Jesus do? It was a terrible
+question. And still the man stood there, tall and gaunt and almost
+terrible, with his arm stretched out in an appeal which grew every
+second in meaning. At length Mr. Maxwell spoke.
+
+"Is there any man in the room, who is a Christian disciple, who has
+been in this condition and has tried to do as Jesus would do? If so,
+such a man can answer this question better than I can."
+
+There was a moment's hush over the room and then a man near the
+front of the hall slowly rose. He was an old man, and the hand he
+laid on the back of the bench in front of him trembled as he spoke.
+
+"I think I can safely say that I have many times been in just such a
+condition, and I have always tried to be a Christian under all
+conditions. I don't know as I have always asked this question, 'What
+would Jesus do?' when I have been out of work, but I do know I have
+tried to be His disciple at all times. Yes," the man went on, with a
+sad smile that was more pathetic to the Bishop and Mr. Maxwell than
+the younger man's grim despair; "yes, I have begged, and I have been
+to charity institutions, and I have done everything when out of a
+job except steal and lie in order to get food and fuel. I don't know
+as Jesus would have done some of the things I have been obliged to
+do for a living, but I know I have never knowingly done wrong when
+out of work. Sometimes I think maybe He would have starved sooner
+than beg. I don't know."
+
+The old man's voice trembled and he looked around the room timidly.
+A silence followed, broken by a fierce voice from a large,
+black-haired, heavily-bearded man who sat three seats from the
+Bishop. The minute he spoke nearly every man in the hall leaned
+forward eagerly. The man who had asked the question, "What would
+Jesus do in my case?" slowly sat down and whispered to the man next
+to him: "Who's that?"
+
+"That's Carlsen, the Socialist leader. Now you'll hear something."
+
+"This is all bosh, to my mind," began Carlsen, while his great
+bristling beard shook with the deep inward anger of the man. "The
+whole of our system is at fault. What we call civilization is rotten
+to the core. There is no use trying to hide it or cover it up. We
+live in an age of trusts and combines and capitalistic greed that
+means simply death to thousands of innocent men, women and children.
+I thank God, if there is a God--which I very much doubt--that I, for
+one, have never dared to marry and make a home. Home! Talk of hell!
+Is there any bigger one than this man and his three children has on
+his hands right this minute? And he's only one out of thousands. And
+yet this city, and every other big city in this country, has its
+thousands of professed Christians who have all the luxuries and
+comforts, and who go to church Sundays and sing their hymns about
+giving all to Jesus and bearing the cross and following Him all the
+way and being saved! I don't say that there aren't good men and
+women among them, but let the minister who has spoken to us here
+tonight go into any one of a dozen aristocratic churches I could
+name and propose to the members to take any such pledge as the one
+he's mentioned here tonight, and see how quick the people would
+laugh at him for a fool or a crank or a fanatic. Oh, no! That's not
+the remedy. That can't ever amount to anything. We've got to have a
+new start in the way of government. The whole thing needs
+reconstructing. I don't look for any reform worth anything to come
+out of the churches. They are not with the people. They are with the
+aristocrats, with the men of money. The trusts and monopolies have
+their greatest men in the churches. The ministers as a class are
+their slaves. What we need is a system that shall start from the
+common basis of socialism, founded on the rights of the common
+people--"
+
+Carlsen had evidently forgotten all about the three-minutes rule and
+was launching himself into a regular oration that meant, in his
+usual surroundings before his usual audience, an hour at least, when
+the man just behind him pulled him down unceremoniously and arose.
+Carlsen was angry at first and threatened a little disturbance, but
+the Bishop reminded him of the rule, and he subsided with several
+mutterings in his beard, while the next speaker began with a very
+strong eulogy on the value of the single tax as a genuine remedy for
+all the social ills. He was followed by a man who made a bitter
+attack on the churches and ministers, and declared that the two
+great obstacles in the way of all true reform were the courts and
+the ecclesiastical machines.
+
+When he sat down a man who bore every mark of being a street laborer
+sprang to his feet and poured a perfect torrent of abuse against the
+corporations, especially the railroads. The minute his time was up a
+big, brawny fellow, who said he was a metal worker by trade, claimed
+the floor and declared that the remedy for the social wrongs was
+Trades Unionism. This, he said, would bring on the millennium for
+labor more surely than anything else. The next man endeavored to
+give some reasons why so many persons were out of employment, and
+condemned inventions as works of the devil. He was loudly applauded
+by the rest.
+
+Finally the Bishop called time on the "free for all," and asked
+Rachel to sing.
+
+Rachel Winslow had grown into a very strong, healthful, humble
+Christian during that wonderful year in Raymond dating from the
+Sunday when she first took the pledge to do as Jesus would do, and
+her great talent for song had been fully consecrated to the service
+of the Master. When she began to sing tonight at this Settlement
+meeting, she had never prayed more deeply for results to come from
+her voice, the voice which she now regarded as the Master's, to be
+used for Him.
+
+Certainly her prayer was being answered as she sang. She had chosen
+the words,
+
+"Hark! The voice of Jesus calling, Follow me, follow me!"
+
+Again Henry Maxwell, sitting there, was reminded of his first night
+at the Rectangle in the tent when Rachel sang the people into quiet.
+The effect was the same here. What wonderful power a good voice
+consecrated to the Master's service always is! Rachel's great
+natural ability would have made her one of the foremost opera
+singers of the age. Surely this audience had never heard such a
+melody. How could it? The men who had drifted in from the street sat
+entranced by a voice which "back in the world," as the Bishop said,
+never could be heard by the common people because the owner of it
+would charge two or three dollars for the privilege. The song poured
+out through the hall as free and glad as if it were a foretaste of
+salvation itself. Carlsen, with his great, black-bearded face
+uplifted, absorbed the music with the deep love of it peculiar to
+his nationality, and a tear ran over his cheek and glistened in his
+beard as his face softened and became almost noble in its aspect.
+The man out of work who had wanted to know what Jesus would do in
+his place sat with one grimy hand on the back of the bench in front
+of him, with his mouth partly open, his great tragedy for the moment
+forgotten. The song, while it lasted, was food and work and warmth
+and union with his wife and babies once more. The man who had spoken
+so fiercely against the churches and ministers sat with his head
+erect, at first with a look of stolid resistance, as if he
+stubbornly resisted the introduction into the exercises of anything
+that was even remotely connected with the church or its forms of
+worship. But gradually he yielded to the power that was swaying the
+hearts of all the persons in that room, and a look of sad
+thoughtfulness crept over his face.
+
+The Bishop said that night while Rachel was singing that if the
+world of sinful, diseased, depraved, lost humanity could only have
+the gospel preached to it by consecrated prima donnas and
+professional tenors and altos and bassos, he believed it would
+hasten the coming of the Kingdom quicker than any other one force.
+"Why, oh why," he cried in his heart as he listened, "has the
+world's great treasure of song been so often held far from the poor
+because the personal possessor of voice or fingers, capable of
+stirring divinest melody, has so often regarded the gift as
+something with which to make money? Shall there be no martyrs among
+the gifted ones of the earth? Shall there be no giving of this great
+gift as well as of others?"
+
+And Henry Maxwell, again as before, called up that other audience at
+the Rectangle with increasing longing for a larger spread of the new
+discipleship. What he had seen and heard at the Settlement burned
+into him deeper the belief that the problem of the city would be
+solved if the Christians in it should once follow Jesus as He gave
+commandment. But what of this great mass of humanity, neglected and
+sinful, the very kind of humanity the Savior came to save, with all
+its mistakes and narrowness, its wretchedness and loss of hope,
+above all its unqualified bitterness towards the church? That was
+what smote him deepest. Was the church then so far from the Master
+that the people no longer found Him in the church? Was it true that
+the church had lost its power over the very kind of humanity which
+in the early ages of Christianity it reached in the greatest
+numbers? How much was true in what the Socialist leader said about
+the uselessness of looking to the church for reform or redemption,
+because of the selfishness and seclusion and aristocracy of its
+members?
+
+He was more and more impressed with the appalling fact that the
+comparatively few men in that hall, now being held quiet for a while
+by Rachel's voice, represented thousands of others just like them,
+to whom a church and a minister stood for less than a saloon or a
+beer garden as a source of comfort or happiness. Ought it to be so?
+If the church members were all doing as Jesus would do, could it
+remain true that armies of men would walk the streets for jobs and
+hundreds of them curse the church and thousands of them find in the
+saloon their best friend? How far were the Christians responsible
+for this human problem that was personally illustrated right in this
+hall tonight? Was it true that the great city churches would as a
+rule refuse to walk in Jesus' steps so closely as to
+suffer--actually suffer--for His sake?
+
+
+
+
+
+
+Chapter Thirty-one
+
+
+
+
+
+HE had planned when he came to the city to return to Raymond and be
+in his own pulpit on Sunday. But Friday morning he had received at
+the Settlement a call from the pastor of one of the largest churches
+in Chicago, and had been invited to fill the pulpit for both morning
+and evening service.
+
+At first he hesitated, but finally accepted, seeing in it the hand
+of the Spirit's guiding power. He would test his own question. He
+would prove the truth or falsity of the charge made against the
+church at the Settlement meeting. How far would it go in its
+self-denial for Jesus' sake? How closely would it walk in His steps?
+Was the church willing to suffer for its Master?
+
+Saturday night he spent in prayer, nearly the whole night. There had
+never been so great a wrestling in his soul, not even during his
+strongest experiences in Raymond. He had in fact entered upon
+another new experience. The definition of his own discipleship was
+receiving an added test at this time, and he was being led into a
+larger truth of the Lord.
+
+Sunday morning the great church was filled to its utmost. Henry
+Maxwell, coming into the pulpit from that all-night vigil, felt the
+pressure of a great curiosity on the part of the people. They had
+heard of the Raymond movement, as all the churches had, and the
+recent action of Dr. Bruce had added to the general interest in the
+pledge. With this curiosity was something deeper, more serious. Mr.
+Maxwell felt that also. And in the knowledge that the Spirit's
+presence was his living strength, he brought his message and gave it
+to that church that day.
+
+He had never been what would be called a great preacher. He had not
+the force nor the quality that makes remarkable preachers. But ever
+since he had promised to do as Jesus would do, he had grown in a
+certain quality of persuasiveness that had all the essentials of
+true eloquence. This morning the people felt the complete sincerity
+and humility of a man who had gone deep into the heart of a great
+truth.
+
+After telling briefly of some results in his own church in Raymond
+since the pledge was taken, he went on to ask the question he had
+been asking since the Settlement meeting. He had taken for his theme
+the story of the young man who came to Jesus asking what he must do
+to obtain eternal life. Jesus had tested him. "Sell all that thou
+hast and give to the poor, and thou shalt have treasure in heaven;
+and come follow me." But the young man was not willing to suffer to
+that extent. If following Jesus meant suffering in that way, he was
+not willing. He would like to follow Jesus, but not if he had to
+give so much.
+
+"Is it true," continued Henry Maxwell, and his fine, thoughtful face
+glowed with a passion of appeal that stirred the people as they had
+seldom been stirred, "is it true that the church of today, the
+church that is called after Christ's own name, would refuse to
+follow Him at the expense of suffering, of physical loss, of
+temporary gain? The statement was made at a large gathering in the
+Settlement last week by a leader of workingmen that it was hopeless
+to look to the church for any reform or redemption of society. On
+what was that statement based? Plainly on the assumption that the
+church contains for the most part men and women who think more 'of
+their own ease and luxury' than of the sufferings and needs and sins
+of humanity. How far is that true? Are the Christians of America
+ready to have their discipleship tested? How about the men who
+possess large wealth? Are they ready to take that wealth and use it
+as Jesus would? How about the men and women of great talent? Are
+they ready to consecrate that talent to humanity as Jesus
+undoubtedly would do?
+
+"Is it not true that the call has come in this age for a new
+exhibition of Christian discipleship? You who live in this great
+sinful city must know that better than I do. Is it possible you can
+go your ways careless or thoughtless of the awful condition of men
+and women and children who are dying, body and soul, for need of
+Christian help? Is it not a matter of concern to you personally that
+the saloon kills its thousands more surely than war? Is it not a
+matter of personal suffering in some form for you that thousands of
+able-bodied, willing men tramp the streets of this city and all
+cities, crying for work and drifting into crime and suicide because
+they cannot find it? Can you say that this is none of your business?
+Let each man look after himself? Would it not be true, think you,
+that if every Christian in America did as Jesus would do, society
+itself, the business world, yes, the very political system under
+which our commercial and governmental activity is carried on, would
+be so changed that human suffering would be reduced to a minimum?
+
+"What would be the result if all the church members of this city
+tried to do as Jesus would do? It is not possible to say in detail
+what the effect would be. But it is easy to say, and it is true,
+that instantly the human problem would begin to find an adequate
+answer.
+
+"What is the test of Christian discipleship? Is it not the same as
+in Christ's own time? Have our surroundings modified or changed the
+test? If Jesus were here today would He not call some of the members
+of this very church to do just what He commanded the young man, and
+ask them to give up their wealth and literally follow Him? I believe
+He would do that if He felt certain that any church member thought
+more of his possessions than of the Savior. The test would be the
+same today as then. I believe Jesus would demand He does demand
+now--as close a following, as much suffering, as great self-denial
+as when He lived in person on the earth and said, 'Except a man
+renounce all that he hath he cannot be my disciple.' That is, unless
+he is willing to do it for my sake, he cannot be my disciple.
+
+"What would be the result if in this city every church member should
+begin to do as Jesus would do? It is not easy to go into details of
+the result. But we all know that certain things would be impossible
+that are now practiced by church members.
+
+"What would Jesus do in the matter of wealth? How would He spend it?
+What principle would regulate His use of money? Would He be likely
+to live in great luxury and spend ten times as much on personal
+adornment and entertainment as He spent to relieve the needs of
+suffering humanity? How would Jesus be governed in the making of
+money? Would He take rentals from saloons and other disreputable
+property, or even from tenement property that was so constructed
+that the inmates had no such things as a home and no such
+possibility as privacy or cleanliness?
+
+"What would Jesus do about the great army of unemployed and
+desperate who tramp the streets and curse the church, or are
+indifferent to it, lost in the bitter struggle for the bread that
+tastes bitter when it is earned on account of the desperate conflict
+to get it? Would Jesus care nothing for them? Would He go His way in
+comparative ease and comfort? Would He say that it was none of His
+business? Would He excuse Himself from all responsibility to remove
+the causes of such a condition?
+
+"What would Jesus do in the center of a civilization that hurries so
+fast after money that the very girls employed in great business
+houses are not paid enough to keep soul and body together without
+fearful temptations so great that scores of them fall and are swept
+over the great boiling abyss; where the demands of trade sacrifice
+hundreds of lads in a business that ignores all Christian duties
+toward them in the way of education and moral training and personal
+affection? Would Jesus, if He were here today as a part of our age
+and commercial industry, feel nothing, do nothing, say nothing, in
+the face of these facts which every business man knows?
+
+"What would Jesus do? Is not that what the disciple ought to do? Is
+he not commanded to follow in His steps? How much is the
+Christianity of the age suffering for Him? Is it denying itself at
+the cost of ease, comfort, luxury, elegance of living? What does the
+age need more than personal sacrifice? Does the church do its duty
+in following Jesus when it gives a little money to establish
+missions or relieve extreme cases of want? Is it any sacrifice for a
+man who is worth ten million dollars simply to give ten thousand
+dollars for some benevolent work? Is he not giving something that
+cost him practically nothing so far as any personal suffering goes?
+Is it true that the Christian disciples today in most of our
+churches are living soft, easy, selfish lives, very far from any
+sacrifice that can be called sacrifice? What would Jesus do?
+
+"It is the personal element that Christian discipleship needs to
+emphasize. 'The gift without the giver is bare.' The Christianity
+that attempts to suffer by proxy is not the Christianity of Christ.
+Each individual Christian business man, citizen, needs to follow in
+His steps along the path of personal sacrifice to Him. There is not
+a different path today from that of Jesus' own times. It is the same
+path. The call of this dying century and of the new one soon to be,
+is a call for a new discipleship, a new following of Jesus, more
+like the early, simple, apostolic Christianity, when the disciples
+left all and literally followed the Master. Nothing but a
+discipleship of this kind can face the destructive selfishness of
+the age with any hope of overcoming it. There is a great quantity of
+nominal Christianity today. There is need of more of the real kind.
+We need revival of the Christianity of Christ. We have,
+unconsciously, lazily, selfishly, formally grown into a discipleship
+that Jesus himself would not acknowledge. He would say to many of us
+when we cry, 'Lord, Lord,' 'I never knew you!' Are we ready to take
+up the cross? Is it possible for this church to sing with exact
+truth,
+
+'Jesus, I my cross have taken, All to leave and follow Thee?'
+
+If we can sing that truly, then we may claim discipleship. But if
+our definition of being a Christian is simply to enjoy the
+privileges of worship, be generous at no expense to ourselves, have
+a good, easy time surrounded by pleasant friends and by comfortable
+things, live respectably and at the same time avoid the world's
+great stress of sin and trouble because it is too much pain to bear
+it--if this is our definition of Christianity, surely we are a long
+way from following the steps of Him who trod the way with groans and
+tears and sobs of anguish for a lost humanity; who sweat, as it
+were, great drops of blood, who cried out on the upreared cross, 'My
+God, my God, why hast thou forsaken me?'
+
+"Are we ready to make and live a new discipleship? Are we ready to
+reconsider our definition of a Christian? What is it to be a
+Christian? It is to imitate Jesus. It is to do as He would do. It is
+to walk in His steps."
+
+When Henry Maxwell finished his sermon, he paused and looked at the
+people with a look they never forgot and, at the moment, did not
+understand. Crowded into that fashionable church that day were
+hundreds of men and women who had for years lived the easy,
+satisfied life of a nominal Christianity. A great silence fell over
+the congregation. Through the silence there came to the
+consciousness of all the souls there present a knowledge, stranger
+to them now for years, of a Divine Power. Every one expected the
+preacher to call for volunteers who would do as Jesus would do. But
+Maxwell had been led by the Spirit to deliver his message this time
+and wait for results to come.
+
+He closed the service with a tender prayer that kept the Divine
+Presence lingering very near every hearer, and the people slowly
+rose to go out. Then followed a scene that would have been
+impossible if any mere man had been alone in his striving for
+results.
+
+Men and women in great numbers crowded around the platform to see
+Mr. Maxwell and to bring him the promise of their consecration to
+the pledge to do as Jesus would do. It was a voluntary, spontaneous
+movement that broke upon his soul with a result he could not
+measure. But had he not been praying for is very thing? It was an
+answer that more than met his desires.
+
+There followed this movement a prayer service that in its
+impressions repeated the Raymond experience. In the evening, to Mr.
+Maxwell's joy, the Endeavor Society almost to a member came forward,
+as so many of the church members had done in the morning, and
+seriously, solemnly, tenderly, took the pledge to do as Jesus would
+do. A deep wave of spiritual baptism broke over the meeting near its
+close that was indescribable in its tender, joyful, sympathetic
+results.
+
+That was a remarkable day in the history of that church, but even
+more so in the history of Henry Maxwell. He left the meeting very
+late. He went to his room at the Settlement where he was still
+stopping, and after an hour with the Bishop and Dr. Bruce, spent in
+a joyful rehearsal of the wonderful events of the day, he sat down
+to think over again by himself all the experience he was having as a
+Christian disciple.
+
+He had kneeled to pray, as he always did before going to sleep, and
+it was while he was on his knees that he had a waking vision of what
+might be in the world when once the new discipleship had made its
+way into the conscience and conscientiousness of Christendom. He was
+fully conscious of being awake, but no less certainly did it seem to
+him that he saw certain results with great distinctiveness, partly
+as realities of the future, partly great longings that they might be
+realities. And this is what Henry Maxwell saw in this waking vision:
+
+He saw himself, first, going back to the First Church in Raymond,
+living there in a simpler, more self-denying fashion than he had yet
+been willing to live, because he saw ways in which he could help
+others who were really dependent on him for help. He also saw, more
+dimly, that the time would come when his position as pastor of the
+church would cause him to suffer more on account of growing
+opposition to his interpretation of Jesus and His conduct. But this
+was vaguely outlined. Through it all he heard the words "My grace is
+sufficient for thee."
+
+He saw Rachel Winslow and Virginia Page going on with their work of
+service at the Rectangle, and reaching out loving hands of
+helpfulness far beyond the limits of Raymond. Rachel he saw married
+to Rollin Page, both fully consecrated to the Master's use, both
+following His steps with an eagerness intensified and purified by
+their love for each other. And Rachel's voice sang on, in slums and
+dark places of despair and sin, and drew lost souls back to God and
+heaven once more.
+
+He saw President Marsh of the college using his great learning and
+his great influence to purify the city, to ennoble its patriotism,
+to inspire the young men and women who loved as well as admired him
+to lives of Christian service, always teaching them that education
+means great responsibility for the weak and the ignorant.
+
+He saw Alexander Powers meeting with sore trials in his family life,
+with a constant sorrow in the estrangement of wife and friends, but
+still going his way in all honor, serving in all his strength the
+Master whom he had obeyed, even unto the loss of social distinction
+and wealth.
+
+He saw Milton Wright, the merchant, meeting with great reverses.
+Thrown upon the future by a combination of circumstances, with vast
+business interests involved in ruin through no fault of his own, but
+coming out of his reverses with clean Christian honor, to begin
+again and work up to a position where he could again be to hundreds
+of young men an example of what Jesus would do in business.
+
+He saw Edward Norman, editor of the NEWS, by means of the money
+given by Virginia, creating a force in journalism that in time came
+to be recognized as one of the real factors of the nation to mold
+its principles and actually shape its policy, a daily illustration
+of the might of a Christian press, and the first of a series of such
+papers begun and carried on by other disciples who had also taken
+the pledge.
+
+He saw Jasper Chase, who had denied his Master, growing into a cold,
+cynical, formal life, writing novels that were social successes, but
+each one with a sting in it, the reminder of his denial, the bitter
+remorse that, do what he would, no social success could remove.
+
+He saw Rose Sterling, dependent for some years upon her aunt and
+Felicia, finally married to a man far older than herself, accepting
+the burden of a relation that had no love in it on her part, because
+of her desire to be the wife of a rich man and enjoy the physical
+luxuries that were all of life to her. Over this life also the
+vision cast certain dark and awful shadows but they were not shown
+in detail.
+
+He saw Felicia and Stephen Clyde happily married, living a beautiful
+life together, enthusiastic, joyful in suffering, pouring out their
+great, strong, fragrant service into the dull, dark, terrible places
+of the great city, and redeeming souls through the personal touch of
+their home, dedicated to the Human Homesickness all about them.
+
+He saw Dr. Bruce and the Bishop going on with the Settlement work.
+He seemed to see the great blazing motto over the door enlarged,
+"What would Jesus do?" and by this motto every one who entered the
+Settlement walked in the steps of the Master.
+
+He saw Burns and his companion and a great company of men like them,
+redeemed and giving in turn to others, conquering their passions by
+the divine grace, and proving by their daily lives the reality of
+the new birth even in the lowest and most abandoned.
+
+And now the vision was troubled. It seemed to him that as he kneeled
+he began to pray, and the vision was more of a longing for a future
+than a reality in the future. The church of Jesus in the city and
+throughout the country! Would it follow Jesus? Was the movement
+begun in Raymond to spend itself in a few churches like Nazareth
+Avenue and the one where he had preached today, and then die away as
+a local movement, a stirring on the surface but not to extend deep
+and far? He felt with agony after the vision again. He thought he
+saw the church of Jesus in America open its heart to the moving of
+the Spirit and rise to the sacrifice of its ease and
+self-satisfaction in the name of Jesus. He thought he saw the motto,
+"What would Jesus do?" inscribed over every church door, and written
+on every church member's heart.
+
+The vision vanished. It came back clearer than before, and he saw
+the Endeavor Societies all over the world carrying in their great
+processions at some mighty convention a banner on which was written,
+"What would Jesus do?" And he thought in the faces of the young men
+and women he saw future joy of suffering, loss, self-denial,
+martyrdom. And when this part of the vision slowly faded, he saw the
+figure of the Son of God beckoning to him and to all the other
+actors in his life history. An Angel Choir somewhere was singing.
+There was a sound as of many voices and a shout as of a great
+victory. And the figure of Jesus grew more and more splendid. He
+stood at the end of a long flight of steps. "Yes! Yes! O my Master,
+has not the time come for this dawn of the millennium of Christian
+history? Oh, break upon the Christendom of this age with the light
+and the truth! Help us to follow Thee all the way!"
+
+He rose at last with the awe of one who has looked at heavenly
+things. He felt the human forces and the human sins of the world as
+never before. And with a hope that walks hand in hand with faith and
+love Henry Maxwell, disciple of Jesus, laid him down to sleep and
+dreamed of the regeneration of Christendom, and saw in his dream a
+church of Jesus without spot or wrinkle or any such thing, following
+him all the way, walking obediently in His steps.
+
+THE END
+
+
+
+
+End of the Project Gutenberg Etext of In His Steps, by Charles M. Sheldon
+
diff --git a/old/nhstp10.zip b/old/nhstp10.zip
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..601c6a6
--- /dev/null
+++ b/old/nhstp10.zip
Binary files differ